This is a modern-English version of The Golden Bough: A Study in Comparative Religion (Vol. 1 of 2), originally written by Frazer, James George. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

Cover Art

[Transcriber's Note: The above cover image was produced by the submitter at Distributed Proofreaders, and is being placed into the public domain.]

[Transcriber's Note: The cover image above was created by the submitter at Distributed Proofreaders and is now in the public domain.]

Frontispiece
[pg v]

Dedication.

To My Friend

To My Friend

WILLIAM ROBERTSON SMITH

WILLIAM ROBERTSON SMITH

In Gratitude And Admiration

With Thanks And Admiration

[pg vii]

Introduction.

For some time I have been preparing a general work on primitive superstition and religion. Among the problems which had attracted my attention was the hitherto unexplained rule of the Arician priesthood; and last spring it happened that in the course of my reading I came across some facts which, combined with others I had noted before, suggested an explanation of the rule in question. As the explanation, if correct, promised to throw light on some obscure features of primitive religion, I resolved to develop it fully, and, detaching it from my general work, to issue it as a separate study. This book is the result.

For a while, I've been working on a comprehensive study about early superstition and religion. One of the issues that caught my attention was the previously unexplained rule of the Arician priesthood. Last spring, while reading, I stumbled upon some information that, along with other notes I'd made earlier, suggested a potential explanation for this rule. Since the explanation, if accurate, could shed light on some unclear aspects of early religion, I decided to explore it in detail and publish it as a standalone study, separate from my main work. This book is the outcome.

Now that the theory, which necessarily presented itself to me at first in outline, has been worked out in detail, I cannot but feel that in some places I may have pushed it too far. If this should prove to have been the case, I will readily acknowledge and retract my error as soon as it is brought home to me. Meantime my essay may serve its purpose as a first attempt to solve a difficult problem, and to bring a variety of scattered facts into some sort of order and system.

Now that the theory, which initially came to me as just an outline, has been developed in detail, I can’t help but feel that in some areas I might have taken it too far. If that turns out to be the case, I will openly admit and correct my mistake as soon as it’s pointed out to me. In the meantime, my essay may serve its purpose as a first attempt to tackle a challenging problem and to organize a range of scattered facts into a coherent system.

A justification is perhaps needed of the length at which I have dwelt upon the popular festivals observed [pg viii] by European peasants in spring, at midsummer, and at harvest. It can hardly be too often repeated, since it is not yet generally recognised, that in spite of their fragmentary character the popular superstitions and customs of the peasantry are by far the fullest and most trustworthy evidence we possess as to the primitive religion of the Aryans. Indeed the primitive Aryan, in all that regards his mental fibre and texture, is not extinct. He is amongst us to this day. The great intellectual and moral forces which have revolutionised the educated world have scarcely affected the peasant. In his inmost beliefs he is what his forefathers were in the days when forest trees still grew and squirrels played on the ground where Rome and London now stand.

A justification is perhaps needed for the length of time I have spent discussing the popular festivals celebrated [pg viii] by European peasants in spring, midsummer, and harvest. It can't be emphasized enough, since it's not yet widely acknowledged, that despite their fragmented nature, the folk superstitions and customs of the peasantry are by far the most complete and reliable evidence we have of the primitive religion of the Aryans. In fact, the primitive Aryan, in terms of his mental makeup and characteristics, is not extinct. He is still among us today. The significant intellectual and moral forces that have transformed the educated world have hardly touched the peasant. At his core beliefs, he remains much like his ancestors were back in the days when forest trees still thrived and squirrels roamed where Rome and London now exist.

Hence every inquiry into the primitive religion of the Aryans should either start from the superstitious beliefs and observances of the peasantry, or should at least be constantly checked and controlled by reference to them. Compared with the evidence afforded by living tradition, the testimony of ancient books on the subject of early religion is worth very little. For literature accelerates the advance of thought at a rate which leaves the slow progress of opinion by word of mouth at an immeasurable distance behind. Two or three generations of literature may do more to change thought than two or three thousand years of traditional life. But the mass of the people who do not read books remain unaffected by the mental revolution wrought by literature; and so it has come about that in Europe at the present day the superstitious beliefs and practices which have been handed [pg ix] down by word of mouth are generally of a far more archaic type than the religion depicted in the most ancient literature of the Aryan race.

So, any investigation into the early religion of the Aryans should either begin with the superstitions and practices of the common people or should at least be regularly checked against them. When you compare the evidence from living traditions to what ancient texts say about early religion, the written accounts don’t hold much value. Literature speeds up the development of ideas much faster than the slow evolution of beliefs passed down orally. A few generations of written works can change thinking more than thousands of years of traditional life. However, the majority of people who don’t read remain untouched by the changes in thought brought on by literature; as a result, in Europe today, the superstitions and practices passed down orally are generally much older and more primitive than the religions described in the oldest writings of the Aryan people.

It is on these grounds that, in discussing the meaning and origin of an ancient Italian priesthood, I have devoted so much attention to the popular customs and superstitions of modern Europe. In this part of my subject I have made great use of the works of the late W. Mannhardt, without which, indeed, my book could scarcely have been written. Fully recognising the truth of the principles which I have imperfectly stated, Mannhardt set himself systematically to collect, compare, and explain the living superstitions of the peasantry. Of this wide field the special department which he marked out for himself was the religion of the woodman and the farmer, in other words, the superstitious beliefs and rites connected with trees and cultivated plants. By oral inquiry, and by printed questions scattered broadcast over Europe, as well as by ransacking the literature of folk-lore, he collected a mass of evidence, part of which he published in a series of admirable works. But his health, always feeble, broke down before he could complete the comprehensive and really vast scheme which he had planned, and at his too early death much of his precious materials remained unpublished. His manuscripts are now deposited in the University Library at Berlin, and in the interest of the study to which he devoted his life it is greatly to be desired that they should be examined, and that such portions of them as he has not utilised in his books should be given to the world.

It is on these grounds that, in discussing the meaning and origin of an ancient Italian priesthood, I have focused extensively on the popular customs and superstitions of modern Europe. In this part of my work, I have greatly relied on the writings of the late W. Mannhardt, without which my book could hardly have been written. Fully recognizing the validity of the principles I have only partially expressed, Mannhardt systematically set out to collect, compare, and explain the living superstitions of the peasantry. In this broad area, he specifically targeted the beliefs and rituals of woodworkers and farmers, meaning the superstitions related to trees and cultivated plants. Through interviews and by distributing printed questionnaires across Europe, as well as by thoroughly researching folklore literature, he amassed a wealth of evidence, some of which he published in a series of excellent works. However, his always fragile health deteriorated before he could finish the extensive and truly ambitious plan he had envisioned, and at his untimely death, much of his valuable material remained unpublished. His manuscripts are now housed in the University Library in Berlin, and it is highly desirable for the sake of the field he dedicated his life to that they be examined and that any parts he did not include in his books be shared with the world.

[pg x]

Of his published works the most important are, first, two tracts, Roggenwolf und Roggenhund, Danzig 1865 (second edition, Danzig, 1866), and Die Korndämonen, Berlin, 1868. These little works were put forward by him tentatively, in the hope of exciting interest in his inquiries and thereby securing the help of others in pursuing them. But, except from a few learned societies, they met with very little attention. Undeterred by the cold reception accorded to his efforts he worked steadily on, and in 1875 published his chief work, Der Baumkultus der Germanen und ihrer Nachbarstämme. This was followed in 1877 by Antike Wald- und Feldkulte. His Mythologische Forschungen, a posthumous work, appeared in 1884.1

Of his published works, the most important are, first, two tracts, Rye Wolf and Rye Dog, Danzig 1865 (second edition, Danzig, 1866), and The Grain Demons, Berlin, 1868. He released these short works tentatively, hoping to spark interest in his inquiries and thus secure help from others in pursuing them. However, apart from a few scholarly societies, they received very little attention. Undeterred by the lukewarm reception of his efforts, he continued to work steadily and in 1875 published his main work, The tree worship of the Germans and their neighboring tribes. This was followed in 1877 by Ancient forest and field cults. His Mythological Research, a posthumous work, was published in 1884.1

Much as I owe to Mannhardt, I owe still more to my friend Professor W. Robertson Smith. My interest in the early history of society was first excited by the works of Dr. E. B. Tylor, which opened up a mental vista undreamed of by me before. But it is a long step from a lively interest in a subject to a systematic study of it; and that I took this step is due to the influence of my friend W. Robertson Smith. The debt which I owe to the vast stores of his knowledge, the abundance and fertility of his ideas, and his unwearied kindness, can scarcely be overestimated. Those who know his writings may form some, though a very inadequate, conception of the extent to which I have been influenced by him. The views of sacrifice set forth in his article “Sacrifice” in the Encyclopaedia [pg xi]Britannica, and further developed in his recent work, The Religion of the Semites, mark a new departure in the historical study of religion, and ample traces of them will be found in this book. Indeed the central idea of my essay—the conception of the slain god—is derived directly, I believe, from my friend. But it is due to him to add that he is in no way responsible for the general explanation which I have offered of the custom of slaying the god. He has read the greater part of the proofs in circumstances which enhanced the kindness, and has made many valuable suggestions which I have usually adopted; but except where he is cited by name, or where the views expressed coincide with those of his published works, he is not to be regarded as necessarily assenting to any of the theories propounded in this book.

As much as I owe to Mannhardt, I owe even more to my friend Professor W. Robertson Smith. My interest in the early history of society was first sparked by the works of Dr. E. B. Tylor, which opened up a new perspective I hadn’t considered before. However, moving from a strong interest in a topic to a structured study of it is a big leap, and I took that leap because of my friend W. Robertson Smith. The debt I owe to his vast knowledge, the richness and creativity of his ideas, and his endless kindness is hard to measure. Those familiar with his writings can get a glimpse, though it’s still not enough, of how much he has influenced me. The ideas about sacrifice presented in his article "Give up" in the Encyclopaedia [pg xi]Britannica, and further elaborated in his recent book, The Religion of the Semites, represent a significant shift in the historical study of religion, and you will see traces of these ideas throughout this book. In fact, the central idea of my essay—the concept of the slain god—comes directly from my friend. However, it’s important to mention that he is not responsible for the broader explanation I’ve provided regarding the custom of slaying the god. He has reviewed most of the proofs under circumstances that highlight his generosity and has given me many helpful suggestions that I typically adopted; but unless he is specifically quoted or the views expressed align with his published works, he should not be considered as necessarily agreeing with any of the theories presented in this book.

The works of Professor G. A. Wilken of Leyden have been of great service in directing me to the best original authorities on the Dutch East Indies, a very important field to the ethnologist. To the courtesy of the Rev. Walter Gregor, M.A., of Pitsligo, I am indebted for some interesting communications which will be found acknowledged in their proper places. Mr. Francis Darwin has kindly allowed me to consult him on some botanical questions. The manuscript authorities to which I occasionally refer are answers to a list of ethnological questions which I am circulating. Most of them will, I hope, be published in the Journal of the Anthropological Institute.

The work of Professor G. A. Wilken from Leyden has been incredibly helpful in guiding me to the best original sources on the Dutch East Indies, which is a crucial area for ethnologists. I’m grateful to the Rev. Walter Gregor, M.A., of Pitsligo, for some interesting insights, which I’ve acknowledged in the appropriate sections. Mr. Francis Darwin has generously allowed me to consult him on various botanical matters. The manuscript sources I occasionally reference are responses to a series of ethnological questions that I’m distributing. Most of these will, I hope, be published in the Anthropological Institute Journal.

The drawing of the Golden Bough which adorns the cover is from the pencil of my friend Professor J. H. Middleton. The constant interest and sympathy [pg xii] which he has shown in the progress of the book have been a great help and encouragement to me in writing it.

The illustration of the Golden Bough on the cover was created by my friend, Professor J. H. Middleton. His ongoing interest and support in the development of the book have been a tremendous help and encouragement to me while I was writing it.

The Index has been compiled by Mr. A. Rogers, of the University Library, Cambridge.

The Index was put together by Mr. A. Rogers from the University Library, Cambridge.

J. G. FRAZER.

J.G. Frazer.

Trinity College, Cambridge,
8th March 1890.

Trinity College, Cambridge, 8th March 1890.

[pg 001]

Chapter I. The King of the Wood.

The calm, smooth lake that rests
Under Aricia's trees—
Those trees in whose faint shadow
The creepy priest rules,
The priest who killed the killer,
And will be killed himself.
Macaulay.

The Arician Grove.

Who does not know Turner's picture of the Golden Bough? The scene, suffused with the golden glow of imagination in which the divine mind of Turner steeped and transfigured even the fairest natural landscape, is a dream-like vision of the little woodland lake of Nemi, “Diana's Mirror,” as it was called by the ancients. No one who has seen that calm water, lapped in a green hollow of the Alban hills, can ever forget it. The two characteristic Italian villages which slumber on its banks, and the equally Italian palazzo whose terraced gardens descend steeply to the lake, hardly break the stillness and even the solitariness of the scene. Dian herself might still linger by this lonely shore, still haunt these woodlands wild.

Who doesn’t know Turner’s painting of the Golden Bough? The scene, filled with the golden glow of imagination, where Turner’s divine vision transformed even the most beautiful natural landscape, is a dream-like image of the little woodland lake of Nemi, “Diana's Mirror,” as the ancients called it. No one who has seen that calm water, nestled in a green hollow of the Alban hills, can ever forget it. The two typical Italian villages that rest on its banks, along with the equally Italian palazzo whose terraced gardens steeply descend to the lake, barely disturb the peace and solitude of the scene. Diana herself might still linger by this lonely shore, still haunt these wild woods.

[pg 002]

In antiquity this sylvan landscape was the scene of a strange and recurring tragedy. On the northern shore of the lake, right under the precipitous cliffs on which the modern village of Nemi is perched, stood the sacred grove and sanctuary of Diana Nemorensis, or Diana of the Wood.2 The lake and the grove were sometimes known as the lake and grove of Aricia.3 But the town of Aricia (the modern La Riccia) was situated about three miles off, at the foot of the Alban Mount, and separated by a steep descent from the lake, which lies in a small crater-like hollow on the mountain side. In this sacred grove there grew a certain tree round which at any time of the day and probably far into the night a strange figure might be seen to prowl. In his hand he carried a drawn sword, and he kept peering warily about him as if every instant he expected to be set upon by an enemy.4 He was a priest and a murderer; and the man for whom he looked was sooner or later to murder him and hold the priesthood in his stead. Such was the rule of the sanctuary. A candidate for the priesthood could only succeed to office by slaying the priest, and having slain him he held office till he was himself slain by a stronger or a craftier.

In ancient times, this forested area was the site of a strange and repeating tragedy. On the northern shore of the lake, right beneath the steep cliffs where the modern village of Nemi is located, stood the sacred grove and sanctuary of Diana Nemorensis, or Diana of the Woods.2 The lake and the grove were sometimes referred to as the lake and grove of Aricia.3 However, the town of Aricia (now La Riccia) was about three miles away, at the base of the Alban Mount, separated by a steep drop from the lake, which rests in a small crater-like depression on the mountainside. In this sacred grove grew a specific tree around which, at any time of day and likely long into the night, a strange figure could be seen lurking. He carried a drawn sword and scanned his surroundings cautiously, as if he expected an attack from an enemy at any moment.4 He was both a priest and a murderer, and the man he was watching for would eventually kill him and take over the priesthood. Such was the rule of the sanctuary: a candidate for the priesthood could only ascend to the position by killing the current priest, and after killing him, he would hold the office until he was killed himself by someone stronger or more cunning.

This strange rule has no parallel in classical antiquity, and cannot be explained from it. To find an explanation we must go farther afield. No one will probably deny that such a custom savours of a barbarous [pg 003] age and, surviving into imperial times, stands out in striking isolation from the polished Italian society of the day, like a primeval rock rising from a smooth-shaven lawn. It is the very rudeness and barbarity of the custom which allow us a hope of explaining it. For recent researches into the early history of man have revealed the essential similarity with which, under many superficial differences, the human mind has elaborated its first crude philosophy of life. Accordingly if we can show that a barbarous custom, like that of the priesthood of Nemi, has existed elsewhere; if we can detect the motives which led to its institution; if we can prove that these motives have operated widely, perhaps universally, in human society, producing in varied circumstances a variety of institutions specifically different but generically alike; if we can show, lastly, that these very motives, with some of their derivative institutions, were actually at work in classical antiquity; then we may fairly infer that at a remoter age the same motives gave birth to the priesthood of Nemi. Such an inference, in default of direct evidence as to how the priesthood did actually arise, can never amount to demonstration. But it will be more or less probable according to the degree of completeness with which it fulfils the conditions indicated above. The object of this book is, by meeting these conditions, to offer a fairly probable explanation of the priesthood of Nemi.

This strange rule has no equivalent in ancient times and can’t be explained by it. To find an explanation, we need to look further away. No one would probably disagree that such a custom feels barbaric and, even into imperial times, stands out in stark contrast to the refined Italian society of the time, like a primordial rock rising from a well-manicured lawn. It's the very roughness and barbarism of the custom that gives us hope of explaining it. Recent research into early human history has revealed the fundamental similarities with which, despite many superficial differences, the human mind has developed its first crude philosophies of life. Therefore, if we can show that a barbaric custom, like that of the priesthood of Nemi, has existed elsewhere; if we can identify the motives that led to its establishment; if we can prove that these motives have operated widely, perhaps universally, in human society, resulting in various institutions that are specifically different but generically alike; if we can demonstrate, finally, that these very motives, along with some of their offshoot institutions, were indeed at work in classical antiquity; then we may reasonably conclude that in a more distant age, the same motives gave rise to the priesthood of Nemi. Such a conclusion, in the absence of direct evidence as to how the priesthood actually originated, can never be proven definitively. However, it will be more or less likely depending on how well it meets the conditions mentioned above. The goal of this book is, by addressing these conditions, to provide a fairly plausible explanation of the priesthood of Nemi.

I begin by setting forth the few facts and legends which have come down to us on the subject. According to one story the worship of Diana at Nemi was instituted by Orestes, who, after killing Thoas, King of the Tauric Chersonese (the Crimea), fled with his sister to Italy, bringing with him the image of the Tauric Diana. The bloody ritual which legend ascribed to that goddess [pg 004] is familiar to classical readers; it is said that every stranger who landed on the shore was sacrificed on her altar. But transported to Italy, the rite assumed a milder form. Within the sanctuary at Nemi grew a certain tree of which no branch might be broken. Only a runaway slave was allowed to break off, if he could, one of its boughs. Success in the attempt entitled him to fight the priest in single combat, and if he slew him he reigned in his stead with the title of King of the Wood (Rex Nemorensis). Tradition averred that the fateful branch was that Golden Bough which, at the Sibyl's bidding, Aeneas plucked before he essayed the perilous journey to the world of the dead. The flight of the slave represented, it was said, the flight of Orestes; his combat with the priest was a reminiscence of the human sacrifices once offered to the Tauric Diana. This rule of succession by the sword was observed down to imperial times; for amongst his other freaks Caligula, thinking that the priest of Nemi had held office too long, hired a more stalwart ruffian to slay him.5

I start by laying out the few facts and stories that have come down to us on the topic. According to one tale, the worship of Diana at Nemi was established by Orestes, who, after killing Thoas, the King of the Tauric Chersonese (the Crimea), fled to Italy with his sister, bringing the image of the Tauric Diana with him. The bloody ritual that legend attributed to that goddess [pg 004] is well-known among those familiar with classical texts; it is said that every stranger who arrived on the shore was sacrificed on her altar. However, once in Italy, the ritual took on a gentler form. Inside the sanctuary at Nemi, there was a particular tree whose branches were never to be broken. Only a runaway slave was allowed to break off a branch if he managed to do so. Succeeding in this task allowed him to challenge the priest to a duel, and if he killed him, he would take over his position as King of the Wood (Rex Nemorensis). Tradition claimed that the significant branch was the Golden Bough that Aeneas plucked at the Sibyl's urging before he undertook the dangerous journey to the underworld. The slave's escape symbolized Orestes's flight; his duel with the priest recalled the human sacrifices once made to the Tauric Diana. This practice of succession through violence continued until imperial times; for example, Caligula, among his other eccentricities, thought the priest of Nemi had been in power for too long and hired a stronger thug to kill him.

Of the worship of Diana at Nemi two leading features can still be made out. First, from the votive-offerings found in modern times on the site, it appears that she was especially worshipped by women desirous of children or of an easy delivery.6 Second, fire seems [pg 005] to have played a foremost part in her ritual. For during her annual festival, celebrated at the hottest time of the year, her grove was lit up by a multitude of torches, whose ruddy glare was reflected by the waters of the lake; and throughout the length and breadth of Italy the day was kept with holy rites at every domestic hearth.7 Moreover, women whose prayers had been heard by the goddess brought lighted torches to the grove in fulfilment of their vows.8 Lastly, the title of Vesta borne by the Arician Diana9 points almost certainly to the maintenance of a perpetual holy fire in her sanctuary.

Of the worship of Diana at Nemi, two main aspects are still clear. First, based on the votive offerings discovered in modern times at the site, it seems she was particularly honored by women wishing for children or an easy childbirth.6 Second, fire appears to have played a significant role in her rituals. During her annual festival, held at the hottest time of the year, her grove was illuminated by numerous torches, casting a red glow reflected on the lake's waters; and throughout Italy, the day was celebrated with sacred rites at every home.7 Additionally, women whose prayers had been answered by the goddess would bring lighted torches to the grove as part of their vows.8 Finally, the title of Vesta associated with the Arician Diana9 strongly suggests that a perpetual holy fire was maintained in her sanctuary.

At her annual festival all young people went through a purificatory ceremony in her honour; dogs were crowned; and the feast consisted of a young kid, wine, and cakes, served up piping hot on platters of leaves.10

At her annual festival, all the young people participated in a purification ceremony in her honor; dogs were crowned; and the feast included a young goat, wine, and cakes, served up hot on platters made of leaves.10

But Diana did not reign alone in her grove at Nemi. Two lesser divinities shared her forest sanctuary. One was Egeria, the nymph of the clear water which, bubbling from the basaltic rocks, used to fall in graceful cascades into the lake at the place called Le Mole.11 According to one story the grove was first consecrated to Diana by a Manius Egerius, who was the ancestor of a long and distinguished line. Hence the proverb “There are many Manii at Ariciae.” Others explained the proverb very differently. They said it meant that there were a great many ugly and [pg 006] deformed people, and they referred to the word Mania which meant a bogey or bugbear to frighten children.12

But Diana didn't rule alone in her grove at Nemi. Two lesser deities shared her forest sanctuary. One was Egeria, the nymph of the clear water that bubbled from the basalt rocks and used to flow in graceful cascades into the lake at a place called Le Mole.11 According to one story, the grove was first dedicated to Diana by a Manius Egerius, who was the ancestor of a long and distinguished line. Hence the proverb "There are many Manii in Aricia." Others interpreted the proverb quite differently. They said it meant that there were many ugly and [pg 006] deformed people, referring to the word Mania which meant a bogey or bugbear to scare children.12

The other of these minor deities was Virbius. Legend had it that Virbius was the youthful Greek hero Hippolytus, who had been killed by his horses on the sea-shore of the Saronic Gulf. Him, to please Diana, the leech Aesculapius brought to life again by his simples. But Jupiter, indignant that a mortal man should return from the gates of death, thrust down the meddling leech himself to Hades; and Diana, for the love she bore Hippolytus, carried him away to Italy and hid him from the angry god in the dells of Nemi, where he reigned a forest king under the name of Virbius. Horses were excluded from the grove and sanctuary, because horses had killed Hippolytus.13 Some thought that Virbius was the sun. It was unlawful to touch his image.14 His worship was cared for by a special priest, the Flamen Virbialis.15

The other of these minor deities was Virbius. According to legend, Virbius was the young Greek hero Hippolytus, who was killed by his horses on the shores of the Saronic Gulf. To please Diana, the healer Aesculapius brought him back to life with his herbs. But Jupiter, angry that a mortal man should return from the gates of death, sent the meddling healer down to Hades himself; and Diana, out of love for Hippolytus, took him to Italy and hid him from the furious god in the valleys of Nemi, where he ruled as a forest king under the name of Virbius. Horses were banned from the grove and sanctuary because they had killed Hippolytus.13 Some believed that Virbius was the sun. It was forbidden to touch his image.14 His worship was overseen by a special priest, the Flamen Virbialis.15

Such then are the facts and theories bequeathed to us by antiquity on the subject of the priesthood of Nemi. From materials so slight and scanty it is impossible to extract a solution of the problem. It remains to try whether the survey of a wider field may not yield us the clue we seek. The questions to be answered are two: first, why had the priest to slay his predecessor? and second, why, before he slew him, had he to pluck the Golden Bough? The rest of this book will be an attempt to answer these questions.

These are the facts and theories passed down to us from ancient times regarding the priesthood of Nemi. With such limited and sparse materials, it’s impossible to find a clear answer to the problem. We need to see if looking at a broader context might provide us with some insight. The questions to be addressed are twofold: first, why did the priest have to kill his predecessor? And second, why did he have to pick the Golden Bough before he killed him? The rest of this book will attempt to answer these questions.

[pg 007]

§ 2.—Early humans and the supernatural.

The first point on which we fasten is the priest's title. Why was he called the King of the Wood? why was his office spoken of as a Kingdom?16

The first point we focus on is the priest's title. Why was he called the King of the Wood? Why was his role referred to as a Kingdom?16

The union of a royal title with priestly duties was common in ancient Italy and Greece. At Rome and in other Italian cities there was a priest called the Sacrificial King or King of the Sacred Rites (Rex Sacrificulus or Rex Sacrorum), and his wife bore the title of Queen of the Sacred Rites.17 In republican Athens the second magistrate of the state was called the King, and his wife the Queen; the functions of both were religious.18 Many other Greek democracies had titular kings, whose duties, so far as they are known, seem to have been priestly.19 At Rome the tradition was that the Sacrificial King had been appointed after the expulsion of the kings in order to offer the sacrifices which had been previously offered by the kings.20 In Greece a similar view appears to have prevailed as to the origin of the priestly kings.21 In itself the view is not improbable, and it is borne out by the example of Sparta, the only purely Greek state which retained the kingly form of government in historical times. For in Sparta all state sacrifices were offered by the kings as descendants of the god.22 This combination of priestly functions with royal authority is familiar to every one. Asia Minor, for example, was the seat of various great religious capitals peopled [pg 008] by thousands of “sacred slaves,” and ruled by pontiffs who wielded at once temporal and spiritual authority, like the popes of mediaeval Rome. Such priest-ridden cities were Zela and Pessinus.23 Teutonic kings, again, in the old heathen days seem to have stood in the position, and exercised the powers of high priests.24 The Emperors of China offer public sacrifices, the details of which are regulated by the ritual books.25 It is needless, however, to multiply examples of what is the rule rather than the exception in the early history of the kingship.

The combination of a royal title with religious duties was common in ancient Italy and Greece. In Rome and other Italian cities, there was a priest known as the Sacrificial King or King of the Sacred Rites (Rex Sacrificulus or Rex Sacrorum), and his wife held the title of Queen of the Sacred Rites.17 In republican Athens, the second magistrate of the state was called the King, and his wife was the Queen; both had religious responsibilities.18 Many other Greek democracies also had titular kings, whose roles, as far as we know, seemed to be priestly.19 In Rome, it was believed that the Sacrificial King was appointed after the kings were expelled to perform the sacrifices that had previously been done by the kings.20 A similar perspective seems to have existed in Greece regarding the origin of the priestly kings.21 This idea is not unlikely and is supported by the example of Sparta, which was the only purely Greek state to maintain the kingly form of government in historical times. In Sparta, all state sacrifices were conducted by the kings as descendants of the god.22 This merging of priestly duties with royal power is well-known. For instance, Asia Minor was home to various significant religious capitals populated [pg 008] by thousands of "holy servants," and governed by pontiffs who held both temporal and spiritual authority, similar to the popes of medieval Rome. Such priest-dominated cities included Zela and Pessinus.23 Teutonic kings, in ancient pagan times, also seemed to hold the position and exercised the powers of high priests.24 The Emperors of China conduct public sacrifices, the specifics of which are laid out in ritual books.25 However, it's unnecessary to provide more examples of what is more the norm than the exception in the early history of kingship.

But when we have said that the ancient kings were commonly priests also, we are far from having exhausted the religious aspect of their office. In those days the divinity that hedges a king was no empty form of speech but the expression of a sober belief. Kings were revered, in many cases not merely as priests, that is, as intercessors between man and god, but as themselves gods, able to bestow upon their subjects and worshippers those blessings which are commonly supposed to be beyond the reach of man, and are sought, if at all, only by prayer and sacrifice offered to superhuman and invisible beings. Thus kings are often expected to give rain and sunshine in due season, to make the crops grow, and so on. Strange as this expectation appears to us, it is quite of a piece with early modes of thought. A savage hardly conceives the distinction commonly drawn by more advanced peoples between the natural and the supernatural. To him the world is mostly worked by supernatural agents, that is, by personal beings [pg 009] acting on impulses and motives like his own, liable like him to be moved by appeals to their pity, their fears, and their hopes. In a world so conceived he sees no limit to his power of influencing the course of nature to his own advantage. Prayers, promises, or threats may secure him fine weather and an abundant crop from the gods; and if a god should happen, as he sometimes believes, to become incarnate in his own person, then he need appeal to no higher power; he, the savage, possesses in himself all the supernatural powers necessary to further his own well-being and that of his fellow men.

But when we say that ancient kings were often also priests, we haven't fully explored the religious aspect of their role. Back then, the idea that a king was divine wasn't just empty talk; it reflected a serious belief. Kings were honored not only as priests, who act as mediators between people and gods, but also as gods themselves, capable of granting their subjects and followers blessings that are typically seen as unattainable by humans, sought through prayer and sacrifices to powerful, unseen beings. Thus, kings were often expected to provide rain and sunshine at the right times, to ensure that crops would grow, and so forth. As strange as this expectation may seem to us, it aligns with earlier ways of thinking. A primitive person usually doesn’t see the distinction that more advanced societies make between the natural and the supernatural. For them, the world mainly operates through supernatural agents, personal beings acting on impulses and motives similar to their own, and just like them, these beings can be swayed by appeals to their compassion, fears, and hopes. In such a worldview, there’s no limit to one’s ability to influence nature for personal gain. Prayers, promises, or threats might secure favorable weather and a good harvest from the gods; and if a god were to incarnate in their own body, then they wouldn’t need to turn to any higher power; they, the primitive person, would have within themselves all the supernatural powers required to secure their own well-being and that of their community.

This is one way in which the idea of a man-god is reached. But there is another. Side by side with the view of the world as pervaded by spiritual forces, primitive man has another conception in which we may detect a germ of the modern notion of natural law or the view of nature as a series of events occurring in an invariable order without the intervention of personal agency. The germ of which I speak is involved in that sympathetic magic, as it may be called, which plays a large part in most systems of superstition. One of the principles of sympathetic magic is that any effect may be produced by imitating it. To take a few instances. If it is wished to kill a person an image of him is made and then destroyed; and it is believed that through a certain physical sympathy between the person and his image, the man feels the injuries done to the image as if they were done to his own body, and that when it is destroyed he must simultaneously perish. Again, in Morocco a fowl or a pigeon may sometimes be seen with a little red bundle tied to its foot. The bundle contains a charm, and it is believed that as the charm is kept in constant motion by the bird a corresponding [pg 010] restlessness is kept up in the mind of him or her against whom the charm is directed.26 In Nias when a wild pig has fallen into the pit prepared for it, it is taken out and its back is rubbed with nine fallen leaves, in the belief that this will make nine more wild pigs fall into the pit just as the nine leaves fell from the tree.27 When a Cambodian hunter has set his nets and taken nothing, he strips himself naked, goes some way off, then strolls up to the net as if he did not see it, lets himself be caught in it and cries, “Hillo! what's this? I'm afraid I'm caught.” After that the net is sure to catch game.28 In Thüringen the man who sows flax carries the seed in a long bag which reaches from his shoulders to his knees, and he walks with long strides, so that the bag sways to and fro on his back. It is believed that this will cause the flax crop to wave in the wind.29 In the interior of Sumatra the rice is sown by women who, in sowing, let their hair hang loose down their back, in order that the rice may grow luxuriantly and have long stalks.30 Again, magic sympathy is supposed to exist between a man and any severed portion of his person, as his hair or nails; so that whoever gets possession of hair or nails may work his will, at any distance, upon the person from whom they were cut. This superstition is world-wide. Further, the sympathy in question exists between friends and relations, especially at critical times. Hence, for example, the elaborate code of rules which [pg 011] regulates the conduct of persons left at home while a party of their friends is out fishing or hunting or on the war-path. It is thought that if the persons left at home broke these rules their absent friends would suffer an injury, corresponding in its nature to the breach of the rule. Thus when a Dyak is out head-hunting, his wife or, if he is unmarried, his sister, must wear a sword day and night in order that he may always be thinking of his weapons; and she may not sleep during the day nor go to bed before two in the morning, lest her husband or brother should thereby be surprised in his sleep by an enemy.31 In Laos when an elephant hunter is setting out for the chase he warns his wife not to cut her hair or oil her body in his absence; for if she cut her hair the elephant would burst the toils, if she oiled herself it would slip through them.32

This is one way that the idea of a man-god is developed. But there’s another. Alongside the belief that the world is filled with spiritual forces, primitive people also have another concept that hints at the modern idea of natural law, or viewing nature as a series of events happening in a consistent order without personal intervention. This idea relates to what can be called sympathetic magic, which plays a significant role in many superstitions. One principle of sympathetic magic is that any effect can be created by mimicking it. Here are a few examples. If someone wants to harm a person, an image of that person is created and then destroyed; it’s believed that, due to a connection between the person and their image, that person feels the harm done to the image as if it were happening to their own body and that when the image is destroyed, they will also die. Similarly, in Morocco, you might see a bird or a pigeon with a small red bundle tied to its foot. This bundle contains a charm, and it’s believed that as the charm is moved by the bird, a corresponding anxiety is created in the mind of the person the charm is aimed at. In Nias, when a wild pig falls into a trap, it is taken out, and its back is rubbed with nine fallen leaves, based on the belief that this will cause nine more wild pigs to fall into the pit just like the leaves fell from the tree. When a Cambodian hunter has set his nets and hasn’t caught anything, he strips down, walks away a bit, then approaches the net as if he doesn’t see it, allows himself to get caught in it, and exclaims, "Hey! What's going on? I think I'm stuck." After that, the net is sure to catch game. In Thüringen, a man who sows flax carries the seeds in a long bag that reaches from his shoulders to his knees, and he takes long strides, causing the bag to sway on his back. It’s believed that this action makes the flax crop wave in the wind. In the interior of Sumatra, women sow rice by letting their hair hang loosely down their back, so the rice will grow lushly and have long stalks. Additionally, people believe there’s a magical connection between a person and any part of them that has been cut off, like hair or nails; anyone who possesses these can exert influence over the person from whom they came, no matter the distance. This superstition is found worldwide. Moreover, this connection is thought to exist between friends and family, especially during crucial times. Thus, there are detailed rules governing the behavior of those at home while their loved ones are out fishing, hunting, or going to war. It’s believed that if those at home break these rules, their absent friends will suffer, experiencing harm that corresponds to their rule-breaking. For example, when a Dyak is out hunting for heads, his wife or, if he is unmarried, his sister must wear a sword day and night to ensure he’s always mindful of his weapons; she also shouldn’t sleep during the day or go to bed before two in the morning, so her husband or brother isn’t caught off guard by an enemy. In Laos, when an elephant hunter sets off for the chase, he tells his wife not to cut her hair or oil her body while he’s away; if she cuts her hair, the elephant would break free from the traps, and if she oils herself, it would simply slip away.

In all these cases (and similar instances might be multiplied indefinitely) an action is performed or avoided, because its performance is believed to entail good or bad consequences of a sort resembling the act itself. Sometimes the magic sympathy takes effect not so much through an act as through a supposed resemblance of qualities. Thus some Bechuanas wear a ferret as a charm because, being very tenacious of life, it will make them difficult to kill.33 Others wear a certain insect, mutilated but living, for a similar purpose.34 Other Bechuana warriors wear the hair of an ox among their own hair and the skin of a frog on their mantle, because a frog is slippery and the ox from [pg 012] which the hair has been taken has no horns and is therefore hard to catch; so the warrior who is provided with these charms believes that he will be as hard to hold as the ox and the frog.35

In all these cases (and many similar examples could be added), an action is taken or avoided because it's believed that doing so will lead to good or bad outcomes that are similar to the act itself. Sometimes, this magical connection works not just through the action but through a perceived resemblance of qualities. For instance, some Bechuanas wear a ferret as a charm because its ability to cling to life makes it hard to kill. Others wear a specific insect, which is damaged but still alive, for a similar reason. Additionally, some Bechuana warriors wear ox hair among their own hair and the skin of a frog on their cloak because a frog is slippery and the ox, whose hair has been used, has no horns and is therefore difficult to catch. This way, the warrior believes that with these charms, he will be as hard to catch as the ox and the frog.

Thus we see that in sympathetic magic one event is supposed to be followed necessarily and invariably by another, without the intervention of any spiritual or personal agency. This is, in fact, the modern conception of physical causation; the conception, indeed, is misapplied, but it is there none the less. Here, then, we have another mode in which primitive man seeks to bend nature to his wishes. There is, perhaps, hardly a savage who does not fancy himself possessed of this power of influencing the course of nature by sympathetic magic; a man-god, on this view, is only an individual who is believed to enjoy this common power in an unusually high degree. Thus, whereas a man-god of the former or inspired type derives his divinity from a deity who has taken up his abode in a tabernacle of flesh, a man-god of the latter type draws his supernatural power from a certain physical sympathy with nature. He is not merely the receptacle of a divine spirit. His whole being, body and soul, is so delicately attuned to the harmony of the world that a touch of his hand or a turn of his head may send a thrill vibrating through the universal framework of things; and conversely his divine organism is acutely sensitive to such slight changes of environment as would leave ordinary mortals wholly unaffected. But the line between these two types of man-god, however sharply we may draw it in theory, is seldom to be traced with precision in practice, and in what follows I shall not insist on it.

So we see that in sympathetic magic, one event is believed to naturally and consistently lead to another, without any spiritual or personal influence. This is, in fact, the current understanding of physical causation; while this understanding is often misapplied, it exists nonetheless. Here, we have another way that early humans tried to manipulate nature to their advantage. There’s probably hardly a person in primitive societies who doesn’t think they have this ability to influence the course of nature through sympathetic magic; in this view, a man-god is simply someone believed to possess this common ability to an exceptional degree. Thus, while a man-god of the earlier inspired type receives his divinity from a deity residing in a physical body, a man-god of the later type draws his supernatural power from a certain physical connection with nature. He is not just a vessel for a divine spirit. His entire being, body and soul, is so finely tuned to the harmony of the world that a touch of his hand or a tilt of his head can send vibrations through the entire framework of existence; conversely, his divine nature is highly sensitive to slight changes in the environment that would leave ordinary people completely unaffected. However, the distinction between these two types of man-god, no matter how clearly we might define it in theory, is rarely evident in practice, and I won’t emphasize it in the following discussion.

To readers long familiarised with the conception of [pg 013] natural law, the belief of primitive man that he can rule the elements must be so foreign that it may be well to illustrate it by examples. When we have seen that in early society men who make no pretence at all of being gods do nevertheless commonly believe themselves to be invested with supernatural powers, we shall have the less difficulty in comprehending the extraordinary range of powers ascribed to individuals who are actually regarded as divine.

To readers who are already familiar with the idea of [pg 013] natural law, the belief of early humans that they could control the elements might seem strange. It helps to illustrate this with examples. When we observe that, in early societies, people who don’t claim to be gods still commonly believe they possess supernatural powers, it becomes easier to understand the wide range of abilities attributed to those who are considered divine.

Of all natural phenomena there are perhaps none which civilised man feels himself more powerless to influence than the rain, the sun, and the wind. Yet all these are commonly supposed by savages to be in some degree under their control.

Of all natural phenomena, there are probably none that civilized people feel more powerless to control than the rain, the sun, and the wind. Yet, these are typically believed by primitive cultures to be somewhat under their control.

To begin with rain-making. In a village near Dorpat in Russia, when rain was much wanted, three men used to climb up the fir-trees of an old sacred grove. One of them drummed with a hammer on a kettle or small cask to imitate thunder; the second knocked two fire-brands together and made the sparks fly, to imitate lightning; and the third, who was called “the rain-maker,” had a bunch of twigs with which he sprinkled water from a vessel on all sides.36 This is an example of sympathetic magic; the desired event is supposed to be produced by imitating it. Rain is often thus made by imitation. In Halmahera (Gilolo), a large island to the west of New Guinea, a wizard makes rain by dipping a branch of a particular kind of tree in water and sprinkling the ground with it.37 In Ceram it is enough to dedicate the bark of a certain tree to the spirits and lay it in water.38 In New Britain [pg 014] the rain-maker wraps some leaves of a red and green striped creeper in a banana-leaf, moistens the bundle with water and buries it in the ground; then he imitates with his mouth the plashing of rain.39 Amongst the Omaha Indians of North America, when the corn is withering for want of rain, the members of the sacred Buffalo Society fill a large vessel with water and dance four times round it. One of them drinks some of the water and spirts it into the air, making a fine spray in imitation of a mist or drizzling rain. Then he upsets the vessel, spilling the water on the ground; whereupon the dancers fall down and drink up the water, getting mud all over their faces. Lastly they spirt the water into the air, making a fine mist. This saves the corn.40 Amongst the Australian Wotjobaluk the rain-maker dipped a bunch of his own hair in water, sucked out the water and squirted it westward, or he twirled the ball round his head making a spray like rain.41 Squirting water from the mouth is also a West African way of making rain.42 Another mode is to dip a particular stone in water or sprinkle water on it. In a Samoan village a certain stone was carefully housed as the representative of the rain-making god; and in time of drought his priests carried the stone in procession, and dipped it in a stream.43 In the Ta-ta-thi tribe of New South Wales the rain-maker breaks off a piece of quartz crystal and spits it towards the sky; the rest of the crystal he wraps in emu feathers, soaks both crystal and feathers in water, and carefully hides them.44 [pg 015] In the Keramin tribe of New South Wales the wizard retires to the bed of a creek, drops water on a round flat stone, then covers up and conceals it.45 The Fountain of Baranton, of romantic fame, in the forest of Brécilien, used to be resorted to by peasants when they needed rain; they caught some of the water in a tankard and threw it on a slab near the spring.46 When some of the Apache Indians wish for rain, they take water from a certain spring and throw it on a particular point high up on a rock; the clouds then soon gather and rain begins to fall.47 There is a lonely tarn on Snowdon called Dulyn or the Black Lake, lying “in a dismal dingle surrounded by high and dangerous rocks.” A row of stepping stones runs out into the lake; and if any one steps on the stones and throws water so as to wet the farthest stone, which is called the Red Altar, “it is but a chance that you do not get rain before night, even when it is hot weather.”48 In these cases it is probable that, as in Samoa, the stone is regarded as in some sort divine. This appears from the custom sometimes observed of dipping the cross in the Fountain of Baranton, to procure rain; for this is plainly a substitute for the older way of throwing the water on the stone.49 In Mingrelia, to get rain they dip a holy image in water daily till it rains.50 In Navarre the image of St. Peter was taken to a river, where some prayed to him for rain, but others called out to duck him in the water.51 Here the dipping in [pg 016] the water is used as a threat; but originally it was probably a sympathetic charm, as in the following instance. In New Caledonia the rain-makers blackened themselves all over, dug up a dead body, took the bones to a cave, jointed them, and hung the skeleton over some taro leaves. Water was poured over the skeleton to run down on the leaves. “They supposed that the soul of the departed took up the water, made rain of it, and showered it down again.”52 The same motive comes clearly out in a mode of making rain which is practised by various peoples of South Eastern Europe. In time of drought the Servians strip a girl, clothe her from head to foot in grass, herbs, and flowers, even her face being hidden with them. Thus disguised she is called the Dodola, and goes through the village with a troop of girls. They stop before every house; the Dodola dances, while the other girls form a ring round her singing one of the Dodola songs, and the housewife pours a pail of water over her.

To start with, rain-making. In a village near Dorpat in Russia, when rain was desperately needed, three men would climb the fir trees in an ancient sacred grove. One of them drummed on a kettle or small cask with a hammer to mimic thunder; the second hit two firebrands together to create sparks like lightning; and the third, known as "the rainmaker," had a bunch of twigs with which he sprinkled water from a vessel all around. 36 This illustrates sympathetic magic; it's believed that imitating the desired event can bring it about. Rain is often summoned this way. In Halmahera (Gilolo), a large island west of New Guinea, a wizard creates rain by dipping a specific branch in water and sprinkling it on the ground. 37 In Ceram, simply dedicating the bark of a certain tree to the spirits and placing it in water suffices. 38 In New Britain, [pg 014] the rain-maker wraps some leaves of a red and green striped vine in a banana leaf, moistens the bundle with water, and buries it in the ground; then he mimics the sound of falling rain with his mouth. 39 Among the Omaha Indians of North America, when the corn is wilting from lack of rain, the members of the sacred Buffalo Society fill a large container with water and dance around it four times. One of them drinks some water and sprays it into the air, creating a fine mist to imitate light rain. Then he tips over the container, spilling water on the ground; the dancers then fall down to drink the water, getting mud all over their faces. Finally, they spray water into the air again, making a fine mist. This helps save the corn. 40 Among the Australian Wotjobaluk, the rain-maker dips a bunch of his own hair in water, sucks out the water, and squirts it westward, or twirls a ball above his head, making a spray like rain. 41 Squirting water from the mouth is also a method used in West Africa to summon rain. 42 Another method involves dipping a specific stone in water or sprinkling water on it. In a Samoan village, a particular stone was carefully kept as the embodiment of the rain-making deity; during drought, its priests carried it in procession and dipped it in a stream. 43 In the Ta-ta-thi tribe of New South Wales, the rain-maker breaks off a piece of quartz crystal and spits it into the sky; he wraps the rest of the crystal in emu feathers, soaks both the crystal and feathers in water, and carefully hides them away. 44 [pg 015] In the Keramin tribe of New South Wales, the wizard goes to the bed of a creek, pours water on a round flat stone, and then covers it up and conceals it. 45 The Fountain of Baranton, known for its romantic reputation, in the forest of Brécilien, was visited by peasants when they needed rain; they would catch some water in a tankard and throw it on a slab near the spring. 46 When some Apache Indians want rain, they take water from a specific spring and throw it onto a certain spot high up on a rock; soon clouds gather and rain begins to fall. 47 There’s a secluded lake on Snowdon called Dulyn or the Black Lake, lying "in a gloomy valley surrounded by tall and treacherous rocks." A row of stepping stones leads into the lake; if someone steps on the stones and throws water to wet the farthest one, known as the Red Altar, "There’s just a chance that you won't get rain before night, even when it's hot outside." 48 In these cases, it’s likely that, similar to Samoa, the stone is seen as having some divine qualities. This is evidenced by the practice of dipping the cross in the Fountain of Baranton to bring rain; it clearly serves as a substitute for the older method of throwing water on the stone. 49 In Mingrelia, to induce rain, they dip a holy image in water daily until it rains. 50 In Navarre, the image of St. Peter was taken to a river, where some prayed for rain, while others called out to dunk him in the water. 51 Here, the act of dipping in [pg 016] the water is used as a threat; but originally, it was probably a sympathetic charm, as shown in the following example. In New Caledonia, the rain-makers would cover themselves in black, excavate a dead body, take the bones to a cave, reassemble them, and hang the skeleton over some taro leaves. Water was poured over the skeleton to flow down onto the leaves. "They believed that the soul of the deceased would take in the water, turn it into rain, and then release it again." 52 The same idea is evident in a rain-making ritual practiced by various groups in Southeastern Europe. During drought, the Servians would strip a girl, dress her completely in grass, herbs, and flowers, even covering her face with them. Disguised in this way, she is called the Dodola and parades through the village with a group of girls. They stop in front of each house; the Dodola dances while the other girls form a circle around her, singing one of the Dodola songs, and the housewife pours a bucket of water over her.

One of the songs they sing runs thus—

One of the songs they sing goes like this—

“We walk through the village;”
The clouds are in the sky;
We go quicker,
Clouds move faster;
They've overtaken us,
And soaked the grain and the vine.

A similar custom is observed by the Greeks, Bulgarians, and Roumanians.53 In such customs the leaf-dressed girl represents the spirit of vegetation, and drenching her with water is an imitation of rain. In Russia, in the Government of Kursk, when rain is much wanted, the women seize a passing stranger and [pg 017] throw him into the river, or souse him from head to foot.54 Later on we shall see that a passing stranger is often, as here, taken for a god or spirit. Amongst the Minahassa of North Celebes the priest bathes as a rain-charm.55 In the Caucasian Province of Georgia, when a drought has lasted long, marriageable girls are yoked in couples with an ox-yoke on their shoulders, a priest holds the reins, and thus harnessed they wade through rivers, puddles, and marshes, praying, screaming, weeping, and laughing.56 In a district of Transylvania, when the ground is parched with drought, some girls strip themselves naked, and, led by an older woman, who is also naked, they steal a harrow and carry it across the field to a brook, where they set it afloat. Next they sit on the harrow and keep a tiny flame burning on each corner of it for an hour. Then they leave the harrow in the water and go home.57 A similar rain-charm is resorted to in India; naked women drag a plough across the field by night.58 It is not said that they plunge the plough into a stream or sprinkle it with water. But the charm would hardly be complete without it.

A similar tradition is followed by the Greeks, Bulgarians, and Romanians. In these customs, the flower-adorned girl symbolizes the spirit of vegetation, and soaking her with water mimics rain. In Russia, in the Kursk region, when rain is badly needed, women grab a passing stranger and throw him into the river, or douse him from head to toe. Later on, we will see that a passing stranger is often viewed as a god or spirit, as is the case here. Among the Minahassa in North Celebes, the priest bathes as a rain charm. In the Georgian province of the Caucasus, when a drought has persisted for a long time, unmarried girls are paired up with an ox-yoke on their shoulders, with a priest holding the reins. Together, they wade through rivers, puddles, and marshes, praying, screaming, weeping, and laughing. In a part of Transylvania, when the ground is dry from drought, some girls take off their clothes, and led by an older naked woman, they steal a harrow and carry it across a field to a stream, where they set it afloat. Then, they sit on the harrow and keep a small flame burning on each corner of it for an hour before leaving the harrow in the water and going home. A similar rain charm is also practiced in India; naked women pull a plow across the field at night. It’s not mentioned that they dip the plow into a stream or sprinkle it with water, but the charm would hardly be complete without it.

Sometimes the charm works through an animal. To procure rain the Peruvians used to set a black sheep in a field, poured chica over it, and gave it nothing to eat till rain fell.59 In a district of Sumatra all the women of the village, scantily clad, go to the river, wade into it, and splash each other with the water. A black cat is thrown into the water and made to swim about for a while, then allowed to escape to the [pg 018] bank, pursued by the splashing of the women.60 In these cases the colour of the animal is part of the charm; being black it will darken the sky with rain-clouds. So the Bechuanas burn the stomach of an ox at evening, because they say, “the black smoke will gather the clouds, and cause the rain to come.”61 The Timorese sacrifice a black pig for rain, a white or red one for sunshine.62 The Garos offer a black goat on the top of a very high mountain in time of drought.63

Sometimes the charm involves an animal. To bring rain, the Peruvians would place a black sheep in a field, pour girl over it, and give it nothing to eat until it rained.59 In a village in Sumatra, the women, dressed minimally, go to the river, wade in, and splash each other with water. A black cat is tossed into the water and made to swim around for a while before being allowed to escape to the [pg 018] bank, chased by the splashing women.60 In these cases, the animal's color is part of the charm; being black, it is believed to darken the sky with rain clouds. The Bechuanas burn an ox's stomach in the evening because they believe, "The black smoke will gather the clouds and bring the rain."61 The Timorese sacrifice a black pig for rain, and choose a white or red one for sunshine.62 The Garos offer a black goat on top of a very high mountain during a drought.63

Sometimes people try to coerce the rain-god into giving rain. In China a huge dragon made of paper or wood, representing the rain-god, is carried about in procession; but if no rain follows, it is cursed and torn in pieces.64 In the like circumstances the Feloupes of Senegambia throw down their fetishes and drag them about the fields, cursing them till rain falls.65 Some Indians of the Orinoco worshipped toads and kept them in vessels in order to obtain from them rain or sunshine as might be required; when their prayers were not answered they beat the toads.66 Killing a frog is a European rain-charm.67 When the spirits withhold rain or sunshine, the Comanches whip a slave; if the gods prove obstinate, the victim is almost flayed alive.68 Here the human being may represent the god, like the leaf-clad Dodola. When the rice-crop is endangered by long drought, the governor of [pg 019] Battambang, a province of Siam, goes in great state to a certain pagoda and prays to Buddha for rain. Then accompanied by his suite and followed by an enormous crowd he adjourns to a plain behind the pagoda. Here a dummy figure has been made up, dressed in bright colours, and placed in the middle of the plain. A wild music begins to play; maddened by the din of drums and cymbals and crackers, and goaded on by their drivers, the elephants charge down on the dummy and trample it to pieces. After this, Buddha will soon give rain.69

Sometimes people try to force the rain god to bring rain. In China, a large dragon made of paper or wood, symbolizing the rain god, is paraded around; but if rain doesn't come, it is cursed and torn apart.64 In similar situations, the Feloupes of Senegambia throw down their fetishes and drag them across the fields, cursing them until it rains.65 Some Indigenous people of the Orinoco worshipped toads and kept them in containers to get rain or sunshine when needed; when their prayers went unanswered, they beat the toads.66 Killing a frog is a European rain charm.67 When spirits withhold rain or sunshine, the Comanches whip a slave; if the gods remain unyielding, the victim is nearly flayed alive.68 In this case, the person may represent the god, similar to the leaf-covered Dodola. When the rice crop is threatened by a long drought, the governor of [pg 019] Battambang, a province of Thailand, goes in grand style to a certain pagoda and prays to Buddha for rain. Then, accompanied by his entourage and followed by a massive crowd, he moves to a field behind the pagoda. A dummy figure has been set up, dressed in bright colors, and placed in the center of the field. Wild music starts to play; driven mad by the thunder of drums, cymbals, and firecrackers, and pushed on by their handlers, the elephants charge at the dummy and trample it to pieces. After this, Buddha will soon bring rain.69

Another way of constraining the rain-god is to disturb him in his haunts. This seems the reason why rain is supposed to be the consequence of troubling a sacred spring. The Dards believe that if a cowskin or anything impure is placed in certain springs, storms will follow.70 Gervasius mentions a spring into which if a stone or a stick were thrown, rain would at once issue from it and drench the thrower.71 There was a fountain in Munster such that if it were touched or even looked at by a human being, it would at once flood the whole province with rain.72 Sometimes an appeal is made to the pity of the gods. When their corn is being burnt up by the sun, the Zulus look out for a “heaven-bird,” kill it, and throw it into a pool. Then the heaven melts with tenderness for the death of the bird; “it wails for it by raining, wailing a funeral wail.”73 In times of drought the Guanches of Teneriffe led their sheep to sacred ground, and there [pg 020] they separated the lambs from their dams, that their plaintive bleating might touch the heart of the god.74 A peculiar mode of making rain was adopted by the heathen Arabs. They tied two sorts of bushes to the tails and hind-legs of their cattle, and setting fire to the bushes drove the cattle to the top of a mountain, praying for rain.75 This may be, as Wellhausen suggests,76 an imitation of lightning on the horizon. But it may also be a way of threatening the sky; as some West African rain-makers put a pot of inflammable materials on the fire and blow up the flames, threatening that if heaven does not soon give rain they will send up a flame which will set the sky on fire.77 The Dieyerie of South Australia have a way of their own of making rain. A hole is dug about twelve feet long and eight or ten broad, and over this hole a hut of logs and branches is made. Two men, supposed to have received a special inspiration from Mooramoora (the Good Spirit), are bled by an old and influential man with a sharp flint inside the arm; the blood is made to flow on the other men of the tribe who sit huddled together. At the same time the two bleeding men throw handfuls of down, some of which adheres to the blood, while the rest floats in the air. The blood is thought to represent the rain, and the down the clouds. During the ceremony two large stones are placed in the middle of the hut; they stand for gathering clouds and presage rain. Then the men who were bled carry away the stones for about fifteen miles and place them as high as they can in the tallest tree. Meanwhile, the other men gather gypsum, pound [pg 021] it fine, and throw it into a water-hole. This the Mooramoora is supposed to see, and at once he causes the clouds to appear in the sky. Lastly, the men surround the hut, butt at it with their heads, force their way in, and reappear on the other side, repeating this till the hut is wrecked. In doing this they are forbidden to use their hands or arms; but when the heavy logs alone remain, they are allowed to pull them out with their hands. “The piercing of the hut with their heads symbolises the piercing of the clouds; the fall of the hut, the fall of rain.”78 Another Australian mode of rain-making is to burn human hair.79

Another way to control the rain god is to disturb him in his areas. This seems to be why rain is believed to result from upsetting a sacred spring. The Dards think that if a cowskin or anything unclean is placed in certain springs, storms will follow.70 Gervasius mentions a spring where throwing a stone or a stick would immediately cause rain to pour out and soak the thrower.71 There was a fountain in Munster that if touched or even looked at by a person, would instantly flood the whole province with rain.72 Sometimes, an appeal is made to the gods' compassion. When their crops are being scorched by the sun, the Zulus look for a "heavenly bird," kill it, and throw it into a pool. Then the heavens melt with sadness for the bird's death; "It cries out by raining, mourning with a funeral lament."73 In times of drought, the Guanches of Teneriffe led their sheep to sacred ground, where [pg 020] they separated the lambs from their mothers, hoping their sad bleating would touch the heart of the god.74 A unique method of making rain was adopted by the pagan Arabs. They tied two kinds of bushes to the tails and back legs of their cattle, set the bushes on fire, and drove the cattle up a mountain, praying for rain.75 This may be, as Wellhausen suggests,76 an imitation of lightning on the horizon. But it might also be a way of threatening the sky; as some West African rain-makers put a pot of flammable materials on the fire and blow up the flames, threatening that if heaven doesn’t send rain soon, they will create a fire that will set the sky ablaze.77 The Dieyerie of South Australia have their own way of making rain. They dig a hole about twelve feet long and eight or ten feet wide, and build a hut of logs and branches over it. Two men, believed to have received special inspiration from Mooramoora (the Good Spirit), are bled by an older influential man using a sharp flint on their arms; the blood is made to flow on the other tribe members who sit together. At the same time, the two bleeding men throw handfuls of down, some of which sticks to the blood while the rest floats in the air. The blood is thought to represent the rain, and the down the clouds. During the ceremony, two large stones are placed in the middle of the hut; they symbolize gathering clouds and signal rain. Then the men who were bled carry the stones about fifteen miles and place them as high as they can in the tallest tree. Meanwhile, the other men collect gypsum, grind it fine, and throw it into a water-hole. This is supposed to be seen by Mooramoora, who immediately causes clouds to appear in the sky. Finally, the men surround the hut, butt against it with their heads, force their way in, and come out the other side, repeating this until the hut falls apart. While doing this, they are not allowed to use their hands or arms; but when only the heavy logs remain, they can pull them out with their hands. “The hut being pierced by their heads represents the piercing of the clouds; the hut falling signifies the fall of rain.”78 Another Australian method of rain-making is to burn human hair.79

Like other peoples the Greeks and Romans sought to procure rain by magic, when prayers and processions80 had proved ineffectual. For example, in Arcadia, when the corn and trees were parched with drought, the priest of Zeus dipped an oak branch into a certain spring on Mount Lycaeus. Thus troubled, the water sent up a misty cloud, from which rain soon fell upon the land.81 A similar mode of making rain is still practised, as we have seen, in Halmahera near New Guinea. The people of Crannon in Thessaly had a bronze chariot which they kept in a temple. When they desired a shower they shook the chariot and the shower fell.82 Probably the rattling of the chariot was meant to imitate thunder; we have already seen that in Russia mock thunder and lightning form part of a rain-charm. The mythical Salmoneus of Thessaly made mock thunder by dragging bronze kettles behind his chariot or by driving over a bronze bridge, while [pg 022] he hurled blazing torches in imitation of lightning. It was his impious wish to mimic the thundering car of Zeus as it rolled across the vault of heaven.83 Near a temple of Mars, outside the walls of Rome, there was kept a certain stone known as the lapis manalis. In time of drought the stone was dragged into Rome and this was supposed to bring down rain immediately.84 There were Etruscan wizards who made rain or discovered springs of water, it is not certain which. They were thought to bring the rain or the water out of their bellies.85 The legendary Telchines in Rhodes are described as magicians who could change their shape and bring clouds, rain, and snow.86

Like other peoples, the Greeks and Romans tried to bring rain through magic when prayers and processions didn’t work. For example, in Arcadia, when the crops and trees were drying out, the priest of Zeus dipped an oak branch into a particular spring on Mount Lycaeus. As a result, the water created a misty cloud, and soon rain fell on the land. A similar method of inducing rain is still practiced, as we have seen, in Halmahera near New Guinea. The people of Crannon in Thessaly had a bronze chariot that they kept in a temple. When they wanted rain, they shook the chariot, and the rain fell. Probably, the rattling of the chariot was meant to imitate thunder; we have already noted that in Russia, mock thunder and lightning are part of a rain charm. The mythical Salmoneus of Thessaly created fake thunder by dragging bronze kettles behind his chariot or by driving over a bronze bridge while he threw blazing torches to mimic lightning. His irreverent desire was to imitate the thundering chariot of Zeus as it rolled across the sky. Near a temple of Mars, just outside the walls of Rome, there was a stone known as the lapis manalis. During droughts, this stone was brought into Rome, and it was believed this would bring rain immediately. There were Etruscan wizards who either called for rain or found water springs—it's unclear which. They were thought to bring rain or water from their bodies. The legendary Telchines in Rhodes were described as magicians who could change their shapes and bring clouds, rain, and snow.

Again, primitive man fancies he can make the sun to shine, and can hasten or stay its going down. At an eclipse the Ojebways used to think that the sun was being extinguished. So they shot fire-tipped arrows in the air, hoping thus to rekindle his expiring light.87 Conversely during an eclipse of the moon some Indian tribes of the Orinoco used to bury lighted brands in the ground; because, said they, if the moon were to be extinguished, all fire on earth would be extinguished with her, except such as was hidden from her sight.88 In New Caledonia when a wizard desires to make sunshine, he takes some plants and corals to the burial-ground, and makes them into a bundle, adding two locks of hair cut from a living child (his own child if [pg 023] possible), also two teeth or an entire jawbone from the skeleton of an ancestor. He then climbs a high mountain whose top catches the first rays of the morning sun. Here he deposits three sorts of plants on a flat stone, places a branch of dry coral beside them, and hangs the bundle of charms over the stone. Next morning he returns to this rude altar, and at the moment when the sun rises from the sea he kindles a fire on the altar. As the smoke rises, he rubs the stone with the dry coral, invokes his ancestors and says: “Sun! I do this that you may be burning hot, and eat up all the clouds in the sky.” The same ceremony is repeated at sunset.89 When the sun rises behind clouds—a rare event in the bright sky of Southern Africa—the Sun clan of the Bechuanas say that he is grieving their heart. All work stands still, and all the food of the previous day is given to matrons or old women. They may eat it and may share it with the children they are nursing, but no one else may taste it. The people go down to the river and wash themselves all over. Each man throws into the river a stone taken from his domestic hearth, and replaces it with one picked up in the bed of the river. On their return to the village the chief kindles a fire in his hut, and all his subjects come and get a light from it. A general dance follows.90 In these cases it seems that the lighting of the flame on earth is supposed to rekindle the solar fire. Such a belief comes naturally to people who, like the Sun clan of the Bechuanas, [pg 024] deem themselves the veritable kinsmen of the sun. The Melanesians make sunshine by means of a mock sun. A round stone is wound about with red braid and stuck with owl's feathers to represent rays; it is then hung on a high tree. Or the stone is laid on the ground with white rods radiating from it to imitate sunbeams.91 Sometimes the mode of making sunshine is the converse of that of making rain. Thus we have seen that a white or red pig is sacrificed for sunshine, as a black one is sacrificed for rain.92 Some of the New Caledonians drench a skeleton to make rain, but burn it to make sunshine.93

Again, primitive man believes he can make the sun shine and can speed up or slow down its setting. During an eclipse, the Ojebways thought the sun was going out, so they shot fire-tipped arrows into the sky, hoping to reignite its fading light.87 Conversely, during a lunar eclipse, some Indian tribes of the Orinoco would bury lit torches in the ground, believing that if the moon were extinguished, all fire on earth would go out with it, except what was hidden from her view.88 In New Caledonia, when a wizard wants to create sunshine, he takes some plants and corals to the graveyard, bundles them up, and adds two locks of hair cut from a living child (his own child if [pg 023] possible), along with two teeth or an entire jawbone from an ancestor’s skeleton. He then climbs a high mountain that captures the first rays of the morning sun. There, he places three types of plants on a flat stone, puts a branch of dry coral next to them, and hangs the bundle of charms over the stone. The next morning, he returns to this makeshift altar, and at the moment the sun rises from the sea, he lights a fire on the altar. As the smoke rises, he rubs the stone with the dry coral, calls upon his ancestors, and states: "Sun! I do this so you can shine brightly and clear all the clouds in the sky." The same ceremony is repeated at sunset.89 When the sun rises behind clouds—a rare occurrence in the bright skies of Southern Africa—the Sun clan of the Bechuanas feel that he is grieving their hearts. All work stops, and all the food from the previous day is given to matrons or old women. They can eat it and share it with the children they are nursing, but no one else can touch it. The people go down to the river to wash themselves completely. Each man tosses a stone taken from his home hearth into the river and replaces it with one found in the riverbed. Upon returning to the village, the chief lights a fire in his hut, and all his subjects come to get a spark from it. A community dance follows.90 In these instances, lighting the flame on earth is believed to revive the solar fire. Such beliefs come naturally to people like the Sun clan of the Bechuanas, [pg 024] who view themselves as true kin of the sun. The Melanesians create sunshine using a mock sun. A round stone is wrapped in red braid and stuck with owl feathers to represent rays; it is then hung from a tall tree. Alternatively, the stone is placed on the ground with white sticks radiating from it to mimic sunbeams.91 Sometimes the method for creating sunshine is opposite to that for making rain. For example, a white or red pig is sacrificed for sunshine, while a black one is sacrificed for rain.92 Some of the New Caledonians soak a skeleton to bring rain, but burn it to create sunshine.93

In a pass of the Peruvian Andes stand two ruined towers on opposite hills. Iron hooks are clamped into their walls for the purpose of stretching a net from one tower to the other. The net is intended to catch the sun.94

In a pass of the Peruvian Andes, two ruined towers stand on opposite hills. Iron hooks are secured into their walls to stretch a net from one tower to the other. The net is meant to catch the sun.94

On the top of a small hill in Fiji grew a patch of reeds, and travellers who feared to be belated used to tie the tops of a handful of reeds together to detain the sun from going down.95 The intention perhaps was to entangle the sun in the reeds, just as the Peruvians try to catch him in the net. Stories of men who have caught the sun in a noose are widely spread.96 Jerome of Prague, travelling among the heathen Lithuanians early in the fifteenth century, found a tribe who worshipped the sun and venerated a large iron hammer. The priests told him that once the sun had been invisible for several months, because a powerful [pg 025] king had shut it up in a strong tower; but the signs of the zodiac had broken open the tower with this very hammer and released the sun. Therefore they adored the hammer.97 When an Australian blackfellow wishes to stay the sun from going down till he gets home, he places a sod in the fork of a tree, exactly facing the setting sun.98 For the same purpose an Indian of Yucatan, journeying westward, places a stone in a tree or pulls out some of his eyelashes and blows them towards the sun.99 South African natives, in travelling, will put a stone in a branch of a tree or place some grass on the path with a stone over it, believing that this will cause their friends to keep the meal waiting till their arrival.100 In these, as in previous examples, the purpose apparently is to retard the sun. But why should the act of putting a stone or a sod in a tree be supposed to effect this? A partial explanation is suggested by another Australian custom. In their journeys the natives are accustomed to place stones in trees at different heights from the ground in order to indicate the height of the sun in the sky at the moment when they passed the particular tree. Those who follow are thus made aware of the time of day when their friends in advance passed the spot.101 Possibly the natives, thus accustomed to mark the sun's progress, may have slipped into the confusion of imagining that to mark the sun's progress was to arrest it at the point marked. On the other hand, to make it go down faster, the Australians throw sand into the air and blow with their mouths towards the sun.102

On top of a small hill in Fiji, there was a patch of reeds, and travelers who were worried about being late used to tie the tops of a few reeds together to delay the sun from setting.95 The idea was probably to trap the sun in the reeds, similar to how the Peruvians try to catch it in a net. There are many stories about people who have managed to catch the sun in a noose.96 Jerome of Prague, who was traveling among the pagan Lithuanians in the early fifteenth century, came across a tribe that worshipped the sun and revered a large iron hammer. The priests told him that the sun had once been hidden for several months because a powerful king had locked it in a strong tower; but the signs of the zodiac had used that very hammer to break open the tower and free the sun. That’s why they worshipped the hammer.97 When an Australian Aboriginal wants to stop the sun from setting until he gets home, he places a clump of earth in the fork of a tree, directly facing the setting sun.98 For the same reason, an Indian from Yucatan, traveling west, places a stone in a tree or pulls out some of his eyelashes and blows them toward the sun.99 South African natives, while traveling, will put a stone in a tree branch or lay some grass on the path with a stone on top of it, believing that this will make their friends wait for their meal until they arrive.100 In all these examples, the aim seems to be to slow down the sun. But why is placing a stone or a clump of earth in a tree thought to achieve this? A partial explanation comes from another Australian custom. In their travels, the natives usually place stones in trees at different heights to mark the sun’s position in the sky when they passed that specific tree. This way, those who come after know what time it was when their friends passed through.101 It’s possible that the natives, used to marking the sun's path, might have mistakenly thought that marking it meant they could stop it at that point. Conversely, to make it go down faster, the Australians throw sand into the air and blow towards the sun.102

[pg 026]

Once more, the savage thinks he can make the wind to blow or to be still. When the day is hot and a Yakut has a long way to go, he takes a stone which he has chanced to find in an animal or fish, winds a horse-hair several times round it, and ties it to a stick. He then waves the stick about, uttering a spell. Soon a cool breeze begins to blow.103 The Wind clan of the Omahas flap their blankets to start a breeze which will drive away the mosquitoes.104 When a Haida Indian wishes to obtain a fair wind, he fasts, shoots a raven, singes it in the fire, and then going to the edge of the sea sweeps it over the surface of the water four times in the direction in which he wishes the wind to blow. He then throws the raven behind him, but afterwards picks it up and sets it in a sitting posture at the foot of a spruce-tree, facing towards the required wind. Propping its beak open with a stick, he requests a fair wind for a certain number of days; then going away he lies covered up in his mantle till another Indian asks him for how many days he has desired the wind, which question he answers.105 When a sorcerer in New Britain wishes to make a wind blow in a certain direction, he throws burnt lime in the air, chanting a song all the time. Then he waves sprigs of ginger and other plants about, throws them up and catches them. Next he makes a small fire with these sprigs on the spot where the lime has fallen thickest, and walks round the fire chanting. Lastly, he takes the ashes and throws them on the water.106 On the altar of Fladda's chapel, in the island of Fladdahuan (one of [pg 027] the Hebrides), lay a round bluish stone which was always moist. Windbound fishermen walked sunwise round the chapel and then poured water on the stone, whereupon a favourable breeze was sure to spring up.107 In Finnland wizards used to sell wind to storm-staid mariners. The wind was enclosed in three knots; if they undid the first knot, a moderate wind sprang up; if the second, it blew half a gale; if the third, a hurricane.108 The same thing is said to have been done by wizards and witches in Lappland, in the island of Lewis, and in the Isle of Man.109 A Norwegian witch has boasted of sinking a ship by opening a bag in which she had shut up a wind.110 Ulysses received the winds in a leather bag from Aeolus, King of the Winds.111 So Perdoytus, the Lithuanian wind-god, keeps the winds enclosed in a leather bag; when they escape from it he pursues them, beats them, and shuts them up again.112 The Motumotu in New Guinea think that storms are sent by an Oiabu sorcerer; for each wind he has a bamboo which he opens at pleasure.113 But here we have passed from custom (with which alone we are at present concerned) into mythology. Shetland seamen still buy winds from old women who claim to rule the storms. There are now in Lerwick old women who live by selling wind.114 When the Hottentots wish to make the wind drop, they take one of their fattest skins and hang it on the end of a pole, [pg 028] believing that by blowing the skin down the wind will lose all its force and must itself fall.115 In some parts of Austria, during a heavy storm, it is customary to open the window and throw out a handful of meal, chaff, or feathers, saying to the wind, “There, that's for you, stop!”116 Once when north-westerly winds had kept the ice long on the coast, and food was getting scarce, the Eskimos of Alaska performed a ceremony to make a calm. A fire was kindled on the shore and the men gathered round it and chanted. An old man then stepped up to the fire and in a coaxing voice invited the demon of the wind to come under the fire and warm himself. When he was supposed to have arrived, a vessel of water, to which each man present had contributed, was thrown on the fire by an old man, and immediately a flight of arrows sped towards the spot where the fire had been. They thought that the demon would not stay where he had been so badly treated. To complete the effect, guns were discharged in various directions, and the captain of a European vessel was asked to fire on the wind with cannon.117 When the wind blows down their huts, the Payaguas in South America snatch up firebrands and run against the wind menacing it with the blazing brands, while others beat the air with their fists to frighten the storm.118 When the Guaycurus are threatened by a severe storm the men go out armed, and the women and children scream their loudest to intimidate the demon.119 During a tempest the inhabitants of a Batta village in Sumatra have been seen to [pg 029] rush from their houses armed with sword and lance. The Raja placed himself at their head, and with shouts and yells they hewed and hacked at the invisible foe. An old woman was observed to be especially active in defending her house, slashing the air right and left with a long sabre.120

Once again, the savage believes he can control the wind, making it blow or calm down. When the weather is hot and a Yakut has a long distance to travel, he picks up a stone he found near an animal or fish, ties a horsehair around it several times, and fastens it to a stick. He then waves the stick around while chanting a spell. Soon, a cool breeze starts to blow.103 The Wind clan of the Omahas flap their blankets to create a breeze that drives away mosquitoes.104 When a Haida Indian wants to summon a good wind, he fasts, shoots a raven, singes it over fire, and then sweeps it over the sea's surface four times in the direction he wants the wind to blow. He then tosses the raven behind him but later retrieves it and places it sitting at the base of a spruce tree, facing the desired wind. He props its beak open with a stick, asking for favorable winds for a specified number of days. After that, he lies down covered in his mantle until another Indian asks him how many days he has wished for the wind, to which he responds.105 When a sorcerer in New Britain wants to summon a wind in a certain direction, he throws lime in the air, chanting a song the whole time. Then, he waves sprigs of ginger and other plants around, tossing them up and catching them. Next, he makes a small fire with these sprigs where the lime has fallen most thickly and walks around the fire while chanting. Finally, he takes the ashes and casts them onto the water.106 On the altar of Fladda's chapel, in the island of Fladdahuan (one of the Hebrides), lay a round bluish stone that was always damp. Fishermen trapped by the wind walked sunwise around the chapel and then poured water on the stone, resulting in a favorable breeze.107 In Finland, wizards would sell wind to sailors stuck in storms. The wind was tied in three knots; undoing the first knot would create a gentle breeze, the second half a gale, and the third a hurricane.108 Similar practices are reported of wizards and witches in Lapland, on the island of Lewis, and in the Isle of Man.109 A Norwegian witch claimed to have sunk a ship by opening a bag she had sealed a wind in.110 Ulysses received the winds in a leather bag from Aeolus, King of the Winds.111 Likewise, Perdoytus, the Lithuanian wind-god, keeps the winds contained in a leather bag; when they escape, he chases after them, beats them, and confines them again.112 The Motumotu in New Guinea believe storms are caused by an Oiabu sorcerer; he has a bamboo for each wind that he opens at will.113 But here, we move from custom (which is our main focus) to mythology. Shetland fishermen still buy winds from old women who claim to control storms. There are older women in Lerwick who make a living selling wind.114 When the Hottentots want the wind to stop, they take one of their fattest skins and hang it at the end of a pole, believing that blowing the skin down will weaken the wind and make it diminish.115 In some areas of Austria, during a heavy storm, it's customary to open the window and throw out a handful of flour, chaff, or feathers while saying to the wind, “Here, this is for you, stop!”116 Once, when northwesterly winds had kept the ice on the coast for too long and food was getting low, the Eskimos of Alaska performed a ceremony to calm it. They lit a fire on the shore, gathered around it, and chanted. An elder then approached the fire and coaxed the demon of the wind to come under it and warm up. Once he was believed to have arrived, an elder poured a vessel of water—contributed by all present—onto the fire, and immediately, a volley of arrows was shot towards the spot where the fire had been, assuming the demon wouldn’t want to stay after being poorly treated. To add to the effect, guns were fired in various directions, and the captain of a European vessel was asked to fire cannon at the wind.117 When the wind blows their huts down, the Payaguas in South America grab firebrands and run against the wind, threatening it with their blazing sticks, while others punch the air to scare the storm.118 When the Guaycurus face a severe storm, the men arm themselves while women and children scream to intimidate the demon.119 During a storm, the residents of a Batta village in Sumatra have been seen rushing from their homes armed with swords and lances. The Raja led them, and with cries and shouts, they battled the invisible enemy. An old woman was particularly active in defending her house, slashing the air wildly with a long sabre.120

In the light of these examples a story told by Herodotus, which his modern critics have treated as a fable, is perfectly credible. He says, without however vouching for the truth of the tale, that once in the land of the Psylli, the modern Tripoli, the wind blowing from the Sahara had dried up all the water-tanks. So the people took counsel and marched in a body to make war on the south wind. But when they entered the desert, the simoom swept down on them and buried them to a man.121 The story may well have been told by one who watched them disappearing, in battle array, with drums and cymbals beating, into the red cloud of whirling sand. It is still said of the Bedouins of Eastern Africa that “no whirlwind ever sweeps across the path without being pursued by a dozen savages with drawn creeses, who stab into the centre of the dusty column in order to drive away the evil spirit that is believed to be riding on the blast.”122 So in Australia the huge columns of red sand that move rapidly across a desert tract are thought by the blackfellows to be spirits passing along. Once an athletic young black ran after one of these moving columns to kill it with boomerangs. He was away two or three hours and came back very weary, saying he had killed Koochee (the demon), but that Koochee [pg 030] had growled at him and he must die.123 Even where these dust columns are not attacked they are still regarded with awe. In some parts of India they are supposed to be bhuts going to bathe in the Ganges.124 Californian Indians think that they are happy souls ascending to the heavenly land.125

In light of these examples, a story shared by Herodotus, which modern critics have dismissed as a myth, seems entirely believable. He mentions, without guaranteeing its accuracy, that once in the region of the Psylli, present-day Tripoli, the wind from the Sahara had completely dried up all the water tanks. So, the people gathered and set out to fight the south wind. But when they entered the desert, a violent sandstorm came upon them and buried them all. The story might have been told by someone who saw them disappearing in their battle formation, with drums and cymbals playing, into the reddish cloud of swirling sand. It's still said about the Bedouins of Eastern Africa that “no whirlwind ever sweeps across the path without being chased by a dozen tribesmen with drawn knives, who stab into the center of the dusty column to drive away the evil spirit believed to be riding on the gust.” Similarly, in Australia, the massive columns of red sand that move swiftly across desert areas are thought by the Indigenous people to be spirits passing by. Once, an athletic young Indigenous man ran after one of these moving columns to strike it down with boomerangs. He was gone for two or three hours and returned very tired, claiming he had killed Koochee (the demon), but that Koochee had growled at him and he would have to die. Even when these dust columns are not attacked, they are still viewed with reverence. In some regions of India, they are believed to be bhuts going to bathe in the Ganges. Californian Indigenous people think they are joyful souls ascending to the heavenly land.

When a gust lifts the hay in the meadow, the Breton peasant throws a knife or a fork at it to prevent the devil from carrying off the hay.126 German peasants throw a knife or a hat at a whirlwind because there is a witch or a wizard in it.127

When a gust lifts the hay in the field, the Breton farmer throws a knife or a fork at it to stop the devil from stealing the hay.126 German farmers throw a knife or a hat at a whirlwind because there is a witch or a wizard in it.127

Embodied deities.

These examples, drawn from the beliefs and practices of rude peoples all over the world, may suffice to prove that the savage, whether European or otherwise, fails to recognise those limitations to his power over nature which seem so obvious to us. In a society where every man is supposed to be endowed more or less with powers which we should call supernatural, it is plain that the distinction between gods and men is somewhat blurred, or rather has scarcely emerged. The conception of gods as supernatural beings entirely distinct from and superior to man, and wielding powers to which he possesses nothing comparable in degree and hardly even in kind, has been slowly evolved in the course of history. At first the supernatural agents are not regarded as greatly, if [pg 031] at all, superior to man; for they may be frightened and coerced by him into doing his will. At this stage of thought the world is viewed as a great democracy; all beings in it, whether natural or supernatural, are supposed to stand on a footing of tolerable equality. But with the growth of his knowledge man learns to realise more clearly the vastness of nature and his own littleness and feebleness in presence of it. The recognition of his own helplessness does not, however, carry with it a corresponding belief in the impotence of those supernatural beings with which his imagination peoples the universe. On the contrary it enhances his conception of their power. For the idea of the world as a system of impersonal forces acting in accordance with fixed and invariable laws has not yet fully dawned or darkened upon him. The germ of the idea he certainly has, and he acts upon it, not only in magic art, but in much of the business of daily life. But the idea remains undeveloped, and so far as he attempts consciously to explain the world he lives in, he pictures it as the manifestation of conscious will and personal agency. If then he feels himself to be so frail and slight, how vast and powerful must he deem the beings who control the gigantic machinery of nature! Thus as his old sense of equality with the gods slowly vanishes, he resigns at the same time the hope of directing the course of nature by his own unaided resources, that is, by magic, and looks more and more to the gods as the sole repositories of those supernatural powers which he once claimed to share with them. With the first advance of knowledge, therefore, prayer and sacrifice assume the leading place in religious ritual; and magic, which once ranked with them as a legitimate equal, is gradually relegated to the background [pg 032] and sinks to the level of a black art. It is now regarded as an encroachment, at once vain and impious, on the domain of the gods, and as such encounters the steady opposition of the priests, whose reputation and influence gain or lose with those of their gods. Hence, when at a late period the distinction between religion and superstition has emerged, we find that sacrifice and prayer are the resource of the pious and enlightened portion of the community, while magic is the refuge of the superstitious and ignorant. But when, still later, the conception of the elemental forces as personal agents is giving way to the recognition of natural law; then magic, based as it implicitly is on the idea of a necessary and invariable sequence of cause and effect, independent of personal will, reappears from the obscurity and discredit into which it had fallen, and by investigating the causal sequences in nature, directly prepares the way for science. Alchemy leads up to chemistry.

These examples, drawn from the beliefs and practices of primitive peoples all over the world, may be enough to show that the so-called savage, whether European or from elsewhere, doesn't recognize the limits of his power over nature that seem so obvious to us. In a society where every person is thought to have some sort of supernatural powers, the distinction between gods and humans is pretty blurred, or barely exists at all. The idea of gods as supernatural beings that are completely different from and superior to humans, with powers that humans cannot match in any significant way, has developed gradually throughout history. Initially, supernatural beings are not seen as vastly superior to humans; in fact, they can be scared or forced to do what humans want. At this stage, the world is viewed as a large democracy; all beings in it, whether natural or supernatural, are thought to exist on a reasonable level of equality. However, as humans gain more knowledge, they start to understand the vastness of nature and their own smallness and weakness compared to it. Recognizing their own helplessness does not automatically mean they believe those supernatural beings are powerless. In fact, it enhances their idea of those beings’ power. The concept of the world as a system of impersonal forces acting according to fixed and unchanging laws has not fully developed for them. They certainly have the seed of this idea and act upon it, not just in magic but in much of their daily lives. However, this idea remains underdeveloped, and when they consciously try to explain the world they inhabit, they envision it as the result of conscious will and personal actions. So, if they see themselves as weak and insignificant, how vast and powerful must they think the beings are that control the enormous workings of nature! As their old sense of equality with the gods slowly fades, they also give up the hope of shaping nature using only their own abilities, meaning through magic, and increasingly turn to the gods as the sole holders of the supernatural powers they once believed they could share. With the initial rise of knowledge, prayer and sacrifice then become the main parts of religious rituals, while magic, which used to stand alongside them as an equal, gradually falls into the background and becomes seen as a questionable practice. It is now viewed as a presumptuous and disrespectful attempt to intrude on the realm of the gods, resulting in it facing persistent backlash from the priests, whose reputation and influence depend on that of their gods. Thus, when the distinction between religion and superstition develops later on, we find that sacrifice and prayer are the practices of the devout and educated members of society, while magic becomes the recourse of the superstitious and uneducated. Yet, when the notion of elemental forces as personal agents starts to fade in favor of recognizing natural laws, magic, rooted in the idea of a necessary and consistent chain of causes and effects that is separate from personal will, emerges from the obscurity and disrepute it had fallen into, and by examining the causal relationships in nature, directly lays the groundwork for science. Alchemy gives rise to chemistry.

The notion of a man-god or of a human being endowed with divine or supernatural powers, belongs essentially to that earlier period of religious history in which gods and men are still viewed as beings of much the same order, and before they are divided by the impassable gulf which, to later thought, opens out between them. Strange, therefore, as may seem to us the idea of a god incarnate in human form, it has nothing very startling for early man, who sees in a man-god or a god-man only a higher degree of the same supernatural powers which he arrogates in perfect good faith to himself. Such incarnate gods are common in rude society. The incarnation may be temporary or permanent. In the former case, the incarnation—commonly known as inspiration or possession—reveals [pg 033] itself in supernatural knowledge rather than in supernatural power. In other words, its usual manifestations are divination and prophesy rather than miracles. On the other hand, when the incarnation is not merely temporary, when the divine spirit has permanently taken up its abode in a human body, the god-man is usually expected to vindicate his character by working miracles. Only we have to remember that by men at this stage of thought miracles are not considered as breaches of natural law. Not conceiving the existence of natural law, primitive man cannot conceive a breach of it. A miracle is to him merely an unusually striking manifestation of a common power.

The idea of a man-god or a human with divine or supernatural abilities belongs to an earlier time in religious history when gods and humans were still seen as beings of a similar nature. This was before a huge divide formed between them, which later thinkers would see as impassable. Therefore, although it may seem strange to us, the concept of a god in human form isn't surprising to early humans, who view a man-god or god-man as just a more powerful version of the supernatural abilities they genuinely believe they possess. Such incarnate gods are common in primitive societies. The incarnation can be temporary or permanent. In the temporary case, often called inspiration or possession, it usually shows up as supernatural knowledge rather than power. In other words, it typically manifests as divination and prophecy rather than miracles. However, when the incarnation is permanent, and the divine spirit has settled in a human body, the god-man is generally expected to prove his divinity by performing miracles. It's important to note that for people at this stage of thought, miracles are not viewed as violations of natural law. Since primitive humans do not understand the concept of natural law, they can't even think of breaking it. To them, a miracle is simply a striking example of a common power.

The belief in temporary incarnation or inspiration is world-wide. Certain persons are supposed to be possessed from time to time by a spirit or deity; while the possession lasts, their own personality lies in abeyance, the presence of the spirit is revealed by convulsive shiverings and shakings of the man's whole body, by wild gestures and excited looks, all of which are referred, not to the man himself, but to the spirit which has entered into him; and in this abnormal state all his utterances are accepted as the voice of the god or spirit dwelling in him and speaking through him. In Mangaia the priests in whom the gods took up their abode from time to time were called “god-boxes” or, for shortness, “gods.” Before giving oracles as gods, they drank an intoxicating liquor, and in the frenzy thus produced their wild words were received as the voice of the god.128 But examples of such temporary inspiration are so common in every part of the world [pg 034] and are now so familiar through books on ethnology, that it is needless to cite illustrations of the general principle.129 It may be well, however, to refer to two particular modes of producing temporary inspiration, because they are perhaps less known than some others, and because we shall have occasion to refer to them later on. One of these modes of producing inspiration is by sucking the fresh blood of a sacrificed victim. In the temple of Apollo Diradiotes at Argos, a lamb was sacrificed by night once a month; a woman, who had to observe a rule of chastity, tasted the blood of the lamb, and thus being inspired by the god she prophesied or divined.130 At Aegira in Achaea the priestess of Earth drank the fresh blood of a bull before she descended into the cave to prophesy.131 In Southern India a devil-dancer “drinks the blood of the sacrifice, putting the throat of the decapitated goat to his mouth. Then, as if he had acquired new life, he begins to brandish his staff of bells, and to dance with a quick but wild unsteady step. Suddenly the afflatus descends. There is no mistaking that glare, or those frantic leaps. He snorts, he stares, he gyrates. The demon has now taken bodily possession of him; and, though he retains the power of utterance and of motion, both are under the demon's control, and his separate consciousness is in abeyance.... The devil-dancer is now worshipped as a present deity, and every bystander consults him respecting his disease, his wants, the welfare of his absent relatives, the offerings to be made for the accomplishment of his [pg 035] wishes, and, in short, respecting everything for which superhuman knowledge is supposed to be available.”132 At a festival of the Minahassa in northern Celebes, after a pig has been killed, the priest rushes furiously at it, thrusts his head into the carcass and drinks of the blood. Then he is dragged away from it by force and set on a chair, whereupon he begins to prophesy how the rice crop will turn out that year. A second time he runs at the carcass and drinks of the blood; a second time he is forced into the chair and continues his predictions. It is thought there is a spirit in him which possesses the power of prophecy.133 At Rhetra, a great religious capital of the Western Slavs, the priest tasted the blood of the sacrificed oxen and sheep in order the better to prophesy.134 The true test of a Dainyal or diviner among some of the Hindoo Koosh tribes is to suck the blood from the neck of a decapitated goat.135 The other mode of producing temporary inspiration, to which I shall here refer, is by means of a branch or leaves of a sacred tree. Thus in the Hindoo Koosh a fire is kindled with twigs of the sacred cedar; and the Dainyal or sibyl, with a cloth over her head, inhales the thick pungent smoke till she is seized with convulsions and falls senseless to the ground. Soon she rises and raises a shrill chant, which is caught up [pg 036] and loudly repeated by her audience.136 So Apollo's prophetess ate the sacred laurel before she prophesied.137 It is worth observing that many peoples expect the victim as well as the priest or prophet to give signs of inspiration by convulsive movements of the body; and if the animal remains obstinately steady, they esteem it unfit for sacrifice. Thus when the Yakuts sacrifice to an evil spirit, the beast must bellow and roll about, which is considered a token that the evil spirit has entered into it.138 Apollo's prophetess could give no oracles unless the victim to be sacrificed trembled in every limb when the wine was poured on its head. But for ordinary Greek sacrifices it was enough that the victim should shake its head; to make it do so, water was poured on it.139 Many other peoples (Tonquinese, Hindoos, Chuwash, etc.) have adopted the same test of a suitable victim; they pour water or wine on its head; if the animal shakes its head it is accepted for sacrifice; if it does not, it is rejected.140

The belief in temporary incarnation or inspiration is widespread. Some individuals are thought to be temporarily possessed by a spirit or deity; while this possession lasts, their own personality is subdued, and the presence of the spirit is shown through convulsive shivers and shakes of their whole body, along with wild gestures and excited expressions, all of which are attributed to the spirit rather than to the person themselves. In this altered state, everything they say is accepted as the voice of the god or spirit that is speaking through them. In Mangaia, the priests who were hosts for the gods at times were referred to as "god boxes" or simply "gods." Before delivering oracles as gods, they would drink an intoxicating beverage, and in the resulting frenzy, their chaotic utterances were seen as the voice of the god.128 However, instances of temporary inspiration are so common across the globe [pg 034] and are now so familiar through ethnological literature that there’s no need to provide examples of the general principle.129 It may be worthwhile, however, to highlight two specific methods of inducing temporary inspiration, as they might be less known than others and will be referenced later. One method involves the consumption of fresh blood from a sacrificed animal. In the temple of Apollo Diradiotes at Argos, a lamb was sacrificed monthly at night; a woman, who had to maintain chastity, would taste the lamb's blood, becoming inspired by the god, enabling her to prophesy or divine.130 In Aegira in Achaea, the priestess of Earth drank fresh blood from a bull before entering the cave to give prophecies.131 In Southern India, a devil-dancer He drinks the blood of the sacrifice, pressing the throat of the decapitated goat to his lips. Then, as if he has been rejuvenated, he starts to wave his bell staff and dance in a quick but wild and unsteady way. Suddenly, inspiration strikes. It’s unmistakable with that intense stare and those frantic jumps. He snorts, glares, and spins. The demon has completely taken over; although he can still speak and move, both actions are controlled by the demon, leaving his individual consciousness inactive. Now, the devil-dancer is worshipped as a living deity, and everyone around seeks his advice about their illnesses, desires, the well-being of absent loved ones, offerings for their wishes, and basically anything that requires supernatural insight.132 During a festival in Minahassa in northern Celebes, after a pig is killed, the priest charges at it, thrusts his head into the carcass, and drinks its blood. He is then forcibly removed and seated, at which point he starts to prophesy about the upcoming rice harvest. He charges at the carcass again, drinks from it a second time, is re-seated, and continues his predictions. It is believed that a spirit within him grants him the power of prophecy.133 In Rhetra, a major religious center for the Western Slavs, the priest drank the blood of sacrificed oxen and sheep to enhance his prophesying ability.134 In some of the Hindoo Koosh tribes, a true diviner's test involves drinking blood from the neck of a decapitated goat.135 The other method of producing temporary inspiration that I will mention involves using branches or leaves from a sacred tree. For instance, in the Hindoo Koosh, a fire is lit with twigs from the sacred cedar; and the diviner or prophetess, with a cloth over her head, inhales the thick, pungent smoke until she experiences convulsions and collapses. Soon she rises and begins a high-pitched chant, which is picked up [pg 036] and loudly echoed by her audience.136 Similarly, Apollo's prophetess consumed sacred laurel leaves before she would prophesy.137 It's important to note that many cultures expect both the victim and the priest or prophet to show signs of inspiration through convulsive movements. If the animal remains completely still, it is considered unfit for sacrifice. For example, when the Yakuts sacrifice to an evil spirit, the animal must bellow and roll around, which indicates that the evil spirit has entered it.138 Apollo's prophetess could not give oracles unless the animal to be sacrificed trembled all over when wine was poured over its head. However, for standard Greek sacrifices, it was enough that the victim shook its head; to prompt this, water was poured on its head.139 Many other cultures (including Tonquinese, Hindoos, Chuwash, etc.) have adopted the same criteria for an acceptable victim; they pour water or wine over its head, and if the animal shakes its head, it is accepted for sacrifice; if it doesn’t, it is rejected.140

The person temporarily inspired is believed to acquire, not merely divine knowledge, but also, at least occasionally, divine power. In Cambodia, when an epidemic breaks out, the inhabitants of several villages unite and go with a band of music at their head to look for the man whom the local god is [pg 037] believed to have chosen for his temporary incarnation. When found, the man is taken to the altar of the god, where the mystery of incarnation takes place. Then the man becomes an object of veneration to his fellows, who implore him to protect the village against the plague.141 The image of Apollo at Hylæ in Phocis was believed to impart superhuman strength. Sacred men, inspired by it, leaped down precipices, tore up huge trees by the roots, and carried them on their backs along the narrowest defiles.142 The feats performed by inspired dervishes belong to the same class.

The person temporarily inspired is thought to gain not just divine knowledge, but also, at least sometimes, divine power. In Cambodia, when an epidemic occurs, the people from several villages come together and, with a band playing music at the front, search for the man whom the local god is believed to have chosen for his temporary incarnation. Once he's found, he is taken to the altar of the god, where the mystery of incarnation happens. Then, he becomes an object of reverence to his community, who ask him to protect the village from the plague. 141 The image of Apollo at Hylæ in Phocis was believed to give superhuman strength. Sacred men, inspired by it, would jump off cliffs, uproot huge trees, and carry them on their backs through the narrowest paths. 142 The feats performed by inspired dervishes are in the same vein.

Thus far we have seen that the savage, failing to discern the limits of his ability to control nature, ascribes to himself and to all men certain powers which we should now call supernatural. Further, we have seen that over and above this general supernaturalism, some persons are supposed to be inspired for short periods by a divine spirit, and thus temporarily to enjoy the knowledge and power of the indwelling deity. From beliefs like these it is an easy step to the conviction that certain men are permanently possessed by a deity, or in some other undefined way are endued with so high a degree of supernatural powers as to be ranked as gods and to receive the homage of prayer and sacrifice. Sometimes these human gods are restricted to purely supernatural or spiritual functions. Sometimes they exercise supreme political power in addition. In the latter case they are kings as well as gods, and the government is a theocracy. I shall give examples of both.

So far, we've seen that the primitive person, unable to recognize the limits of his ability to control nature, attributes to himself and to all humans certain powers that we would now describe as supernatural. Additionally, we've observed that beyond this general belief in the supernatural, some individuals are thought to be briefly inspired by a divine spirit, temporarily gaining the knowledge and power of that deity. From such beliefs, it's an easy leap to the conviction that certain people are permanently inhabited by a deity or possess an extraordinary level of supernatural powers that qualifies them as gods, worthy of prayer and sacrifice. Sometimes these human gods are limited to purely supernatural or spiritual roles. Other times, they also hold supreme political power. In those cases, they are both kings and gods, and the government operates as a theocracy. I will provide examples of both.

In the Marquesas Islands there was a class of men who were deified in their life-time. They were supposed [pg 038] to wield a supernatural power over the elements; they could give abundant harvests or smite the ground with barrenness; and they could inflict disease or death. Human sacrifices were offered to them to avert their wrath. There were not many of them, at the most one or two in each island. They lived in mystic seclusion. Their powers were sometimes, but not always, hereditary. A missionary has described one of these human gods from personal observation. The god was a very old man who lived in a large house within an enclosure. In the house was a kind of altar, and on the beams of the house and on the trees round it were hung human skeletons, head down. No one entered the enclosure, except the persons dedicated to the service of the god; only on days when human victims were sacrificed might ordinary people penetrate into the precinct. This human god received more sacrifices than all the other gods; often he would sit on a sort of scaffold in front of his house and call for two or three human victims at a time. They were always brought, for the terror he inspired was extreme. He was invoked all over the island, and offerings were sent to him from every side.143 Again, of the South Sea Islands in general we are told that each island had a man who represented or personified the divinity. Such men were called gods, and their substance was confounded with that of the deity. The man-god was sometimes the king himself; oftener he was a priest or subordinate chief.144 Tanatoa, King of Raiatea, was deified by a certain ceremony performed at the chief temple. “As one of the divinities of his subjects, [pg 039] therefore, the king was worshipped, consulted as an oracle and had sacrifices and prayers offered to him.”145 This was not an exceptional case. The kings of the island regularly enjoyed divine honours, being deified at the time of their accession.146 At his inauguration the king of Tahiti received a sacred girdle of red and yellow feathers, “which not only raised him to the highest earthly station, but identified him with their gods.”147 The gods of Samoa generally appeared in animal form, but sometimes they were permanently incarnate in men, who gave oracles, received offerings (occasionally of human flesh), healed the sick, answered prayers, and so on.148 In regard to the old religion of the Fijians, and especially of the inhabitants of Somo-somo, it is said that “there appears to be no certain line of demarcation between departed spirits and gods, nor between gods and living men, for many of the priests and old chiefs are considered as sacred persons, and not a few of them will also claim to themselves the right of divinity. ‘I am a god,’ Tuikilakila would say; and he believed it too.”149 In the Pelew Islands it is believed that every god can take possession of a man and speak through him. The possession may be either temporary or permanent; in the latter case the chosen person is called a korong. The god is free in his choice, so the position of korong is not hereditary. After the death of a korong the god is for some time unrepresented, until he suddenly makes his appearance in a new Avatar. The person thus chosen gives signs [pg 040] of the divine presence by behaving in a strange way; he gapes, runs about, and performs a number of senseless acts. At first people laugh at him, but his sacred mission is in time recognised, and he is invited to assume his proper position in the state. Generally this position is a distinguished one and confers on him a powerful influence over the whole community. In some of the islands the god is political sovereign of the land; and hence his new incarnation, however humble his origin, is raised to the same high rank, and rules, as god and king, over all the other chiefs.150 In time of public calamity, as during war or pestilence, some of the Molucca Islanders used to celebrate a festival of heaven. If no good result followed, they bought a slave, took him at the next festival to the place of sacrifice, and set him on a raised place under a certain bamboo-tree. This tree represented heaven and had been honoured as its image at previous festivals. The portion of the sacrifice which had previously been offered to heaven was now given to the slave, who ate and drank it in the name and stead of heaven. Henceforth the slave was well treated, kept for the festivals of heaven, and employed to represent heaven and receive the offerings in its name.151 In Tonquin every village chooses its guardian spirit, often in the form of an animal, as a dog, tiger, cat, or serpent. Sometimes a living person is selected as patron-divinity. Thus a beggar persuaded the people of a village that he was their guardian spirit; so they loaded him with honours and entertained him with their best.152 In India “every [pg 041] king is regarded as little short of a present god.”153 The Indian law-book of Manu goes farther and says that “even an infant king must not be despised from an idea that he is a mere mortal; for he is a great deity in human form.”154 There is said to be a sect in Orissa who worship the Queen of England as their chief divinity. And to this day in India all living persons remarkable for great strength or valour or for supposed miraculous powers run the risk of being worshipped as gods. Thus, a sect in the Punjaub worshipped a deity whom they called Nikkal Sen. This Nikkal Sen was no other than the redoubted General Nicholson, and nothing that the general could do or say damped the enthusiasm of his adorers. The more he punished them, the greater grew the religious awe with which they worshipped him.155 Amongst the Todas, a pastoral people of the Neilgherry Hills of Southern India, the dairy is a sanctuary, and the milkman (pâlâl) who attends to it is a god. On being asked whether the Todas salute the sun, one of these divine milkmen replied, “Those poor fellows do so, but I,” tapping his chest, “I, a god! why should I salute the sun?” Every one, even his own father, prostrates himself before the milkman, and no one would dare to refuse him anything. No human being, except another milkman, may touch him; and he gives oracles to all who consult him, speaking with the voice of a god.156

In the Marquesas Islands, there existed a group of men who were considered gods while they were still alive. They were believed to have supernatural control over nature; they could provide bountiful harvests or render the land barren, as well as cause illness or death. People offered human sacrifices to them to placate their anger. There were very few of them, usually just one or two on each island, and they lived in mystic seclusion. Their powers sometimes, but not always, were passed down through generations. A missionary who personally observed one of these human gods described him as a very old man living in a large house surrounded by a protective wall. Inside the house was a kind of altar, and human skeletons were hung upside down from the beams of the house and the surrounding trees. No one entered the enclosure except those dedicated to serving the god; only on the days when human sacrifices were made could regular people enter. This human god received more sacrifices than all the other gods; he would often sit on a kind of platform in front of his house and demand two or three human victims at a time. They were always provided, for he inspired extreme fear. He was called upon throughout the island, and offerings came to him from every direction. Regarding the broader South Sea Islands, it was said that each island had a man who represented or embodied divinity. These men were referred to as gods, and their essence was considered to merge with that of the deity. The man-god was sometimes the king himself; more often, he was a priest or a subordinate chief. Tanatoa, the King of Raiatea, was deified through a ceremony conducted at the main temple. “As one of the divinities of his subjects, therefore, the king was worshipped, consulted as an oracle, and offered sacrifices and prayers.” This was not an unusual occurrence. The kings of the island consistently enjoyed divine honors, being deified at the moment they ascended the throne. During his inauguration, the king of Tahiti received a sacred belt made of red and yellow feathers, “which not only elevated him to the highest earthly status but also identified him with their gods.” The gods of Samoa usually appeared in animal form, but occasionally they were permanently embodied in men who provided oracles, received offerings (sometimes of human flesh), healed the sick, and answered prayers. Concerning the ancient religion of the Fijians, particularly the people of Somo-somo, it is said that “there seems to be no clear distinction between departed spirits and gods, nor between gods and living men, for many priests and old chiefs are regarded as sacred persons, and some even claim divine status. ‘I am a god,’ Tuikilakila would declare, and he believed it, too.” In the Pelew Islands, it is thought that every god can inhabit a person and speak through them. This possession can be either temporary or permanent; in the latter case, the chosen person is known as a korong. The god freely chooses, so the role of korong is not hereditary. After a korong dies, the god is left unembodied for a period until a new Avatar suddenly appears. The individual chosen shows signs of divine presence by acting oddly; he gapes, runs around, and performs many meaningless actions. Initially, people laugh at him, but in time, his sacred mission is recognized, and he is invited to take up his rightful position in society. Typically, this position is significant and grants him considerable influence over the entire community. In some islands, the god serves as the political ruler of the land; thus, his new incarnation, regardless of humble origins, is elevated to the same high status and governs, as both god and king, over all other leaders. During times of public disaster, such as war or plague, some residents of the Molucca Islands would hold a festival for heaven. If no positive outcome resulted, they would purchase a slave, take him to the sacrificial site during the next festival, and place him on an elevated spot beneath a specific bamboo tree. This tree symbolized heaven and had been honored as its representation at earlier festivals. The portion of the sacrifice previously offered to heaven would now be given to the slave, who would consume it in the name of and as a substitute for heaven. From then on, the slave was treated well, kept for the heaven festivals, and used to represent heaven, receiving offerings in its name. In Tonquin, every village selects its guardian spirit, often as an animal like a dog, tiger, cat, or snake. Sometimes, a living person is designated as their patron deity. For instance, a beggar convinced a village that he was their guardian spirit, leading them to bestow honors upon him and provide him with their best hospitality. In India, “every king is regarded as almost a living god.” The Indian legal text of Manu goes further, stating that “even an infant king must not be looked down upon as merely human; for he is a great deity in a human form.” It is said that there is a sect in Orissa that worships the Queen of England as their primary divine figure. Even today in India, any living person known for exceptional strength, bravery, or supposed miraculous abilities runs the risk of being venerated as a god. For example, a group in the Punjab worshipped a deity they called Nikkal Sen, who was none other than the celebrated General Nicholson, and nothing the general did could diminish the enthusiasm of his followers. The more he punished them, the greater their reverence became. Among the Todas, a pastoral community in the Neilgherry Hills of Southern India, the dairy is considered sacred, and the milkman (pâlâl) who tends to it is regarded as a god. When asked if the Todas salute the sun, one of these divine milkmen replied, “Those poor fellows do so, but I,” tapping his chest, “I, a god! Why should I salute the sun?” Everyone, even his own father, bows down before the milkman, and no one would dare refuse him anything. No human, except another milkman, may touch him, and he gives oracles to anyone who seeks his counsel, speaking with the voice of a god.

The King of Iddah told the English officers of the Niger Expedition, “God made me after his own [pg 042] image; I am all the same as God; and He appointed me a king.”157

The King of Iddah told the English officers of the Niger Expedition, "God made me in His own [pg 042] image; I am just like God; and He picked me to be a king."157

Sometimes, at the death of the human incarnation, the divine spirit transmigrates into another man. In the kingdom of Kaffa, in Eastern Africa, the heathen part of the people worship a spirit called Deòce, to whom they offer prayer and sacrifice, and whom they invoke on all important occasions. This spirit is incarnate in the grand magician or pope, a person of great wealth and influence, ranking almost with the king, and wielding the spiritual, as the king wields the temporal, power. It happened that, shortly before the arrival of a Christian missionary in the kingdom, this African pope died, and the priests, fearing that the missionary would assume the position vacated by the deceased pope, declared that the Deòce had passed into the king, who henceforth, uniting the spiritual with the temporal power, reigned as god and king.158 Before beginning to work at the salt-pans in a Laosian village, the workmen offer sacrifice to a local divinity. This divinity is incarnate in a woman and transmigrates at her death into another woman.159 In Bhotan the spiritual head of the government is a person called the Dhurma Raja, who is supposed to be a perpetual incarnation of the deity. At his death the new incarnate god shows himself in an infant by the refusal of his mother's milk and a preference for that of a cow.160 The Buddhist Tartars believe in a great number of living Buddhas, who officiate as Grand Lamas at the head of the most [pg 043] important monasteries. When one of these Grand Lamas dies his disciples do not sorrow, for they know that he will soon reappear, being born in the form of an infant. Their only anxiety is to discover the place of his birth. If at this time they see a rainbow they take it as a sign sent them by the departed Lama to guide them to his cradle. Sometimes the divine infant himself reveals his identity. “I am the Grand Lama,” he says, “the living Buddha of such and such a temple. Take me to my old monastery. I am its immortal head.” In whatever way the birthplace of the Buddha is revealed, whether by the Buddha's own avowal or by the sign in the sky, tents are struck, and the joyful pilgrims, often headed by the king or one of the most illustrious of the royal family, set forth to find and bring home the infant god. Generally he is born in Tibet, the holy land, and to reach him the caravan has often to traverse the most frightful deserts. When at last they find the child they fall down and worship him. Before, however, he is acknowledged as the Grand Lama whom they seek he must satisfy them of his identity. He is asked the name of the monastery of which he claims to be the head, how far off it is, and how many monks live in it; he must also describe the habits of the deceased Grand Lama and the manner of his death. Then various articles, as prayer-books, tea-pots, and cups, are placed before him, and he has to point out those used by himself in his previous life. If he does so without a mistake his claims are admitted, and he is conducted in triumph to the monastery.161 At the head of all the Lamas is the Dalai Lama of Lhasa, the Rome of Tibet. He is regarded as a living god [pg 044] and at death his divine and immortal spirit is born again in a child. According to some accounts the mode of discovering the Dalai Lama is similar to the method, already described, of discovering an ordinary Grand Lama. Other accounts speak of an election by lot. Wherever he is born, the trees and plants, it is said, put forth green leaves; at his bidding flowers bloom and springs of water rise; and his presence diffuses heavenly blessings. His palace stands on a commanding height; its gilded cupolas are seen sparkling in the sunlight for miles.162

Sometimes, when a human incarnation dies, the divine spirit moves into another person. In the Kaffa kingdom of Eastern Africa, the pagan part of the population worships a spirit called Deòce, to whom they offer prayers and sacrifices, invoking him on all significant occasions. This spirit is embodied in the grand magician or pope, a person of great wealth and influence, almost on the same level as the king, who holds spiritual power just as the king holds temporal power. Shortly before the arrival of a Christian missionary in the kingdom, this African pope passed away, and the priests, fearing that the missionary might take over the role left vacant by the deceased pope, declared that the Deòce had entered the king, who from then on, combining spiritual and temporal authority, ruled as both god and king.158 Before they start working at the salt pans in a village in Laos, the workers offer sacrifices to a local deity. This deity is embodied in a woman and transfers into another woman upon her death.159 In Bhotan, the spiritual leader of the government is referred to as the Dhurma Raja, who is believed to be a perpetual incarnation of the deity. When he dies, the new incarnate god appears as an infant, indicated by the refusal of his mother's milk and a preference for that of a cow.160 The Buddhist Tartars believe in many living Buddhas, who serve as Grand Lamas at the most important monasteries. When one of these Grand Lamas dies, his disciples do not mourn, as they know he will soon be reborn as an infant. Their only concern is to locate his birthplace. If they see a rainbow during this time, they consider it a sign from the departed Lama to guide them to his crib. Sometimes the divine infant reveals his identity himself. "I'm the Grand Lama," he says, "the living Buddha of this temple or that one. Take me to my old monastery. I am its eternal leader." In whichever way the birthplace of the Buddha is revealed, be it through the Buddha's own declaration or a sign in the sky, tents are packed up, and the joyful pilgrims, often led by the king or a prominent member of the royal family, set off to find and bring the infant god home. Generally, he is born in Tibet, the holy land, and the caravan must often cross treacherous deserts to reach him. When they finally find the child, they fall down and worship him. Before he is recognized as the Grand Lama they seek, he must prove his identity. They will ask him the name of the monastery he claims to head, how far away it is, and how many monks live there; he must also describe the habits of the deceased Grand Lama and how he died. Then, various items like prayer books, tea pots, and cups are placed before him, and he must identify those he used in his previous life. If he does so correctly, his claims are accepted, and he is joyfully taken to the monastery.161 At the top of all the Lamas is the Dalai Lama of Lhasa, the Rome of Tibet. He is seen as a living god [pg 044] and upon death, his divine and immortal spirit is reborn in a child. Some accounts say the method for finding the Dalai Lama is similar to that used for an ordinary Grand Lama. Other accounts mention a lottery system for selection. Wherever he is born, it is said that trees and plants burst into green leaves; at his command, flowers bloom and springs of water emerge; and his presence brings divine blessings. His palace is situated on a prominent height, with its gilded domes sparkling in the sunlight from miles away.162

Issuing from the sultry valleys upon the lofty plateau of the Colombian Andes, the Spanish conquerors were astonished to find, in contrast to the savage hordes they had left in the sweltering jungles below, a people enjoying a fair degree of civilisation, practising agriculture, and living under a government which Humboldt has compared to the theocracies of Tibet and Japan. These were the Chibchas, Muyscas, or Mozcas, divided into two kingdoms, with capitals at Bogota and Tunja, but united apparently in spiritual allegiance to the high pontiff of Sogamozo or Iraca. By a long and ascetic novitiate, this ghostly ruler was reputed to have acquired such sanctity that the waters and the rain obeyed him, and the weather depended on his will.163 Weather kings are common in Africa. Thus the [pg 045] Waganda of Central Africa believe in a god of Lake Nyanza, who sometimes takes up his abode in a man or woman. The incarnate god is much feared by all the people, including the king and the chiefs. He is consulted as an oracle; by his word he can inflict or heal sickness, withhold rain, and cause famine. Large presents are made him when his advice is sought.164 Often the king himself is supposed to control the weather. The king of Loango is honoured by his people “as though he were a god; and he is called Sambee and Pango, which mean god. They believe that he can let them have rain when he likes; and once a year, in December, which is the time they want rain, the people come to beg of him to grant it to them.” On this occasion the king, standing on his throne, shoots an arrow into the air, which is supposed to bring on rain.165 Much the same is said of the king of Mombaza.166 The king of Quiteva, in Eastern Africa, ranks with the deity; “indeed, the Caffres acknowledge no other gods than their monarch, and to him they address those prayers which other nations are wont to prefer to heaven.... Hence these unfortunate beings, under the persuasion that their king is a deity, exhaust their utmost means and ruin themselves in gifts to obtain with more facility what they need. Thus, prostrate at his feet, they implore of him, when the weather long continues dry, to intercede with heaven that they may have rain; and when too much [pg 046] rain has fallen, that they may have fair weather; thus, also, in case of winds, storms, and everything, they would either deprecate or implore.”167 Amongst the Barotse, a tribe on the upper Zambesi, “there is an old, but waning belief, that a chief is a demigod, and in heavy thunderstorms the Barotse flock to the chief's yard for protection from the lightning. I have been greatly distressed at seeing them fall on their knees before the chief, entreating him to open the water-pots of heaven and send rain upon their gardens.... The king's servants declare themselves to be invincible, because they are the servants of God (meaning the king).”168 The chief of Mowat, New Guinea, is believed to have the power of affecting the growth of crops for good or ill, and of coaxing the dugong and turtle to come from all parts and allow themselves to be taken.169

Issuing from the humid valleys onto the high plateau of the Colombian Andes, the Spanish conquerors were surprised to find, in contrast to the savage groups they had encountered in the hot jungles below, a people with a fair level of civilization, practicing agriculture and living under a government that Humboldt compared to the theocracies of Tibet and Japan. These were the Chibchas, Muyscas, or Mozcas, divided into two kingdoms, with capitals in Bogotá and Tunja, but seemingly united in spiritual allegiance to the high pontiff of Sogamozo or Iraca. Through a long period of ascetic discipline, this mystical leader was believed to have gained such sanctity that the waters and rain obeyed him, making the weather dependent on his will.163 Weather kings are common in Africa. Thus the [pg 045] Waganda of Central Africa believe in a god of Lake Nyanza, who can sometimes inhabit a man or woman. The incarnate god is greatly feared by all the people, including the king and the chiefs. He is consulted as an oracle; by his command, he can inflict or heal sickness, withhold rain, and cause famine. Large gifts are offered to him when his advice is sought.164 Often, the king himself is believed to have control over the weather. The king of Loango is honored by his people "as if he were a god; and he is known as Sambee and Pango, which means god. They believe that he can choose when it will rain; and once a year, in December, when they need rain, the people come to request it from him." On this occasion, the king, standing on his throne, shoots an arrow into the air, which is thought to bring on rain.165 Much the same is said of the king of Mombaza.166 The king of Quiteva, in Eastern Africa, is regarded as a deity; The Caffres only recognize their king as a god, directing the prayers that other nations would typically offer to heaven toward him. As a result, these unfortunate people, believing their king is divine, drain their resources and ruin themselves by giving gifts in hopes of obtaining what they need more easily. So, they bow down at his feet, pleading with him to ask the heavens for rain during dry spells and to request fair weather when it rains too much. Similarly, in cases of strong winds, storms, or any other situations, they either beg him to stop it or to provide for them.167 Among the Barotse, a tribe on the upper Zambesi, There’s an old but fading belief that a chief is a demigod, and during heavy thunderstorms, the Barotse gather at the chief's yard for protection from lightning. It troubles me deeply to see them kneel before the chief, asking him to open the water-pots of heaven and send rain on their gardens... The king's servants say they are invincible because they serve God (which means the king).168 The chief of Mowat, New Guinea, is believed to have the power to affect the growth of crops for better or worse, and to persuade the dugong and turtles to come from all parts and let themselves be captured.169

Amongst the Antaymours of Madagascar the king is responsible for the growth of the crops and for every misfortune that befalls the people.170 In many places the king is punished if rain does not fall and the crops do not turn out well. Thus, in some parts of West Africa, when prayers and offerings presented to the king have failed to procure rain, his subjects bind him with ropes and take him by force to the grave of his forefathers, that he may obtain from them the needed rain.171 It appears that the Scythians also, when food was scarce, put their king in bonds.172 The Banjars in [pg 047] West Africa ascribe to their king the power of causing rain or fine weather. So long as the weather is fine they load him with presents of grain and cattle. But if long drought or rain threatens to spoil the crops, they insult and beat him till the weather changes.173 When the harvest fails or the surf on the coast is too heavy to allow of fishing, the people of Loango accuse their king of a “bad heart” and depose him.174 On the Pepper Coast the high priest or Bodio is responsible for the health of the community, the fertility of the earth, and the abundance of fish in the sea and rivers; and if the country suffers in any of these respects the Bodio is deposed from his office.175 So the Burgundians of old deposed their king if the crops failed.176 Some peoples have gone further and killed their kings in times of scarcity. Thus, in the time of the Swedish king Domalde a mighty famine broke out, which lasted several years, and could be stayed by the blood neither of beasts nor of men. So, in a great popular assembly held at Upsala, the chiefs decided that king Domalde himself was the cause of the scarcity and must be sacrificed for good seasons. So they slew him and smeared with his blood the altars of the gods. Again, we are told that the Swedes always attributed good or bad crops to their kings as the cause. Now, in the reign of King Olaf, there came dear times and famine, and the people thought that the fault was the king's, because he was sparing in his sacrifices. So, mustering an army, they marched against him, surrounded [pg 048] his dwelling, and burned him in it, “giving him to Odin as a sacrifice for good crops.”177 In 1814, a pestilence having broken out among the reindeer of the Chukch, the Shamans declared that the beloved chief Koch must be sacrificed to the angry gods; so the chief's own son stabbed him with a dagger.178 On the coral island of Niuē, or Savage Island, in the South Pacific, there formerly reigned a line of kings. But as the kings were also high priests, and were supposed to make the food grow, the people became angry with them in times of scarcity and killed them; till at last, as one after another was killed, no one would be king, and the monarchy came to an end.179 As in these cases the divine kings, so in ancient Egypt the divine beasts, were responsible for the course of nature. When pestilence and other calamities had fallen on the land, in consequence of a long and severe drought, the priests took the sacred animals secretly by night, and threatened them, but if the evil did not abate they slew the beasts.180

Among the Antaymours of Madagascar, the king is responsible for the growth of crops and for any misfortunes that affect the people.170 In many areas, if rain doesn't fall and the crops don't do well, the king is punished. For instance, in some regions of West Africa, when prayers and offerings to the king fail to bring rain, his subjects bind him with ropes and force him to the graves of his ancestors to ask them for the much-needed rain.171 It seems that the Scythians also imprisoned their king when food was scarce.172 The Banjars in [pg 047] West Africa attribute to their king the ability to bring rain or good weather. As long as the weather is good, they shower him with gifts of grain and livestock. But if there's a long drought or rain threatens to ruin the crops, they insult and beat him until the weather changes.173 When the harvest fails or the coastal waves are too rough for fishing, the people of Loango blame their king for having a “heart problems” and remove him from power.174 On the Pepper Coast, the high priest or Bodio is responsible for the health of the community, the fertility of the land, and the abundance of fish in the sea and rivers; if the country suffers in any of these areas, the Bodio is removed from his position.175 Similarly, the Burgundians of the past would depose their king if the crops failed.176 Some people have gone even further and killed their kings during times of scarcity. For instance, during the reign of the Swedish king Domalde, a severe famine occurred that lasted several years and could not be ended by animal or human sacrifice. In a major assembly held at Upsala, the leaders concluded that King Domalde was the cause of the famine and needed to be sacrificed for better seasons. They killed him and smeared his blood on the altars of the gods. Furthermore, it's said that the Swedes always believed their kings to be the cause of good or bad crops. During King Olaf's reign, when hard times and famine hit, the people blamed the king because he was frugal with his sacrifices. So, they gathered an army, surrounded [pg 048] his residence, and burned him alive, “offering him to Odin as a sacrifice for a good harvest.”177 In 1814, when a plague broke out among the reindeer of the Chukch, the Shamans declared that the beloved chief Koch must be sacrificed to appease the angry gods; so his own son stabbed him with a dagger.178 On the coral island of Niuē, or Savage Island, in the South Pacific, there used to be a line of kings. However, since the kings were also high priests who were expected to ensure food production, the people grew angry with them during times of famine and killed them. Eventually, as each king was killed, no one wanted to take the throne, leading to the end of the monarchy.179 Just as these divine kings were held accountable, so too were the divine animals in ancient Egypt, which were believed to influence the natural order. When plague and other disasters struck the land after a long and severe drought, the priests would secretly take the sacred animals at night and threaten them; if the problems didn't improve, they would kill the animals.180

From this survey of the religious position occupied by the king in rude societies we may infer that the claim to divine and supernatural powers put forward by the monarchs of great historical empires like those of Egypt, Mexico, and Peru, was not the simple outcome of inflated vanity or the empty expression of a grovelling adulation; it was merely a survival and extension of the old savage apotheosis of living kings. [pg 049] Thus, for example, as children of the Sun the Incas of Peru were revered like gods; they could do no wrong, and no one dreamed of offending against the person, honour, or property of the monarch or of any of the royal race. Hence, too, the Incas did not, like most people, look on sickness as an evil. They considered it a messenger sent from their father the Sun to call his son to come and rest with him in heaven. Therefore the usual words in which an Inca announced his approaching end were these: “My father calls me to come and rest with him.” They would not oppose their father's will by offering sacrifice for recovery, but openly declared that he had called them to his rest.181 The Mexican kings at their accession took an oath that they would make the sun to shine, the clouds to give rain, the rivers to flow, and the earth to bring forth fruits in abundance.182 By Chinese custom the emperor is deemed responsible if the drought be at all severe, and many are the self-condemnatory edicts on this subject published in the pages of the Peking Gazette. However it is rather as a high priest than as a god that the Chinese emperor bears the blame; for in extreme cases he seeks to remedy the evil by personally offering prayers and sacrifices to heaven.183 The Parthian monarchs of the Arsacid house styled themselves brothers of the sun and moon and were worshipped as deities. It was esteemed sacrilege to strike even a private member of the Arsacid family in a brawl.184 The kings of Egypt were deified in their lifetime, and their worship was celebrated in special temples and by [pg 050] special priests. Indeed the worship of the kings sometimes cast that of the gods into the shade. Thus in the reign of Merenra a high official declared that he had built many holy places in order that the spirits of the king, the ever-living Merenra, might be invoked “more than all the gods.”185 The King of Egypt seems to have shared with the sacred animals the blame of any failure of the crops.186 He was addressed as “Lord of heaven, lord of earth, sun, life of the whole world, lord of time, measurer of the sun's course, Tum for men, lord of well-being, creator of the harvest, maker and fashioner of mortals, bestower of breath upon all men, giver of life to all the host of gods, pillar of heaven, threshold of the earth, weigher of the equipoise of both worlds, lord of rich gifts, increaser of the corn” etc.187 Yet, as we should expect, the exalted powers thus ascribed to the king differed in degree rather than in kind from those which every Egyptian claimed for himself. Tiele observes that “as every good man at his death became Osiris, as every one in danger or need could by the use of magic sentences assume the form of a deity, it is quite comprehensible how the king, not only after death, but already during his life, was placed on a level with the deity.”188

From this overview of the religious role held by kings in primitive societies, we can conclude that the claims of divine and supernatural powers made by the rulers of major historical empires like those in Egypt, Mexico, and Peru were not simply the result of egotistical arrogance or mere exaggeration of worshipful admiration; they were actually a continuation and expansion of the ancient practice of idolizing living kings. [pg 049] For instance, as children of the Sun, the Incas of Peru were honored as gods; they could do no wrong, and no one would dare to harm the person, reputation, or property of the king or any member of the royal family. Additionally, the Incas did not view sickness as a misfortune like most people did. They saw it as a message from their father the Sun calling his son to come and rest with him in the heavens. Thus, the common phrase an Inca would use to announce his impending death was: "My dad calls me to come and chill with him." They would not oppose their father’s will by making sacrifices to recover, but instead openly acknowledged that he had summoned them to his rest.181 When they ascended to the throne, Mexican kings pledged that they would make the sun shine, the clouds rain, the rivers flow, and the earth bear fruit abundantly.182 According to Chinese tradition, the emperor is held accountable if there is a significant drought, and numerous self-criticizing decrees on this topic have appeared in the pages of the Beijing Gazette. However, the Chinese emperor is blamed more as a high priest than as a god; in extreme cases, he tries to address the issue by personally offering prayers and sacrifices to heaven.183 The Parthian kings from the Arsacid dynasty referred to themselves as brothers of the sun and moon and were worshipped as deities. Striking even a private member of the Arsacid family in a fight was regarded as a serious crime.184 The kings of Egypt were worshipped during their lifetimes, and their veneration was conducted in special temples and by [pg 050] designated priests. Sometimes, the reverence for the kings overshadowed that of the gods. During Merenra's reign, a high official claimed to have constructed many sacred sites so that the spirit of the king, the ever-living Merenra, could be invoked "more than all the gods."185 The King of Egypt was also blamed, alongside sacred animals, for any crop failures.186 He was referred to as "Lord of heaven and earth, sun, life of the entire world, lord of time, measurer of the sun's path, Tum for humanity, lord of well-being, creator of the harvest, maker and designer of mortals, giver of breath to all people, source of life for all the gods, pillar of heaven, boundary of the earth, weigher of balance between both worlds, lord of abundant gifts, provider of grain." etc.187 However, as we would expect, the elevated powers attributed to the king differed in degree rather than in essence from those that every Egyptian believed they had for themselves. Tiele notes that "Just as every good man became Osiris at death, and anyone in danger or need could use magical words to assume the form of a god, it makes perfect sense that the king was seen as equal to the deity, not only after death but also during his life."188

Thus it appears that the same union of sacred [pg 051] functions with a royal title which meets us in the King of the Wood at Nemi, the Sacrificial King at Rome and the King Archon at Athens, occurs frequently outside the limits of classical antiquity and is a common feature of societies at all stages from barbarism to civilisation. Further, it appears that the royal priest is often a king in fact as well as in name, swaying the sceptre as well as the crosier. All this confirms the tradition of the origin of the titular and priestly kings in the republics of ancient Greece and Italy. At least by showing that the combination of spiritual and temporal power, of which Graeco-Italian tradition preserved the memory, has actually existed in many places, we have obviated any suspicion of improbability that might have attached to the tradition. Therefore we may now fairly ask, May not the King of the Wood have had an origin like that which a probable tradition assigns to the Sacrificial King of Rome and the King Archon of Athens? In other words, may not his predecessors in office have been a line of kings whom a republican revolution stripped of their political power, leaving them only their religious functions and the shadow of a crown? There are at least two reasons for answering this question in the negative. One reason is drawn from the abode of the priest of Nemi; the other from his title, the King of the Wood. If his predecessors had been kings in the ordinary sense, he would surely have been found residing, like the fallen kings of Rome and Athens, in the city of which the sceptre had passed from him. This city must have been Aricia, for there was none nearer. But Aricia, as we have seen, was three miles off from his forest sanctuary by the lake shore. If he reigned, it was not in the city, but in the greenwood. Again [pg 052] his title, King of the Wood, hardly allows us to suppose that he had ever been a king in the common sense of the word. More likely he was a king of nature, and of a special side of nature, namely, the woods from which he took his title. If we could find instances of what we may call departmental kings of nature, that is of persons supposed to rule over particular elements or aspects of nature, they would probably present a closer analogy to the King of the Wood than the divine kings we have been hitherto considering, whose control of nature is general rather than special. Instances of such departmental kings are not wanting.

It seems that the same combination of sacred [pg 051] functions with a royal title that we see in the King of the Wood at Nemi, the Sacrificial King at Rome, and the King Archon at Athens, appears often outside of classical antiquity and is a common trait among societies at all levels, from barbarism to civilization. Furthermore, it looks like the royal priest is often an actual king as well as in name, holding both the scepter and the crosier. All of this supports the idea that titular and priestly kings originated in the republics of ancient Greece and Italy. By demonstrating that the mix of spiritual and temporal power, which the Graeco-Italian tradition remembers, has actually existed in many places, we have dispelled any doubts about the validity of this tradition. So we can reasonably ask: Could the King of the Wood have had a similar origin to the Sacrificial King of Rome and the King Archon of Athens? In other words, could his predecessors have been a line of kings stripped of their political power by a republican revolution, leaving them only their religious roles and the mere image of a crown? There are at least two reasons to answer this question negatively. One reason comes from the residence of the priest of Nemi; the other from his title, the King of the Wood. If his predecessors had been kings in the traditional sense, he would definitely have been found living, like the dethroned kings of Rome and Athens, in the city from which he had lost power. This city would likely be Aricia, as there was none closer. However, Aricia, as we have seen, was three miles away from his forest sanctuary by the lake. If he reigned, it was not in the city, but in the woods. Additionally, [pg 052] his title, King of the Wood, suggests that he was never a king in the usual sense. He was probably a king of nature, specifically of the woods that gave him his title. If we could find examples of what we might call departmental kings of nature—people thought to rule over certain elements or aspects of nature—they would likely be a closer comparison to the King of the Wood than the divine kings we have discussed so far, whose control over nature is more general rather than specific. Examples of such departmental kings do exist.

On a hill at Bomma (the mouth of the Congo) dwells Namvulu Vumu, King of the Rain and Storm.189 Of some of the tribes on the Upper Nile we are told that they have no kings in the common sense; the only persons whom they acknowledge as such are the Kings of the Rain, Mata Kodou, who are credited with the power of giving rain at the proper time, that is in the rainy season. Before the rains begin to fall at the end of March the country is a parched and arid desert; and the cattle, which form the people's chief wealth, perish for lack of grass. So, when the end of March draws on, each householder betakes himself to the King of the Rain and offers him a cow that he may make the rain to fall soon. If no shower falls, the people assemble and demand that the king shall give them rain; and if the sky still continues cloudless, they rip up his belly in which he is believed to keep the storms. Amongst the Bari tribe one of these Rain Kings made rain [pg 053] by sprinkling water on the ground out of a hand-bell.190

On a hill at Bomma (the mouth of the Congo) lives Namvulu Vumu, King of the Rain and Storm. Some of the tribes along the Upper Nile don’t have kings in the usual way; they only recognize the Kings of the Rain, Mata Kodou, who are believed to have the power to bring rain at the right time, specifically during the rainy season. Before the rains start falling at the end of March, the land is a dry and barren desert, and the cattle, which are the people's main source of wealth, die from lack of grass. So, as the end of March approaches, every household goes to the King of the Rain and offers him a cow so he will make it rain soon. If no rain comes, the people gather and demand that the king provide them with rain; and if the sky remains clear, they rip open his belly, which they believe contains the storms. Among the Bari tribe, one of these Rain Kings created rain [pg 053] by sprinkling water on the ground from a hand-bell.

Among tribes on the outskirts of Abyssinia a similar office exists and has been thus described by an observer. “The priesthood of the Alfai, as he is called by the Barea and Kunáma, is a remarkable one; he is believed to be able to make rain. This office formerly existed among the Algeds and appears to be still common to the Nuba negroes. The Alfai of the Bareas, who is also consulted by the northern Kunáma, lives near Tembádere on a mountain alone with his family. The people bring him tribute in the form of clothes and fruits, and cultivate for him a large field of his own. He is a kind of king, and his office passes by inheritance to his brother or sister's son. He is supposed to conjure down rain and to drive away the locusts. But if he disappoints the people's expectation and a great drought arises in the land, the Alfai is stoned to death, and his nearest relations are obliged to cast the first stone at him. When we passed through the country, the office of Alfai was still held by an old man; but I heard that rain-making had proved too dangerous for him and that he had renounced his office.”191

Among tribes on the outskirts of Abyssinia, a similar role exists and has been described by an observer. The priest known as the Alfai, as referred to by the Barea and Kunáma, is quite extraordinary; he's believed to have the power to make it rain. This role used to exist among the Algeds and still seems to be present among the Nuba people. The Alfai of the Bareas, who is also consulted by the northern Kunáma, lives near Tembádere on a mountain with his family. People bring him offerings like clothes and fruits, and they cultivate a large field for him. He acts like a king, and his position is passed on to his brother or sister’s son. He is thought to summon rain and drive away locusts. However, if he fails to meet the expectations of the people and a severe drought happens, the Alfai can be stoned to death, and his closest relatives are expected to throw the first stone. When we went through the region, the role of Alfai was still held by an elderly man; however, I heard that rain-making had become too risky for him and that he had stepped down from his position.191

In the backwoods of Cambodia live two mysterious sovereigns known as the King of the Fire and the King of the Water. Their fame is spread all over the south of the great Indo-Chinese peninsula; but only a faint echo of it has reached the West. No European, so far as is known, has ever seen them; and their very existence might have passed for a fable, were it not [pg 054] that till a few years ago communications were regularly maintained between them and the King of Cambodia, who year by year exchanged presents with them. The Cambodian gifts were passed from tribe to tribe till they reached their destination; for no Cambodian would essay the long and perilous journey. The tribe amongst whom the Kings of Fire and Water reside is the Chréais or Jaray, a race with European features but a sallow complexion, inhabiting the forest-clad mountains and high plateaux which separate Cambodia from Annam. Their royal functions are of a purely mystic or spiritual order; they have no political authority; they are simple peasants, living by the sweat of their brow and the offerings of the faithful. According to one account they live in absolute solitude, never meeting each other and never seeing a human face. They inhabit successively seven towers perched upon seven mountains, and every year they pass from one tower to another. People come furtively and cast within their reach what is needful for their subsistence. The kingship lasts seven years, the time necessary to inhabit all the towers successively; but many die before their time is out. The offices are hereditary in one or (according to others) two royal families, who enjoy high consideration, have revenues assigned to them, and are exempt from the necessity of tilling the ground. But naturally the dignity is not coveted, and when a vacancy occurs, all eligible men (they must be strong and have children) flee and hide themselves. Another account, admitting the reluctance of the hereditary candidates to accept the crown, does not countenance the report of their hermit-like seclusion in the seven towers. For it represents the people [pg 055] as prostrating themselves before the mystic kings whenever they appear in public, it being thought that a terrible hurricane would burst over the country if this mark of homage were omitted.

In the remote areas of Cambodia, two enigmatic rulers known as the King of Fire and the King of Water reside. Their renown spreads throughout the southern part of the great Indo-Chinese peninsula, but only a faint echo of it has reached the West. To date, no European is known to have seen them; their very existence could have been dismissed as a myth if not for the fact that until a few years ago, there were regular communications between them and the King of Cambodia, who exchanged gifts with them each year. The Cambodian gifts traveled from tribe to tribe until they reached their final destination, as no Cambodian dared undertake the long and dangerous journey. The tribe where the Kings of Fire and Water live is the Chréais or Jaray, a group with European features but a sallow complexion, who inhabit the forest-covered mountains and high plateaus separating Cambodia from Annam. Their royal roles are purely mystical or spiritual; they hold no political power and are simple farmers, relying on hard work and offerings from the faithful. According to some accounts, they live in complete isolation, never meeting each other or seeing another person. They alternate between seven towers located on seven mountains, moving from one tower to another each year. People come discreetly and leave what is necessary for their survival within their reach. The kingship lasts for seven years, the time needed to occupy all the towers in succession, but many die before their term ends. The position is hereditary within one or, according to others, two royal families, which are held in high regard, like receiving assigned revenue and being exempt from farming duties. Naturally, the position is not sought after, and when a vacancy arises, all eligible men (who must be strong and have children) hide and flee. Another account, acknowledging the reluctance of the hereditary candidates to take the crown, does not support the idea of their hermit-like existence in the seven towers. Instead, it depicts the people as bowing down before the mystical kings whenever they appear in public, believing that failing to show this respect could unleash a terrible storm upon the country.

The same report says that the Fire King, the more important of the two, and whose supernatural powers have never been questioned, officiates at marriages, festivals, and sacrifices in honour of the Yan. On these occasions a special place is set apart for him; and the path by which he approaches is spread with white cotton cloths. A reason for confining the royal dignity to the same family is that this family is in possession of certain famous talismans which would lose their virtue or disappear if they passed out of the family. These talismans are three: the fruit of a creeper called Cui, gathered ages ago but still fresh and green; a rattan, also very old and still not dry; lastly a sword containing a Yan or spirit, who guards it constantly and works miracles with it. To this wondrous brand sacrifices of buffaloes, pigs, fowls, and ducks are offered for rain. It is kept swathed in cotton and silk; and amongst the annual presents sent by the King of Cambodia were rich stuffs to wrap the sacred sword.

The same report says that the Fire King, the more significant of the two, whose supernatural powers have never been doubted, presides over marriages, festivals, and sacrifices in honor of the Yan. During these events, a special area is set aside for him, and the path he takes is lined with white cotton cloths. One reason for keeping the royal dignity within the same family is that this family possesses certain famous talismans that would lose their power or vanish if they left the family. There are three talismans: the fruit of a creeper called Cui, picked long ago but still fresh and green; a rattan, also very old and still not dry; and lastly, a sword that holds a Yan or spirit, who constantly guards it and performs miracles with it. To this incredible sword, sacrifices of buffaloes, pigs, fowls, and ducks are made for rain. It is kept wrapped in cotton and silk; among the annual gifts sent by the King of Cambodia were fine materials to wrap the sacred sword.

In return the Kings of Fire and Water sent him a huge wax candle and two calabashes, one full of rice and the other of sesame. The candle bore the impress of the Fire King's middle finger. Probably the candle was thought to contain the seed of fire, which the Cambodian monarch thus received once a year fresh from the Fire King himself. The holy candle was kept for sacred uses. On reaching the capital of Cambodia it was entrusted to the Brahmans, [pg 056] who laid it up beside the regalia, and with the wax made tapers which were burned on the altars on solemn days. As the candle was the special gift of the Fire King, we may conjecture that the rice and sesame were the special gift of the Water King. The latter was doubtless king of rain as well as of water, and the fruits of the earth were boons conferred by him on men. In times of calamity, as during plague, floods, and war, a little of this sacred rice and sesame was scattered on the ground “to appease the wrath of the maleficent spirits.”192

In return, the Kings of Fire and Water sent him a large wax candle and two gourds, one filled with rice and the other with sesame. The candle featured the imprint of the Fire King's middle finger. It’s likely that the candle was believed to hold the essence of fire, which the Cambodian king received fresh from the Fire King once a year. The holy candle was reserved for sacred purposes. Upon arriving in the capital of Cambodia, it was given to the Brahmans, [pg 056] who stored it alongside the royal treasures, and from the wax, they made candles that were burned on altars during important ceremonies. Since the candle was a unique gift from the Fire King, it's reasonable to assume that the rice and sesame were special gifts from the Water King. The latter was likely the king of rain as well as of water, and the fruits of the earth were blessings that he bestowed upon humanity. During times of crisis, such as plagues, floods, and wars, a small amount of this sacred rice and sesame was sprinkled on the ground "to calm the anger of the evil spirits."192

These, then, are examples of what I have called departmental kings of nature. But it is a far cry to Italy from the forests of Cambodia and the sources of the Nile. And though Kings of Rain, Water and Fire have been found, we have still to discover a King of the Wood to match the Arician priest who bore that title. Perhaps we shall find him nearer home.

These are examples of what I've called departmental kings of nature. But it's a long way from Italy to the forests of Cambodia and the sources of the Nile. And while we've found Kings of Rain, Water, and Fire, we still need to discover a King of the Wood to match the Arician priest who held that title. Maybe we'll find him closer to home.

§ 4.—Tree worship.

In the religious history of the Aryan race in Europe the worship of trees has played an important part. Nothing could be more natural. For at the dawn of history Europe was covered with immense primeval forests, in which the scattered clearings must have appeared like islets in an ocean of green. Down to the first century before our era the Hercynian forest stretched eastward from [pg 057] the Rhine for a distance at once vast and unknown; Germans whom Caesar questioned had travelled for two months through it without reaching the end.193 In our own country the wealds of Kent, Surrey, and Sussex are remnants of the great forest of Anderida, which once clothed the whole of the south eastern portion of the island. Westward it seems to have stretched till it joined another forest that extended from Hampshire to Devon. In the reign of Henry II the citizens of London still hunted the wild bull and the boar in the forest of Hampstead. Even under the later Plantagenets the royal forests were sixty-eight in number. In the forest of Arden it was said that down to modern times a squirrel might leap from tree to tree for nearly the whole length of Warwickshire.194 The excavation of prehistoric pile-villages in the valley of the Po has shown that long before the rise and probably the foundation of Rome the north of Italy was covered with dense forests of elms, chestnuts, and especially of oaks.195 Archaeology is here confirmed by history; for classical writers contain many references to Italian forests which have now disappeared.196 In Greece the woods of the present day are a mere fraction of those which clothed great tracts in antiquity, and which at a more remote epoch may have spanned the Greek peninsula from sea to sea.197

In the religious history of the Aryan race in Europe, the worship of trees has been significant. It makes perfect sense. At the start of history, Europe was covered in vast, ancient forests, where the scattered clearings must have looked like islands in a sea of green. Until the first century BCE, the Hercynian forest stretched eastward from the Rhine for a distance that was both extensive and unknown; Germans whom Caesar spoke to had traveled through it for two months without reaching its end. In our country, the wealds of Kent, Surrey, and Sussex are remnants of the great forest of Anderida, which once covered the entire southeastern part of the island. It seems to have extended westward until it connected with another forest that ran from Hampshire to Devon. During the reign of Henry II, the citizens of London still hunted wild bulls and boars in the forest of Hampstead. Even under the later Plantagenets, there were sixty-eight royal forests. In the forest of Arden, it was said that even up to modern times, a squirrel could leap from tree to tree almost the entire length of Warwickshire. The excavation of prehistoric pile-villages in the valley of the Po has shown that long before the rise and probably the founding of Rome, northern Italy was covered with thick forests of elms, chestnuts, and especially oaks. Archaeology supports this with historical evidence; classical writers made many references to Italian forests that have since vanished. In Greece, today’s woods are only a tiny fraction of those that once covered large areas in ancient times, and at an even earlier period, they may have stretched across the Greek peninsula from sea to sea.

From an examination of the Teutonic words for “temple” Grimm has made it probable that amongst [pg 058] the Germans the oldest sanctuaries were natural woods.198 However this may be, tree-worship is well attested for all the great European families of the Aryan stock. Amongst the Celts the oak-worship of the Druids is familiar to every one.199 Sacred groves were common among the ancient Germans, and tree-worship is hardly extinct amongst their descendants at the present day.200 At Upsala, the old religious capital of Sweden, there was a sacred grove in which every tree was regarded as divine.201 Amongst the ancient Prussians (a Slavonian people) the central feature of religion was the reverence for the sacred oaks, of which the chief stood at Romove, tended by a hierarchy of priests who kept up a perpetual fire of oak-wood in the holy grove.202 The Lithuanians were not converted to Christianity till towards the close of the fourteenth century, and amongst them at the date of their conversion the worship of trees was prominent.203 Proofs of the prevalence of tree-worship in ancient Greece and Italy are abundant.204 Nowhere, perhaps, in the ancient world was this antique form of religion better preserved than in the heart of the great metropolis itself. In the Forum, the busy centre of Roman life, the sacred fig-tree of Romulus was worshipped down to the days of the empire, and the withering of its trunk was enough to spread consternation through the city.205 Again, on the [pg 059] slope of the Palatine Hill grew a cornel-tree which was esteemed one of the most sacred objects in Rome. Whenever the tree appeared to a passer-by to be drooping, he set up a hue and cry which was echoed by the people in the street, and soon a crowd might be seen running from all sides with buckets of water, as if (says Plutarch) they were hastening to put out a fire.206

From a look at the Teutonic words for "place of worship", Grimm has likely shown that among the Germans, the earliest places of worship were natural forests.198 Regardless, tree-worship is well-documented among all the major European families of Aryan descent. The oak worship among the Druids is well-known among the Celts.199 Sacred groves were common among the ancient Germans, and tree-worship is not entirely gone among their descendants today.200 In Upsala, the ancient religious hub of Sweden, there was a sacred grove where each tree was considered divine.201 Among the ancient Prussians (a Slavic people), the core of their religion centered around the veneration of sacred oaks, with the most important one located at Romove, maintained by a group of priests who kept a continuous fire of oak wood burning in the holy grove.202 The Lithuanians only converted to Christianity towards the end of the fourteenth century, and at the time of their conversion, tree-worship was prominent among them.203 Evidence of tree-worship being widespread in ancient Greece and Italy is abundant.204 Perhaps nowhere in the ancient world was this ancient form of religion better preserved than in the very heart of the great metropolis. In the Forum, the bustling center of Roman life, the sacred fig tree of Romulus was worshipped until the days of the empire, and the decline of its trunk was enough to cause panic throughout the city.205 Additionally, on the [pg 059] slope of Palatine Hill grew a cornel tree, regarded as one of the most sacred objects in Rome. Whenever the tree seemed to be drooping to a passer-by, a loud alarm would be raised, echoed by people in the street, and soon a crowd could be seen rushing from all directions with buckets of water, as if (as Plutarch says) they were rushing to extinguish a fire.206

But it is necessary to examine in some detail the notions on which tree-worship is based. To the savage the world in general is animate, and trees are no exception to the rule. He thinks that they have souls like his own and he treats them accordingly. Thus the Wanika in Eastern Africa fancy that every tree and especially every cocoa-nut tree has its spirit: “the destruction of a cocoa-nut tree is regarded as equivalent to matricide, because that tree gives them life and nourishment, as a mother does her child.”207 Siamese monks, believing that there are souls everywhere and that to destroy anything whatever is forcibly to dispossess a soul, will not break a branch of a tree “as they will not break the arm of an innocent person.”208 These monks, of course, are Buddhists. But Buddhist animism is not a philosophical theory. It is simply a common savage dogma incorporated in the system of an historical religion. To suppose with Benfey and others that the theories of animism and transmigration current among rude peoples of Asia are derived from Buddhism is to reverse the facts. Buddhism in this respect borrowed from savagery, not savagery from Buddhism. Again, the Dyaks ascribe souls to trees and do not dare to cut down an old tree. In some [pg 060] places, when an old tree has been blown down, they set it up, smear it with blood, and deck it with flags “to appease the soul of the tree.”209 People in Congo place calabashes of palm-wine at the foot of certain trees for the trees to drink when they are thirsty.210 In India shrubs and trees are formally married to each other or to idols.211 In the North West Provinces of India a marriage ceremony is performed in honour of a newly-planted orchard; a man holding the Salagram represents the bridegroom, and another holding the sacred Tulsi (Ocymum sanctum) represents the bride.212 On Christmas Eve German peasants used to tie fruit-trees together with straw ropes to make them bear fruit, saying that the trees were thus married.213

But it is necessary to look more closely at the ideas behind tree worship. For the primitive person, the world is alive, and trees are no different. They believe trees have souls just like their own and treat them that way. For instance, the Wanika in Eastern Africa believe that each tree, especially every coconut tree, has a spirit: "Destroying a coconut tree is considered equivalent to committing matricide, because that tree provides life and sustenance, just like a mother does for her child."207 Siamese monks, who believe that souls exist everywhere and that destroying anything forcibly takes away a soul, won’t break a branch off a tree “just like they wouldn’t hurt an innocent person.”208 These monks are Buddhists, but Buddhist animism isn’t a philosophical theory. It's simply a primitive belief integrated into the framework of an established religion. To assume, like Benfey and others, that animism and ideas of reincarnation found among primitive peoples in Asia come from Buddhism is to get it backward. Buddhism borrowed from primitive beliefs, not the other way around. Similarly, the Dyaks believe trees have souls and don’t dare to cut down an old tree. In some [pg 060] areas, when an old tree falls over, they set it back up, smear it with blood, and decorate it with flags "to soothe the spirit of the tree."209 People in Congo leave calabashes of palm wine at the base of certain trees for them to drink when they’re thirsty.210 In India, shrubs and trees are officially married to each other or to idols.211 In the North West Provinces of India, a marriage ceremony is held for a newly-planted orchard; a man holding the Salagram represents the groom, while another holding the sacred Tulsi (Ocimum sanctum) represents the bride.212 On Christmas Eve, German peasants would tie fruit trees together with straw ropes to ensure they would bear fruit, claiming that the trees were thus married.213

In the Moluccas when the clove-trees are in blossom they are treated like pregnant women. No noise must be made near them; no light or fire must be carried past them at night; no one must approach them with his hat on, but must uncover his head. These precautions are observed lest the tree should be frightened and bear no fruit, or should drop its fruit too soon, like the untimely delivery of a woman who has been frightened in her pregnancy.214 So when the paddy (rice) is in bloom the Javanese say it is pregnant and make no noises (fire no guns, etc.) near [pg 061] the field, fearing that if they did so the crop would be all straw and no grain.215 In Orissa, also, growing rice is “considered as a pregnant woman, and the same ceremonies are observed with regard to it as in the case of human females.”216

In the Moluccas, when the clove trees are in bloom, they are treated like pregnant women. No noise can be made near them; no light or fire can be carried past them at night; no one can approach them with their hat on and must take off their hat. These precautions are followed to avoid scaring the tree, which could lead to it not bearing fruit or dropping its fruit too early, similar to how a frightened pregnant woman might deliver prematurely. So when the rice is in bloom, the Javanese say it is pregnant and make no noises (fire no guns, etc.) near the field, fearing that if they do, the crop will be all straw and no grain. In Orissa, growing rice is considered "a pregnant woman, and the same ceremonies are observed with regard to it as in the case of human females."

Conceived as animate, trees are necessarily supposed to feel injuries done to them. When an oak is being felled “it gives a kind of shriekes or groanes, that may be heard a mile off, as if it were the genius of the oake lamenting. E. Wyld, Esq., hath heard it severall times.”217 The Ojebways “very seldom cut down green or living trees, from the idea that it puts them to pain, and some of their medicine-men profess to have heard the wailing of the trees under the axe.”218 Old peasants in some parts of Austria still believe that forest-trees are animate, and will not allow an incision to be made in the bark without special cause; they have heard from their fathers that the tree feels the cut not less than a wounded man his hurt. In felling a tree they beg its pardon.219 So in Jarkino the woodman craves pardon of the tree he cuts down.220 Again, when a tree is cut it is thought to bleed. Some Indians dare not cut a certain plant, because there comes out a red juice which they take for the blood of the plant.221 In Samoa there was a grove of trees which no one dared cut. Once some strangers tried to do so, but blood flowed from the tree, and the sacrilegious strangers fell ill and died.222 Till 1855 there was a sacred larch-tree at Nauders, in the Tyrol, [pg 062] which was thought to bleed whenever it was cut; moreover the steel was supposed to penetrate the woodman's body to the same depth that it penetrated the tree, and the wound on the tree and on the man's body healed together.223

Conceived as living beings, trees are believed to feel the injuries inflicted upon them. When an oak is felled "It lets out a sort of shriek or groan that can be heard from a mile away, as if the spirit of the oak is grieving. E. Wyld, Esq., has heard it several times."217 The Ojebways “they rarely cut down green or living trees because they believe it causes them pain, and some of their healers say they have heard the trees crying out when they are hit.”218 Old peasants in parts of Austria still believe that forest trees are alive, and will not allow a cut to be made in the bark without a good reason; they have heard from their ancestors that the tree feels the cut just as a wounded person feels their injury. When they fell a tree, they ask for its forgiveness.219 Similarly, in Jarkino, the woodcutter seeks forgiveness from the tree he is cutting down.220 Again, when a tree is cut, it is thought to bleed. Some Indigenous people avoid cutting a specific plant because a red sap comes out, which they consider the plant’s blood.221 In Samoa, there was a grove of trees that no one dared to cut down. Once, some outsiders attempted to do so, but blood flowed from the tree, and the sacrilegious intruders became ill and died.222 Until 1855, there was a sacred larch tree in Nauders, Tyrol, [pg 062] believed to bleed whenever it was cut; moreover, the steel was thought to penetrate the woodcutter's body to the same depth as it penetrated the tree, and the wounds on both the tree and the man's body healed at the same time.223

Sometimes it is the souls of the dead which are believed to animate the trees. The Dieyerie tribe of South Australia regard as very sacred certain trees, which are supposed to be their fathers transformed; hence they will not cut the trees down, and protest against the settlers doing so.224 Some of the Philippine Islanders believe that the souls of their forefathers are in certain trees, which they therefore spare. If obliged to fell one of these trees they excuse themselves to it by saying that it was the priest who made them fell it.225 In an Annamite story an old fisherman makes an incision in the trunk of a tree which has drifted ashore; but blood flows from the cut, and it appears that an empress with her three daughters, who had been cast into the sea, are embodied in the tree.226 The story of Polydorus will occur to readers of Virgil.

Sometimes it's the souls of the dead that are believed to give life to the trees. The Dieyerie tribe of South Australia considers certain trees very sacred, believing they are transformed forms of their ancestors; therefore, they won’t cut them down and protest against settlers doing so. Some of the people in the Philippines believe that the souls of their forefathers reside in certain trees, which they protect. If they have to cut down one of these trees, they excuse themselves by saying it was the priest who made them do it. In a story from Annam, an old fisherman makes a cut in the trunk of a tree that has washed ashore; blood flows from the cut, revealing that an empress and her three daughters, who were cast into the sea, are embodied in the tree. The story of Polydorus may come to mind for readers of Virgil.

In these cases the spirit is viewed as incorporate in the tree; it animates the tree and must suffer and die with it. But, according to another and no doubt later view, the tree is not the body, but merely the abode of the tree-spirit, which can quit the injured tree as men quit a dilapidated house. Thus when the Pelew Islanders are felling a tree, they conjure the spirit of [pg 063] the tree to leave it and settle on another.227 The Pádams of Assam think that when a child is lost it has been stolen by the spirits of the wood. So they retaliate on the spirits by cutting down trees till they find the child. The spirits, fearing to be left without a tree in which to lodge, give up the child, and it is found in the fork of a tree.228 Before the Katodis fell a forest-tree, they choose a tree of the same kind and worship it by presenting a cocoa-nut, burning incense, applying a red pigment, and begging it to bless the undertaking.229 The intention, perhaps, is to induce the spirit of the former tree to shift its quarters to the latter. In clearing a wood, a Galeleze must not cut down the last tree till the spirit in it has been induced to go away.230 The Mundaris have sacred groves which were left standing when the land was cleared, lest the sylvan gods, disquieted at the felling of the trees, should abandon the place.231 The Miris in Assam are unwilling to break up new land for cultivation so long as there is fallow land available; for they fear to offend the spirits of the woods by cutting down trees unnecessarily.232

In these situations, the spirit is seen as being part of the tree; it brings the tree to life and must endure and die with it. However, according to another view, likely developed later, the tree isn’t the body but just the home of the tree spirit, which can leave the damaged tree just like people leave an old house. So when the Pelew Islanders are cutting down a tree, they call on the spirit of the tree to leave it and move to another. The Pádams of Assam believe that if a child goes missing, it has been taken by the spirits of the forest. They retaliate against the spirits by chopping down trees until they find the child. The spirits, afraid of being left without a tree to inhabit, return the child, which is then found in the fork of a tree. Before the Katodis cut down a forest tree, they select a tree of the same kind and worship it by offering a coconut, burning incense, applying red pigment, and asking it to bless their efforts. The goal, perhaps, is to encourage the spirit of the first tree to move to the second. When clearing a forest, a Galeleze must not fell the last tree until the spirit in it has been persuaded to leave. The Mundaris have sacred groves that were left standing when the land was cleared, fearing that the forest gods, disturbed by the cutting of trees, would abandon the area. The Miris in Assam are reluctant to clear new land for farming as long as there is unused land available, because they worry about angering the spirits of the forest by unnecessarily cutting down trees.

In Sumatra, so soon as a tree is felled, a young tree is planted on the stump; and some betel and a few small coins are also placed on it.233 Here the purpose is unmistakable. The spirit of the tree is offered a new home in the young tree planted on the stump of the old one, and the offering of betel and money is meant [pg 064] to compensate him for the disturbance he has suffered. So in the island of Chedooba, on felling a large tree, one of the woodmen was always ready with a green sprig, which he ran and placed on the middle of the stump the instant the tree fell.234 For the same purpose German woodmen make a cross upon the stump while the tree is falling, in the belief that this enables the spirit of the tree to live upon the stump.235

In Sumatra, as soon as a tree is cut down, a young tree is planted on the stump, and some betel and a few coins are also placed there. Here, the intention is clear. The spirit of the tree is given a new home in the young tree planted on the stump of the old one, and the offering of betel and money is meant [pg 064] to compensate it for the disturbance it has experienced. Similarly, on the island of Chedooba, when a large tree is felled, one of the woodmen always has a green sprig ready to place on the stump the moment the tree falls. For the same reason, German woodmen make a cross on the stump while the tree is falling, believing this allows the spirit of the tree to continue living on the stump.

Thus the tree is regarded, sometimes as the body, sometimes as merely the house of the tree-spirit; and when we read of sacred trees which may not be cut down because they are the seat of spirits, it is not always possible to say with certainty in which way the presence of the spirit in the tree is conceived. In the following cases, perhaps, the trees are conceived as the dwelling-place of the spirits rather than as their bodies. The old Prussians, it is said, believed that gods inhabited high trees, such as oaks, from which they gave audible answers to inquirers; hence these trees were not felled, but worshipped as the homes of divinities.236 The great oak at Romove was the especial dwelling-place of the god; it was veiled with a cloth, which was, however, removed to allow worshippers to see the sacred tree.237 The Battas of Sumatra have been known to refuse to cut down certain trees because they were [pg 065] the abode of mighty spirits which would resent the injury.238 The Curka Coles of India believe that the tops of trees are inhabited by spirits which are disturbed by the cutting down of the trees and will take vengeance.239 The Samogitians thought that if any one ventured to injure certain groves, or the birds or beasts in them, the spirits would make his hands or feet crooked.240

So, the tree is often seen both as the body and as just a home for the tree spirit. When we read about sacred trees that can’t be cut down because they house spirits, it’s not always clear how the spirit's presence in the tree is understood. In some cases, it seems that the trees are viewed more as homes for the spirits than as their bodies. It’s said that the old Prussians believed gods lived in tall trees, like oaks, from which they gave audible answers to those who asked questions; thus, these trees were not chopped down but were worshipped as the residences of deities.236 The great oak at Romove was particularly considered the dwelling place of the god; it was covered with a cloth, which was removed to allow worshippers to see the sacred tree.237 The Battas of Sumatra have been known to refuse to cut down certain trees because they were [pg 065] homes to powerful spirits that would take offense at such harm.238 The Curka Coles of India believe that the tops of trees are inhabited by spirits that are disturbed by the cutting of the trees and will seek revenge.239 The Samogitians thought that anyone who dared to harm certain groves or the wildlife within them would be punished with crooked hands or feet.240

Even where no mention is made of wood-spirits, we may generally assume that when a grove is sacred and inviolable, it is so because it is believed to be either inhabited or animated by sylvan deities. In Livonia there is a sacred grove in which, if any man fells a tree or breaks a branch, he will die within the year.241 The Wotjaks have sacred groves. A Russian who ventured to hew a tree in one of them fell sick and died next day.242 Sacrifices offered at cutting down trees are doubtless meant to appease the wood-spirits. In Gilgit it is usual to sprinkle goat's blood on a tree of any kind before cutting it down.243 Before thinning a grove a Roman farmer had to sacrifice a pig to the god or goddess of the grove.244 The priestly college of the Arval Brothers at Rome had to make expiation when a rotten bough fell to the ground in the sacred grove, or when an old tree was blown down by a storm or dragged down by a weight of snow on its branches.245

Even if there’s no mention of wood spirits, we can generally assume that when a grove is considered sacred and untouchable, it’s believed to be inhabited or energized by forest deities. In Livonia, there’s a sacred grove where if anyone cuts down a tree or breaks a branch, they will die within the year.241 The Wotjaks have sacred groves too. A Russian who tried to chop down a tree in one of them got sick and died the next day.242 The sacrifices made before cutting down trees are likely intended to appease the wood spirits. In Gilgit, it’s common to sprinkle goat's blood on any kind of tree before cutting it down.243 Before thinning a grove, a Roman farmer had to sacrifice a pig to the god or goddess of that grove.244 The priestly group of the Arval Brothers in Rome had to make atonement when a rotten branch fell to the ground in the sacred grove, or when an old tree was blown down by a storm or weighed down by snow on its branches.245

When a tree comes to be viewed, no longer as the body of the tree-spirit, but simply as its dwelling-place which it can quit at pleasure, an important advance [pg 066] has been made in religious thought. Animism is passing into polytheism. In other words, instead of regarding each tree as a living and conscious being, man now sees in it merely a lifeless, inert mass, tenanted for a longer or shorter time by a supernatural being who, as he can pass freely from tree to tree, thereby enjoys a certain right of possession or lordship over the trees, and, ceasing to be a tree-soul, becomes a forest god. As soon as the tree-spirit is thus in a measure disengaged from each particular tree, he begins to change his shape and assume the body of a man, in virtue of a general tendency of early thought to clothe all abstract spiritual beings in concrete human form. Hence in classical art the sylvan deities are depicted in human shape, their woodland character being denoted by a branch or some equally obvious symbol.246 But this change of shape does not affect the essential character of the tree-spirit. The powers which he exercised as a tree-soul incorporate in a tree, he still continues to wield as a god of trees. This I shall now prove in detail. I shall show, first, that trees considered as animate beings are credited with the power of making the rain to fall, the sun to shine, flocks and herds to multiply, and women to bring forth easily; and, second, that the very same powers are attributed to tree-gods conceived as anthropomorphic beings or as actually incarnate in living men.

When a tree is no longer seen as the body of a tree spirit, but simply as a place it can leave whenever it wants, there's been a significant shift in religious thought. Animism is evolving into polytheism. Rather than viewing each tree as a living, conscious entity, people now see it as a lifeless, inert object that a supernatural being can occupy for a period of time. This being, having the ability to move from tree to tree, claims a certain ownership or dominion over them and transitions from being a tree spirit to becoming a forest god. Once the tree spirit is somewhat detached from any specific tree, it starts to change its shape and take on a human form, due to an early tendency to represent all abstract spiritual beings in tangible human forms. That's why in classical art, nature deities are depicted in human form, often recognized by a branch or another clear symbol.246 However, this transformation doesn't change the fundamental nature of the tree spirit. The powers it had as a tree spirit within a tree are still retained as a god of trees. I will demonstrate this in detail. First, I will show that trees, viewed as living beings, are believed to have the power to bring rain, sunshine, increase the number of livestock, and assist women in childbirth; and second, that these same powers are attributed to tree gods when imagined as human-like beings or even embodied in living men.

First, then, trees or tree-spirits are believed to give rain and sunshine. When the missionary Jerome of Prague was persuading the heathen Lithuanians to fell their sacred groves, a multitude [pg 067] of women besought the Prince of Lithuania to stop him, saying that with the woods he was destroying the house of god from which they had been wont to get rain and sunshine.247 The Mundaris in Assam think if a tree in the sacred grove is felled, the sylvan gods evince their displeasure by withholding rain.248 In Cambodia each village or province has its sacred tree, the abode of a spirit. If the rains are late, the people sacrifice to the tree.249 To extort rain from the tree-spirit a branch is sometimes dipped in water, as we have seen above.250 In such cases the spirit is doubtless supposed to be immanent in the branch, and the water thus applied to the spirit produces rain by a sort of sympathetic magic, exactly as we saw that in New Caledonia the rain-makers pour water on a skeleton, believing that the soul of the deceased will convert the water into rain.251 There is hardly room to doubt that Mannhardt is right in explaining as a rain-charm the European custom of drenching with water the trees which are cut at certain popular festivals, as midsummer, Whitsuntide, and harvest.252

First, then, trees or tree spirits are believed to bring rain and sunshine. When the missionary Jerome of Prague was trying to convince the pagan Lithuanians to cut down their sacred groves, a large group of women urged the Prince of Lithuania to stop him, saying that by destroying the woods he was destroying the house of God from which they used to receive rain and sunshine. The Mundaris in Assam believe that if a tree in the sacred grove is cut down, the forest gods show their anger by withholding rain. In Cambodia, each village or province has its sacred tree, which is the home of a spirit. If the rains are late, the people make sacrifices to the tree. To coax rain from the tree spirit, a branch is sometimes dipped in water, as mentioned earlier. In such cases, the spirit is likely thought to be present in the branch, and the water applied to the spirit is believed to create rain through sympathetic magic, just like in New Caledonia, where rain-makers pour water on a skeleton, believing that the soul of the deceased will turn the water into rain. There's little doubt that Mannhardt is correct in interpreting the European tradition of soaking with water the trees that are cut during certain popular festivals like midsummer, Whitsuntide, and harvest as a rain charm.

Again, tree-spirits make the crops to grow. Amongst the Mundaris every village has its sacred grove, and “the grove deities are held responsible for the crops, and are especially honoured at all the great agricultural festivals.”253 The negroes of the Gold Coast are in the habit of sacrificing at the foot of certain tall trees, and they think that if one of these [pg 068] trees were felled, all the fruits of the earth would perish.254 Swedish peasants stick a leafy branch in each furrow of their corn-fields, believing that this will ensure an abundant crop.255 The same idea comes out in the German and French custom of the Harvest-May. This is a large branch or a whole tree, which is decked with ears of corn, brought home on the last waggon from the harvest-field, and fastened on the roof of the farmhouse or of the barn, where it remains for a year. Mannhardt has proved that this branch or tree embodies the tree-spirit conceived as the spirit of vegetation in general, whose vivifying and fructifying influence is thus brought to bear upon the corn in particular. Hence in Swabia the Harvest-May is fastened amongst the last stalks of corn left standing on the field; in other places it is planted on the cornfield and the last sheaf cut is fastened to its trunk.256 The Harvest-May of Germany has its counterpart in the eiresione of ancient Greece.257 The eiresione was a branch of olive or laurel, bound about with ribbons and hung with a variety of fruits. This branch was carried in procession at a harvest festival and was fastened over the door of the house, where it remained for a year. The object of preserving the Harvest-May or the eiresione for a year is that the life-giving virtue of the bough may foster the growth of the crops throughout the year. By the end of the year the virtue of the bough is supposed to be exhausted and it is replaced by a new one. Following a similar train of thought some of the Dyaks of Sarawak are [pg 069] careful at the rice harvest to take up the roots of a certain bulbous plant, which bears a beautiful crown of white and fragrant flowers. These roots are preserved with the rice in the granary and are planted again with the seed-rice in the following season; for the Dyaks say that the rice will not grow unless a plant of this sort be in the field.258

Once again, tree spirits help the crops grow. In every village among the Mundaris, there’s a sacred grove, and "The grove deities are responsible for the crops and are especially honored at all the major agricultural festivals."253 The people of the Gold Coast often sacrifice at the base of certain tall trees, believing that if one of these [pg 068] trees is cut down, all the fruits of the earth would perish.254 Swedish farmers stick a leafy branch in each furrow of their cornfields, thinking this will guarantee a plentiful harvest.255 This same idea appears in the German and French custom of the Harvest-May. It involves a large branch or an entire tree, which is decorated with ears of corn and brought home on the last wagon from the harvest field. It’s then secured to the roof of the farmhouse or barn, where it stays for a year. Mannhardt has shown that this branch or tree represents the tree spirit, viewed as the spirit of vegetation in general, whose life-giving and fruit-bearing power is thus applied particularly to the corn. Therefore, in Swabia, the Harvest-May is tied among the last stalks of corn left standing in the field; in other places, it is planted in the cornfield, and the last sheaf cut is attached to its trunk.256 Germany’s Harvest-May has a counterpart in the eiresione of ancient Greece.257 The eiresione was a branch of olive or laurel, wrapped in ribbons and decorated with various fruits. This branch was paraded during a harvest festival and hung over the door of the house, where it remained for a year. The purpose of keeping the Harvest-May or the eiresione for a year is to allow the life-giving power of the branch to promote crop growth throughout the year. By the end of the year, the power of the branch is believed to be depleted and is replaced with a new one. Following a similar belief, some of the Dyaks in Sarawak are [pg 069] careful during the rice harvest to collect the roots of a certain bulbous plant that has a beautiful crown of white, fragrant flowers. These roots are stored with the rice in the granary and replanted with the seed-rice in the next season because the Dyaks say that the rice won’t grow unless this type of plant is present in the field.258

Customs like that of the Harvest-May appear to exist in India and Africa. At a harvest festival of the Lhoosai of S. E. India the chief goes with his people into the forest and fells a large tree, which is then carried into the village and set up in the midst. Sacrifice is offered, and spirits and rice are poured over the tree. The ceremony closes with a feast and a dance, at which the unmarried men and girls are the only performers.259 Among the Bechuanas the hack-thorn is very sacred, and it would be a serious offence to cut a bough from it and carry it into the village during the rainy season. But when the corn is ripe in the ear the people go with axes, and each man brings home a branch of the sacred hack-thorn, with which they repair the village cattle-yard.260 Many tribes of S. E. Africa will not cut down timber while the corn is green, fearing that if they did so, the crops would be destroyed by blight, hail, or early frost.261

Customs like those of the Harvest may be found in India and Africa. During the Lhoosai harvest festival in South East India, the chief and his people go into the forest to cut down a large tree, which is then brought back to the village and set up in the center. A sacrifice is made, and spirits and rice are poured over the tree. The ceremony ends with a feast and a dance, performed only by unmarried men and girls.259 Among the Bechuanas, the hack-thorn is considered very sacred, and it would be a serious offense to cut a branch from it and take it into the village during the rainy season. However, when the corn is ripe, the people go with axes, and each man brings home a branch of the sacred hack-thorn to repair the village cattle-yard.260 Many tribes in South East Africa avoid cutting down timber while the corn is still green, fearing that doing so could lead to their crops being damaged by blight, hail, or early frost.261

Again, the fructifying power of the tree is put forth at seed-time as well as at harvest. Among the Aryan tribes of Gilgit, on the north-western frontier of India, the sacred tree is the Chili, a species of cedar (Juniperus excelsa). At the beginning of wheat-sowing [pg 070] the people receive from the Raja's granary a quantity of wheat, which is placed in a skin mixed with sprigs of the sacred cedar. A large bonfire of the cedar wood is lighted, and the wheat which is to be sown is held over the smoke. The rest is ground and made into a large cake, which is baked on the same fire and given to the ploughman.262 Here the intention of fertilising the seed by means of the sacred cedar is unmistakable. In all these cases the power of fostering the growth of crops, and, in general, of cultivated plants, is ascribed to trees. The ascription is not unnatural. For the tree is the largest and most powerful member of the vegetable kingdom, and man is familiar with it before he takes to cultivating corn. Hence he naturally places the feebler and, to him, newer plant under the dominion of the older and more powerful.

Again, the nurturing power of the tree is highlighted at both seed-time and harvest. Among the Aryan tribes of Gilgit, located on the north-western border of India, the sacred tree is the Chili, a type of cedar (Juniperus excelsa). At the start of wheat sowing [pg 070] the people receive a quantity of wheat from the Raja's granary, which is placed in a skin along with sprigs of the sacred cedar. A large bonfire made from cedar wood is lit, and the wheat to be sown is held over the smoke. The rest is ground into a large cake, which is baked on the same fire and given to the ploughman.262 Here the aim of fertilizing the seed using the sacred cedar is clear. In all these instances, the ability to foster the growth of crops, and more generally cultivated plants, is attributed to trees. This attribution makes sense; the tree is the largest and most powerful member of the plant kingdom, and people are familiar with it long before they begin to cultivate grains. Therefore, they naturally place the weaker and, to them, newer plant under the authority of the older and more powerful one.

Again, the tree-spirit makes the herds to multiply and blesses women with offspring. The sacred Chili or cedar of Gilgit was supposed to possess this virtue in addition to that of fertilising the corn. At the commencement of wheat-sowing three chosen unmarried youths, after undergoing daily washing and purification for three days, used to start for the mountain where the cedars grew, taking with them wine, oil, bread, and fruit of every kind. Having found a suitable tree they sprinkled the wine and oil on it, while they ate the bread and fruit as a sacrificial feast. Then they cut off the branch and brought it to the village, where, amid general rejoicing, it was placed on a large stone beside running water. “A goat was then sacrificed, its blood poured over the cedar branch, and a [pg 071] wild dance took place, in which weapons were brandished about, and the head of the slaughtered goat was borne aloft, after which it was set up as a mark for arrows and bullet-practice. Every good shot was rewarded with a gourd full of wine and some of the flesh of the goat. When the flesh was finished the bones were thrown into the stream and a general ablution took place, after which every man went to his house taking with him a spray of the cedar. On arrival at his house he found the door shut in his face, and on his knocking for admission, his wife asked, ‘What have you brought?’ To which he answered, ‘If you want children, I have brought them to you; if you want food, I have brought it; if you want cattle, I have brought them; whatever you want, I have it.’ The door was then opened and he entered with his cedar spray. The wife then took some of the leaves and pouring wine and water on them placed them on the fire, and the rest were sprinkled with flour and suspended from the ceiling. She then sprinkled flour on her husband's head and shoulders, and addressed him thus: ‘Ai Shiri Bagerthum, son of the fairies, you have come from far!’ Shiri Bagerthum, ‘the dreadful king,’ being the form of address to the cedar when praying for wants to be fulfilled. The next day the wife baked a number of cakes, and taking them with her, drove the family goats to the Chili stone. When they were collected round the stone, she began to pelt them with pebbles, invoking the Chili at the same time. According to the direction in which the goats ran off, omens were drawn as to the number and sex of the kids expected during the ensuing year. Walnuts and pomegranates were then placed on the Chili stone, the cakes were distributed and [pg 072] eaten, and the goats followed to pasture in whatever direction they showed a disposition to go. For five days afterwards this song was sung in all the houses:—

Again, the tree spirit makes the herds multiply and blesses women with children. The sacred *Chili* or cedar of Gilgit was believed to have this power, along with fertilizing the crops. At the start of the wheat-sowing season, three selected unmarried young men, after going through daily washing and purification for three days, would head to the mountain where the cedars grew, bringing wine, oil, bread, and various fruits with them. Once they found an appropriate tree, they sprinkled wine and oil on it while enjoying the bread and fruit as a sacrificial feast. Then they cut off a branch and brought it back to the village, where it was placed on a large stone next to running water amid cheers. “A goat was then sacrificed, its blood poured over the cedar branch, and a wild dance took place, where weapons were waved around, and the head of the slaughtered goat was held high. After that, it was set up as a target for arrow and bullet practice. Every good shot was rewarded with a gourd full of wine and some of the goat's flesh. When the flesh was gone, the bones were tossed into the stream, and everyone washed themselves. Afterward, each man went home with a sprig of cedar. When he arrived, he found the door closed in his face, and when he knocked, his wife asked, ‘What have you brought?’ He answered, ‘If you want children, I’ve brought them; if you want food, I have it; if you want cattle, I’ve got those too; whatever you want, I have it.’ The door was opened, and he entered with his cedar sprig. The wife then took some leaves, poured wine and water over them, and placed them on the fire, while the rest were sprinkled with flour and hung from the ceiling. She sprinkled flour on her husband’s head and shoulders and said, ‘Ai Shiri Bagerthum, son of the fairies, you have come from far!’ *Shiri Bagerthum*, ‘the dreadful king,’ is the title given to the cedar when praying for needs to be met. The next day, the wife baked a bunch of cakes, took them with her, and drove the family goats to the Chili stone. When the goats gathered around the stone, she started throwing pebbles at them while calling for the Chili. Based on the direction the goats ran off in, they interpreted omens regarding the number and sex of the kids expected in the coming year. Walnuts and pomegranates were then placed on the Chili stone, the cakes were shared, and the goats followed to graze in whichever direction they wanted to go. For five days after that, this song was sung in every house:—

Fearsome Fairy King, I offer my sacrifice to you,
You stand so proudly! You've filled my home,
You’ve given me a wife when I didn't have one.
Instead of daughters, you've given me sons.
You have taught me the path of what is right,
You have blessed me with many children. ”263

Here the driving of the goats to the stone on which the cedar had been placed is clearly meant to impart to them the fertilising influence of the cedar. In Europe the May-tree (May-pole) is supposed to possess similar powers over both women and cattle. In some parts of Germany on the 1st of May the peasants set up May-trees at the doors of stables and byres, one May-tree for each horse and cow; this is thought to make the cows yield much milk.264 Camden says of the Irish, “They fancy a green bough of a tree, fastened on May-day against the house, will produce plenty of milk that summer.”265

Here, driving the goats to the stone where the cedar was placed is clearly intended to give them the beneficial effects of the cedar. In Europe, the May-tree (or May-pole) is believed to have similar effects on both women and livestock. In some regions of Germany, on May 1st, peasants set up May-trees at the entrances of stables and barns, with one tree for each horse and cow; this is thought to encourage the cows to produce more milk.264 Camden mentions the Irish, "They think that hanging a green tree branch on the house on May Day will bring lots of milk that summer."265

On the 2d of July some of the Wends used to set up an oak-tree in the middle of the village with an iron cock fastened to its top; then they danced round it, and drove the cattle round it to make them thrive.266

On July 2nd, some of the Wends would put up an oak tree in the center of the village with an iron rooster attached to the top; then they would dance around it and lead the cattle around it to help them thrive.266

Some of the Esthonians believe in a mischievous spirit called Metsik, who lives in the forest and has the weal of the cattle in his hands. Every year a new image of him is prepared. On an appointed day all the villagers assemble and make a straw man, dress [pg 073] him in clothes, and take him to the common pasture land of the village. Here the figure is fastened to a high tree, round which the people dance noisily. On almost every day of the year prayer and sacrifice are offered to him that he may protect the cattle. Sometimes the image of Metsik is made of a corn-sheaf and fastened to a tall tree in the wood. The people perform strange antics before it to induce Metsik to guard the corn and the cattle.267

Some Estonians believe in a mischievous spirit called Metsik, who lives in the forest and controls the wellbeing of the cattle. Each year, a new representation of him is created. On a designated day, all the villagers gather to make a straw figure, dress it in clothes, and take it to the village's common pasture. There, the figure is tied to a tall tree, and the people dance around it loudly. Almost every day of the year, prayers and sacrifices are offered to him so that he may protect the cattle. Sometimes, the image of Metsik is made from a sheaf of corn and attached to a tall tree in the woods. The villagers perform quirky antics in front of it to encourage Metsik to safeguard the corn and cattle.

The Circassians regard the pear-tree as the protector of cattle. So they cut down a young pear-tree in the forest, branch it, and carry it home, where it is adored as a divinity. Almost every house has one such pear-tree. In autumn, on the day of the festival, it is carried into the house with great ceremony to the sound of music and amid the joyous cries of all the inmates, who compliment it on its fortunate arrival. It is covered with candles, and a cheese is fastened to its top. Round about it they eat, drink, and sing. Then they bid it good-bye and take it back to the courtyard, where it remains for the rest of the year, set up against the wall, without receiving any mark of respect.268

The Circassians view the pear tree as a protector of livestock. They cut down a young pear tree in the woods, shape it, and bring it home, where it is revered like a deity. Almost every household has one of these pear trees. In the fall, on the day of the festival, it is brought into the house with much fanfare to the sound of music and the cheerful cheers of everyone inside, who praise it for its lucky arrival. It is adorned with candles, and a cheese is attached to its top. Around it, they eat, drink, and sing. Then they say goodbye to it and take it back to the yard, where it stands for the rest of the year against the wall, without receiving any sign of honor. 268

The common European custom of placing a green bush on May Day before the house of a beloved maiden probably originated in the belief of the fertilising power of the tree-spirit.269 Amongst the Kara-Kirgiz barren women roll themselves on the ground under a solitary apple-tree, in order to obtain offspring.270 [pg 074] Lastly, the power of granting to women an easy delivery at child-birth is ascribed to trees both in Sweden and Africa. In some districts of Sweden there was formerly a bårdträd or guardian-tree (lime, ash, or elm) in the neighbourhood of every farm. No one would pluck a single leaf of the sacred tree, any injury to which was punished by ill-luck or sickness. Pregnant women used to clasp the tree in their arms in order to ensure an easy delivery.271 In some negro tribes of the Congo region pregnant women make themselves garments out of the bark of a certain sacred tree, because they believe that this tree delivers them from the dangers that attend child-bearing.272 The story that Leto clasped a palm-tree and an olive-tree or two laurel-trees when she was about to give birth to Apollo and Artemis perhaps points to a similar Greek belief in the efficacy of certain trees to facilitate delivery.273

The widespread European tradition of placing a green bush in front of the home of a cherished girl on May Day likely stems from the belief in the fertility power of tree spirits.269 Among the Kara-Kirgiz, barren women roll on the ground under a lone apple tree to try to conceive.270[pg 074] Additionally, both in Sweden and Africa, trees are thought to help women have easier childbirths. In some regions of Sweden, there used to be a bárd tree, or guardian tree (lime, ash, or elm), near every farm. No one would dare pick even a single leaf from this sacred tree, as any harm done to it was believed to bring bad luck or illness. Pregnant women would embrace the tree to ensure a smooth delivery.271 In some Black tribes of the Congo, pregnant women create clothing from the bark of a specific sacred tree, believing it protects them from the risks of childbirth.272 The legend that Leto embraced a palm tree and either an olive tree or two laurel trees before giving birth to Apollo and Artemis may reflect a similar belief in Greek culture regarding certain trees' ability to aid in delivery.273

From this review of the beneficent qualities commonly ascribed to tree-spirits, it is easy to understand why customs like the May-tree or May-pole have prevailed so widely and figured so prominently in the popular festivals of European peasants. In spring or early summer or even on Midsummer Day, it was and still is in many parts of Europe the custom to go out to the woods, cut down a tree and bring it into the village, where it is set up amid general rejoicings. Or the people cut branches in the woods, and fasten them on every house. The intention of these customs is to bring home to the village, and to each house, the blessings which the tree-spirit has in its power to bestow. [pg 075] Hence the custom in some places of planting a May-tree before every house, or of carrying the village May-tree from door to door, that every household may receive its share of the blessing. Out of the mass of evidence on this subject a few examples may be selected.

From this review of the helpful qualities typically linked to tree spirits, it’s easy to see why traditions like the May-tree or May-pole have become so popular and significant in the festivals of European peasants. In spring or early summer, or even on Midsummer Day, it has been, and still is in many parts of Europe, common to head into the woods, chop down a tree, and bring it into the village, where it is raised up amid celebrations. Alternatively, people might cut branches in the woods and attach them to each house. The purpose of these customs is to bring home to the village, and to each household, the blessings that the tree spirit has to offer. [pg 075] Thus, in some areas, there is the custom of planting a May-tree in front of every house, or of carrying the village May-tree from door to door, so that every household can receive its share of the blessing. Among the wealth of evidence on this topic, a few examples can be highlighted.

Sir Henry Piers, in his Description of Westmeath, writing in 1682 says: “On May-eve, every family sets up before their door a green bush, strewed over with yellow flowers, which the meadows yield plentifully. In countries where timber is plentiful, they erect tall slender trees, which stand high, and they continue almost the whole year; so as a stranger would go nigh to imagine that they were all signs of ale-sellers, and that all houses were ale-houses.”274 In Northamptonshire a young tree ten or twelve feet high used to be planted before each house on May Day so as to appear growing.275 “An antient custom, still retained by the Cornish, is that of decking their doors and porches on the 1st of May with green boughs of sycamore and hawthorn, and of planting trees, or rather stumps of trees, before their houses.”276 In the north of England it was formerly the custom for young people to rise very early on the morning of the 1st of May, and go out with music into the woods, where they broke branches and adorned them with nosegays and crowns of flowers. This done, they returned about sunrise and fastened the flower-decked branches over the doors and windows of their houses.277 At Abingdon in Berkshire young people formerly went about in groups on May morning, singing a carol of which the following are some of the verses—

Sir Henry Piers, in his Overview of Westmeath, writing in 1682 says: "On May Eve, every family sets up a green bush in front of their door, decorated with yellow flowers that grow abundantly in the meadows. In places where trees are common, they put up tall, slender trees that stand high and stay up nearly all year; a stranger might mistakenly think that they all signify ale-sellers and that every house is an ale-house."274 In Northamptonshire, a young tree, about ten or twelve feet tall, used to be planted in front of each house on May Day to make it look like it was growing.275 An old tradition that the Cornish still follow is decorating their doors and porches on May 1st with green branches of sycamore and hawthorn, and planting trees, or more accurately, tree stumps, in front of their homes.276 In the north of England, it used to be customary for young people to get up very early on the morning of the 1st of May, go out with music into the woods, break branches, and decorate them with nosegays and crowns of flowers. Once that was done, they would return around sunrise and hang the flower-decked branches over the doors and windows of their homes.277 At Abingdon in Berkshire, young people would formerly go around in groups on May morning, singing a carol of which the following are some of the verses—

[pg 076]
We've been wandering around all night;
And sometime today;
And now coming back again,
We bring a festive garland.
We bring you a cheerful garland;
And we stand at your door;
It's a well-developed sprout,
The work of our Lord's hand.278

At the villages of Saffron Walden and Debden in Essex on the 1st of May little girls go about in parties from door to door singing a song almost identical with the above and carrying garlands; a doll dressed in white is usually placed in the middle of each garland.279 At Seven Oaks on May Day the children carry boughs and garlands from house to house, begging for pence. The garlands consist of two hoops interlaced crosswise, and covered with blue and yellow flowers from the woods and hedges.280 In some villages of the Vosges Mountains on the first Sunday of May young girls go in bands from house to house, singing a song in praise of May, in which mention is made of the “bread and meal that come in May.” If money is given them, they fasten a green bough to the door; if it is refused, they wish the family many children and no bread to feed them.281 In Mayenne (France), boys who bore the name of Maillotins used to go about from farm to farm on the 1st of May singing carols, for which they received money or a drink; they planted a small tree or a branch of a tree.282

At the villages of Saffron Walden and Debden in Essex on May 1st, little girls go around in groups from door to door singing a song almost identical to the one above and carrying garlands. A doll dressed in white is usually placed in the center of each garland.279 At Seven Oaks on May Day, the children carry branches and garlands from house to house, asking for coins. The garlands consist of two hoops crossed over each other and covered with blue and yellow flowers from the woods and hedges.280 In some villages of the Vosges Mountains on the first Sunday of May, young girls go in groups from house to house, singing a song in praise of May, which mentions the "bread and food that are available in May." If they are given money, they attach a green branch to the door; if it is refused, they wish the family many children and no bread to feed them.281 In Mayenne (France), boys with the name Maillotins used to go from farm to farm on May 1st singing carols, for which they received money or a drink; they also planted a small tree or a branch of a tree.282

On the Thursday before Whitsunday the Russian villagers “go out into the woods, sing songs, weave [pg 077] garlands, and cut down a young birch-tree, which they dress up in woman's clothes, or adorn with many-coloured shreds and ribbons. After that comes a feast, at the end of which they take the dressed-up birch-tree, carry it home to their village with joyful dance and song, and set it up in one of the houses, where it remains as an honoured guest till Whitsunday. On the two intervening days they pay visits to the house where their ‘guest’ is; but on the third day, Whitsunday, they take her to a stream and fling her into its waters,” throwing their garlands after her. “All over Russia every village and every town is turned, a little before Whitsunday, into a sort of garden. Everywhere along the streets the young birch-trees stand in rows, every house and every room is adorned with boughs, even the engines upon the railway are for the time decked with green leaves.”283 In this Russian custom the dressing of the birch in woman's clothes shows how clearly the tree is conceived as personal; and the throwing it into a stream is most probably a rain-charm. In some villages of Altmark it was formerly the custom for serving-men, grooms, and cowherds to go from farm to farm at Whitsuntide distributing crowns made of birch-branches and flowers to the farmers; these crowns were hung up in the houses and left till the following year.284

On the Thursday before Whitsunday, the Russian villagers “go out into the woods, sing songs, weave [pg 077] garlands, and cut down a young birch tree, which they dress in women’s clothes or decorate with colorful rags and ribbons. After that, they have a feast, and at the end, they take the decorated birch tree, carry it back to their village with joyful dancing and singing, and set it up in one of the houses, where it stays as an honored guest until Whitsunday. During the two days in between, they visit the house where their ‘visitor’ is; but on the third day, Whitsunday, they take her to a stream and throw her into the water,” tossing their garlands after her. "Across Russia, every village and town transforms into a sort of garden shortly before Whitsunday. Young birch trees line the streets, every house and room is decorated with branches, and even the trains are adorned with green leaves." 283 In this Russian custom, dressing the birch in women’s clothes shows how personally the tree is regarded; and throwing it into a stream likely serves as a rain charm. In some villages of Altmark, it used to be customary for servants, grooms, and cowherds to go from farm to farm at Whitsuntide, distributing crowns made of birch branches and flowers to the farmers; these crowns would be hung up in the houses and left until the following year.284

In the neighbourhood of Zabern in Alsace bands of people go about carrying May-trees. Amongst them is a man dressed in a white shirt, with his face blackened; in front of him is carried a large May-tree, but each member of the band also carries a smaller one. One of the company carries a huge basket in which he [pg 078] collects eggs, bacon, etc.285 In some parts of Sweden on the eve of May Day lads go about carrying each a bunch of fresh-gathered birch twigs, wholly or partially in leaf. With the village fiddler at their head they go from house to house singing May songs; the purport of which is a prayer for fine weather, a plentiful harvest, and worldly and spiritual blessings. One of them carries a basket in which he collects gifts of eggs and the like. If they are well received they stick a leafy twig in the roof over the cottage door.286

In the neighborhood of Zabern in Alsace, groups of people walk around carrying May-trees. Among them is a man in a white shirt, his face painted black; in front of him is a large May-tree, and each member of the group also has a smaller one. One person carries a big basket where he collects eggs, bacon, and other items. In some parts of Sweden, on the eve of May Day, young men walk around each with a bunch of freshly gathered birch twigs, either fully or partially in leaf. Led by the village fiddler, they go from house to house singing May songs, which serve as a prayer for good weather, a fruitful harvest, and both material and spiritual blessings. One of them has a basket to collect gifts of eggs and similar items. If they're welcomed well, they stick a leafy twig in the roof over the cottage door.

But in Sweden midsummer is the season when these ceremonies are chiefly observed. On the Eve of St. John (23d June) the houses are thoroughly cleansed and garnished with green boughs and flowers. Young fir-trees are raised at the door-way and elsewhere about the homestead; and very often small umbrageous arbours are constructed in the garden. In Stockholm on this day a leaf-market is held at which thousands of May-poles (Maj Stănger) six inches to twelve feet high, decorated with leaves, flowers, slips of coloured paper, gilt egg-shells, strung on reeds, etc. are exposed for sale. Bonfires are lit on the hills and the people dance round them and jump over them. But the chief event of the day is setting up the May-pole. This consists of a straight and tall spruce-pine tree, stripped of its branches. “At times hoops and at others pieces of wood, placed crosswise, are attached to it at intervals; whilst at others it is provided with bows, representing so to say, a man with his arms akimbo. From top to bottom not only the ‘Maj Stăng’ (May-pole) itself, but the hoops, bows, etc. are ornamented with leaves, [pg 079] flowers, slips of various cloth, gilt egg-shells, etc.; and on the top of it is a large vane, or it may be a flag.” The raising of the May-pole, the decoration of which is done by the village maidens, is an affair of much ceremony; the people flock to it from all quarters and dance round it in a great ring.287 In some parts of Bohemia also a May-pole or midsummer-tree is erected on St. John's Eve. The lads fetch a tall fir or pine from the wood and set it up on a height, where the girls deck it with nosegays, garlands, and red ribbons. Then they pile brushwood, dry wood, and other combustible materials about the tree, and, when darkness has fallen, set the whole on fire. While the fire was burning the lads used to climb up the tree and fetch down the garlands and ribbons which the girls had fastened to it; but as this led to accidents, the custom has been forbidden. Sometimes the young people fling burning besoms into the air, or run shouting down hill with them. When the tree is consumed, the young men and their sweethearts stand on opposite sides of the fire, and look at each other through garlands and through the fire, to see whether they will be true lovers and will wed. Then they throw the garlands thrice across the smouldering fire to each other. When the blaze has died down, the couples join hands and leap thrice across the glowing embers. The singed garlands are taken home, and kept carefully in the house throughout the year. Whenever a thunder-storm bursts, part of the garlands are burned on the hearth; and when the cattle are sick or are calving, they get a portion of the garlands to eat. The charred embers of the bonfire are stuck in the cornfields and meadows and [pg 080] on the roof of the house, to keep house and field from bad weather and injury.288

But in Sweden, midsummer is the season when these ceremonies are mainly celebrated. On the Eve of St. John (June 23rd), homes are thoroughly cleaned and decorated with green branches and flowers. Young fir trees are raised at the door and around the homestead; and small shady arbors are often built in the garden. In Stockholm, on this day, a leaf market takes place where thousands of May-poles (Maj Stănger) ranging from six inches to twelve feet high, adorned with leaves, flowers, colored paper strips, gilt eggshells, and more, are sold. Bonfires are lit on the hills, with people dancing around them and jumping over them. But the main event is raising the May-pole, which is a tall spruce-pine tree stripped of its branches. Sometimes, hoops and at other times, pieces of wood placed crosswise are attached at intervals; other times, it features bows that symbolize a man with his arms crossed. From top to bottom, not just the ‘Maj Stăng’ (May-pole) itself but also the hoops, bows, and so on, are decorated with leaves, [pg 079] flowers, various pieces of fabric, gilt eggshells, and more; and at the top, there's a large weathervane or a flag. Raising the May-pole, which is decorated by the village maidens, is a highly ceremonious affair; people gather from all around to dance in a large circle around it.287 In some parts of Bohemia, a May-pole or midsummer tree is also put up on St. John's Eve. The boys go into the woods to get a tall fir or pine and set it up on a height, where the girls decorate it with nosegays, garlands, and red ribbons. Then they pile brush, dry wood, and other flammable materials around the tree, and when darkness falls, they set it all ablaze. While the fire burns, the boys would climb the tree to take down the garlands and ribbons the girls had hung on it; however, since this led to accidents, the practice has been banned. Sometimes, the young people throw burning brooms into the air or run shouting downhill with them. Once the tree is burned down, the young men and their sweethearts stand on opposite sides of the fire and look at each other through the garlands and flames to see if they will be true lovers and marry. Then they throw the garlands back and forth over the smoldering fire three times. When the flames have died down, the couples hold hands and jump across the glowing embers three times. The singed garlands are taken home and carefully preserved throughout the year. Whenever a thunderstorm strikes, part of the garlands are burned on the hearth; and when the cattle are ill or calving, they’re given some of the garlands to eat. The charred remains of the bonfire are placed in the cornfields and meadows and [pg 080] on the roof of the house to protect the house and fields from bad weather and harm.288

It is hardly necessary to illustrate the custom of setting up a village May-tree or May-pole on May Day. One point only—the renewal of the village May-tree—requires to be noticed. In England the village May-pole seems as a rule, at least in later times, to have been permanent, not renewed from year to year.289 Sometimes, however, it was renewed annually. Thus, Borlase says of the Cornish people: “From towns they make incursions, on May-eve, into the country, cut down a tall elm, bring it into the town with rejoicings, and having fitted a straight taper pole to the end of it, and painted it, erect it in the most public part, and upon holidays and festivals dress it with garlands of flowers or ensigns and streamers.”290 An annual renewal seems also to be implied in the description by Stubbs, a Puritanical writer, of the custom of drawing home the May-pole by twenty or forty yoke of oxen.291 In some parts of Germany and Austria the May-tree or Whitsuntide-tree is renewed annually, a fresh tree being felled and set up.292

It’s not really necessary to explain the tradition of erecting a village May-tree or May-pole on May Day. There’s just one thing—the replacement of the village May-tree—that needs to be mentioned. In England, the village May-pole has generally been permanent in recent times, not replaced every year. 289 However, sometimes it was renewed each year. For instance, Borlase mentions the Cornish people: “On May Eve, they leave the towns and head into the countryside, where they cut down a tall elm tree. They bring it back to the town with celebration, attach a straight pole to the end of it, paint it, and set it up in a prominent spot. During holidays and festivals, they decorate it with flower garlands, flags, and streamers.” 290 An annual renewal also seems to be suggested in Stubbs' description, a Puritan writer, of the custom of bringing the May-pole home with twenty or forty yoke of oxen. 291 In some regions of Germany and Austria, the May-tree or Whitsuntide-tree is replaced each year, with a fresh tree being cut down and put up. 292

We can hardly doubt that originally the practice everywhere was to set up a new May-tree every year. As the object of the custom was to bring in the fructifying spirit of vegetation, newly awakened in spring, the end would have been defeated if, instead of a living tree, green and sappy, an old withered one had been erected year after year or allowed to stand permanently. When, however, the meaning of the [pg 081] custom had been forgotten, and the May-tree was regarded simply as a centre for holiday merrymaking, people saw no reason for felling a fresh tree every year, and preferred to let the same tree stand permanently, only decking it with fresh flowers on May Day. But even when the May-pole had thus become a fixture, the need of giving it the appearance of being a green tree, not a dead pole, was sometimes felt. Thus at Weverham in Cheshire “are two May-poles, which are decorated on this day (May Day) with all due attention to the ancient solemnity; the sides are hung with garlands, and the top terminated by a birch or other tall slender tree with its leaves on; the bark being peeled, and the stem spliced to the pole, so as to give the appearance of one tree from the summit.”293 Thus the renewal of the May-tree is like the renewal of the Harvest-May; each is intended to secure a fresh portion of the fertilising spirit of vegetation, and to preserve it throughout the year. But whereas the efficacy of the Harvest-May is restricted to promoting the growth of the crops, that of the May-tree or May-branch extends also, as we have seen, to women and cattle. Lastly, it is worth noting that the old May-tree is sometimes burned at the end of the year. Thus in the district of Prague young people break pieces off the public May-tree and place them behind the holy pictures in their rooms, where they remain till next May Day, and are then burned on the hearth.294 In Würtemberg the bushes which are set up on the houses on Palm Sunday are sometimes left there for a year and then burnt.295 The [pg 082] eiresione (the Harvest-May of Greece) was perhaps burned at the end of the year.296

We can hardly doubt that originally the practice everywhere was to set up a new May tree every year. Since the purpose of the custom was to invite the life-giving spirit of vegetation, freshly awakened in spring, it would have defeated its purpose if, instead of a living, green and vibrant tree, an old withered one was erected year after year or left standing permanently. However, when the meaning of the custom was forgotten, and the May tree was simply seen as a centerpiece for holiday celebrations, people saw no reason to cut down a new tree every year and preferred to keep the same tree up all the time, only decorating it with fresh flowers on May Day. Even when the Maypole became a permanent fixture, there was still a desire to make it look like a living tree instead of a dead pole. For example, in Weverham, Cheshire, "there are two May-poles, which are decorated on this day (May Day) with all due attention to the ancient solemnity; the sides are hung with garlands, and the top is finished off with a birch or another tall slender tree with its leaves on; the bark being peeled and the stem spliced to the pole so that it appears to be one tree from the top." Thus, the renewal of the May tree is like the renewal of the Harvest-May; each aims to secure a fresh share of the fertilizing spirit of vegetation and to keep it throughout the year. However, while the Harvest-May's effectiveness is limited to promoting crop growth, the May tree or May branch also, as we've seen, extends to women and livestock. Lastly, it's worth noting that the old May tree is sometimes burned at the end of the year. For example, in the Prague area, young people break pieces off the public May tree and place them behind holy pictures in their rooms, where they stay until the next May Day and are then burned on the hearth. In Württemberg, the bushes set up on houses on Palm Sunday are sometimes left up for a year and then burned. The [pg 082] eiresione (the Harvest-May of Greece) was perhaps burned at the end of the year.

So much for the tree-spirit conceived as incorporate or immanent in the tree. We have now to show that the tree-spirit is often conceived and represented as detached from the tree and clothed in human form, and even as embodied in living men or women. The evidence for this anthropomorphic representation of the tree-spirit is largely to be found in the popular customs of European peasantry.

So much for the tree spirit seen as part of the tree itself. Now we need to show that the tree spirit is often imagined and depicted as separate from the tree, taking on a human form, and even embodied in living men or women. The proof of this human-like representation of the tree spirit is mainly found in the popular customs of European peasants.

There is an instructive class of cases in which the tree-spirit is represented simultaneously in vegetable form and in human form, which are set side by side as if for the express purpose of explaining each other. In these cases the human representative of the tree-spirit is sometimes a doll or puppet, sometimes a living person; but whether a puppet or a person, it is placed beside a tree or bough; so that together the person or puppet, and the tree or bough, form a sort of bilingual inscription, the one being, so to speak, a translation of the other. Here, therefore, there is no room left for doubt that the spirit of the tree is actually represented in human form. Thus in Bohemia, on the fourth Sunday in Lent, young people throw a puppet called Death into the water; then the girls go into the wood, cut down a young tree, and fasten to it a puppet dressed in white clothes to look like a woman; with this tree and puppet they go from house to house collecting gratuities and singing songs with the refrain—

There is an instructive class of cases where the tree spirit appears in both plant form and human form, placed side by side to clarify each other. In these instances, the human representation of the tree spirit can be either a doll or puppet, or a living person. Regardless of whether it’s a puppet or a person, it is positioned next to a tree or branch, creating a sort of bilingual message where one serves as a translation of the other. This leaves no doubt that the spirit of the tree is actually shown in human form. For example, in Bohemia, on the fourth Sunday of Lent, young people throw a puppet called Death into the water; then the girls go into the woods, cut down a young tree, and attach a puppet dressed in white to resemble a woman. With this tree and puppet, they go from house to house collecting tips and singing songs with the refrain—

We take Death away from the village,
We bring Summer to the village.297
[pg 083]

Here, as we shall see later on, the “Summer” is the spirit of vegetation returning or reviving in spring. In some places in this country children go about asking for pence with some small imitations of May-poles, and with a finely dressed doll which they call the Lady of the May.298 In these cases the tree and the puppet are obviously regarded as equivalent.

Here, as we will see later, the “Summer” represents the spirit of plants coming back to life in the spring. In some areas of the country, kids go around collecting coins with small replicas of May-poles and a nicely dressed doll they call the Lady of the May.298 In these instances, both the tree and the doll are clearly seen as equivalent.

At Thann, in Alsace, a girl called the Little May Rose, dressed in white, carries a small May-tree, which is gay with garlands and ribbons. Her companions collect gifts from door to door, singing a song—

At Thann, in Alsace, a girl called the Little May Rose, dressed in white, carries a small May tree adorned with bright garlands and ribbons. Her friends go door to door collecting gifts, singing a song—

Little May Rose spin around three times,
Let’s take a look at you from every angle!
Rose of the May, come to the woods away,
We'll all be happy.
So we transition from May to the roses.

In the course of the song a wish is expressed that those who give nothing may lose their fowls by the marten, that their vine may bear no clusters, their tree no nuts, their field no corn; the produce of the year is supposed to depend on the gifts offered to these May singers.299 Here and in the cases mentioned above, where children go about with green boughs on May Day singing and collecting money, the meaning is that with the spirit of vegetation they bring plenty and good luck to the house, and they expect to be paid for the service. In Russian Lithuania, on the 1st of May, they used to set up a green tree before the village. Then the rustic swains chose the prettiest girl, crowned her, swathed her in birch branches and set her beside the May-tree, where they danced, sang, and shouted [pg 084] “O May! O May!”300 In Brie (Isle de France) a May-tree is set up in the midst of the village; its top is crowned with flowers; lower down it is twined with leaves and twigs, still lower with huge green branches. The girls dance round it, and at the same time a lad wrapt in leaves and called Father May is led about.301 In Bavaria, on the 2d of May, a Walber (?) tree is erected before a tavern, and a man dances round it, enveloped in straw from head to foot in such a way that the ears of corn unite above his head to form a crown. He is called the Walber, and used to be led in solemn procession through the streets, which were adorned with sprigs of birch.302 In Carinthia, on St. George's Day (24th April), the young people deck with flowers and garlands a tree which has been felled on the eve of the festival. The tree is then carried in procession, accompanied with music and joyful acclamations, the chief figure in the procession being the Green George, a young fellow clad from head to foot in green birch branches. At the close of the ceremonies the Green George, that is an effigy of him, is thrown into the water. It is the aim of the lad who acts Green George to step out of his leafy envelope and substitute the effigy so adroitly that no one shall perceive the change. In many places, however, the lad himself who plays the part of Green George is ducked in a river or pond, with the express intention of thus ensuring rain to make the fields and meadows green in summer. In some places the cattle are crowned and driven from their stalls to the accompaniment of a song—

During the song, there's a hope that those who give nothing may lose their chickens to the marten, that their vines may bear no grapes, their trees no nuts, and their fields no corn; the harvest of the year is believed to depend on the offerings given to these May singers. 299 Here, as well as in the previous examples where children walk around with green branches on May Day, singing and collecting money, the idea is that with the spirit of growth, they bring abundance and good fortune to the home, and they expect to be compensated for their effort. In Russian Lithuania, on May 1st, they would set up a green tree in front of the village. Then the local young men would choose the prettiest girl, crown her, wrap her in birch branches, and place her next to the May-tree, where they would dance, sing, and shout [pg 084] “O May! O May!” 300 In Brie (Isle de France), a May-tree is erected in the center of the village; its top is adorned with flowers, further down it's intertwined with leaves and twigs, and even lower with large green branches. The girls dance around it, while a boy wrapped in leaves, known as Father May, is paraded around. 301 In Bavaria, on May 2nd, a Walber (?) tree is put up in front of a tavern, and a man dances around it, covered in straw from head to toe so that the ears of corn come together above his head to form a crown. He is called the Walber, and he used to be led in a solemn procession through the streets, which were decorated with birch branches. 302 In Carinthia, on St. George's Day (April 24th), young people decorate a tree with flowers and garlands, which has been cut down the night before the festival. The tree is then carried in a procession, accompanied by music and joyful cheers, with the main figure being the Green George, a young man dressed in green birch branches from head to toe. At the end of the celebrations, an effigy of Green George is thrown into the water. The goal of the boy playing Green George is to step out of his leafy disguise and replace the effigy so cleverly that no one notices the switch. However, in many places, the boy playing Green George is himself dunked in a river or pond, with the intention of guaranteeing rain to make the fields and meadows lush in summer. In some areas, the cattle are crowned and led from their stalls along with a song—

[pg 085]
“Green George we bring,”
We accompany Green George.
May he provide for our herds abundantly,
If not, throw him in the water.303

Here we see that the same powers of making rain and fostering the cattle, which are ascribed to the tree-spirit regarded as incorporate in the tree, are also attributed to the tree-spirit represented by a living man.

Here we see that the same powers of creating rain and nurturing the cattle, which are assigned to the tree-spirit believed to be embodied in the tree, are also attributed to the tree-spirit represented by a living man.

An example of the double representation of the spirit of vegetation by a tree and a living man is reported from Bengal. The Oraons have a festival in spring while the sál trees are in blossom, because they think that at this time the marriage of earth is celebrated and the sál flowers are necessary for the ceremony. On an appointed day the villagers go with their priest to the Sarna, the sacred grove, a remnant of the old sál forest in which a goddess Sarna Burhi, or woman of the grove, is supposed to dwell. She is thought to have great influence on the rain; and the priest arriving with his party at the grove sacrifices to her five fowls, of which a morsel is given to each person present. Then they gather the sál flowers and return laden with them to the village. Next day the priest visits every house, carrying the flowers in a wide open basket. The women of each house bring out water to wash his feet as he approaches, and kneeling make him an obeisance. Then he dances with them and places some of the sál flowers over the door of the house and in the women's hair. No sooner is this done than the women empty their water-jugs over him, drenching him to the skin. A feast follows, and the young people, with sál flowers in their hair, dance all night on the village green.304 Here, the equivalence of the flower-bearing [pg 086] priest to the goddess of the flowering-tree comes out plainly. For she is supposed to influence the rain, and the drenching of the priest with water is, doubtless, like the ducking of the Green George in Bavaria, a rain-charm. Thus the priest, as if he were the tree goddess herself, goes from door to door dispensing rain and bestowing fruitfulness on each house, but especially on the women.

An example of the dual representation of the spirit of vegetation by a tree and a living man comes from Bengal. The Oraons celebrate a spring festival while the sál trees are blooming because they believe this time marks the marriage of earth, and the sál flowers are essential for the ceremony. On a designated day, the villagers go with their priest to the Sarna, a sacred grove that’s a remnant of the old sál forest where a goddess, Sarna Burhi, or woman of the grove, is believed to reside. She is thought to have a significant influence on the rain; upon arriving at the grove, the priest and his group sacrifice five fowls to her, sharing a morsel with each person present. Then they gather the sál flowers and return to the village carrying them. The next day, the priest visits every house with the flowers in a wide open basket. As he approaches, the women from each house bring out water to wash his feet and kneel to pay their respects. He dances with them and places some of the sál flowers above the door of the house and in the women's hair. Once this is done, the women pour their water-jugs over him, soaking him completely. A feast follows, and the young people, with sál flowers in their hair, dance all night on the village green. Here, the equivalence of the flower-bearing [pg 086] priest to the goddess of the flowering tree is clear. She is believed to influence the rain, and the drenching of the priest with water is undoubtedly reminiscent of the Green George ducking in Bavaria, a rain charm. Thus, the priest, as if he were the tree goddess herself, goes from door to door distributing rain and ensuring fertility in each home, especially for the women.

Without citing more examples to the same effect, we may sum up the result of the preceding paragraphs in the words of Mannhardt. “The customs quoted suffice to establish with certainty the conclusion that in these spring processions the spirit of vegetation is often represented both by the May-tree and in addition by a man dressed in green leaves or flowers or by a girl similarly adorned. It is the same spirit which animates the tree and is active in the inferior plants and which we have recognised in the May-tree and the Harvest-May. Quite consistently the spirit is also supposed to manifest his presence in the first flower of spring and reveals himself both in a girl representing a May-rose, and also, as giver of harvest, in the person of the Walber. The procession with this representative of the divinity was supposed to produce the same beneficial effects on the fowls, the fruit-trees, and the crops as the presence of the deity himself. In other words, the mummer was regarded not as an image but as an actual representative of the spirit of vegetation; hence the wish expressed by the attendants on the May-rose and the May-tree that those who refuse them gifts of eggs, bacon, etc. may have no share in the blessings which it is in the power of the itinerant spirit to bestow. We may conclude that these begging processions with May-trees or May-boughs from door [pg 087] to door (‘bringing the May or the summer’) had everywhere originally a serious and, so to speak, sacramental significance; people really believed that the god of growth was present unseen in the bough; by the procession he was brought to each house to bestow his blessing. The names May, Father May, May Lady, Queen of the May, by which the anthropomorphic spirit of vegetation is often denoted, show that the conception of the spirit of vegetation is blent with a personification of the season at which his powers are most strikingly manifested.”305

Without citing more examples, we can sum up the earlier points using Mannhardt's words. The customs mentioned clearly show that in these spring parades, the spirit of nature is often represented by both the May-tree and a person dressed in green leaves or flowers, or a girl dressed similarly. It's the same spirit that gives life to the tree and is active in smaller plants, which we've recognized in the May-tree and the Harvest-May. This spirit also appears in the first flower of spring, taking the form of a girl representing a May-rose and, as the giver of harvest, in the figure of the Walber. The procession featuring this representative of the divine was thought to create the same positive effects on animals, fruit trees, and crops as the presence of the deity himself. In other words, the performer was seen not just as a symbol but as a true representative of the spirit of nature; hence the hope expressed by the participants that those who deny them gifts of eggs, bacon, and so on, would not benefit from the blessings that the traveling spirit can provide. We can conclude that these begging processions with May-trees or May-branches from door to door (‘bringing the May or the summer’) originally had a serious, almost sacramental meaning; people genuinely believed that the god of growth was invisibly present in the branch; through the procession, he was brought to each home to offer his blessing. The names May, Father May, May Lady, Queen of the May, which often describe the anthropomorphic spirit of nature, indicate that the idea of the spirit of nature is closely linked with a personification of the season when his powers are most vividly displayed.305

Thus far we have seen that the tree-spirit or the spirit of vegetation in general is represented either in vegetable form alone, as by a tree, bough, or flower; or in vegetable and human form simultaneously, as by a tree, bough, or flower in combination with a puppet or a living person. It remains to show that the representation of him by a tree, bough, or flower is sometimes entirely dropped, while the representation of him by a living person remains. In this case the representative character of the person is generally marked by dressing him or her in leaves or flowers; sometimes too it is indicated by the name he or she bears.

So far, we've seen that the tree-spirit or the spirit of vegetation is represented either solely in plant form, like a tree, branch, or flower; or in a mix of plant and human form, such as a tree, branch, or flower along with a puppet or a real person. Now, we need to show that sometimes the portrayal of the spirit as a tree, branch, or flower is completely left out, while the representation through a living person remains. In this case, the person is usually identified as a representative by dressing them in leaves or flowers; sometimes it’s also indicated by the name they have.

We saw that in Russia at Whitsuntide a birch-tree is dressed in woman's clothes and set up in the house. Clearly equivalent to this is the custom observed on Whit-Monday by Russian girls in the district of Pinsk. They choose the prettiest of their number, envelop her in a mass of foliage taken from the birch-trees and maples, and carry her about through the village. In a district of Little Russia they take round a “poplar,” represented by a girl wearing bright flowers in her hair.306 [pg 088] In the Département de l'Ain (France) on the 1st of May eight or ten boys unite, clothe one of their number in leaves, and go from house to house begging.307 At Whitsuntide in Holland poor women used to go about begging with a little girl called Whitsuntide Flower (Pinxterbloem, perhaps a kind of iris); she was decked with flowers and sat in a waggon. In North Brabant she wears the flowers from which she takes her name and a song is sung—

We saw that in Russia during Whitsuntide, a birch tree is dressed in women's clothes and placed in the house. A similar custom is observed on Whit Monday by Russian girls in the Pinsk area. They pick the prettiest girl from their group, cover her in a bunch of leaves from birch trees and maples, and carry her around the village. In a region of Little Russia, they take around a "poplar" represented by a girl wearing bright flowers in her hair.306[pg 088] In the Département de l'Ain (France) on May 1st, eight or ten boys come together, dress one of their friends in leaves, and go door to door asking for alms.307 During Whitsuntide in Holland, poor women used to go around begging with a little girl called Whitsuntide Flower (Pinxterbloom, possibly a type of iris); she was adorned with flowers and sat in a wagon. In North Brabant, she wears the flowers that give her name and a song is sung—

“Whitsun Flower”
Turn around once.308

In Ruhla (Thüringen) as soon as the trees begin to grow green in spring, the children assemble on a Sunday and go out into the woods, where they choose one of their playmates to be the Little Leaf Man. They break branches from the trees and twine them about the child till only his shoes peep out from the leafy mantle. Holes are made in it for him to see through, and two of the children lead the Little Leaf Man that he may not stumble or fall. Singing and dancing they take him from house to house, asking for gifts of food (eggs, cream, sausage, cakes). Lastly they sprinkle the Leaf Man with water and feast on the food they have collected.309 In England the best-known example of these leaf-clad mummers is the Jack-in-the-Green, a chimney-sweeper who walks encased in a pyramidal-shaped framework of wicker-work, which is covered with holly and ivy, and surmounted by a crown of flowers and ribbons. Thus arrayed he dances on May Day at the head of a troop [pg 089] of chimney-sweeps, who collect pence.310 In some parts also of France a young fellow is encased in a wicker framework covered with leaves and is led about.311 In Frickthal (Aargau) a similar frame of basketwork is called the Whitsuntide Basket. As soon as the trees begin to bud, a spot is chosen in the wood, and here the village lads make the frame with all secrecy, lest others should forestall them. Leafy branches are twined round two hoops, one of which rests on the shoulders of the wearer, the other encircles his calves; holes are made for his eyes and mouth; and a large nosegay crowns the whole. In this guise he appears suddenly in the village at the hour of vespers, preceded by three boys blowing on horns made of willow bark. The great object of his supporters is to set up the Whitsuntide Basket beside the village well, and to keep it and him there, despite the efforts of the lads from neighbouring villages, who seek to carry off the Whitsuntide Basket and set it up at their own well.312 In the neighbourhood of Ertingen (Würtemberg) a masker of the same sort, known as the Lazy Man (Latzmann), goes about the village on Midsummer Day; he is hidden under a great pyramidal or conical frame of wicker-work, ten or twelve feet high, which is completely covered with sprigs of fir. He has a bell which he rings as he goes, and he is attended by a suite of persons dressed up in character—a footman, a colonel, a butcher, an angel, the devil, the doctor, etc. They march in Indian file and halt before every house, where each of them speaks in character, except the Lazy Man, [pg 090] who says nothing. With what they get by begging from door to door they hold a feast.313

In Ruhla (Thüringen), as soon as the trees start to turn green in spring, the children gather on a Sunday and head into the woods, where they pick one of their friends to be the Little Leaf Man. They snap off branches from the trees and wrap them around the child until only their shoes are visible under the leafy outfit. They cut holes for them to see through, and two of the kids guide the Little Leaf Man so they won't trip or fall. Singing and dancing, they take him from house to house, asking for treats like eggs, cream, sausage, and cakes. Finally, they splash the Leaf Man with water and enjoy the food they've collected. In England, the most famous example of these leafy performers is the Jack-in-the-Green, a chimney-sweep who walks around inside a pyramid-shaped wicker frame covered with holly and ivy, topped with a crown of flowers and ribbons. Dressed like this, he dances on May Day at the front of a group of chimney-sweeps who collect coins. In some parts of France, a young man is also dressed in a wicker frame covered with leaves and is led around. In Frickthal (Aargau), a similar wicker structure is called the Whitsuntide Basket. Once the trees start to bud, a spot is secretly chosen in the woods, and the local boys build the frame to keep it a surprise. Leafy branches are wrapped around two hoops, one resting on the wearer's shoulders and the other encircling their calves, with holes for their eyes and mouth; a big bouquet crowns the top. Suddenly, the wearer appears in the village at vespers, led by three boys blowing horns made from willow bark. The main goal of everyone is to set up the Whitsuntide Basket by the village well and to keep it and the wearer there, despite the efforts of boys from neighboring villages who try to take the Whitsuntide Basket to their own well. In the area around Ertingen (Württemberg), a similar masked performer, known as the Lazy Man (Latzmann), goes through the village on Midsummer Day; he is hidden under a tall pyramidal or conical wicker frame, ten or twelve feet high, completely covered with fir branches. He rings a bell as he walks around, accompanied by a group of characters—like a footman, a colonel, a butcher, an angel, the devil, a doctor, etc. They march in a line and stop in front of each house, where everyone except the Lazy Man speaks in character; he says nothing. Whatever they collect by begging door to door is used for a feast.

In the class of cases of which the above are specimens it is obvious that the leaf-clad person who is led about is equivalent to the May-tree, May-bough, or May-doll, which is carried from house to house by children begging. Both are representatives of the beneficent spirit of vegetation, whose visit to the house is recompensed by a present of money or food.

In the cases mentioned above, it's clear that the person dressed in leaves, who is taken around, is similar to the May-tree, May-bough, or May-doll, which children carry from house to house while begging. Both serve as symbols of the positive spirit of nature, whose visit to a home is rewarded with money or food.

Often the leaf-clad person who represents the spirit of vegetation is known as the king or the queen; thus, for example, he or she is called the May King, Whitsuntide King, Queen of May, and so on. These titles, as Mannhardt observes, imply that the spirit incorporate in vegetation is a ruler, whose creative power extends far and wide.314

Often the person dressed in leaves who represents the spirit of nature is referred to as the king or queen; for instance, they might be called the May King, Whitsuntide King, Queen of May, and so on. These titles, as Mannhardt notes, suggest that the spirit embodied in vegetation is a ruler, whose creative power reaches far and wide.314

In a village near Salzwedel a May-tree is set up at Whitsuntide and the boys race to it; he who reaches it first is king; a garland of flowers is put round his neck and in his hand he carries a May-bush, with which, as the procession moves along, he sweeps away the dew. At each house they sing a song, wishing the inmates good luck, referring to the “black cow in the stall milking white milk, black hen on the nest laying white eggs,” and begging a gift of eggs, bacon, etc.315 In some villages of Brunswick at Whitsuntide a May King is completely enveloped in a May-bush. In some parts of Thüringen also they have a May King at Whitsuntide, but he is got up rather differently. A frame of wood is made in which [pg 091] a man can stand; it is completely covered with birch boughs and is surmounted by a crown of birch and flowers, in which a bell is fastened. This frame is placed in the wood and the May King gets into it. The rest go out and look for him, and when they have found him they lead him back into the village to the magistrate, the clergyman, and others, who have to guess who is in the verdurous frame. If they guess wrong, the May King rings his bell by shaking his head, and a forfeit of beer or the like must be paid by the unsuccessful guesser.316 In some parts of Bohemia on Whit-Monday the young fellows disguise themselves in tall caps of birch bark adorned with flowers. One of them is dressed as a king and dragged on a sledge to the village green, and if on the way they pass a pool the sledge is always overturned into it. Arrived at the green they gather round the king; the crier jumps on a stone or climbs up a tree and recites lampoons about each house and its inmates. Afterwards the disguises of bark are stripped off and they go about the village in holiday attire, carrying a May-tree and begging. Cakes, eggs, and corn are sometimes given them.317 At Grossvargula, near Langensalza, in last century a Grass King used to be led about in procession at Whitsuntide. He was encased in a pyramid of poplar branches, the top of which was adorned with a royal crown of branches and flowers. He rode on horseback with the leafy pyramid over him, so that its lower end touched the ground, and an opening was left in it only for his face. Surrounded by a cavalcade of [pg 092] young fellows, he rode in procession to the town hall, the parsonage, etc., where they all got a drink of beer. Then under the seven lindens of the neighbouring Sommerberg, the Grass King was stripped of his green casing; the crown was handed to the Mayor, and the branches were stuck in the flax fields in order to make the flax grow tall.318 In this last trait the fertilising influence ascribed to the representative of the tree-spirit comes out clearly. In the neighbourhood of Pilsen (Bohemia) a conical hut of green branches, without any door, is erected at Whitsuntide in the midst of the village. To this hut rides a troop of village lads with a king at their head. He wears a sword at his side and a sugar-loaf hat of rushes on his head. In his train are a judge, a crier, and a personage called the Frog-flayer or Hangman. This last is a sort of ragged merryandrew, wearing a rusty old sword and bestriding a sorry hack. On reaching the hut the crier dismounts and goes round it looking for a door. Finding none, he says, “Ah, this is perhaps an enchanted castle; the witches creep through the leaves and need no door.” At last he draws his sword and hews his way into the hut, where there is a chair, on which he seats himself and proceeds to criticise in rhyme the girls, farmers, and farm-servants of the neighbourhood. When this is over, the Frog-flayer steps forward and, after exhibiting a cage with frogs in it, sets up a gallows on which he hangs the frogs in a row.319 In the neighbourhood of Plas the ceremony differs in some points. The king and his soldiers are completely clad in bark, adorned [pg 093] with flowers and ribbons; they all carry swords and ride horses, which are gay with green branches and flowers. While the village dames and girls are being criticised at the arbour, a frog is secretly pinched and poked by the crier till it quacks. Sentence of death is passed on the frog by the king; the hangman beheads it and flings the bleeding body among the spectators. Lastly, the king is driven from the hut and pursued by the soldiers.320 The pinching and beheading of the frog are doubtless, as Mannhardt observes,321 a rain-charm. We have seen322 that some Indians of the Orinoco beat frogs for the express purpose of producing rain, and that killing a frog is a German rain-charm.

In a village near Salzwedel, a May tree is set up at Whitsuntide, and the boys race to it; the first one to reach it becomes king. A floral garland is placed around his neck, and he carries a May bush, using it to sweep away the dew as the procession moves along. At each house, they sing a song wishing good luck to the residents, mentioning the "black cow in the stall producing white milk, black hen on the nest laying white eggs," and asking for gifts of eggs, bacon, etc.315 In some villages of Brunswick, there is a May King completely covered in a May bush during Whitsuntide. In parts of Thüringen, there's also a May King at Whitsuntide, but dressed differently. A wooden frame is made for a man to stand in; it’s completely covered with birch branches and topped with a crown made of birch and flowers, which holds a bell. This frame is placed in the woods, and the May King gets inside it. Others search for him and, once found, lead him back into the village to the magistrate, the clergyman, and others, who have to guess who is in the leafy frame. If they guess wrong, the May King shakes his head to ring the bell, and the guessing loser must pay a forfeit of beer or something similar.316 In parts of Bohemia, on Whit-Monday, young men disguise themselves in tall birch bark caps decorated with flowers. One of them dresses as a king and is pulled on a sledge to the village green, and if they pass a pool on the way, the sledge is always overturned into it. Once at the green, they gather around the king; a crier jumps on a stone or climbs a tree to recite lampoons about each house and its inhabitants. Afterwards, they shed their bark disguises and walk around the village in festive attire, holding a May tree and asking for gifts. They sometimes receive cakes, eggs, and grains.317 In Grossvargula, near Langensalza, last century a Grass King was paraded during Whitsuntide. He was enveloped in a pyramid of poplar branches, topped with a royal crown of branches and flowers. He rode on horseback with the leafy pyramid above him, its lower end touching the ground, leaving only his face exposed. Surrounded by a group of young men, he paraded to the town hall, parsonage, etc., where everyone had a drink of beer. Later, under the seven linden trees of nearby Sommerberg, the Grass King was taken out of his green covering; the crown was given to the Mayor, and the branches were stuck in flax fields to encourage tall growth.318 This last detail clearly shows the fertilizing role attributed to the symbol of the tree spirit. In the area around Pilsen (Bohemia), a conical hut made of green branches, with no door, is built in the middle of the village during Whitsuntide. A group of village boys rides to this hut, led by a king wearing a sword and a rush hat. They are followed by a judge, a crier, and a character known as the Frog-flayer or Hangman. This last figure is a kind of ragged jester, wielding a rusty sword while riding a shabby horse. When they arrive at the hut, the crier gets off and walks around looking for a door. Finding none, he says, "Ah, this might be a magical castle; the witches slip through the leaves and don’t need a door." Finally, he draws his sword and forces his way inside the hut, where he finds a chair, sits down, and begins to rhyme about the local girls, farmers, and farm workers. Once done, the Frog-flayer steps forward and, after showing a cage of frogs, sets up a gallows to hang the frogs in a row.319 In the vicinity of Plas, this ceremony differs in some ways. The king and his soldiers are entirely dressed in bark, decorated [pg 093] with flowers and ribbons; they all carry swords and ride horses adorned with green branches and flowers. While the village women and girls are criticized at the arbor, a frog is secretly pinched and poked by the crier until it quacks. The king then sentences the frog to death; the hangman beheads it and throws the bleeding body among the crowd. Finally, the king is chased out of the hut and pursued by the soldiers.320 The pinching and beheading of the frog are likely, as Mannhardt notes,321 a rain charm. We have seen322 that some Indians of the Orinoco beat frogs specifically to bring about rain, and that killing a frog serves as a German rain charm.

Often the spirit of vegetation in spring is represented by a queen instead of a king. In the neighbourhood of Libchowic (Bohemia), on the fourth Sunday in Lent, girls dressed in white and wearing the first spring flowers, as violets and daisies, in their hair, lead about the village a girl who is called the Queen and is crowned with flowers. During the procession, which is conducted with great solemnity, none of the girls may stand still, but must keep whirling round continually and singing. In every house the Queen announces the arrival of spring and wishes the inmates good luck and blessings, for which she receives presents.323 In German Hungary the girls choose the prettiest girl to be their Whitsuntide Queen, fasten a towering wreath on her brow, and carry her singing through the streets. At every house they stop, sing old ballads, and receive presents.324 In the [pg 094] south-east of Ireland on May Day the prettiest girl used to be chosen Queen of the district for twelve months. She was crowned with wild flowers; feasting, dancing, and rustic sports followed, and were closed by a grand procession in the evening. During her year of office she presided over rural gatherings of young people at dances and merrymakings. If she married before next May Day her authority was at an end, but her successor was not elected till that day came round.325 The May Queen is common in France326 and familiar in England.

Often, the spirit of spring vegetation is symbolized by a queen instead of a king. In the area of Libchowic (Bohemia), on the fourth Sunday in Lent, girls dressed in white and wearing the first spring flowers, like violets and daisies, in their hair, lead a girl called the Queen around the village, where she is crowned with flowers. During the procession, which is conducted very solemnly, none of the girls can stand still but must keep dancing around continuously and singing. In every house, the Queen announces the arrival of spring and wishes the residents good luck and blessings, for which she receives gifts.323 In German Hungary, the girls choose the prettiest girl to be their Whitsuntide Queen, place a tall wreath on her head, and carry her through the streets while singing. They stop at every house, sing old ballads, and receive gifts.324 In the [pg 094] south-east of Ireland on May Day, the prettiest girl was chosen as Queen of the district for twelve months. She was crowned with wild flowers; then there were feasting, dancing, and rural games, which ended with a grand procession in the evening. During her term, she led rural gatherings of young people at dances and celebrations. If she married before the next May Day, her reign ended, but her successor wasn’t chosen until that day arrived.325 The May Queen is common in France326 and well-known in England.

Again the spirit of vegetation is sometimes represented by a king and queen, a lord and lady, or a bridegroom and bride. Here again the parallelism holds between the anthropomorphic and the vegetable representation of the tree-spirit, for we have seen above that trees are sometimes married to each other.327 In a village near Königgrätz (Bohemia) on Whit-Monday the children play the king's game, at which a king and a queen march about under a canopy, the queen wearing a garland, and the youngest girl carrying two wreaths on a plate behind them. They are attended by boys and girls called groom's men and bridesmaids, and they go from house to house collecting gifts.328 Near Grenoble, in France, a king and queen are chosen on the 1st of May and are set on a throne for all to see.329 At Headington, near Oxford, children used to carry garlands from door to door on [pg 095] May Day. Each garland was carried by two girls, and they were followed by a lord and lady—a boy and girl linked together by a white handkerchief, of which each held an end, and dressed with ribbons, sashes, and flowers. At each door they sang a verse—

Again, the spirit of vegetation is sometimes represented by a king and queen, a lord and lady, or a bridegroom and bride. The parallelism continues between the human and plant representation of the tree spirit, as we've seen above that trees are sometimes married to each other. In a village near Königgrätz (Bohemia) on Whit-Monday, the children play the king's game, where a king and queen parade under a canopy, the queen wearing a garland, and the youngest girl carrying two wreaths on a plate behind them. They are accompanied by boys and girls called groom's men and bridesmaids, going from house to house collecting gifts. Near Grenoble, in France, a king and queen are chosen on May 1st and are placed on a throne for all to see. In Headington, near Oxford, children used to carry garlands from door to door on May Day. Each garland was carried by two girls, and they were followed by a lord and lady—a boy and girl linked together by a white handkerchief, which each held on to, dressed in ribbons, sashes, and flowers. At each door, they sang a verse—

“Hey everyone,”
Wishing you a happy May;
We're here to show you a garland,
Because it's May Day.

On receiving money the lord put his arm about his lady's waist and kissed her.330 In some Saxon villages at Whitsuntide a lad and a lass disguise themselves and hide in the bushes or high grass outside the village. Then the whole village goes out with music “to seek the bridal pair.” When they find the couple they all gather round them, the music strikes up, and the bridal pair is led merrily to the village. In the evening they dance. In some places the bridal pair is called the prince and the princess.331

When he received the money, the lord wrapped his arm around his lady's waist and kissed her. 330 In some Saxon villages during Whitsuntide, a young man and woman dress up in disguise and hide in the bushes or tall grass outside the village. Then the whole village goes out with music “to find the wedding couple.” When they find the couple, everyone gathers around them, the music starts, and the bridal pair is cheerfully led back to the village. In the evening, they dance. In some places, the bridal pair is referred to as the prince and the princess. 331

In the neighbourhood of Briançon (Dauphiné) on May Day the lads wrap up in green leaves a young fellow whose sweetheart has deserted him or married another. He lies down on the ground and feigns to be asleep. Then a girl who likes him, and would marry him, comes and wakes him, and raising him up offers him her arm and a flag. So they go to the alehouse, where the pair lead off the dancing. But they must marry within the year, or they are treated as old bachelor and old maid, and are debarred the company of the young folk. The lad is called the bridegroom of the month of May (le fiancé du mois de May). In the alehouse he puts off his garment of leaves, out of [pg 096] which, mixed with flowers, his partner in the dance makes a nosegay, and wears it at her breast next day, when he leads her again to the alehouse.332 Like this is a Russian custom observed in the district of Nerechta on the Thursday before Whitsunday. The girls go out into a birch-wood, wind a girdle or band round a stately birch, twist its lower branches into a wreath, and kiss each other in pairs through the wreath. The girls who kiss through the wreath call each other gossips. Then one of the girls steps forward, and mimicking a drunken man, flings herself on the ground, rolls on the grass, and feigns to go fast asleep. Another girl wakens the pretended sleeper and kisses him; then the whole bevy trips singing through the wood to twine garlands, which they throw into the water. In the fate of the garlands floating on the stream they read their own.333 In this custom the rôle of the sleeper was probably at one time sustained by a lad. In these French and Russian customs we have a forsaken bridegroom, in the following a forsaken bride. On Shrove Tuesday the Slovenes of Oberkrain drag a straw puppet with joyous cries up and down the village; then they throw it into the water or burn it, and from the height of the flames they judge of the abundance of the next harvest. The noisy crew is followed by a female masker, who drags a great board by a string and gives out that she is a forsaken bride.334

In the neighborhood of Briançon (Dauphiné) on May Day, the guys wrap a young man in green leaves if his sweetheart has left him or married someone else. He lies down on the ground and pretends to be asleep. Then a girl who likes him and wants to marry him comes over, wakes him up, and offers him her arm and a flag. Together, they head to the bar, where they lead off the dancing. However, they must marry within the year, or they will be treated as old bachelor and old maid and be excluded from the company of young people. The young man is called the bridegroom of May (the fiancé of the month of May). At the bar, he takes off his outfit of leaves, from which, mixed with flowers, his dance partner makes a nosegay to wear on her chest the next day when he takes her back to the bar.332 Similarly, this is a Russian custom observed in the district of Nerechta on the Thursday before Whitsunday. The girls go into a birch forest, wrap a belt or ribbon around a tall birch tree, twist its lower branches into a wreath, and kiss each other in pairs through the wreath. The girls who kiss through the wreath call each other gossips. Then one girl steps forward, mimicking a drunk man, throws herself on the ground, rolls in the grass, and pretends to be fast asleep. Another girl wakes up the pretend sleeper and kisses him; then the whole group sings as they trip through the forest to make garlands, which they toss into the water. In the fate of the garlands floating on the stream, they read their own futures.333 In this custom, the role of the sleeper was likely once played by a boy. In these French and Russian customs, we have a forsaken bridegroom; in the following, a forsaken bride. On Shrove Tuesday, the Slovenes of Oberkrain pull a straw puppet through the village with joyful shouts, then throw it into the water or burn it, and from the height of the flames, they predict the abundance of the next harvest. The noisy crowd is followed by a female masker, who drags a large board by a string, claiming to be a forsaken bride.334

Viewed in the light of what has gone before, the awakening of the forsaken sleeper in these ceremonies probably represents the revival of vegetation in spring. But it is not easy to assign their respective [pg 097] rôles to the forsaken bridegroom and to the girl who wakes him from his slumber. Is the sleeper the leafless forest or the bare earth of winter? Is the girl who wakens him the fresh verdure or the genial sunshine of spring? It is hardly possible, on the evidence before us, to answer these questions. The Oraons of Bengal, it may be remembered, celebrate the marriage of earth in the springtime, when the sál-tree is in blossom. But from this we can hardly argue that in the European ceremonies the sleeping bridegroom is “the dreaming earth” and the girl the spring blossoms.

Seen in the context of what has come before, the awakening of the abandoned sleeper in these ceremonies likely symbolizes the rebirth of plants in spring. However, it's not easy to define the specific roles of the forsaken bridegroom and the girl who rouses him from his sleep. Is the sleeper the leafless forest or the barren earth of winter? Is the girl who awakens him the fresh greenery or the warm sunshine of spring? It's nearly impossible, based on the evidence we have, to answer these questions. The Oraons of Bengal, for example, celebrate the marriage of the earth in spring when the sál tree is in bloom. But from this, we can't really suggest that in the European ceremonies the sleeping bridegroom is “the dreaming planet” and the girl represents the spring blossoms.

In the Highlands of Scotland the revival of vegetation in spring used to be graphically represented as follows. On Candlemas day (2d February) in the Hebrides “the mistress and servants of each family take a sheaf of oats, and dress it up in women's apparel, put it in a large basket, and lay a wooden club by it, and this they call Brüd's bed; and then the mistress and servants cry three times, Brüd is come, Brüd is welcome. This they do just before going to bed, and when they rise in the morning they look among the ashes, expecting to see the impression of Brüd's club there; which if they do they reckon it a true presage of a good crop and prosperous year, and the contrary they take as an ill omen.”335 The same custom is described by another witness thus: “Upon the night before Candlemas it is usual to make a bed with corn and hay, over which some blankets are laid, in a part of the house near the door. When it is ready, a person goes out and repeats three times, ... ‘Bridget, [pg 098] Bridget, come in; thy bed is ready.’ One or more candles are left burning near it all night.”336

In the Highlands of Scotland, the revival of vegetation in spring used to be illustrated like this. On Candlemas day (February 2) in the Hebrides, The lady of the house and her helpers take a bundle of oats, dress it in women's clothes, place it in a large basket, and set a wooden club next to it, calling this Brüd's bed; then the lady and her helpers shout three times, "Brüd has come, Brüd is welcome." They do this right before going to bed, and when they wake up in the morning, they check the ashes, hoping to find the mark of Brüd's club there; if they see it, they believe it's a sign of a good harvest and a prosperous year, but if not, they take it as a bad omen.335 Another observer describes the same custom this way: On the night before Candlemas, people typically prepare a bed with corn and hay, covered with blankets, in an area of the house near the door. Once it's set up, someone goes outside and calls out three times, ... ‘Bridget, [pg 098] Bridget, come in; your bed is ready.’ A couple of candles are kept burning near it all night.336

Often the marriage of the spirit of vegetation in spring, though not directly represented, is implied by naming the human representative of the spirit “the Bride,” and dressing her in wedding attire. Thus in some villages of Altmark at Whitsuntide, while the boys go about carrying a May-tree or leading a boy enveloped in leaves and flowers, the girls lead about the May Bride, a girl dressed as a bride with a great nosegay in her hair. They go from house to house, the May Bride singing a song in which she asks for a present, and tells the inmates of each house that if they give her something they will themselves have something the whole year through; but if they give her nothing they will themselves have nothing.337 In some parts of Westphalia two girls lead a flower-crowned girl called “the Whitsuntide Bride” from door to door, singing a song in which they ask for eggs.338 In Bresse in the month of May a girl called la Mariée is tricked out with ribbons and nosegays and is led about by a gallant. She is preceded by a lad carrying a green May-tree, and appropriate verses are sung.339

Often, the marriage of the spirit of vegetation in spring, though not directly shown, is implied by naming the human representative of the spirit "the Bride," and dressing her in wedding clothes. In some villages of Altmark at Whitsuntide, while the boys carry a May-tree or lead a boy wrapped in leaves and flowers, the girls lead the May Bride, a girl dressed as a bride with a large bouquet in her hair. They go from house to house, with the May Bride singing a song where she asks for a gift, telling the residents of each house that if they give her something, they will have good fortune for the whole year; but if they give her nothing, they will end up with nothing.337 In some parts of Westphalia, two girls lead a flower-crowned girl called "The Whitsun Bride" from door to door, singing a song where they ask for eggs.338 In Bresse in May, a girl called the Bride is decked out with ribbons and flowers and led around by a young man. She is preceded by a boy carrying a green May-tree, and they sing appropriate verses.339

§ 5.—Tree worship in ancient times.

Such then are some of the ways in which the tree-spirit or the spirit of vegetation is represented [pg 099] in the customs of our European peasantry. From the remarkable persistence and similarity of such customs all over Europe we are justified in concluding that tree-worship was once an important element in the religion of the Aryan race in Europe, and that the rites and ceremonies of the worship were marked by great uniformity everywhere, and did not substantially differ from those which are still or were till lately observed by our peasants at their spring and midsummer festivals. For these rites bear internal marks of great antiquity, and this internal evidence is confirmed by the resemblance which the rites bear to those of rude peoples elsewhere.340 Therefore it is hardly rash to infer, from this consensus of popular customs, that the Greeks and Romans, like the other Aryan peoples of Europe, once practised forms of tree-worship similar to those which are still kept up by our peasantry. In the palmy days of ancient civilisation, no doubt, the worship had sunk to the level of vulgar superstition and rustic merrymaking, as it has done among ourselves. We need not therefore be surprised that the traces of such popular rites are few and slight in ancient literature. They are not less so in the polite literature of modern Europe; and the negative argument cannot be allowed to go for more in the one case than in the other. Enough, however, of positive evidence remains to confirm the presumption drawn from analogy. Much of this evidence has been collected and analysed with his usual learning and judgment by W. Mannhardt.341 Here I shall content myself with citing certain Greek festivals which seem to be [pg 100] the classical equivalents of an English May Day in the olden time.

Such then are some of the ways in which the tree-spirit or the spirit of vegetation is represented [pg 099] in the customs of our European peasantry. Given the remarkable persistence and similarity of these customs throughout Europe, we can conclude that tree-worship was once a significant part of the religion of the Aryan people in Europe, and that the rites and ceremonies of this worship were quite uniform and similar to those still observed by our peasants during their spring and midsummer celebrations. These rites show clear signs of great ancient roots, and this internal evidence is backed up by their similarities to the rituals of primitive peoples elsewhere.340 Therefore, it's reasonable to suggest that the Greeks and Romans, like other Aryan groups in Europe, once practiced forms of tree-worship similar to those still celebrated by our peasantry. In the glorious days of ancient civilization, it's likely that this worship devolved into a mix of common superstition and local festivities, just as it has in our time. Thus, we shouldn't be surprised that the remnants of such popular rites are few and faint in ancient literature. They are equally scarce in the refined literature of modern Europe; this lack of evidence should hold the same weight in both cases. However, enough positive evidence still exists to support the inference drawn from analogy. Much of this evidence has been gathered and examined with his usual expertise and insight by W. Mannhardt.341 Here, I will limit myself to mentioning certain Greek festivals that seem to be [pg 100] the classical equivalents of an English May Day from the past.

Every few years the Boeotians of Plataea held a festival which they called the Little Daedala. On the day of the festival they went out into an ancient oak forest, the trees of which were of gigantic girth. Here they set some boiled meat on the ground, and watched the birds that gathered round it. When a raven was observed to carry off a piece of the meat and settle on an oak, the people followed it and cut down the tree. With the wood of the tree they made an image, dressed it as a bride, and placed it on a bullock-cart with a bridesmaid beside it. It seems then to have been drawn to the banks of the river Asopus and back to the town, attended by a piping and dancing crowd. After the festival the image was put away and kept till the celebration of the Great Daedala, which fell only once in sixty years. On this great occasion all the images that had accumulated from the celebrations of the Little Daedala were dragged on carts in solemn procession to the river Asopus, and then to the top of Mount Cithaeron. Here an altar had been constructed of square blocks of wood fitted together and surmounted by a heap of brushwood. Animals were sacrificed by being burned on the altar, and the altar itself, together with the images, were consumed by the flames. The blaze, we are told, rose to a prodigious height and was seen for many miles. To explain the origin of the festival it was said that once upon a time Hera had quarrelled with Zeus and left him in high dudgeon. To lure her back Zeus gave out that he was about to marry the nymph Plataea, daughter of the river Asopus. He caused a wooden image to be made, dressed and veiled as a bride, and conveyed on [pg 101] a bullock-cart. Transported with rage and jealousy, Hera flew to the cart, and tearing off the veil of the pretended bride, discovered the deceit that had been practised on her. Her rage was now changed to laughter, and she became reconciled to her husband Zeus.342

Every few years, the people of Plataea in Boeotia held a festival called the Little Daedala. On the day of the festival, they ventured into an ancient oak forest filled with massive trees. They placed some boiled meat on the ground and observed the birds that came to eat it. When they saw a raven take a piece of meat and land on an oak tree, the people followed it and cut down the tree. They used the wood to create an image, dressed it like a bride, and placed it on a bullock cart with a bridesmaid next to it. The cart was then pulled to the banks of the river Asopus and back to the town, accompanied by a crowd of musicians and dancers. After the festival, the image was stored until the Great Daedala, which occurred only once every sixty years. During this major event, all the images collected from the Little Daedala were paraded on carts to the river Asopus and then to the top of Mount Cithaeron. An altar made of square blocks of wood, topped with a pile of brushwood, was built there. Animals were sacrificed by burning them on the altar, which, along with the images, was consumed by the flames. The fire, it is said, rose to an incredible height and could be seen for many miles. As for the festival’s origins, it is said that Hera once quarreled with Zeus and left him in anger. To win her back, Zeus claimed he was going to marry the nymph Plataea, daughter of the river Asopus. He had a wooden image created, dressed and veiled like a bride, and placed it on a bullock cart. Furious with rage and jealousy, Hera rushed to the cart, tore off the veil of the false bride, and realized the trick that had been played on her. Her anger turned to laughter, and she reconciled with her husband Zeus.342

The resemblance of this festival to some of the European spring and midsummer festivals is tolerably close. We have seen that in Russia at Whitsuntide the villagers go out into the wood, fell a birch-tree, dress it in woman's clothes, and bring it back to the village with dance and song. On the third day it is thrown into the water.343 Again, we have seen that in Bohemia on Midsummer Eve the village lads fell a tall fir or pine-tree in the wood and set it up on a height, where it is adorned with garlands, nosegays, and ribbons, and afterwards burnt.344 The reason for burning the tree will appear afterwards; the custom itself is not uncommon in modern Europe. In some parts of the Pyrenees a tall and slender tree is cut down on May Day and kept till Midsummer Eve. It is then rolled to the top of a hill, set up, and burned.345 In Angoulême on St. Peter's Day, 29th June, a tall leafy poplar is set up in the market-place and burned.346 In Cornwall “there was formerly a great bonfire on midsummer-eve; a large summer pole was fixed in the centre, round which the fuel was heaped up. It had a large bush on the top of it.”347 In Dublin on May-morning boys used to go out and cut a May-bush, bring it back to town, and then burn it.348

The similarity of this festival to some of the European spring and midsummer festivals is pretty close. We've seen that in Russia at Whitsuntide, the villagers head out into the woods, chop down a birch tree, dress it in women's clothes, and bring it back to the village with dance and song. On the third day, it gets thrown into the water.343 Similarly, in Bohemia on Midsummer Eve, the village guys cut down a tall fir or pine tree in the woods and set it up on a hill, where it's decorated with garlands, flowers, and ribbons, and then later burned.344 The reason for burning the tree will be explained later; this custom is not uncommon in modern Europe. In some areas of the Pyrenees, a tall and slender tree is cut down on May Day and kept until Midsummer Eve. It is then rolled to the top of a hill, set up, and burned.345 In Angoulême on St. Peter's Day, June 29th, a tall leafy poplar is erected in the market square and burned.346 In Cornwall "There used to be a huge bonfire on midsummer eve; a tall summer pole was placed in the center, surrounded by piles of fuel. It had a large bush on top."347 In Dublin on May morning, boys used to go out, cut a May-bush, bring it back to town, and then burn it.348

[pg 102]

Probably the Boeotian festival belonged to the same class of rites. It represented the marriage of the powers of vegetation in spring or midsummer, just as the same event is represented in modern Europe by a King and Queen or a Lord and Lady of the May. In the Boeotian, as in the Russian, ceremony the tree dressed as a woman represents the English May-pole and May-queen in one. All such ceremonies, it must be remembered, are not, or at least were not originally, mere spectacular or dramatic exhibitions. They are magical charms designed to produce the effect which they dramatically represent. If the revival of vegetation in spring is represented by the awakening of a sleeper, the representation is intended actually to quicken the growth of leaves and blossoms; if the marriage of the powers of vegetation is represented by a King and Queen of May, the idea is that the powers so represented will really be rendered more productive by the ceremony. In short, all these spring and midsummer festivals fall under the head of sympathetic magic. The event which it is desired to bring about is represented dramatically, and the very representation is believed to effect, or at least to contribute to, the production of the desired event. In the case of the Daedala the story of Hera's quarrel with Zeus and her sullen retirement may perhaps without straining be interpreted as a mythical expression for a bad season and the failure of the crops. The same disastrous effects were attributed to the anger and seclusion of Demeter after the loss of her daughter Proserpine.349 Now the institution of a festival is often explained by a mythical story of the occurrence upon a particular occasion of those very calamities which it is the real [pg 103] object of the festival to avert; so that if we know the myth told to account for the historical origin of the festival, we can often infer from it the real intention with which the festival was celebrated. If, therefore, the origin of the Daedala was explained by a story of a failure of crops and consequent famine, we may infer that the real object of the festival was to prevent the occurrence of such disasters; and, if I am right in my interpretation of the festival, the object was supposed to be effected by a dramatic representation of the marriage of the divinities most concerned with the production of vegetation.350 The marriage of Zeus and Hera was dramatically represented at annual festivals in various parts of Greece,351 and it is at least a fair conjecture that the nature and intention of these ceremonies were such as I have assigned to the Plataean festival of the Daedala; in other words, that Zeus and Hera at these festivals were the Greek equivalents of the Lord and Lady of the May. Homer's glowing picture of Zeus and Hera couched on fresh hyacinths and crocuses,352 like Milton's description of the dalliance of Zephyr and Aurora, “as he met her once a-Maying,” was perhaps painted from the life.

Probably the Boeotian festival was part of the same type of rites. It symbolized the union of nature's powers in spring or mid-summer, similar to how the same event is represented in modern Europe by a King and Queen or a Lord and Lady of the May. In the Boeotian, like in the Russian, ceremony, the tree dressed as a woman serves as a representation of the English May-pole and May-queen combined. It’s important to note that all such ceremonies are not, or at least weren't originally, just spectacular or dramatic performances. They are magical charms aimed at bringing about the effect they portray. If the revival of nature in spring is depicted as the awakening of a sleeper, the representation is meant to actually stimulate the growth of leaves and blossoms; if the marriage of the powers of nature is shown by a King and Queen of May, the idea is that the powers being represented will genuinely be made more fruitful through the ceremony. In short, all these spring and midsummer festivals fall under the category of sympathetic magic. The event that is desired to happen is dramatically portrayed, and this very portrayal is believed to cause, or at least help with, the occurrence of the desired event. In the case of the Daedala, the story of Hera's dispute with Zeus and her sulking withdrawal may, without stretching things too much, be seen as a mythical representation of a poor season and crop failure. The same disastrous results were attributed to Demeter's anger and withdrawal after the loss of her daughter Proserpine. Now, the establishment of a festival is often explained by a mythical story about a specific instance of those very misfortunes that the festival aims to avert; therefore, if we know the myth that explains the historical origin of the festival, we can often infer the true intention behind the festival's celebration. If the origin of the Daedala was explained by a story of failing crops and resulting famine, we can infer that the actual aim of the festival was to prevent such disasters; and if I am correct in my interpretation of the festival, the goal was thought to be achieved through a dramatic portrayal of the union of the deities most involved in ensuring vegetation's growth. The marriage of Zeus and Hera was dramatically presented at annual festivals in various parts of Greece, and it is at least a reasonable guess that the nature and aim of these ceremonies were similar to what I have assigned to the Plataean festival of the Daedala; in other words, that Zeus and Hera at these festivals were the Greek counterparts of the Lord and Lady of the May. Homer's vivid image of Zeus and Hera lying on fresh hyacinths and crocuses, like Milton's description of Zephyr and Aurora’s flirtation, “as he met her once a-Maying,” may have been inspired by real life.

Still more confidently may the same character be vindicated for the annual marriage at Athens of the [pg 104] Queen to Dionysus in the Flowery Month (Anthesterion) of spring.353 For Dionysus, as we shall see later on, was essentially a god of vegetation, and the Queen at Athens was a purely religious or priestly functionary.354 Therefore at their annual marriage in spring he can hardly have been anything but a King, and she a Queen, of May. The women who attended the Queen at the marriage ceremony would correspond to the bridesmaids who wait on the May-queen.355 Again, the story, dear to poets and artists, of the forsaken and sleeping Ariadne waked and wedded by Dionysus, resembles so closely the little drama acted by French peasants of the Alps on May Day356 that, considering the character of Dionysus as a god of vegetation, we can hardly help regarding it as the description of a spring ceremony corresponding to the French one. In point of fact the marriage of Dionysus and Ariadne is believed by Preller to have been acted every spring in Crete.357 His evidence, indeed, is inconclusive, but the view itself is probable. If I am right in instituting the comparison, the chief difference between the French and the Greek ceremonies must have been that in the former the sleeper was the forsaken bridegroom, in the latter the forsaken bride; and the group of stars in the sky, in which fancy saw Ariadne's wedding-crown,358 could only have been a translation to heaven of the garland worn by the Greek girl who played the Queen of May.

Still more confidently can the same character be justified for the annual marriage in Athens of the [pg 104] Queen to Dionysus in the Flowery Month (Anthesterion) of spring.353 Because Dionysus, as we will discuss later, was fundamentally a god of vegetation, and the Queen in Athens was primarily a religious or priestly figure.354 So, during their annual marriage in spring, he likely represented a King, and she a Queen, of May. The women who accompanied the Queen during the wedding ceremony would be similar to the bridesmaids who support the May-queen.355 Furthermore, the tale, cherished by poets and artists, of the abandoned and sleeping Ariadne being awakened and married by Dionysus mirrors so closely the small drama performed by French peasants in the Alps on May Day356 that, given Dionysus's nature as a god of vegetation, we can hardly see it as anything but a depiction of a spring ceremony akin to the French one. In fact, the marriage of Dionysus and Ariadne is thought by Preller to have been enacted every spring in Crete.357 His evidence may be inconclusive, but the idea itself is plausible. If I am correct in making this comparison, the main difference between the French and the Greek ceremonies must have been that in the former the sleeper was the abandoned bridegroom, and in the latter, the abandoned bride; and the group of stars in the sky, which imagination saw as Ariadne's wedding-crown,358 could only have been a celestial version of the garland worn by the Greek girl portraying the Queen of May.

On the whole, alike from the analogy of modern [pg 105] folk-custom and from the facts of ancient ritual and mythology, we are justified in concluding that the archaic forms of tree-worship disclosed by the spring and midsummer festivals of our peasants were practised by the Greeks and Romans in prehistoric times. Do then these forms of tree-worship help to explain the priesthood of Aricia, the subject of our inquiry? I believe they do. In the first place the attributes of Diana, the goddess of the Arician grove, are those of a tree-spirit or sylvan deity. Her sanctuaries were in groves, indeed every grove was her sanctuary,359 and she is often associated with the wood-god Silvanus in inscriptions.360 Like a tree-spirit, she helped women in travail, and in this respect her reputation appears to have stood high at the Arician grove, if we may judge from the votive offerings found on the spot.361 Again, she was the patroness of wild animals;362 just as in Finland the wood-god Tapio was believed to care for the wild creatures that roamed the wood, they being considered his cattle.363 So, too, the Samogitians deemed the birds and beasts of the woods sacred, doubtless because they were under the protection of the god of the wood.364 Again, there are indications that domestic cattle were protected by Diana,365 as they certainly were supposed to be by Silvanus.366 But we have seen that special influence over cattle is ascribed to wood-spirits; in Finland the herds enjoyed the protection of the wood-gods both while they were [pg 106] in their stalls and while they strayed in the forest.367 Lastly, in the sacred spring which bubbled, and the perpetual fire which seems to have burned in the Arician grove,368 we may perhaps detect traces of other attributes of forest gods, the power, namely, to make the rain to fall and the sun to shine.369 This last attribute perhaps explains why Virbius, the companion deity of Diana at Nemi, was by some believed to be the sun.370

On the whole, based on the similarities in modern [pg 105] folk customs and the evidence from ancient rituals and mythology, we can conclude that the early forms of tree-worship observed during the spring and midsummer festivals by our peasants were also practiced by the Greeks and Romans in prehistoric times. So, do these forms of tree-worship help clarify the priesthood of Aricia, the focus of our study? I believe they do. First, the characteristics of Diana, the goddess of the Arician grove, align with those of a tree spirit or forest deity. Her sanctuaries were located in groves, and every grove was considered her sanctuary, 359 and she is often linked with the wood-god Silvanus in inscriptions.360 Like a tree spirit, she assisted women during childbirth, and her reputation in this regard seems to have been high at the Arician grove, as indicated by the votive offerings discovered there.361 Additionally, she served as the protector of wild animals; 362 similar to how in Finland, the wood-god Tapio was believed to care for the wild animals of the forest, which were considered his livestock.363 Likewise, the Samogitians regarded the birds and beasts of the woods as sacred, likely because they were under the protection of the wood god.364 Furthermore, there are signs that Diana also protected domestic cattle,365 just as Silvanus was certainly believed to do.366 But we have seen that specific influence over cattle is attributed to wood spirits; in Finland, herds were thought to be safeguarded by wood gods both when they were [pg 106] in their stalls and while they roamed in the forest.367 Finally, in the sacred spring that bubbled up and the eternal fire that seems to have burned in the Arician grove,368 we may potentially see signs of other powers attributed to forest gods, specifically the ability to make rain fall and the sun shine.369 This last attribute might explain why Virbius, the companion deity of Diana at Nemi, was believed by some to be the sun.370

Thus the cult of the Arician grove was essentially that of a tree-spirit or wood deity. But our examination of European folk-custom demonstrated that a tree-spirit is frequently represented by a living person, who is regarded as an embodiment of the tree-spirit and possessed of its fertilising powers; and our previous survey of primitive belief proved that this conception of a god incarnate in a living man is common among rude races. Further we have seen that the living person who is believed to embody in himself the tree-spirit is often called a king, in which respect, again, he strictly represents the tree-spirit. For the sacred cedar of the Gilgit tribes is called, as we have seen, “the Dreadful King”;371 and the chief forest god of the Finns, by name Tapio, represented as an old man with a brown beard, a high hat of fir-cones and a coat of tree-moss, was styled the Wood King, Lord of the Woodland, Golden King of the Wood.372 May not then the King of the Wood in the Arician grove have been, like the King of May, the Grass King, and the like, an incarnation of the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation? His title, his sacred [pg 107] office, and his residence in the grove all point to this conclusion, which is confirmed by his relation to the Golden Bough. For since the King of the Wood could only be assailed by him who had plucked the Golden Bough, his life was safe from assault so long as the bough or the tree on which it grew remained uninjured. In a sense, therefore, his life was bound up with that of the tree; and thus to some extent he stood to the tree in the same relation in which the incorporate or immanent tree-spirit stands to it. The representation of the tree-spirit both by the King of the Wood and by the Golden Bough (for it will hardly be disputed that the Golden Bough was looked upon as a very special manifestation of the divine life of the grove) need not surprise us, since we have found that the tree-spirit is not unfrequently thus represented in double, first by a tree or a bough, and second by a living person.

The cult of the Arician grove was fundamentally centered around a tree spirit or wood deity. However, our exploration of European folk customs showed that tree spirits are often represented by living individuals seen as embodiments of these spirits, possessing their life-giving powers. Additionally, our earlier study of primitive beliefs revealed that the idea of a god manifesting in a living person is common among primitive cultures. Furthermore, we've observed that the individual believed to embody the tree spirit is often referred to as a king, reinforcing his representation of the tree spirit. For instance, the sacred cedar of the Gilgit tribes is called “the Dreadful King”; and the chief forest god of the Finns, known as Tapio, is depicted as an old man with a brown beard, wearing a high hat made of fir cones and a coat of tree moss, termed the Wood King, Lord of the Woodland, Golden King of the Wood. Thus, could the King of the Wood in the Arician grove have been, like the King of May, the Grass King, and others, an incarnation of the tree spirit or spirit of vegetation? His title, sacred role, and residence in the grove all point to this conclusion, which is supported by his connection to the Golden Bough. Since the King of the Wood could only be attacked by someone who had plucked the Golden Bough, his life was safe as long as the bough or the tree it grew on remained unharmed. In a way, his life was intertwined with that of the tree; thus, he related to the tree similarly to how the embodied or immanent tree spirit relates to it. The representation of the tree spirit by both the King of the Wood and the Golden Bough (as it's unlikely to dispute that the Golden Bough was seen as a unique manifestation of the grove's divine essence) should not surprise us, since we've found that tree spirits are commonly represented in dual forms, first by a tree or bough and second by a living person.

On the whole then, if we consider his double character as king and priest, his relation to the Golden Bough, and the strictly woodland character of the divinity of the grove, we may provisionally assume that the King of the Wood, like the May King and his congeners of Northern Europe, was deemed a living incarnation of the tree-spirit. As such he would be credited with those miraculous powers of sending rain and sunshine, making the crops to grow, women to bring forth, and flocks and herds to multiply, which are popularly ascribed to the tree-spirit itself. The reputed possessor of powers so exalted must have been a very important personage, and in point of fact his influence appears to have extended far and wide. For373 in the days when the champaign country around was [pg 108] still parcelled out among the petty tribes who composed the Latin League, the sacred grove on the Alban Mountain is known to have been an object of their common reverence and care. And just as the kings of Cambodia used to send offerings to the mystic Kings of Fire and Water far in the dim depths of the tropical forest, so, we may well believe, from all sides of the broad Latian plain the eyes and steps of Italian pilgrims turned to the quarter where, standing sharply out against the faint blue line of the Apennines or the deeper blue of the distant sea, the Alban Mountain rose before them, the home of the mysterious priest of Nemi, the King of the Wood.

Overall, if we look at his dual role as king and priest, his connection to the Golden Bough, and the strong association of the divinity of the grove with the woods, we can tentatively conclude that the King of the Wood, like the May King and similar figures in Northern Europe, was seen as a living embodiment of the tree spirit. In this role, he would be credited with miraculous abilities to bring rain and sunshine, help crops grow, enable women to give birth, and ensure flocks and herds multiply, which are commonly attributed to the tree spirit itself. A person with such remarkable powers must have been very significant, and indeed his influence seems to have reached far and wide. During the time when the open fields around were still divided among the small tribes that made up the Latin League, the sacred grove on the Alban Mountain was known to be a place of shared reverence and care for them. Similarly, just as the kings of Cambodia would send offerings to the mystical Kings of Fire and Water deep in the tropical forest, we can believe that from all corners of the vast Latian plain, the gazes and journeys of Italian pilgrims were directed toward the place where, standing out sharply against the faint blue line of the Apennines or the deeper blue of the distant sea, the Alban Mountain towered above them, home to the mysterious priest of Nemi, the King of the Wood.

[pg 109]

Chapter II. The Dangers of the Soul.

“O dear fleeting soul”
You are so anxious and in pain!

Heine.

Heine.

§ 1.—Royal and priestly bans.

In the preceding chapter we saw that in early society the king or priest is often thought to be endowed with supernatural powers or to be an incarnation of a deity; in consequence of which the course of nature is supposed to be more or less under his control, and he is held responsible for bad weather, failure of the crops, and similar calamities. Thus far it appears to be assumed that the king's power over nature, like that over his subjects and slaves, is exerted through definite acts of will; and therefore if drought, famine, pestilence, or storms arise, the people attribute the misfortune to the negligence or guilt of their king, and punish him accordingly with stripes and bonds, or, if he remains obdurate, with deposition and death. Sometimes, however, the course of nature, while regarded as dependent on the king, is supposed to be partly independent of his will. His person is considered, if we may express it so, as the [pg 110] dynamical centre of the universe, from which lines of force radiate to all quarters of the heaven; so that any motion of his—the turning of his head, the lifting of his hand—instantaneously affects and may seriously disturb some part of nature. He is the point of support on which hangs the balance of the world; and the slightest irregularity on his part may overthrow the delicate equipoise. The greatest care must, therefore, be taken both by and of him; and his whole life, down to its minutest details, must be so regulated that no act of his, voluntary or involuntary, may disarrange or upset the established order of nature. Of this class of monarchs the Mikado or Dairi, the spiritual emperor of Japan, is a typical example. He is an incarnation of the sun goddess, the deity who rules the universe, gods and men included; once a year all the gods wait upon him and spend a month at his court. During that month, the name of which means “without gods,” no one frequents the temples, for they are believed to be deserted.374

In the previous chapter, we learned that in early societies, the king or priest was often seen as having supernatural powers or as being a manifestation of a deity. Because of this, people believed that he had some control over the forces of nature, and he was held accountable for things like bad weather, crop failures, and other disasters. It seems to be assumed that the king's power over nature, just like his power over his subjects and slaves, is exercised through specific decisions; therefore, when drought, famine, disease, or storms occur, the people blame their king for his negligence or wrongdoing and punish him accordingly—either through physical punishment or, if he remains stubborn, through removal from power or death. However, there are times when the natural world, while viewed as being under the king's influence, is thought to be partly beyond his control. His existence is seen as the central point of the universe, from which force radiates in all directions; any movement he makes—the tilt of his head or the raise of his hand—can instantly impact and potentially disrupt some aspect of nature. He is the fulcrum on which the balance of the world depends, so even the slightest deviation from his behavior can upset this delicate equilibrium. Therefore, both he and those around him must take great care; his entire life, down to the smallest details, must be managed in such a way that no voluntary or involuntary action of his disrupts the established order of nature. A typical example of such a monarch is the Mikado or Dairi, the spiritual emperor of Japan. He is seen as an incarnation of the sun goddess, the deity who governs the universe, which includes both gods and humans; once a year, all the gods come to serve him and spend a month at his court. During that month, referred to as “without gods,” no one visits the temples, as they are believed to be empty.

The following description of the Mikado's mode of life was written about two hundred years ago:375

The following description of the Mikado's lifestyle was written around two hundred years ago:375

“Even to this day the princes descended of this family, more particularly those who sit on the throne, are looked upon as persons most holy in themselves, and as Popes by birth. And, in order to preserve these advantageous notions in the minds of their subjects, they are obliged to take an uncommon care of their sacred persons, and to do such things, which, examined according to the customs of other nations, [pg 111] would be thought ridiculous and impertinent. It will not be improper to give a few instances of it. He thinks that it would be very prejudicial to his dignity and holiness to touch the ground with his feet; for this reason, when he intends to go anywhere, he must be carried thither on men's shoulders. Much less will they suffer that he should expose his sacred person to the open air, and the sun is not thought worthy to shine on his head. There is such a holiness ascribed to all the parts of his body, that he dares to cut off neither his hair, nor his beard, nor his nails. However, lest he should grow too dirty, they may clean him in the night when he is asleep; because, they say, that which is taken from his body at that time hath been stolen from him, and that such a theft doth not prejudice his holiness or dignity. In ancient times, he was obliged to sit on the throne for some hours every morning, with the imperial crown on his head, but to sit altogether like a statue, without stirring either hands or feet, head or eyes, nor indeed any part of his body, because, by this means, it was thought that he could preserve peace and tranquillity in his empire; for if, unfortunately, he turned himself on one side or the other, or if he looked a good while towards any part of his dominions, it was apprehended that war, famine, fire, or some great misfortune was near at hand to desolate the country. But it having been afterwards discovered that the imperial crown was the palladium which by its mobility could preserve peace in the empire, it was thought expedient to deliver his imperial person, consecrated only to idleness and pleasures, from this burthensome duty, and therefore the crown is at present placed on the throne for some hours every morning. His victuals must be dressed [pg 112] every time in new pots, and served at table in new dishes: both are very clean and neat, but made only of common clay; that without any considerable expense they may be laid aside, or broken, after they have served once. They are generally broke, for fear they should come into the hands of laymen, for they believe religiously that if any layman should presume to eat his food out of these sacred dishes, it would swell and inflame his mouth and throat. The like ill effect is dreaded from the Dairi's sacred habits; for they believe that if a layman should wear them, without the Emperor's express leave or command, they would occasion swellings and pains in all parts of his body.” To the same effect an earlier account of the Mikado says: “It was considered as a shameful degradation for him even to touch the ground with his foot. The sun and moon were not even permitted to shine upon his head. None of the superfluities of the body were ever taken from him, neither his hair, his beard, nor his nails were cut. Whatever he eat was dressed in new vessels.”376

Even today, the princes from this family, especially those on the throne, are regarded as extremely holy and almost like Popes by birth. To keep this perception among their subjects, they have to take exceptional care of their sacred selves and do things that, judged by the customs of other nations, [pg 111] would seem absurd and pointless. Here are a few examples. They believe it's beneath his dignity and holiness to let his feet touch the ground, so when he needs to go somewhere, he must be carried on men's shoulders. They would never allow him to expose his sacred self to the open air, and they think the sun isn't worthy to shine on his head. There’s such a high level of holiness attributed to every part of his body that he can’t cut his hair, beard, or nails. However, to keep him from getting too dirty, they can clean him at night while he sleeps, because it's said that anything taken from his body during that time isn't really stolen and doesn’t affect his holiness or dignity. In ancient times, he used to have to sit on the throne for several hours every morning, wearing the imperial crown, but he had to remain completely still, like a statue, without moving his hands, feet, head, eyes, or any part of his body because it was believed this would help maintain peace and calm in his empire. If he accidentally turned to one side or looked at any part of his realm for too long, it was thought that war, famine, fire, or some great disaster would soon come to the land. However, it was later discovered that the imperial crown was the protective symbol that could maintain peace in the empire through its mobility, so it was considered wise to relieve his imperial person, which was meant only for idleness and pleasure, from this heavy responsibility, and now the crown is placed on the throne for several hours each morning. His food has to be prepared [pg 112] in new pots each time and served on new dishes: both are very clean but made from regular clay, so they can be discarded or broken after one use without much cost. They are usually broken to keep them from going to commoners, as they firmly believe that if a commoner were to eat from these sacred dishes, it would cause swelling and inflammation in their mouth and throat. They have similar fears regarding the Dairi's sacred garments, believing that if a commoner were to wear them without the Emperor's specific permission, it would lead to swellings and pains throughout their body. To the same effect, an earlier account of the Mikado states: “It was considered a disgrace for him to even touch the ground with his foot. The sun and moon were not allowed to shine on him. He was never to have any extra parts of his body removed, including his hair, beard, or nails. Everything he ate had to be prepared in new containers.”376

Similar priestly or rather divine kings are found, at a lower level of barbarism, on the west coast of Africa. At Shark Point near Cape Padron, in Lower Guinea, lives the priestly king Kukulu, alone in a wood. He may not touch a woman nor leave his house; indeed he may not even quit his chair, in which he is obliged to sleep sitting, for if he lay down no wind would arise and navigation would be stopped. He regulates storms, and in general maintains a wholesome and [pg 113] equable state of the atmosphere.377 In the kingdom of Congo (West Africa) there was a supreme pontiff called Chitomé or Chitombé, whom the negroes regarded as a god on earth and all powerful in heaven. Hence before they would taste the new crops they offered him the first-fruits, fearing that manifold misfortunes would befall them if they broke this rule. When he left his residence to visit other places within his jurisdiction, all married people had to observe strict continence the whole time he was out; for it was supposed that any act of incontinence would prove fatal to him. And if he were to die a natural death, they thought that the world would perish, and the earth, which he alone sustained by his power and merit, would immediately be annihilated.378 Amongst the semi-barbarous nations of the New World, at the date of the Spanish conquest, there were found hierarchies or theocracies like those of Japan. Some of these we have already noticed.379 But the high pontiff of the Zapotecs in Southern Mexico appears to have presented a still closer parallel to the Mikado. A powerful rival to the king himself, this spiritual lord governed Yopaa, one of the chief cities of the kingdom, with absolute dominion. It is impossible, we are told, to over-rate the reverence in which he was held. He was looked on as a god whom the earth was not worthy to hold nor the sun to shine upon. He profaned his sanctity if he even touched the ground with his foot. The officers who bore his palanquin on their shoulders were members of the highest families; he hardly deigned to look on anything [pg 114] around him; and all who met him fell with their faces to the earth, fearing that death would overtake them if they saw even his shadow. A rule of continence was regularly imposed on the Zapotec priests, especially upon the high pontiff; but “on certain days in each year, which were generally celebrated with feasts and dances, it was customary for the high priest to become drunk. While in this state, seeming to belong neither to heaven nor to earth, one of the most beautiful of the virgins consecrated to the service of the gods was brought to him.” If the child she bore him was a son, he was brought up as a prince of the blood, and the eldest son succeeded his father on the pontifical throne.380 The supernatural powers attributed to this pontiff are not specified, but probably they resembled those of the Mikado and Chitomé.

Similar priestly or rather divine kings exist, at a lower level of barbarism, on the west coast of Africa. At Shark Point near Cape Padron, in Lower Guinea, there lives the priestly king Kukulu, alone in a forest. He cannot touch a woman nor leave his house; in fact, he can't even get out of his chair, where he must sleep sitting, because if he lay down, no wind would blow and navigation would be halted. He controls storms and generally maintains a healthy and balanced atmosphere. In the kingdom of Congo (West Africa), there was a supreme pontiff named Chitomé or Chitombé, whom the locals regarded as a god on earth and all-powerful in heaven. Therefore, before they would eat the new crops, they offered him the first fruits, fearing that various misfortunes would befall them if they broke this tradition. When he left his residence to visit other places within his domain, all married people had to practice strict continence for the duration of his absence, as it was believed that any sexual indiscretion would be fatal to him. If he were to die a natural death, they thought that the world would come to an end, and the earth, which only he sustained through his power and merit, would instantly be destroyed. Among the semi-barbarous nations of the New World at the time of the Spanish conquest, hierarchies or theocracies similar to those in Japan were found. Some of these have already been noted. However, the high pontiff of the Zapotecs in Southern Mexico seems to have been an even closer parallel to the Mikado. A powerful rival to the king himself, this spiritual leader governed Yopaa, one of the major cities of the kingdom, with complete authority. It is said that the reverence in which he was held cannot be overstated. He was viewed as a god unworthy of being touched by the earth or shone upon by the sun. He defiled his sanctity if he even touched the ground with his foot. The officials who carried his palanquin were from the highest families; he scarcely lowered his gaze to anything around him, and everyone who encountered him fell to the ground, fearing that death would claim them if they even saw his shadow. A rule of continence was regularly enforced on the Zapotec priests, especially upon the high pontiff; but “on certain days each year, which were generally celebrated with feasts and dances, it was customary for the high priest to become drunk. While in this state, seeming to belong neither to heaven nor to earth, one of the most beautiful virgins consecrated to the service of the gods was brought to him.” If the child she bore him was a son, he was raised as a prince of the blood, and the eldest son succeeded his father on the pontifical throne. The supernatural powers attributed to this pontiff are not specified, but they likely resembled those of the Mikado and Chitomé.

Wherever, as in Japan and West Africa, it is supposed that the order of nature, and even the existence of the world, is bound up with the life of the king or priest, it is clear that he must be regarded by his subjects as a source both of infinite blessing and of infinite danger. On the one hand, the people have to thank him for the rain and sunshine which foster the fruits of the earth, for the wind which brings ships to their coasts, and even for the existence of the earth beneath their feet. But what he gives he can refuse; and so close is the dependence of nature on his person, so delicate the balance of the system of forces whereof he is the centre, that the slightest irregularity on his part may set up a tremor which shall shake the earth to its foundations. And [pg 115] if nature may be disturbed by the slightest involuntary act of the king, it is easy to conceive the convulsion which his death might occasion. The death of the Chitomé, as we have seen, was thought to entail the destruction of the world. Clearly, therefore, out of a regard for their own safety, which might be imperilled by any rash act of the king, and still more by his death, the people will exact of their king or priest a strict conformity to those rules, the observance of which is necessary for his own preservation, and consequently for the preservation of his people and the world. The idea that early kingdoms are despotisms in which the people exist only for the sovereign, is wholly inapplicable to the monarchies we are considering. On the contrary, the sovereign in them exists only for his subjects; his life is only valuable so long as he discharges the duties of his position by ordering the course of nature for his people's benefit. So soon as he fails to do so the care, the devotion, the religious homage which they had hitherto lavished on him, cease and are changed into hatred and contempt; he is dismissed ignominiously, and may be thankful if he escapes with his life. Worshipped as a god by them one day, he is killed by them as a criminal the next. But in this changed behaviour of the people there is nothing capricious or inconsistent. On the contrary, their conduct is entirely of a piece. If their king is their god, he is or should be also their preserver; and if he will not preserve them, he must make room for another who will. So long, however, as he answers their expectations, there is no limit to the care which they take of him, and which they compel him to take of himself. A king of this sort lives hedged in by a ceremonious [pg 116] etiquette, a network of prohibitions and observances, of which the intention is not to contribute to his dignity, much less to his comfort, but to restrain him from conduct which, by disturbing the harmony of nature, might involve himself, his people, and the universe in one common catastrophe. Far from adding to his comfort, these observances, by trammelling his every act, annihilate his freedom and often render the very life, which it is their object to preserve, a burden and sorrow to him.

Wherever, like in Japan and West Africa, people believe that the natural order and even the existence of the world depends on the life of the king or priest, it’s clear that he must be seen by his subjects as both a source of endless blessings and endless dangers. On one hand, the people owe him for the rain and sunshine that nourish the earth's fruits, for the winds that bring ships to their shores, and even for the ground beneath their feet. But what he gives, he can also withhold; and the connection between nature and his presence is so close, and the balance of the forces he represents is so delicate, that even the slightest misstep on his part can cause a tremor that shakes the earth to its core. And if nature can be disrupted by the smallest unintentional action of the king, it’s easy to imagine the chaos his death could cause. As we’ve seen, the death of the Chitomé was believed to threaten the destruction of the world. Therefore, for the sake of their own safety—which could be jeopardized by any reckless act of the king and especially by his death—people demand that their king or priest strictly adhere to the rules necessary for his own survival, and thus for the safety of his people and the world. The idea that early kingdoms are absolute monarchies where people exist only for the sovereign doesn’t apply to the monarchies we’re discussing. Instead, in these societies, the king exists only for his subjects; his life is valuable only as long as he performs his duties by managing nature for the benefit of his people. As soon as he fails to do so, the care, devotion, and religious reverence they previously showed him vanish and turn into hatred and contempt; he is dismissed in disgrace and can consider himself lucky if he escapes with his life. Worshipped like a god one day, he can be executed as a criminal the next. Yet, in this shift of attitude, there’s nothing arbitrary or inconsistent. In fact, their behavior is entirely consistent. If their king is their god, he is meant to be their protector as well; and if he won’t protect them, he must make way for someone who will. However, as long as he meets their expectations, there’s no limit to the care they give him, and which they force him to give himself. A king of this type lives surrounded by a formal etiquette, a web of prohibitions and rituals, not designed to enhance his dignity or comfort, but to prevent him from acting in ways that could disrupt the harmony of nature and lead to disaster for himself, his people, and the entire universe. Far from adding to his comfort, these rituals, by restricting his every action, take away his freedom and can make the very life they aim to preserve a burden and a sorrow for him.

Of the supernaturally endowed kings of Loango it is said that the more powerful a king is, the more taboos is he bound to observe; they regulate all his actions, his walking and his standing, his eating and drinking, his sleeping and waking.381 To these restraints the heir to the throne is subject from infancy; but as he advances in life the number of abstinences and ceremonies which he must observe increases, “until at the moment that he ascends the throne he is lost in the ocean of rites and taboos.”382 The kings of Egypt, as we have seen,383 were worshipped as gods, and the routine of their daily life was regulated in every detail by precise and unvarying rules. “The life of the kings of Egypt,” says Diodorus,384 “was not like that of other monarchs who are irresponsible and may do just what they choose; on the contrary, everything was fixed for them by law, not only their official duties, but even the details of their daily life.... The hours both of day and night were arranged at which the king had to do, not what he pleased, but what was prescribed for him.... For not only were the times [pg 117] appointed at which he should transact public business or sit in judgment; but the very hours for his walking and bathing and sleeping with his wife, and, in short, performing every act of life, were all settled. Custom enjoined a simple diet; the only flesh he might eat was veal and goose, and he might only drink a prescribed quantity of wine.” Of the taboos imposed on priests, the rules of life observed by the Flamen Dialis at Rome furnish a striking example. As the worship of Virbius at Nemi was conducted, as we have seen,385 by a Flamen, who may possibly have been the King of the Wood himself, and whose mode of life may have resembled that of the Roman Flamen, these rules have a special interest for us. They were such as the following: The Flamen Dialis might not ride or even touch a horse, nor see an army under arms, nor wear a ring which was not broken, nor have a knot on any part of his garments; no fire except a sacred fire might be taken out of his house; he might not touch wheaten flour or leavened bread; he might not touch or even name a goat, a dog, raw meat, beans, and ivy; he might not walk under a vine; the feet of his bed had to be daubed with mud; his hair could be cut only by a free man and with a bronze knife, and his hair and nails when cut had to be buried under a lucky tree; he might not touch a dead body nor enter a place where one was burned; he might not see work being done on holy days; he might not be uncovered in the open air; if a man in bonds were taken into his house, he had to be unbound and the cords had to be drawn up through a hole in the roof and so let down into the street. His wife, the Flaminica, had to observe nearly the same rules, and others of her own [pg 118] besides. She might not ascend more than three steps of the kind of staircase called Greek; at a certain festival she might not comb her hair; the leather of her shoes might not be made from a beast that had died a natural death, but only from one that had been slain or sacrificed; if she heard thunder she was tabooed till she had offered an expiatory sacrifice.386

Of the supernaturally gifted kings of Loango, it is said that the more powerful a king is, the more taboos he has to follow; these rules control everything about him, including how he walks and stands, eats and drinks, sleeps and wakes.381 The heir to the throne is subject to these restrictions from a young age; however, as he grows older, the number of abstentions and ceremonies he must follow increases, “until the moment he takes the throne, he is overwhelmed by a sea of rituals and restrictions.”382 The kings of Egypt, as we have seen,383 were worshiped as gods, and every detail of their daily lives was dictated by strict and unchanging rules. "The lives of the kings of Egypt," says Diodorus,384 “was not like other monarchs who are irresponsible and do whatever they want; instead, everything was regulated by law, including their official responsibilities and even the specifics of their daily routines.... The times for both day and night were scheduled for the king to act, not according to his wishes, but as mandated.... Not only were there specific times for him to conduct public business or hold court; even the exact times for walking, bathing, sleeping with his wife, and essentially every aspect of his life were predetermined. Tradition required a simple diet; he could only eat veal and goose, and there was a limited amount of wine he was allowed to drink.” Of the taboos imposed on priests, the lifestyle rules followed by the Flamen Dialis in Rome provide a striking example. As the worship of Virbius at Nemi was conducted, as we have seen,385 by a Flamen, who may have been the King of the Wood himself, and whose way of life may have been similar to that of the Roman Flamen, these rules are particularly interesting for us. They included the following: The Flamen Dialis could not ride or even touch a horse, nor see an army preparing for battle, nor wear a ring that wasn't broken, nor have a knot on any part of his clothing; no fire except a sacred fire could be taken out of his house; he could not touch wheat flour or leavened bread; he could not touch or even name a goat, a dog, raw meat, beans, or ivy; he could not walk under a vine; the feet of his bed had to be coated in mud; his hair could only be cut by a free man with a bronze knife, and his hair and nails when cut had to be buried under a lucky tree; he could not touch a dead body or enter a place where one was being burned; he could not witness work being done on holy days; he could not be uncovered outdoors; if a bound man were brought into his house, he had to be unbound and the cords had to be lifted through a hole in the roof, then lowered into the street. His wife, the Flaminica, had to follow nearly the same rules, along with some of her own [pg 118]. She could not climb more than three steps of a staircase called Greek; at a certain festival, she could not comb her hair; the leather of her shoes could not be made from an animal that died naturally, but only from one that was slaughtered or sacrificed; if she heard thunder, she was considered taboo until she offered an expiatory sacrifice.386

The burdensome observances attached to the royal or priestly office produced their natural effect. Either men refused to accept the office, which hence tended to fall into abeyance; or accepting it, they sank under its weight into spiritless creatures, cloistered recluses, from whose nerveless fingers the reigns of government slipped into the firmer grasp of men who were often content to wield the reality of sovereignty without its name. In some countries this rift in the supreme power deepened into a total and permanent separation of the spiritual and temporal powers, the old royal house retaining their purely religious functions, while the civil government passed into the hands of a younger and more vigorous race.

The heavy obligations tied to royal or priestly positions had their expected consequences. People either declined to take on the role, causing it to become obsolete, or, if they did accept it, they became overwhelmed and turned into lifeless figures, isolated recluses, from whom the control of governance slipped away into the stronger hands of individuals who were often satisfied to exercise real power without the official title. In some places, this divide in supreme authority grew into a complete and lasting separation of spiritual and temporal powers, with the old royal family holding onto their purely religious duties while civil governance shifted to a younger and more dynamic generation.

To take examples. We saw387 that in Cambodia it is often necessary to force the kingships of Fire and Water upon the reluctant successors, and that in Savage Island the monarchy actually came to an end because at last no one could be induced to accept the dangerous distinction.388 In some parts of West Africa, when the king dies, a family council is secretly held to determine his successor. He on whom the choice falls is suddenly seized, bound, and [pg 119] thrown into the fetish-house, where he is kept in durance till he consents to accept the crown. Sometimes the heir finds means of evading the honour which it is sought to thrust upon him; a ferocious chief has been known to go about constantly armed, resolute to resist by force any attempt to set him on the throne.389 The Mikados of Japan seem early to have resorted to the expedient of transferring the honours and burdens of supreme power to their infant children; and the rise of the Tycoons, long the temporal sovereigns of the country, is traced to the abdication of a certain Mikado in favour of his three-year-old son. The sovereignty having been wrested by a usurper from the infant prince, the cause of the Mikado was championed by Yoritomo, a man of spirit and conduct, who overthrew the usurper and restored to the Mikado the shadow, while he retained for himself the substance, of power. He bequeathed to his descendants the dignity he had won, and thus became the founder of the line of Tycoons. Down to the latter half of the sixteenth century the Tycoons were active and efficient rulers; but the same fate overtook them which had befallen the Mikados; entangled in the same inextricable web of custom and law, they degenerated into mere puppets, hardly stirring from their palaces and occupied in a perpetual round of empty ceremonies, while the real business of government was managed by the council of state.390 In Tonquin the monarchy ran a similar course. Living like his predecessors in effeminacy and sloth, the king was driven from the throne by an ambitious adventurer named Mack, who from a fisherman had risen to be [pg 120] Grand Mandarin. But the king's brother Tring put down the usurper and restored the king, retaining, however, for himself and his descendants the dignity of general of all the forces. Thenceforward the kings or dovas, though vested with the title and pomp of sovereignty, ceased to govern. While they lived secluded in their palaces, all real political power was wielded by the hereditary generals or chovas.391 The custom regularly observed by the Tahitian kings of abdicating on the birth of a son, who was immediately proclaimed sovereign and received his father's homage, may perhaps have originated, like the similar custom occasionally practised by the Mikados, in a wish to shift to other shoulders the irksome burden of royalty; for in Tahiti as elsewhere the sovereign was subjected to a system of vexatious restrictions.392 In Mangaia, another Polynesian island, religious and civil authority were lodged in separate hands, spiritual functions being discharged by a line of hereditary kings, while the temporal government was entrusted from time to time to a victorious war-chief, whose investiture, however, had to be completed by the king. To the latter were assigned the best lands, and he received daily offerings of the choicest food.393 American examples of the partition of authority between an emperor and a pope have already been cited from the early history of Mexico and Colombia.394

To take examples. We saw387 that in Cambodia, it's often necessary to impose the kingships of Fire and Water on unwilling successors, and that in Savage Island, the monarchy actually ended because nobody could be persuaded to take on the hazardous role.388 In some regions of West Africa, when a king dies, a family council is secretly convened to choose his successor. The person selected is suddenly seized, bound, and [pg 119] thrown into the fetish-house, where he is kept there until he agrees to take the crown. Sometimes the heir manages to evade the honor that is being thrust upon him; a fierce chief has been known to walk around armed, determined to resist by force any attempt to crown him.389 The Mikados of Japan seem to have early on resorted to the tactic of passing the honors and burdens of supreme power to their infant children; the rise of the Tycoons, who were the country’s temporal rulers, can be traced back to the abdication of a certain Mikado in favor of his three-year-old son. The sovereignty was taken from the infant prince by a usurper, but Yoritomo, a man of spirit and character, championed the Mikado’s cause, overthrew the usurper, and restored to the Mikado the appearance of power, while he kept the actual power for himself. He passed this dignity on to his descendants, thus becoming the founder of the Tycoon line. Up until the latter half of the sixteenth century, the Tycoons were active and effective rulers; but they eventually faced the same fate as the Mikados, becoming entangled in a web of customs and laws, turning into mere puppets who hardly left their palaces and were engaged in a continuous cycle of meaningless ceremonies, while the real governance was handled by the council of state.390 In Tonquin, the monarchy followed a similar path. Living like his predecessors in luxury and laziness, the king was ousted from the throne by an ambitious adventurer named Mack, who had risen from being a fisherman to become [pg 120] Grand Mandarin. However, the king's brother Tring defeated the usurper and restored the king, while keeping the title of general of all the forces for himself and his descendants. From that point on, the kings or doves, although given the title and pageantry of sovereignty, ceased to govern. While they lived secluded in their palaces, all real political power was held by the hereditary generals or chovas.391 The custom regularly followed by the Tahitian kings of abdicating upon the birth of a son, who was immediately proclaimed sovereign and received his father's homage, may have originated, like the similar custom sometimes practiced by the Mikados, from a desire to shift the burdens of royalty to others; for in Tahiti, as elsewhere, the sovereign faced a system of annoying restrictions.392 In Mangaia, another Polynesian island, religious and civil authority were divided between different leaders, with spiritual duties handled by hereditary kings, while the temporal governance was entrusted from time to time to a victorious war chief, whose inauguration, however, had to be approved by the king. The king was given the best lands and received daily offerings of the finest food.393 American examples of the division of authority between an emperor and a pope have already been noted from the early history of Mexico and Colombia.394

[pg 121]

§ 2.—The nature of the soul.

But if the object of the taboos observed by a divine king or priest is to preserve his life, the question arises, How is their observance supposed to effect this end? To understand this we must know the nature of the danger which threatens the king's life, and which it is the intention of the taboos to guard against. We must, therefore, ask: What does early man understand by death? To what causes does he attribute it? And how does he think it may be guarded against?

But if the purpose of the taboos followed by a divine king or priest is to protect his life, we need to ask how following these rules is meant to achieve that. To understand this, we have to look at the type of danger that threatens the king’s life, which the taboos aim to prevent. So, we should ask: What did early humans perceive as death? What causes do they think lead to it? And how do they believe it can be prevented?

As the savage commonly explains the processes of inanimate nature by supposing that they are produced by living beings working in or behind the phenomena, so he explains the phenomena of life itself. If an animal lives and moves, it can only be, he thinks, because there is a little animal inside which moves it. If a man lives and moves, it can only be because he has a little man inside who moves him. The animal inside the animal, the man inside the man, is the soul. And as the activity of an animal or man is explained by the presence of the soul, so the repose of sleep or death is explained by its absence; sleep or trance being the temporary, death being the permanent absence of the soul. Hence if death be the permanent absence of the soul, the way to guard against it is either to prevent the soul from leaving the body, or, if it does depart, to secure that it shall return. The precautions adopted by savages to secure one or other of these ends take the form of prohibitions or taboos, which are nothing but rules intended to ensure either the continued presence or the return of the soul. In short, they are life-preservers or life-guards. [pg 122] These general statements will now be illustrated by examples.

As a primitive person typically explains the processes of non-living nature by assuming they result from living beings at work behind the scenes, he does the same for the phenomena of life itself. He believes that if an animal is alive and moving, it's only because there's a small animal inside it that makes it move. If a person is alive and moving, it’s only because there's a little person inside him that moves him. The animal inside the animal, the person inside the person, is the soul. Just as an animal's or person's actions are attributed to the soul’s presence, sleep or death is understood as its absence; sleep or trance is a temporary absence, while death is the permanent absence of the soul. Therefore, since death is the permanent absence of the soul, the way to prevent it is to either keep the soul from leaving the body or, if it does leave, to ensure it comes back. The measures taken by primitive people to achieve either of these goals are expressed as prohibitions or taboos, which are simply rules designed to guarantee either the soul’s ongoing presence or its return. In short, they are life-preservers or life-guards. [pg 122] These broad ideas will now be illustrated with examples.

Addressing some Australian blacks, a European missionary said, “I am not one, as you think, but two.” Upon this they laughed. “You may laugh as much as you like,” continued the missionary, “I tell you that I am two in one; this great body that you see is one; within that there is another little one which is not visible. The great body dies, and is buried, but the little body flies away when the great one dies.” To this some of the blacks replied, “Yes, yes. We also are two, we also have a little body within the breast.” On being asked where the little body went after death, some said it went behind the bush, others said it went into the sea, and some said they did not know.395 The Hurons thought that the soul had a head and body, arms and legs; in short, that it was a complete little model of the man himself.396 The Eskimos believe that “the soul exhibits the same shape as the body it belongs to, but is of a more subtle and ethereal nature.”397 So exact is the resemblance of the mannikin to the man, in other words, of the soul to the body, that, as there are fat bodies and thin bodies, so there are fat souls and thin souls;398 as there are heavy bodies and light bodies, long bodies and short bodies, so there are heavy souls and light souls, long souls and short souls. The people of Nias (an island to the west of Sumatra) think that every man, before he is born, is asked how long or how heavy a soul he would like, and a soul of the desired weight or length is measured out to him. [pg 123] The heaviest soul ever given out weighs about ten grammes. The length of a man's life is proportioned to the length of his soul; children who die young had short souls.399 Sometimes, however, as we shall see, the human soul is conceived not in human but in animal form.

Addressing some Australian Indigenous people, a European missionary said, "I’m not just one, like you think, but actually two." They laughed at this. "You can laugh as much as you like," the missionary continued, "I'm telling you that I am two in one; this big body you see is one part; inside it, there is another small part that isn't visible. The big body dies and gets buried, but the small part floats away when the big one dies." In response, some of the Indigenous people said, "Yes, yes. We're two as well; we have a little body inside our chest too." When asked where the little body goes after death, some said it goes behind the bush, others said it goes into the sea, and some said they didn’t know.395 The Hurons believed that the soul had a head and body, arms and legs; in short, that it was a complete little version of the person. 396 The Eskimos believe that "The soul has the same shape as the body it belongs to, but is of a finer and more ethereal nature." 397 The resemblance between the little figure and the person, in other words, between the soul and the body, is so exact that just as there are fat bodies and thin bodies, there are also fat souls and thin souls; 398 just as there are heavy bodies and light bodies, long bodies and short bodies, there are heavy souls and light souls, long souls and short souls. The people of Nias (an island west of Sumatra) believe that every person, before being born, is asked how long or how heavy they would like their soul to be, and a soul of the desired weight or length is measured out for them. [pg 123] The heaviest soul ever issued weighs about ten grams. The length of a person's life is related to the length of their soul; children who die young had short souls. 399 However, sometimes, as we will see, the human soul is thought of not in human but in animal form.

The soul is commonly supposed to escape by the natural openings of the body, especially the mouth and nostrils. Hence in Celebes they sometimes fasten fish-hooks to a sick man's nose, navel, and feet, so that if his soul should try to escape it may be hooked and held fast.400 One of the “properties” of a Haida medicine-man is a hollow bone, in which he bottles up departing souls, and so restores them to their owners.401 The Marquesans used to hold the mouth and nose of a dying man, in order to keep him in life, by preventing his soul from escaping.402 When any one yawns in their presence the Hindus always snap their thumbs, believing that this will hinder the soul from issuing through the open mouth.403 The Itonamas in South America seal up the eyes, nose, and mouth of a dying person, in case his ghost should get out and carry off other people.404 In Southern Celebes, to prevent the escape of a woman's soul at childbirth, the nurse ties a band as tightly as possible round the body of the expectant mother.405 And lest the soul of the babe should [pg 124] escape and be lost as soon as it is born, the Alfoers of Celebes, when a birth is about to take place, are careful to close every opening in the house, even the keyhole; and they stop up every chink and cranny in the walls. Also they tie up the mouths of all animals inside and outside the house, for fear one of them might swallow the child's soul. For a similar reason all persons present in the house, even the mother herself, are obliged to keep their mouths shut the whole time the birth is taking place. When the question was put, Why they did not hold their noses also, lest the child's soul should get into one of them? the answer was that breath being exhaled as well as inhaled through the nostrils, the soul would be expelled before it could have time to settle down.406

The soul is usually thought to escape through the body's natural openings, especially the mouth and nostrils. Therefore, in Celebes, they sometimes attach fish hooks to a sick person's nose, navel, and feet, so if their soul tries to escape, it can be snagged and held back.400 One of the “properties” of a Haida medicine man is a hollow bone in which he captures departing souls, thus returning them to their owners.401 The Marquesans used to hold a dying person’s mouth and nose shut to keep them alive by preventing their soul from escaping.402 When someone yawns in their presence, Hindus always snap their thumbs, believing this will stop the soul from coming out through the open mouth.403 The Itonamas in South America seal the eyes, nose, and mouth of a dying person to prevent their ghost from escaping and carrying off others.404 In Southern Celebes, to stop a woman's soul from escaping during childbirth, the nurse ties a band tightly around the mother's body.405 To ensure the newborn’s soul doesn’t escape and get lost right after birth, the Alfoers of Celebes carefully close all openings in the house, even the keyhole, and block every crack and crevice in the walls. They also tie the mouths of all animals inside and outside the house, fearing one might swallow the child's soul. For similar reasons, everyone present in the house, including the mother herself, must keep their mouths shut during the entire birth process. When asked why they didn’t hold their noses too, to prevent the child’s soul from entering one of them, they explained that breathing in and out through the nostrils would expel the soul before it had a chance to settle in.406

Often the soul is conceived as a bird ready to take flight. This conception has probably left traces in most languages,407 and it lingers as a metaphor in poetry. But what is metaphor to a modern European poet was sober earnest to his savage ancestor, and is still so to many people. The Malays carry out the conception in question to its practical conclusion. If the soul is a bird on the wing, it may be attracted by rice, and so prevented from taking its perilous flight. Thus in Java when a child is placed on the ground for the first time (a moment which uncultured people seem to regard as especially dangerous), it is put in a hen-coop and the mother makes a clucking sound, as if she were calling hens.408 Amongst the Battas of Sumatra, when a man returns from a dangerous enterprise, grains of rice are placed on his head, and these grains are [pg 125] called padiruma tondi, that is, “means to make the soul (tondi) stay at home.” In Java also rice is placed on the head of persons who have escaped a great danger or have returned home unexpectedly after it had been supposed that they were lost.409 In Celebes they think that a bridegroom's soul is apt to fly away at marriage, so coloured rice is scattered over him to induce it to stay. And, in general, at festivals in South Celebes rice is strewed on the head of the person in whose honour the festival is held, with the object of detaining his soul, which at such times is in especial danger of being lured away by envious demons.410

Often the soul is seen as a bird ready to take flight. This idea has likely influenced many languages, and it remains a metaphor in poetry. However, what is a metaphor to a contemporary European poet was a serious belief for their primitive ancestors, and it still is for many people today. The Malays carry this idea to its practical conclusion. If the soul is a bird in flight, it might be drawn to rice, preventing it from making a risky escape. So in Java, when a child is put on the ground for the first time (a moment that uncultured people consider especially dangerous), they are placed in a hen coop while the mother makes a clucking sound as if calling to chickens. Among the Battas of Sumatra, when a man returns from a dangerous adventure, grains of rice are placed on his head, and these grains are called padiruma tondi, which means "means to make the soul (tondi) remain at home." In Java, rice is also placed on the heads of people who have escaped a great danger or returned home unexpectedly after being thought lost. In Celebes, they believe that a bridegroom's soul might fly away during marriage, so colored rice is scattered over him to encourage it to stay. Generally, at festivals in South Celebes, rice is sprinkled on the head of the person being honored, intending to keep their soul from being lured away by envious demons.

The soul of a sleeper is supposed to wander away from his body and actually to visit the very places of which he dreams. But this absence of the soul has its dangers, for if from any cause it should be permanently detained away from the body, the person, deprived of his soul, must die.411 Many causes may detain the sleeper's soul. Thus, his soul may meet the soul of another sleeper and the two souls may fight; if a Guinea negro wakens with sore bones in the morning, he thinks that his soul has been thrashed by another soul in sleep.412 Or it may meet the soul of a person just deceased and be carried off by it; hence in the Aru Islands the inmates of a house will not sleep the night after a death has taken place in it, because the soul of the deceased is supposed to be still in the house [pg 126] and they fear to meet it in a dream.413 Again, the soul may be prevented by physical force from returning. The Santals tell how a man fell asleep, and growing very thirsty, his soul, in the form of a lizard, left his body and entered a pitcher of water to drink. Just then the owner of the pitcher happened to cover it; so the soul could not return to the body and the man died. While his friends were preparing to burn the body some one uncovered the pitcher to get water. The lizard thus escaped and returned to the body, which immediately revived; so the man rose up and asked his friends why they were weeping. They told him they thought he was dead and were about to burn his body. He said he had been down a well to get water but had found it hard to get out and had just returned. So they saw it all.414 A similar story is reported from Transylvania as follows. In the account of a witch's trial at Mühlbach last century it is said that a woman had engaged two men to work in her vineyard. After noon they all lay down to rest as usual. An hour later the men got up and tried to waken the woman, but could not. She lay motionless with her mouth wide open. They came back at sunset and still she lay like a corpse. Just at that moment a big fly came buzzing past, which one of the men caught and shut up in his leathern pouch. Then they tried again to waken the woman but could not. Afterwards they let out the fly; it flew straight into the woman's mouth and she awoke. On seeing [pg 127] this the men had no further doubt that she was a witch.415

The soul of a sleeper is believed to leave their body and actually visit the places they dream about. However, this wandering of the soul can be dangerous, because if it gets permanently stuck away from the body for any reason, the person, without their soul, will die. Many factors can keep the sleeper's soul away. For example, the soul might encounter another sleeper's soul, and the two souls might fight; if a person wakes up with sore bones, they might think their soul was beaten by another soul during sleep. Alternatively, it might meet the soul of someone who has just died and get taken away; that's why in the Aru Islands, people in a house won’t sleep the night after someone has died inside—because they believe the deceased’s soul is still in the house and they fear encountering it in a dream. Additionally, the soul might be physically prevented from returning. The Santals tell of a man who fell asleep, and feeling very thirsty, his soul took the form of a lizard, left his body, and entered a pitcher of water to drink. Just then, the pitcher’s owner covered it, trapping the soul so it couldn’t return to the body, and the man died. While his friends were getting ready to cremate the body, someone uncovered the pitcher to fetch water. The lizard escaped and went back to the body, which immediately revived; the man sat up and asked his friends why they were crying. They told him they thought he was dead and were about to burn his body. He explained that he had gone down a well for water and had a difficult time getting out before just returning. So they understood everything. A similar tale comes from Transylvania. In a witch trial account from Mühlbach last century, it mentions that a woman had hired two men to work in her vineyard. After lunch, they all laid down to rest as usual. An hour later, the men got up and tried to wake the woman, but they couldn’t. She lay still with her mouth wide open. When they returned at sunset, she still looked like a corpse. Just then, a large fly buzzed past, which one of the men caught and put into his leather pouch. They tried to wake the woman again, but failed. Later, they released the fly; it flew straight into the woman’s mouth, and she woke up. Seeing this, the men no longer doubted that she was a witch.

It is a common rule with primitive people not to waken a sleeper, because his soul is away and might not have time to get back; so if the man wakened without his soul, he would fall sick. If it is absolutely necessary to waken a sleeper, it must be done very gradually, to allow the soul time to return.416 In Bombay it is thought equivalent to murder to change the appearance of a sleeper, as by painting his face in fantastic colours or giving moustaches to a sleeping woman. For when the soul returns, it will not be able to recognise its body and the person will die.417 The Servians believe that the soul of a sleeping witch often leaves her body in the form of a butterfly. If during its absence her body be turned round, so that her feet are placed where her head was before, the butterfly soul will not find its way back into her body through the mouth, and the witch will die.418

It’s a common belief among primitive cultures not to wake someone who’s sleeping, because their soul is away and might not have enough time to return; if a person wakes without their soul, they could get sick. If it’s absolutely necessary to wake someone, it has to be done very gently, giving the soul time to come back. 416 In Bombay, it’s considered equivalent to murder to change how a sleeping person looks, like painting their face in crazy colors or giving a sleeping woman a mustache. When the soul returns, if it doesn’t recognize its body, the person could die. 417 The Servians believe that a witch’s soul leaves her body as a butterfly when she’s sleeping. If her body is turned around while the soul is away, with her feet where her head was, the butterfly soul won’t be able to find its way back into her body through her mouth, and the witch will die. 418

But in order that a man's soul should quit his body, it is not necessary that he should be asleep. [pg 128] It may quit him in his waking hours, and then sickness or (if the absence is prolonged) death will be the result. Thus the Mongols sometimes explain sickness by supposing that the patient's soul is absent, and either does not care to return to its body or cannot find the way back. To secure the return of the soul it is therefore necessary on the one hand to make its body as attractive as possible, and on the other hand to show it the way home. To make the body attractive all the sick man's best clothes and most valued possessions are placed beside him; he is washed, incensed, and made as comfortable as possible; and all his friends march thrice round the hut calling out the sick man's name and coaxing his soul to return. To help the soul to find its way back a coloured cord is stretched from the patient's head to the door of the hut. The priest in his robes reads a list of the horrors of hell and the dangers incurred by souls which wilfully absent themselves from their bodies. Then turning to the assembled friends and the patient he asks, “Is it come?” All answer Yes, and bowing to the returning soul throw seed over the sick man. The cord which guided the soul back is then rolled up and placed round the patient's neck, who must wear it for seven days without taking it off. No one may frighten or hurt him, lest his soul, not yet familiar with its body, should again take flight.419 In an Indian story a king conveys his soul into the dead body of a Brahman, and a hunchback conveys his soul into the deserted body of the king. The hunchback is now king and the king is a Brahman. However, [pg 129] the hunchback is induced to show his skill by transferring his soul to the dead body of a parrot, and the king seizes the opportunity to regain possession of his own body.420 In another Indian story a Brahman reanimates the dead body of a king by conveying his own soul into it. Meantime the Brahman's body has been burnt, and his soul is obliged to remain in the body of the king.421

But for a person's soul to leave their body, it’s not necessary for them to be asleep. It can happen while they're awake, and then illness or (if the absence lasts too long) death will follow. Mongols sometimes explain illness by assuming that the patient's soul is missing and either doesn’t want to come back or can't find its way home. To bring the soul back, it's important to make the body as inviting as possible and to guide it back home. They place the sick person's favorite clothes and belongings next to him; he is bathed, scented, and made as comfortable as possible, while all his friends walk around the hut three times, calling out the sick man's name and encouraging his soul to return. To help the soul find its way back, a colored cord is stretched from the patient's head to the door of the hut. The priest in his robes reads a list of the horrors of hell and the dangers faced by souls that deliberately leave their bodies. He then turns to the gathered friends and the patient and asks, “Is it here?” Everyone replies Yes, and while bowing to the returning soul, they throw seeds over the sick man. The cord that guided the soul back is then rolled up and placed around the patient's neck, which he must wear for seven days straight. No one is allowed to scare or hurt him, so his soul, still getting used to its body, won’t take off again. In one Indian story, a king transfers his soul into the dead body of a Brahman, while a hunchback puts his soul into the abandoned body of the king. Now, the hunchback is the king, and the king is a Brahman. However, the hunchback ends up showing off his ability by moving his soul into the dead body of a parrot, and the king seizes the chance to take back his own body. In another Indian tale, a Brahman brings the dead body of a king back to life by putting his own soul into it. Meanwhile, the Brahman’s body has been cremated, and his soul has to stay in the king's body.

The departure of the soul is not always voluntary. It may be extracted from the body against its will by ghosts, demons, or sorcerers. Hence, when a funeral is passing the house, the Karens of Burma tie their children with a special kind of string to a particular part of the house, in case the souls of the children should leave their bodies and go into the corpse which is passing. The children are kept tied in this way until the corpse is out of sight.422 And after the corpse has been laid in the grave, but before the earth has been filled in, the mourners and friends range themselves round the grave, each with a bamboo split lengthwise in one hand and a little stick in the other; each man thrusts his bamboo into the grave, and drawing the stick along the groove of the bamboo points out to his soul that in this way it may easily climb up out of the grave. While the earth is being filled in, the bamboos are kept out of the way, lest the souls should be in them, and so should be inadvertently buried with the earth as it is being thrown into the grave; and when the people leave the spot they carry away the bamboos, begging their souls to come with [pg 130] them.423 Further, on returning from the grave each Karen provides himself with three little hooks made of branches of trees, and calling his spirit to follow him, at short intervals, as he returns, he makes a motion as if hooking it, and then thrusts the hook into the ground. This is done to prevent the soul of the living from staying behind with the soul of the dead.424 When a mother dies leaving a young baby, the Burmese think that the “butterfly” or soul of the baby follows that of the mother, and that if it is not recovered the child must die. So a wise woman is called in to get back the baby's soul. She places a mirror near the corpse, and on the mirror a piece of feathery cotton down. Holding a cloth in her open hands at the foot of the mirror, she with wild words entreats the mother not to take with her the “butterfly” or soul of her child, but to send it back. As the gossamer down slips from the face of the mirror she catches it in the cloth and tenderly places it on the baby's breast. The same ceremony is sometimes observed when one of two children that have played together dies, and is thought to be luring away the soul of its playmate to the spirit-land. It is sometimes performed also for a bereaved husband or wife.425 In the Island of Keisar (East Indies) it is thought imprudent to go near a grave at night, lest the ghosts should catch and keep the soul of the passer-by.426 The Key Islanders believe that the souls of their forefathers, angry at not receiving food, make people sick by detaining their souls. So they lay offerings of food [pg 131] on the grave and beg their ancestors to allow the soul of the sick to return or to drive it home speedily if it should be lingering by the way.427

The departure of the soul isn’t always voluntary. It can be pulled from the body against its will by ghosts, demons, or sorcerers. Therefore, when a funeral passes by, the Karens of Burma tie their children with a special kind of string to a specific part of the house, to prevent the children’s souls from leaving their bodies and entering the body of the corpse passing by. The children remain tied this way until the corpse is out of sight.422 After the corpse is laid in the grave, but before the earth is filled in, the mourners and friends gather around the grave, each holding a bamboo split lengthwise in one hand and a small stick in the other; each person thrusts their bamboo into the grave, and as they drag the stick along the bamboo, they indicate to their soul that this is how it can easily climb out of the grave. While the earth is being filled in, the bamboos are kept out of the way to avoid accidentally burying the souls with the dirt being thrown into the grave; when they leave the spot, they take the bamboos with them, inviting their souls to come along.[pg 130] 423 Moreover, when returning from the grave, each Karen makes three little hooks from tree branches and calls his spirit to follow him. At intervals during his return, he gestures as if he’s hooking it and then thrusts the hook into the ground. This is done to prevent the living soul from staying behind with the dead one.424 If a mother dies leaving a young baby, the Burmese believe that the "butterfly" or soul of the baby follows that of the mother, and if it’s not retrieved, the child will die. A wise woman is called to bring back the baby's soul. She places a mirror near the corpse, with a piece of soft cotton on the mirror. Holding a cloth with open hands at the foot of the mirror, she passionately asks the mother not to take the "butterfly" or soul of her child, but to send it back. As the delicate down slips from the mirror’s surface, she catches it in the cloth and gently places it on the baby's chest. The same ritual might be performed when one of two children who have played together dies, as it is believed that the deceased could lure away the soul of their playmate to the spirit world. It can also be conducted for a grieving husband or wife.425 On the Island of Keisar (East Indies), it is considered unwise to go near a grave at night for fear that ghosts might catch and keep the passerby’s soul.426 The Key Islanders believe that the souls of their ancestors, angry for not receiving food, cause illness by trapping people's souls. Therefore, they leave food offerings [pg 131] on graves and plead with their ancestors to let the souls of the sick return or to hasten their return if they are lingering along the way.427

In Bolang Mongondo, a district in the west of Celebes, all sickness is ascribed to the ancestral spirits who have carried off the patient's soul. The object therefore is to bring back the patient's soul and restore it to the sufferer. An eye-witness has thus described the attempted cure of a sick boy. The priestesses, who acted as physicians, made a doll of cloth and fastened it to the point of a spear, which an old woman held upright. Round this doll the priestesses danced, uttering charms, and chirruping as when one calls a dog. Then the old woman lowered the point of the spear a little, so that the priestesses could reach the doll. By this time the soul of the sick boy was supposed to be in the doll, having been brought into it by the incantations. So the priestesses approached it cautiously on tiptoe and caught the soul in the many-coloured cloths which they had been waving in the air. Then they laid the soul on the boy's head, that is, they wrapped his head in the cloth in which the soul was supposed to be, and stood still for some moments with great gravity, holding their hands on the patient's head. Suddenly there was a jerk, the priestesses whispered and shook their heads, and the cloth was taken off—the soul had escaped. The priestesses gave chase to it, running round and round the house, clucking and gesticulating as if they were driving hens into a poultry-yard. At last they recaptured the soul at the foot of the stair and restored it to its owner as before.428 Much in the same way an Australian [pg 132] medicine-man will sometimes bring the lost soul of a sick man into a puppet and restore it to the patient by pressing the puppet to his breast.429 In Uea, one of the Loyalty Islands, the souls of the dead seem to have been credited with the power of stealing the souls of the living. For when a man was sick the soul-doctor would go with a large troop of men and women to the graveyard. Here the men played on flutes and the women whistled softly to lure the soul home. After this had gone on for some time they formed in procession and moved homewards, the flutes playing and the women whistling all the way, leading back the wandering soul and driving it gently along with open palms. On entering the patient's dwelling they commanded the soul in a loud voice to enter his body.430 In Madagascar, when a sick man had lost his soul, his friends went to the family tomb, and making a hole in it, begged the soul of the patient's father to give them a soul for his son, who had none. So saying they clapped a bonnet on the hole, and folding up the soul in the bonnet, brought it to the patient, who put the bonnet on his head, and thus received a new soul or got back his old one.431

In Bolang Mongondo, a district in western Celebes, all illnesses are blamed on ancestral spirits that have taken the patient’s soul. The aim is to retrieve the patient’s soul and restore it to them. An eyewitness described the attempted healing of a sick boy. The priestesses, acting as healers, created a doll out of cloth and attached it to the tip of a spear, which an elderly woman held upright. The priestesses danced around the doll, chanting charms and making sounds like one would to call a dog. Then, the old woman slightly lowered the spear so the priestesses could reach the doll. By this time, it was believed that the sick boy's soul was in the doll, brought into it by their incantations. The priestesses approached it quietly on tiptoe and caught the soul in the colorful cloths they had been waving in the air. Then, they placed the soul on the boy's head; that is, they wrapped his head in the cloth containing the soul, standing quietly for a few moments with their hands on the patient’s head. Suddenly, there was a jolt, the priestesses whispered and shook their heads, and the cloth was removed—the soul had escaped. The priestesses chased after it, running around the house, clucking and gesturing as if they were herding chickens into a yard. Eventually, they recaptured the soul at the foot of the stairs and returned it to its owner as before. Much in the same way, an Australian medicine-man sometimes brings the lost soul of a sick person into a puppet and restores it to the patient by pressing the puppet to their chest. In Uea, one of the Loyalty Islands, the souls of the dead are believed to have the power to steal the souls of the living. When a man was sick, the soul-doctor would go with a large group of men and women to the graveyard. There, the men played flutes, and the women softly whistled to lure the soul home. After some time, they formed a procession and headed back, flutes playing and women whistling all the way, guiding the wandering soul and gently ushering it along with open palms. Upon entering the patient’s home, they called out loudly for the soul to enter his body. In Madagascar, when a sick man had lost his soul, his friends would visit the family tomb, making a hole in it and pleading with the soul of the patient’s father to give them a soul for his son, who had none. After making this request, they covered the hole with a bonnet, folding the soul into the bonnet, and brought it to the patient, who would then put the bonnet on his head, thereby receiving a new soul or reclaiming his old one.

Often the abduction of a man's soul is set down to demons. The Annamites believe that when a man meets a demon and speaks to him, the demon inhales the man's breath and soul.432 When a Dyak is about to leave a forest through which he has been walking alone, he never forgets to ask the demons to give him back his soul, for it may be that some forest-devil has [pg 133] carried it off. For the abduction of a soul may take place without its owner being aware of his loss, and it may happen either while he is awake or asleep.433 In the Moluccas when a man is unwell it is thought that some devil has carried away his soul to the tree, mountain, or hill where he (the devil) dwells. A sorcerer having pointed out the devil's abode, the friends of the patient carry thither cooked rice, fruit, fish, raw eggs, a hen, a chicken, a silken robe, gold, armlets, etc. Having set out the food in order they pray, saying: “We come to offer to you, O devil, this offering of food, clothes, gold, etc.; take it and release the soul of the patient for whom we pray. Let it return to his body and he who now is sick shall be made whole.” Then they eat a little and let the hen loose as a ransom for the soul of the patient; also they put down the raw eggs; but the silken robe, the gold, and the armlets they take home with them. As soon as they are come to the house they place a flat bowl containing the offerings which have been brought back at the sick man's head, and say to him: “Now is your soul released, and you shall fare well and live to gray hairs on the earth.”434 A more modern account from the same region describes how the friend of the patient, after depositing his offerings on the spot where the missing soul is supposed to be, calls out thrice the name of the sick person, adding, “Come with me, come with me.” Then he returns, making a motion with a cloth as if he had caught the soul in it. He must not look to right or left or speak a word to any one he meets, but must go straight to the patient's house. At the door he stands, and calling out the sick [pg 134] person's name, asks whether he is returned. Being answered from within that he is returned, he enters and lays the cloth in which he has caught the soul on the patient's throat, saying, “Now you are returned to the house.” Sometimes a substitute is provided; a doll, dressed up in gay clothing and tinsel, is offered to the demon in exchange for the patient's soul with these words, “Give us back the ugly one which you have taken away and receive this pretty one instead.”435 Similarly the Mongols make up a horse of birch-bark and a doll, and invite the demon to take the doll instead of the patient and to ride away on the horse.436

Often the abduction of a person’s soul is attributed to demons. The Annamites believe that when someone encounters a demon and talks to it, the demon inhales their breath and soul. When a Dyak is about to leave a forest after walking alone, they always remember to ask the demons to return their soul, as it’s possible that some forest spirit has taken it. This abduction can happen without the owner realizing they’ve lost it and may occur whether they are awake or asleep. In the Moluccas, when someone is unwell, it’s thought that a devil has taken their soul to the tree, mountain, or hill where that devil resides. After a sorcerer identifies the devil's home, the friends of the sick person bring cooked rice, fruit, fish, raw eggs, a hen, a chicken, a silken robe, gold, armlets, and so on to that location. After arranging the food, they pray, saying: “We come to offer you, O devil, this offering of food, clothes, gold, etc.; take it and release the soul of the patient for whom we pray. Let it return to their body and who is now sick shall be made whole.” Then they eat a bit and release the hen as a ransom for the patient’s soul; they also leave the raw eggs behind, but take the silken robe, gold, and armlets back home. Once they arrive at the house, they place a flat bowl with the returned offerings at the sick person’s head and say to them: “Now your soul is released, and you will live well and age gracefully on this earth.” A more modern account from the same area describes how the friend of the patient, after leaving offerings at the spot where the missing soul is believed to be, calls out the sick person’s name three times, adding, “Come with me, come with me.” They then return, pretending to catch the soul in a cloth. They must not look to the right or left or speak to anyone they encounter, but go straight to the patient’s house. At the door, they stand and call out the sick person’s name, asking if they have returned. When answered from inside that they are back, they enter and lay the cloth, which is said to have caught the soul, on the patient’s throat, saying, “Now you are returned to the house.” Sometimes a substitute is provided; a doll, dressed in bright clothing and sparkles, is offered to the demon in exchange for the patient’s soul with these words, “Give us back the ugly one that you took away and accept this pretty one instead.” Similarly, the Mongols create a horse out of birch bark and a doll, inviting the demon to take the doll instead of the patient and to ride away on the horse.

Demons are especially feared by persons who have just entered on a new house. Hence at a house-warming among the Alfoers of Celebes the priest performs a ceremony for the purpose of restoring their souls to the inmates. He hangs up a bag at the place of sacrifice and then goes through a list of the gods. There are so many of them that this takes him the whole night through without stopping. In the morning he offers the gods an egg and some rice. By this time the souls of the household are supposed to be gathered in the bag. So the priest takes the bag, and holding it on the head of the master of the house says, “Here you have your soul—go (soul) to-morrow away again.” He then does the same, saying the same words, to the housewife and all the other members of the family.437 Amongst the same Alfoers one way of [pg 135] recovering a sick man's soul is to let down a bowl by a belt out of a window and fish for the soul till it is caught in the bowl and hauled up.438 Among the same people, when a priest is bringing back a sick man's soul which he has caught in a cloth, he is preceded by a girl holding the large leaf of a certain palm over his head as an umbrella to keep him and the soul from getting wet, in case it should rain; and he is followed by a man brandishing a sword to deter other souls from any attempt at rescuing the captured soul.439

Demons are especially feared by people who have just moved into a new house. So, at a housewarming for the Alfoers of Celebes, the priest performs a ceremony to restore the souls of the residents. He hangs a bag at the place of sacrifice and then goes through a list of gods. There are so many that this takes him the whole night without stopping. In the morning, he offers the gods an egg and some rice. By this time, the souls of the household are believed to be gathered in the bag. The priest then takes the bag and, holding it over the head of the master of the house, says, "Here's your soul—go (soul) away again tomorrow." He does the same for the housewife and all the other family members.437 Among the same Alfoers, one way to recover a sick man's soul is to lower a bowl by a belt out of a window and fish for the soul until it is caught in the bowl and pulled up.438 Among these people, when a priest is bringing back a sick man's soul that he has caught in a cloth, he is preceded by a girl holding a large palm leaf over his head as an umbrella to keep him and the soul from getting wet if it rains; and he is followed by a man waving a sword to prevent other souls from trying to rescue the captured soul.439

The Samoans tell how two young wizards, passing a house where a chief lay very sick, saw a company of gods from the mountain sitting in the doorway. They were handing from one to another the soul of the dying chief. It was wrapped in a leaf, and had been passed from the gods inside the house to those sitting in the doorway. One of the gods handed the soul to one of the wizards, taking him for a god in the dark, for it was night. Then all the gods rose up and went away; but the wizard kept the chief's soul. In the morning some women went with a present of fine mats to fetch a famous physician. The wizards were sitting on the shore as the women passed, and they said to the women, “Give us the mats and we will heal him.” So they went to the chief's house. He was very ill, his jaw hung down, and his end seemed near. But the wizards undid the leaf and let the soul into him again, and forthwith he brightened up and lived.440

The Samoans share a story about two young wizards who were passing by a house where a chief was very sick. They saw a group of gods from the mountain sitting in the doorway, handing the soul of the dying chief to each other. The soul was wrapped in a leaf and had been passed from the gods inside the house to those outside. One of the gods mistakenly handed the soul to one of the wizards, thinking he was a god too, since it was night. After that, all the gods got up and left, but the wizard kept the chief's soul. In the morning, some women came with fine mats as a gift to get a famous healer. The wizards were sitting by the shore when the women passed by, and they said to them, "Give us the mats, and we'll take care of his healing." So, they went to the chief's house. He was very sick, his jaw was slack, and it seemed like he was close to death. But the wizards unwrapped the leaf and put the soul back into him, and immediately he perked up and lived. 440

The Battas of Sumatra believe that the soul of a [pg 136] living man may transmigrate into the body of an animal. Hence, for example, the doctor is sometimes desired to extract the patient's soul from the body of a fowl, in which it has been hidden away by an evil spirit.441

The Battas of Sumatra believe that the soul of a living person can be transferred into the body of an animal. So, for instance, a doctor may be asked to retrieve a patient's soul from the body of a bird, where it is thought to have been trapped by an evil spirit.441

Sometimes the lost soul is brought back in a visible shape. In Melanesia a woman knowing that a neighbour was at the point of death heard a rustling in her house, as of a moth fluttering, just at the moment when a noise of weeping and lamentation told her that the soul was flown. She caught the fluttering thing between her hands and ran with it, crying out that she had caught the soul. But though she opened her hands above the mouth of the corpse, it did not revive.442 The Salish or Flathead Indians of Oregon believe that a man's soul may be separated for a time from his body without causing death and without the man being aware of his loss. It is necessary, however, that the lost soul should be soon found and restored to the man or he will die. The name of the man who has lost his soul is revealed in a dream to the medicine-man, who hastens to inform the sufferer of his loss. Generally a number of men have sustained a like loss at the same time; all their names are revealed to the medicine-man, and all employ him to recover their souls. The whole night long these soulless men go about the village from lodge to lodge, dancing and singing. Towards daybreak they go into a separate lodge, which is closed up so as to be [pg 137] totally dark. A small hole is then made in the roof, through which the medicine-man, with a bunch of feathers, brushes in the souls, in the shape of bits of bone and the like, which he receives on a piece of matting. A fire is next kindled, by the light of which the medicine-man sorts out the souls. First he puts aside the souls of dead people, of which there are usually several; for if he were to give the soul of a dead person to a living man, the man would die instantly. Next he picks out the souls of all the persons present, and making them all to sit down before him, he takes the soul of each, in the shape of a splinter of bone, wood, or shell, and placing it on the owner's head, pats it with many prayers and contortions till it descends into the heart and so resumes its proper place.443 In Amboina the sorcerer, to recover a soul detained by demons, plucks a branch from a tree, and waving it to and fro as if to catch something, calls out the sick man's name. Returning he strikes the patient over the head and body with the branch, into which the lost soul is supposed to have passed, and from which it returns to the patient.444 In the Babar Islands offerings for evil spirits are laid at the root of a great tree (wokiorai), from which a leaf is plucked and pressed on the patient's forehead and breast; the lost soul, which is in the leaf, is thus restored to its owner.445 In some other islands of the same seas, when a man returns ill and speechless from the forest, it is inferred that the evil spirits which dwell in the great trees have caught and kept his [pg 138] soul. Offerings of food are therefore left under a tree and the soul is brought home in a piece of wax.446 Amongst the Dyaks of Sarawak the priest conjures the lost soul into a cup, where it is seen by the uninitiated as a lock of hair, but by the initiated as a miniature human being. This is supposed to be thrust by the priest into a hole in the top of the patient's head.447 In Nias the sick man's soul is restored to him in the shape of a firefly, visible only to the sorcerer, who catches it in a cloth and places it on the forehead of the patient.448

Sometimes a lost soul is brought back in a visible form. In Melanesia, a woman was aware that a neighbor was near death when she heard a rustling in her house, like a moth flapping its wings, just as the sounds of weeping and mourning indicated that the soul had departed. She captured the fluttering thing between her hands and ran, shouting that she had caught the soul. However, even when she opened her hands above the corpse's mouth, it did not revive. The Salish or Flathead Indians of Oregon believe that a person's soul can temporarily separate from their body without causing death and without the person realizing they've lost it. However, it's essential for the lost soul to be found and returned quickly, or the person will die. The medicine man learns the name of the man who has lost his soul in a dream and rushes to inform the afflicted individual. Usually, several men lose their souls simultaneously; their names are revealed to the medicine man, who is then hired by all to recover their souls. Throughout the night, these soulless men wander around the village from lodge to lodge, dancing and singing. As dawn approaches, they enter a separate lodge, which is sealed off to be completely dark. A small hole is then made in the roof, through which the medicine man, armed with a bunch of feathers, brushes in the souls, which appear as bits of bone or similar objects, collected on a piece of matting. A fire is then lit, and by its light, the medicine man sorts through the souls. First, he sets aside the souls of deceased individuals, of which there are often several, because if he were to give the soul of a dead person to a living man, the man would die instantly. Next, he selects the souls of those present, having them sit before him. He takes the soul of each person, represented as a splinter of bone, wood, or shell, places it on their head, and pats it with many prayers and movements until it settles into their heart and returns to its rightful place. In Amboina, the sorcerer, to retrieve a soul held by demons, takes a branch from a tree, waves it to and fro as if trying to catch something, and calls out the sick man's name. Upon returning, he strikes the patient on the head and body with the branch, into which the lost soul is believed to have entered, allowing it to return to the patient. In the Babar Islands, offerings for evil spirits are placed at the base of a large tree (wokiorai), from which a leaf is picked and pressed against the patient's forehead and chest; the lost soul, held in the leaf, is then returned to its owner. In some other islands in the same seas, if a man returns ill and unable to speak from the forest, it's assumed that the evil spirits living in the grand trees have caught and kept his soul. Therefore, food offerings are left under a tree, and the soul is brought home in a piece of wax. Among the Dyaks of Sarawak, the priest conjures the lost soul into a cup, where it's seen by the uninitiated as a lock of hair, but by the initiated as a tiny human figure. This is believed to be pushed by the priest into a hole at the top of the patient's head. In Nias, the sick man's soul is restored to him in the form of a firefly, visible only to the sorcerer, who captures it in cloth and places it on the patient's forehead.

Again, souls may be extracted from their bodies or detained on their wanderings not only by ghosts and demons but also by men, especially by sorcerers. In Fiji if a criminal refused to confess, the chief sent for a scarf with which “to catch away the soul of the rogue.” At the sight, or even at the mention of the scarf the culprit generally made a clean breast. For if he did not, the scarf would be waved over his head till his soul was caught in it, when it would be carefully folded up and nailed to the end of a chief's canoe; and for want of his soul the criminal would pine and die.449 The sorcerers of Danger Island used to set snares for souls. The snares were made of stout cinet, about fifteen to thirty feet long, with loops on either side of different sizes, to suit the different sizes of souls; for fat souls there were large loops, for thin souls there were small ones. When a man was sick against whom the sorcerers had a grudge, they set up these soul-snares [pg 139] near his house and watched for the flight of his soul. If in the shape of a bird or an insect it was caught in the snare the man would infallibly die.450 Among the Sereres of Senegambia, when a man wishes to revenge himself on his enemy he goes to the Fitaure (chief and priest in one), and prevails on him by presents to conjure the soul of his enemy into a large jar of red earthenware, which is then deposited under a consecrated tree. The man whose soul is shut up in the jar soon dies.451 Some of the Congo negroes think that enchanters can get possession of human souls, and enclosing them in tusks of ivory, sell them to the white man, who makes them work for him in his country under the sea. It is believed that very many of the coast labourers are men thus obtained; so when these people go to trade they often look anxiously about for their dead relations. The man whose soul is thus sold into slavery will die “in due course, if not at the time.”452

Again, souls can be taken from their bodies or held up in their journeys not just by ghosts and demons, but also by people, especially sorcerers. In Fiji, if a criminal refused to confess, the chief would call for a scarf to "capture the essence of the wrongdoer." Just seeing or even hearing about the scarf would usually make the culprit confess. If he didn’t, the scarf would be waved over his head until his soul was caught in it, then it would be carefully folded and nailed to the end of a chief’s canoe; without his soul, the criminal would waste away and die.449 The sorcerers of Danger Island used to set traps for souls. The traps were made of thick cord, about fifteen to thirty feet long, with loops on both sides of different sizes to fit the various sizes of souls; there were large loops for fat souls and small ones for thin souls. When a man was sick and the sorcerers had a grudge against him, they would set up these soul traps [pg 139] near his house and wait for his soul to escape. If it took the form of a bird or an insect and got caught in a trap, the man would definitely die.450 Among the Sereres of Senegambia, when someone wants to take revenge on an enemy, they go to the Feature (chief and priest combined) and persuade him with gifts to conjure the enemy's soul into a large jar made of red clay, which is then buried under a consecrated tree. The person whose soul is trapped in the jar will soon die.451 Some people in the Congo believe that enchanters can capture human souls and trap them in ivory tusks, selling them to white men, who force them to work in their underwater country. It is thought that many of the laborers along the coast are men captured this way; so when these laborers go to trade, they often look around anxiously for their deceased relatives. A man whose soul is sold into slavery will die "eventually, if not right away."452

In Hawaii there were sorcerers who caught souls of living people, shut them up in calabashes, and gave them to people to eat. By squeezing a captured soul in their hands they discovered the place where people had been secretly buried.453 Amongst the Canadian Indians, when a wizard wished to kill a man, he sent out his familiar spirits, who brought him the victim's soul in the shape of a stone or the like. The wizard struck the soul with a sword or an axe till it bled profusely, and as it bled the man to whom it belonged languished and died.454 In Amboina if a doctor is convinced [pg 140] that a patient's soul has been carried away by a demon beyond recovery, he seeks to supply its place with a soul abstracted from another man. For this purpose he goes by night to a house and asks, “Who's there?” If an inmate is incautious enough to answer, the doctor takes up from before the door a clod of earth, into which the soul of the person who replied is believed to have passed. This clod the doctor lays under the sick man's pillow, and performs certain ceremonies by which the stolen soul is conveyed into the patient's body. Then as he goes home the doctor fires two shots to frighten the soul from returning to its proper owner.455 A Karen wizard will catch the wandering soul of a sleeper and transfer it to the body of a dead man. The latter, therefore, comes to life as the former dies. But the friends of the sleeper in turn engage a wizard to steal the soul of another sleeper, who dies as the first sleeper comes to life. In this way an indefinite succession of deaths and resurrections is supposed to take place.456

In Hawaii, there were sorcerers who captured the souls of living people, trapped them in calabashes, and served them to others as food. By squeezing a captured soul in their hands, they could find out where people had been secretly buried.453 Among the Canadian Indians, when a wizard wanted to kill someone, he sent out his familiar spirits, who brought him the victim's soul in the form of a stone or something similar. The wizard would strike the soul with a sword or an axe until it bled profusely, and as it bled, the person to whom it belonged would weaken and die.454 In Amboina, if a doctor believes that a patient's soul has been taken away by a demon beyond recovery, he tries to replace it with a soul taken from another person. For this, he goes out at night to a house and asks, “Who’s there?” If someone inside is careless enough to answer, the doctor picks up a clod of earth from before the door, as it is believed that the soul of the person who replied has passed into it. He places this clod under the sick man's pillow and performs certain rituals to transfer the stolen soul into the patient's body. On his way home, the doctor fires two shots to scare the soul from returning to its rightful owner.455 A Karen wizard will capture the wandering soul of a sleeper and transfer it to the body of a dead person. As a result, the dead person comes to life while the former falls unconscious. However, the friends of the sleeper will then hire another wizard to steal the soul of yet another sleeper, causing that person to die as the first sleeper awakens. This way, an endless cycle of deaths and resurrections is thought to occur.456

The Indians of the Nass River, British Columbia, think that a doctor may swallow his patient's soul by mistake. A doctor who is believed to have done so is made by the other doctors to stand over the patient, while one of them thrusts his fingers down the doctor's throat, another kneads him in the stomach with his knuckles, and a third slaps him on the back. If the soul is not in him after all, and if the same process has been repeated upon all the doctors without success, it is concluded that the soul must be in the head-doctor's box. A party of doctors, therefore, waits upon him at [pg 141] his house and requests him to produce his box. When he has done so and arranged its contents on a new mat, they take him and hold him up by the heels with his head in a hole in the floor. In this position they wash his head, and “any water remaining from the ablution is taken and poured upon the sick man's head.”457

The Indigenous people of the Nass River in British Columbia believe that a doctor might accidentally swallow a patient's soul. If a doctor is thought to have done this, the other doctors make him stand over the patient while one of them sticks his fingers down the doctor's throat, another punches him in the stomach with his knuckles, and a third slaps him on the back. If the soul isn’t found inside him after this, and if the same method has been tried on all the doctors without success, it's assumed that the soul must be in the head doctor's box. Therefore, a group of doctors goes to his house and asks him to bring out his box. Once he does and sets its contents out on a new mat, they grab him by the heels with his head in a hole in the floor. In this position, they wash his head, and "Any water left over from the washing is taken and poured over the sick man's head."457

Other examples of the recall and recovery of souls will be found referred to beneath.458

Other examples of the recall and recovery of souls will be mentioned below.458

But the spiritual dangers I have enumerated are not the only ones which beset the savage. Often he regards his shadow or reflection as his soul, or at all [pg 142] events as a vital part of himself, and as such it is necessarily a source of danger to him. For if it is trampled upon, struck, or stabbed, he will feel the injury as if it were done to his person; and if it is detached from him entirely (as he believes that it may be) he will die. In the island of Wetar there are magicians who can make a man ill by stabbing his shadow with a pike or hacking it with a sword.459 After Sankara had destroyed the Buddhists in India, it is said that he journeyed to Nepaul, where he had some difference of opinion with the Grand Lama. To prove his supernatural powers, he soared into the air. But as he mounted up, the Grand Lama, perceiving his shadow swaying and wavering on the ground, struck his knife into it and down fell Sankara and broke his neck.460 In the Babar Islands the demons get power over a man's soul by holding fast his shadow, or by striking and wounding it.461 There are stones in Melanesia on which, if a man's shadow falls, the demon of the stone can draw out his soul.462 In Amboina and Uliase, two islands near the equator, and where, therefore, there is little or no shadow cast at noon, it is a rule not to go out of the house at mid-day, because it is supposed that by doing so a man may lose the shadow of his soul.463 The Mangaians tell of a mighty warrior, Tukaitawa, whose strength waxed and waned with the length of his shadow. In the morning, when his shadow fell longest, his strength was greatest; but as the shadow shortened towards noon his strength ebbed with it, till exactly at noon it reached its lowest [pg 143] point; then, as the shadow stretched out in the afternoon, his strength returned. A certain hero discovered the secret of Tukaitawa's strength and slew him at noon.464 It is possible that even in lands outside the tropics the fact of the diminished shadow at noon may have contributed, even if it did not give rise, to the superstitious dread with which that hour has been viewed by various peoples, as by the Greeks, ancient and modern, and by the Roumanians of Transylvania.465 In this fact, too, we may perhaps detect the reason why noon was chosen by the Greeks as the hour for sacrificing to the shadowless dead.466 The ancients believed that in Arabia if a hyaena trod on a man's shadow it deprived him of the power of speech and motion; and that if a dog, standing on a roof in the moonlight, cast a shadow on the ground and a hyaena trod on it, the dog would fall down as if dragged with a rope.467 Clearly in these cases the shadow, if not equivalent to the soul, is at least regarded as a living part of the man or the animal, so that injury done to the shadow is felt by the person or animal as if it were done to his body. Whoever entered the sanctuary of Zeus on Mount Lycaeus in Arcadia was believed to lose his shadow and to die within the year.468 Nowhere, perhaps, does the equivalence of the shadow to the life or soul come out more clearly than in some [pg 144] customs practised to this day in South-Eastern Europe. In modern Greece, when the foundation of a new building is being laid, it is the custom to kill a cock, a ram, or a lamb, and to let its blood flow on the foundation stone, under which the animal is afterwards buried. The object of the sacrifice is to give strength and stability to the building. But sometimes, instead of killing an animal, the builder entices a man to the foundation stone, secretly measures his body, or a part of it, or his shadow, and buries the measure under the foundation stone; or he lays the foundation stone upon the man's shadow. It is believed that the man will die within the year.469 The Bulgarians still observe a similar custom. If they cannot get a human shadow they measure the shadow of the first animal that comes that way.470 The Roumanians of Transylvania think that he whose shadow is thus immured will die within forty days; so persons passing by a building which is in course of erection may hear a warning cry, “Beware lest they take thy shadow!” Not long ago there were still shadow-traders whose business it was to provide architects with the shadows necessary for securing their walls.471 In these cases the measure of the shadow is looked on as equivalent to the shadow itself, and to bury it is to bury the life or soul of the man, who, deprived of it, must die. Thus the custom is a substitute for the old custom of immuring a living person in the walls, or crushing him under the foundation stone of a new building, in order to give strength and durability to the structure.

But the spiritual dangers I mentioned are not the only threats faced by the savage. Often, he sees his shadow or reflection as his soul, or at least as a vital part of himself, making it a source of danger. If it is trampled, hit, or stabbed, he feels the injury as if it were done to him; and if it is completely detached from him (as he believes it could be), he thinks he will die. In the island of Wetar, there are magicians who can make a person sick by stabbing his shadow with a spear or slashing it with a sword. After Sankara defeated the Buddhists in India, it's said he traveled to Nepal, where he had some disagreements with the Grand Lama. To demonstrate his supernatural abilities, he floated into the air. But as he rose, the Grand Lama, noticing his shadow flickering on the ground, plunged his knife into it, causing Sankara to fall and break his neck. In the Babar Islands, demons gain power over a person's soul by holding his shadow or by striking and injuring it. There are stones in Melanesia where, if a person's shadow falls, the stone's demon can extract his soul. In Amboina and Uliase, two islands near the equator that cast little to no shadow at noon, people believe they shouldn’t go outside at midday because they might lose their soul's shadow. The Mangaians tell of a powerful warrior, Tukaitawa, whose strength grew and shrank with the length of his shadow. In the morning, when his shadow was longest, his strength was at its peak; but as the shadow shrank towards noon, his strength faded until it was at its lowest point exactly at noon; then, as the shadow lengthened in the afternoon, his strength returned. A certain hero learned the secret of Tukaitawa's strength and killed him at noon. It's possible that even in areas outside the tropics, the shorter shadow at noon has contributed to the superstitions surrounding that time, as seen by both ancient and modern Greeks, and by Romanians in Transylvania. This may also explain why the Greeks chose noon for sacrifices to the shadowless dead. The ancients believed that in Arabia, if a hyena stepped on a person’s shadow, it would take away their ability to speak and move; and if a dog, standing on a roof in the moonlight, cast a shadow that a hyena stepped on, the dog would collapse as if pulled by a rope. Clearly, in these cases, the shadow, if not equivalent to the soul, is at least seen as a living part of the person or animal, so any harm to the shadow is felt by the individual or animal as if it were inflicted on their body. Anyone who entered the sanctuary of Zeus on Mount Lycaeus in Arcadia was believed to lose their shadow and die within a year. Nowhere is the connection between the shadow and life or soul clearer than in some customs still practiced in Southeastern Europe today. In modern Greece, when laying the foundation for a new building, it's customary to kill a rooster, a ram, or a lamb and let its blood flow onto the foundation stone, beneath which the animal is later buried. This sacrifice is meant to give strength and stability to the building. However, sometimes instead of killing an animal, the builder lures a person to the foundation stone, secretly measures their body or part of it, or their shadow, and buries the measure under the stone; or he places the foundation stone on the person’s shadow. It is believed that this person will die within the year. Bulgarians have a similar tradition. If they can't get a human shadow, they measure the shadow of the first animal that passes by. The Romanians in Transylvania believe that whoever’s shadow is thus immured will die within forty days; so as people pass by buildings under construction, they might hear the warning cry, “Beware lest they take thy shadow!” Until recently, there were even shadow-traders whose job was to provide architects with the necessary shadows to secure their walls. In these cases, measuring the shadow is seen as equivalent to the shadow itself, and burying it is akin to burying the life or soul of the person, who, being deprived of it, is destined to die. Thus, this custom serves as a substitute for the old practice of entombing a living person in the walls or crushing them under the foundation stone of a new building to ensure the structure's strength and durability.

As some peoples believe a man's soul to be in his [pg 145] shadow, so other (or the same) peoples believe it to be in his reflection in water or a mirror. Thus “the Andamanese do not regard their shadows but their reflections (in any mirror) as their souls.”472 Some of the Fijians thought that man has two souls, a light one and a dark one; the dark one goes to Hades, the light one is his reflection in water or a mirror.473 When the Motumotu of New Guinea first saw their likenesses in a looking-glass they thought that their reflections were their souls.474 The reflection-soul, being external to the man, is exposed to much the same dangers as the shadow-soul. As the shadow may be stabbed, so may the reflection. Hence an Aztec mode of keeping sorcerers from the house was to leave a vessel of water with a knife in it behind the door. When a sorcerer entered he was so much alarmed at seeing his reflection in the water transfixed by a knife that he turned and fled.475 The Zulus will not look into a dark pool because they think there is a beast in it which will take away their reflections, so that they die.476 The Basutos say that crocodiles have the power of thus killing a man by dragging his reflection under water.477 In Saddle Island (Melanesia) there is a pool “into which if any one looks he dies; the malignant spirit takes hold upon his life by means of his reflection on the water.”478

As some cultures believe a person's soul is in their [pg 145] shadow, others (or the same ones) think it resides in their reflection in water or a mirror. Thus, "The Andamanese don't see their shadows; instead, they perceive their reflections (in any mirror) as their souls."472 Some Fijians believed that a person has two souls, one light and one dark; the dark one goes to Hades, while the light one is their reflection in water or a mirror.473 When the Motumotu of New Guinea first saw their images in a mirror, they thought those reflections were their souls.474 The reflection-soul, being external to the person, faces similar dangers as the shadow-soul. Just as a shadow can be attacked, so can a reflection. Because of this, one Aztec way of keeping sorcerers out of their homes was to leave a bowl of water with a knife in it by the door. When a sorcerer entered, he was so startled to see his reflection in the water pierced by a knife that he would turn and flee.475 The Zulus avoid looking into a dark pool because they believe there is a beast in it that will take away their reflections, leading to their death.476 The Basutos claim that crocodiles can kill a person by dragging their reflection underwater.477 On Saddle Island (Melanesia), there's a pool “Anyone who looks into it will die; the evil spirit takes their life through their reflection in the water.”478

[pg 146]

We can now understand why it was a maxim both in ancient India and ancient Greece not to look at one's reflection in water, and why the Greeks regarded it as an omen of death if a man dreamed of seeing himself so reflected.479 They feared that the water-spirits would drag the person's reflection (soul) under water, leaving him soulless to die. This was probably the origin of the classical story of the beautiful Narcissus, who pined and died in consequence of seeing his reflection in the water. The explanation that he died for love of his own fair image was probably devised later, after the old meaning of the story was forgotten. The same ancient belief lingers, in a faded form, in the English superstition that whoever sees a water-fairy must pine and die.

We can now understand why it was a saying both in ancient India and Greece not to look at your reflection in water, and why the Greeks saw it as a sign of death if someone dreamed of seeing themselves that way. They feared that water spirits would drag the person's reflection (soul) underwater, leaving them soulless to die. This likely inspired the classic story of the beautiful Narcissus, who pined and died after seeing his reflection in the water. The explanation that he died out of love for his own image probably came later, after the original meaning of the story was forgotten. The same ancient belief persists, in a faded form, in the English superstition that whoever sees a water fairy will pine and die.

Unfortunately, the moon should always shine
To reveal what a person should never witness!—
I saw a young woman by a stream,
And she was beautiful!
I stayed to watch for a little while,
Her lips were slightly apart as if she were about to sing;
The water covered her face.
With many rings.
I know my life will come to an end,
I know that I will hopelessly long,
For I am made of mortal clay,
But she's amazing!

Further, we can now explain the widespread custom of covering up mirrors or turning them to the wall after a death has taken place in the house. It is feared that the soul, projected out of the person in the shape of his reflection in the mirror, may be carried off by the ghost of the departed, which is commonly supposed to linger about the house till the burial. The custom [pg 147] is thus exactly parallel to the Aru custom of not sleeping in a house after a death for fear that the soul, projected out of the body in a dream, may meet the ghost and be carried off by it.480 In Oldenburg it is thought that if a person sees his image in a mirror after a death he will die himself. So all the mirrors in the house are covered up with white cloth.481 In some parts of Germany after a death not only the mirrors but everything that shines or glitters (windows, clocks, etc.) is covered up,482 doubtless because they might reflect a person's image. The same custom of covering up mirrors or turning them to the wall after a death prevails in England, Scotland, and Madagascar.483 The Suni Mohammedans of Bombay cover with a cloth the mirror in the room of a dying man and do not remove it until the corpse is carried out for burial. They also cover the looking-glasses in their bedrooms before retiring to rest at night.484 The reason why sick people should not see themselves in a mirror, and why the mirror in a sick-room is therefore covered up,485 is also plain; in time of sickness, when the soul might take flight so easily, it is particularly dangerous to project the soul out of the body by means of the reflection in a mirror. The rule is therefore precisely parallel to the rule observed by some peoples of not allowing sick people to sleep;486 for in sleep the soul is projected out of the body, and there is always a risk that it may not return. “In the opinion of the Raskolniks a mirror is an accursed thing, invented by [pg 148] the devil,”487 perhaps on account of the mirror's supposed power of drawing out the soul in the reflection and so facilitating its capture.

Furthermore, we can now explain the common practice of covering up mirrors or turning them to face the wall after someone has died in the house. There’s a belief that the soul, which is thought to escape the person in the form of their reflection in the mirror, could be taken away by the ghost of the deceased, who is believed to linger around the house until the burial. This custom [pg 147] is very similar to the Aru tradition of not sleeping in a house after someone has died, for fear that the soul, escaping the body in a dream, might encounter the ghost and be taken away by it.480 In Oldenburg, it is thought that if someone sees their own image in a mirror after a death, they will also die. Therefore, all the mirrors in the house are covered up with white cloth.481 In some areas of Germany, after a death, not only are mirrors covered but everything that shines or sparkles (like windows, clocks, etc.) is also covered up,482 likely because these things might reflect a person's image. This same practice of covering mirrors or turning them away from view after a death is common in England, Scotland, and Madagascar.483 The Suni Muslims of Bombay cover the mirror in the room of a dying person with a cloth and do not remove it until the body is taken out for burial. They also cover the mirrors in their bedrooms before going to sleep at night.484 The reason sick people shouldn’t see themselves in a mirror, and hence why the mirror in a sickroom is covered up,485 is clear; during illness, when the soul could easily leave the body, it’s especially dangerous to project the soul out by seeing its reflection in a mirror. The practice is therefore very similar to the rule observed by some cultures that prevents sick individuals from sleeping;486 since in sleep, the soul can leave the body, and there’s always a chance it may not return. "Based on the beliefs of the Raskolniks, a mirror is a cursed object, created by [pg 148] the devil."487 possibly because of the mirror’s supposed ability to draw out the soul in its reflection, making it easier for it to be captured.

As with shadows and reflections, so with portraits; they are often believed to contain the soul of the person portrayed. People who hold this belief are naturally loth to have their likenesses taken; for if the portrait is the soul, or at least a vital part of the person portrayed, whoever possesses the portrait will be able to exercise a fatal influence over the original of it. Thus the Canelos Indians of South America think that their soul is carried away in their picture. Two of them having been photographed were so alarmed that they came back next day on purpose to ask if it were really true that their souls had been taken away.488 When Mr. Joseph Thomson tried to photograph some of the Wa-teita in Eastern Africa, they imagined that he was a magician trying to get possession of their souls, and that if he got their likenesses they themselves would be entirely at his mercy.489 An Indian, whose portrait the Prince of Wied wished to get, refused to let himself be drawn, because he believed it would cause his death.490 The Mandans also thought that they would soon die if their portrait was in the hands of another; they wished at least to have the artist's picture as a kind of antidote or guarantee.491 The same belief still lingers in various parts of Europe. Some old women in the Greek island of Carpathus were very angry a few years ago at having their likenesses drawn, [pg 149] thinking that in consequence they would pine and die.492 Some people in Russia object to having their silhouettes taken, fearing that if this is done they will die before the year is out.493 There are persons in the West of Scotland “who refuse to have their likeness taken lest it prove unlucky; and give as instances the cases of several of their friends who never had a day's health after being photographed.”494

As with shadows and reflections, portraits are often thought to hold the soul of the person depicted. People who believe this are understandably reluctant to have their likeness captured; if the portrait represents the soul, or at least an essential part of the person, then whoever owns the portrait could exert a harmful influence over them. For instance, the Canelos Indians of South America think that their soul is taken away in their picture. After two of them were photographed, they were so frightened that they returned the next day specifically to ask if it was true that their souls had been taken. When Mr. Joseph Thomson attempted to photograph some of the Wa-teita in Eastern Africa, they feared he was a magician trying to claim their souls, believing that if he captured their likeness, they would be completely at his mercy. An Indian, whose portrait the Prince of Wied wanted to create, refused to be drawn because he believed it would lead to his death. The Mandans also thought they would soon die if someone else held their portrait; they wanted at least to have the artist's picture as a kind of protection or assurance. This belief still exists in various parts of Europe. A few years ago, some elderly women on the Greek island of Carpathus were very upset about having their likenesses taken, thinking that it would cause them to wither and die. Some people in Russia are against having their silhouettes made, fearing that if they do, they might die before the year is over. There are individuals in the West of Scotland “who refuse to have their likeness taken lest it prove unlucky; and give as instances the cases of several of their friends who never had a day's health after being photographed.”

§ 3.—Royal and priestly taboos (continued).

So much for the primitive conceptions of the soul and the dangers to which it is exposed. These conceptions are not limited to one people or country; with variations of detail they are found all over the world, and survive, as we have seen, in modern Europe. Beliefs so deep-seated and so widespread must necessarily have contributed to shape the mould in which the early kingship was cast. For if every individual was at such pains to save his own soul from the perils which threatened it from so many sides, how much more carefully must he have been guarded upon whose life hung the welfare and even the existence of the whole people, and whom therefore it was the common interest of all to preserve? Therefore we should expect to find the king's life protected by a system of precautions or safeguards still more numerous and minute than those which in primitive society every man adopts [pg 150] for the safety of his own soul. Now in point of fact the life of the early kings is regulated, as we have seen and shall see more fully presently, by a very exact code of rules. May we not then conjecture that these rules are the very safeguards which on à priori grounds we expect to find adopted for the protection of the king's life? An examination of the rules themselves confirms this conjecture. For from this it appears that some of the rules observed by the kings are identical with those observed by private persons out of regard for the safety of their souls; and even of those which seem peculiar to the king, many, if not all, are most readily explained on the hypothesis that they are nothing but safeguards or lifeguards of the king. I will now enumerate some of these royal rules or taboos, offering on each of them such comments and explanations as may serve to set the original intention of the rule in its proper light.

That covers the basic ideas about the soul and the dangers it faces. These beliefs aren't limited to just one culture or country; with some variations, they can be found all around the world and still exist, as we've seen, in modern Europe. Such deep-rooted and widespread beliefs must have played a significant role in shaping the early concept of kingship. If each person was so concerned about saving their own soul from the many dangers it faced, how much more careful must the one be, whose life was tied to the well-being and even survival of the entire community, and who, therefore, everyone had a shared interest in protecting? We should expect to find the king's life safeguarded by an even more extensive and detailed system of precautions than what each individual in primitive society takes for their own soul's safety. In fact, the lives of early kings are governed, as we've seen and will explore more fully soon, by a very specific code of rules. Can we not then suggest that these rules are the very protections we would logically expect to find in place for the king's life? A closer look at the rules themselves supports this idea. It appears that some of the regulations followed by the kings are the same as those upheld by private individuals for the safety of their own souls; and many of those that seem unique to the king can be easily understood as safeguards specifically designed for him. I will now list some of these royal rules or taboos, providing comments and explanations for each to clarify the original purpose behind the rule.

As the object of the royal taboos is to isolate the king from all sources of danger, their general effect is to compel him to live in a state of seclusion, more or less complete, according to the number and stringency of the taboos he observes. Now of all sources of danger none are more dreaded by the savage than magic and witchcraft, and he suspects all strangers of practising these black arts. To guard against the baneful influence exerted voluntarily or involuntarily by strangers is therefore an elementary dictate of savage prudence. Hence before strangers are allowed to enter a district, or at least before they are permitted to mingle freely with the people of the district, certain ceremonies are often performed by the natives of the country for the purpose of disarming the strangers of their magical powers, of counteracting the [pg 151] baneful influence which is believed to emanate from them, or of disinfecting, so to speak, the tainted atmosphere by which they are supposed to be surrounded. Thus in the island of Nanumea (South Pacific) strangers from ships or from other islands were not allowed to communicate with the people until they all, or a few as representatives of the rest, had been taken to each of the four temples in the island, and prayers offered that the god would avert any disease or treachery which these strangers might have brought with them. Meat offerings were also laid upon the altars, accompanied by songs and dances in honour of the god. While these ceremonies were going on, all the people except the priests and their attendants kept out of sight.495 On returning from an attempted ascent of the great African mountain Kilimanjaro, which is believed by the neighbouring tribes to be tenanted by dangerous demons, Mr. New and his party, as soon as they reached the border of the inhabited country, were disenchanted by the inhabitants, being sprinkled with “a professionally prepared liquor, supposed to possess the potency of neutralising evil influences, and removing the spell of wicked spirits.”496 In the interior of Yoruba (West Africa) the sentinels at the gates of towns often oblige European travellers to wait till nightfall before they admit them, the fear being that if the strangers were admitted by day the devils would enter behind them.497 Amongst the Ot Danoms of Borneo it is the custom that strangers entering the territory should pay to [pg 152] the natives a certain sum, which is spent in the sacrifice of animals (buffaloes or pigs) to the spirits of the land and water, in order to reconcile them to the presence of the strangers, and to induce them not to withdraw their favour from the people of the land, but to bless the rice-harvest, etc.498 The men of a certain district in Borneo, fearing to look upon a European traveller lest he should make them ill, warned their wives and children not to go near him. These who could not restrain their curiosity killed fowls to appease the evil spirits and smeared themselves with the blood.499 In Laos before a stranger can be accorded hospitality the master of the house must offer sacrifice to the ancestral spirits; otherwise the spirits would be offended and would send disease on the inmates.500 In the Mentawej Islands when a stranger enters a house where there are children, the father or other member of the family takes the ornament which the children wear in their hair and hands it to the stranger, who holds it in his hands for a while and then gives it back to him. This is thought to protect the children from the evil effect which the sight of a stranger might have upon them.501 At Shepherd's Isle Captain Moresby had to be disenchanted before he was allowed to land his boat's crew. When he leaped ashore a devil-man seized his right hand and waved a bunch of palm leaves over the captain's head. Then “he placed the leaves in my left hand, putting a small green twig into his mouth, still holding me fast, and then, as if with great effort, drew the twig from his mouth—this was extracting the evil [pg 153] spirit—after which he blew violently, as if to speed it away. I now held a twig between my teeth, and he went through the same process.” Then the two raced round a couple of sticks fixed in the ground and bent to an angle at the top, which had leaves tied to it. After some more ceremonies the devil-man concluded by leaping to the level of Captain Moresby's shoulders (his hands resting on the captain's shoulders) several times, “as if to show that he had conquered the devil, and was now trampling him into the earth.”502 North American Indians “have an idea that strangers, particularly white strangers, are ofttimes accompanied by evil spirits. Of these they have great dread, as creating and delighting in mischief. One of the duties of the medicine chief is to exorcise these spirits. I have sometimes ridden into or through a camp where I was unknown or unexpected, to be confronted by a tall, half-naked savage, standing in the middle of the circle of lodges, and yelling in a sing-song, nasal tone, a string of unintelligible words.”503 When Crevaux was travelling in South America he entered a village of the Apalai Indians. A few moments after his arrival some of the Indians brought him a number of large black ants, of a species whose bite is painful, fastened on palm leaves. Then all the people of the village, without distinction of age or sex, presented themselves to him, and he had to sting them all with the ants on their faces, thighs, etc. Sometimes when he applied the ants too tenderly they called out “More! more!” and were not satisfied till their skin was thickly studded with tiny swellings like what might have been produced by whipping them [pg 154] with nettles.504 The object of this ceremony is made plain by the custom observed in Amboina and Uliase of sprinkling sick people with pungent spices, such as ginger and cloves, chewed fine, in order by the prickling sensation to drive away the demon of disease which may be clinging to their persons.505 With a similar intention some of the natives of Borneo and Celebes sprinkle rice upon the head or body of a person supposed to be infested by dangerous spirits; a fowl is then brought, which, by picking up the rice from the person's head or body, removes along with it the spirit or ghost which is clinging like a burr to his skin. This is done, for example, to persons who have attended a funeral, and who may therefore be supposed to be infested by the ghost of the deceased.506 Similarly Basutos, who have carried a corpse to the grave, have their hands scratched with a knife from the tip of the thumb to the tip of the forefinger, and magic stuff is rubbed into the wound,507 for the purpose, no doubt, of removing the ghost which may be adhering to their skin. The people of Nias carefully scrub and scour the weapons and clothes which they buy, in order to efface all connection between the things and the persons from whom they bought them.508 It is probable that the same dread of strangers, rather than any desire to do them honour, is the motive of certain ceremonies which are sometimes observed at their reception, but of which the intention is not directly [pg 155] stated. In Afghanistan and in some parts of Persia the traveller, before he enters a village, is frequently received with a sacrifice of animal life or food, or of fire and incense. The recent Afghan Boundary Mission, in passing by villages in Afghanistan, was often met with fire and incense.509 Sometimes a tray of lighted embers is thrown under the hoofs of the traveller's horse, with the words, “You are welcome.”510 On entering a village in Central Africa Emin Pasha was received with the sacrifice of two goats; their blood was sprinkled on the path and the chief stepped over the blood to greet Emin.511 Amongst the Eskimos of Cumberland Inlet, when a stranger arrives at an encampment, the sorcerer goes out to meet him. The stranger folds his arms and inclines his head to one side, so as to expose his cheek, upon which the sorcerer deals a terrible blow, sometimes felling him to the ground. Next the sorcerer in his turn presents his cheek and receives a buffet from the stranger. Then they kiss each other, the ceremony is over, and the stranger is hospitably received by all.512 Sometimes the dread of strangers and their magic is too great to allow of their reception on any terms. Thus when Speke arrived at a certain village the natives shut their doors against him, “because they had never before seen a white man nor the tin boxes that the men were carrying: ‘Who knows,’ they said, ‘but that these very boxes are the plundering Watuta transformed and come to kill us? You cannot be admitted.’ No [pg 156] persuasion could avail with them, and the party had to proceed to the next village.”513

As a way to protect the king from all potential dangers, royal taboos generally require him to live in a state of seclusion, which can vary in its extent based on how many and how strict the taboos are that he follows. Of all possible threats, none are feared more by primitive societies than magic and witchcraft, leading them to suspect all outsiders of practicing these dark arts. Preventing the harmful influence that strangers might bring is a basic rule of caution for these societies. Therefore, before allowing outsiders to enter an area, or at least before permitting them to interact freely with the local people, certain rituals are often performed by the locals to neutralize the strangers' supposed magical powers, counteract the harmful effects believed to come from them, or metaphorically cleanse the negative atmosphere they are thought to carry. For instance, on the island of Nanumea in the South Pacific, visitors from ships or other islands were not allowed to interact with the locals until they had all, or at least a few representatives, visited each of the four temples on the island to offer prayers asking the god to protect against any diseases or betrayals that the strangers might bring. Meat offerings were also left on the altars, along with songs and dances in honor of the god. During these rituals, everyone except for the priests and their aides would hide away. After attempting to climb the great African mountain Kilimanjaro, which is believed by local tribes to be inhabited by dangerous spirits, Mr. New and his team were disenchanted by the locals as soon as they reached the inhabited area, being sprinkled with “a special drink that is believed to neutralize evil influences and remove the spell of wicked spirits.” In the interior of Yoruba in West Africa, guards at the gates of towns often require European travelers to wait until nightfall before allowing entry, fearing that permitting strangers to enter during the day would let the devils follow them in. Among the Ot Danoms of Borneo, it is customary for strangers entering their territory to pay a fee, which is used for sacrifices of animals (like buffaloes or pigs) to the spirits of the land and water, reconciling them to the presence of outsiders and persuading them not to withdraw their goodwill, so that they may bless the local rice harvest. In a particular district of Borneo, men avoid looking at European travelers for fear that doing so could make them ill, warning their wives and children to keep their distance. Those who couldn’t resist their curiosity would sacrifice chickens to appease the evil spirits and smear themselves with the blood. In Laos, before a stranger is welcomed into someone’s home, the host must make a sacrifice to the ancestral spirits; failing to do so risks offending the spirits, which could bring illness upon the household. In the Mentawej Islands, when a stranger enters a house with children, a family member gives the ornament from the children's hair to the stranger, who holds it briefly before returning it, believed to protect the children from any negative effects the stranger might have. On Shepherd's Isle, Captain Moresby had to undergo a cleansing ritual before he could land his boat's crew. When he jumped onto the shore, a devil-man grasped his right hand and swung a bundle of palm leaves over the captain's head. Then “he placed the leaves in my left hand, putting a small green twig into his mouth, still holding me fast, and then, as if with great effort, drew the twig from his mouth—this was to extract the evil spirit—after which he blew violently, as if to send it away. I now held a twig between my teeth, and he went through the same process.” Then the two raced around a couple of sticks planted in the ground that had leaves tied to the tops. After some more rituals, the devil-man concluded by jumping to the height of Captain Moresby's shoulders (his hands resting on the captain's shoulders) several times, “as if to show that he had defeated the devil and was now stamping him into the ground.” North American Indians “believe that outsiders, especially white ones, are often accompanied by evil spirits that they greatly fear, as these spirits create trouble and delight in chaos. One of the responsibilities of the medicine chief is to drive away these spirits. I once rode into a camp where I was unknown, only to be faced by a tall, half-naked man standing in the middle of the circle of lodges, yelling a string of incomprehensible words in a sing-song voice.” When Crevaux was traveling in South America, he entered a village of the Apalai Indians. Shortly after his arrival, some of the villagers brought him large black ants of a type whose bite is painful, fastened to palm leaves. Then everyone in the village, regardless of age or gender, came to him, and he had to let the ants sting them on their faces, thighs, and so on. Sometimes when he applied the ants too gently, they would shout “More! more!” and were not satisfied until their skin was covered in tiny swellings that resembled welts from nettles. The purpose of this ceremony is clarified by the practice seen in Amboina and Uliase of sprinkling sick individuals with pungent spices, like ginger and cloves, ground finely, to drive away the demon of disease that may be clinging to them. Similarly, some natives of Borneo and Celebes sprinkle rice on the head or body of someone believed to be haunted by spirits; then a chicken is brought in to peck the rice off the person’s head or body, supposedly taking the spirit or ghost away with it. This procedure is performed, for instance, on those who have attended a funeral, as they are thought to be infested by the deceased's ghost. Likewise, Basutos who have carried a corpse to the grave have their hands cut from the tip of their thumb to the tip of their forefinger and have magic substances rubbed into the wound, likely to remove any ghost that might be following them. The people of Nias scrub and scour weapons and clothes they purchase, aiming to erase any connection they may have with the previous owners. It is likely that the same fear of strangers, as opposed to any desire to honor them, motivates certain rituals sometimes performed upon their arrival, even if the intentions are not explicitly stated. In Afghanistan and parts of Persia, travelers are often welcomed with sacrifices consisting of animal life, food, or offerings of fire and incense before entering a village. During a recent Afghan Boundary Mission, the team often encountered fire and incense when passing by villages. Sometimes, a tray of burning embers is placed under the feet of the traveler’s horse, accompanied by the phrase, “You are welcome.” Upon entering a village in Central Africa, Emin Pasha was received with the sacrifice of two goats, whose blood was sprinkled along the path, which the chief stepped over to greet Emin. Among the Eskimos of Cumberland Inlet, when a stranger arrives at a campsite, the sorcerer steps out to greet him. The stranger folds his arms and tilts his head to one side, exposing his cheek, which allows the sorcerer to strike a strong blow, sometimes knocking him to the ground. Next, the sorcerer presents his cheek and receives a slap from the stranger. Then they embrace, concluding the ceremony, and the stranger is warmly welcomed by all. Sometimes, the fear of strangers and their magic is so intense that it completely prevents their welcoming. For example, when Speke arrived at a certain village, the locals shut their doors against him, “because they had never seen a white man or the tin boxes the men were carrying: ‘Who knows,’ they said, ‘maybe these very boxes are the plundering Watuta transformed and come to kill us? You cannot be admitted.’ No persuasion could convince them, and the group had to move on to the next village.”

The fear thus entertained of alien visitors is often mutual. Entering a strange land, the savage feels that he is treading enchanted ground, and he takes steps to guard against the demons that haunt it and the magical arts of its inhabitants. Thus on going to a strange land the Maoris performed certain ceremonies to make it noa (common), lest it might have been previously tapu (sacred).514 When Baron Miklucho-Maclay was approaching a village on the Maclay Coast of New Guinea, one of the natives who accompanied him broke a branch from a tree and going aside whispered to it for a while; then going up to each member of the party, one after another, he spat something upon his back and gave him some blows with the branch. Lastly, he went into the forest and buried the branch under withered leaves in the thickest part of the jungle. This ceremony was believed to protect the party against all treachery and danger in the village they were approaching.515 The idea probably was that the malignant influences were drawn off from the persons into the branch and buried with it in the depths of the forest. In Australia, when a strange tribe has been invited into a district and is approaching the encampment of the tribe which owns the land, “the strangers carry lighted bark or burning sticks in their hands, for the purpose, they say, of clearing and purifying the air.”516 So when two Greek armies were [pg 157] advancing to the onset, sacred men used to march in front of each, bearing lighted torches, which they flung into the space between the hosts and then retired unmolested.517

The fear of outsiders is often shared. When entering new territory, the native feels that they are on mystical ground and takes precautions against the spirits that inhabit it and the magical practices of the locals. For example, when the Maoris traveled to unfamiliar land, they performed specific rituals to make it noa (common), to ensure it wasn’t previously tapu (sacred).514 When Baron Miklucho-Maclay was nearing a village on the Maclay Coast of New Guinea, one of the locals traveling with him broke a branch from a tree and went aside to whisper to it for a time; then he approached each member of the group, one by one, spat something on their backs, and struck them lightly with the branch. Finally, he went into the forest and buried the branch under dried leaves in the densest part of the jungle. This ritual was thought to protect the group from any deceit or danger in the village they were about to enter.515 The belief was likely that negative energies were transferred from the people into the branch and buried with it deep in the forest. In Australia, when an unfamiliar tribe is invited into an area and approaches the camp of the tribe that owns the land, "The strangers are holding lit bark or burning sticks, saying it's to clear and purify the air."516 Similarly, when two Greek armies were [pg 157] getting ready for battle, sacred men would lead each army, carrying lit torches, which they would throw into the space between the two sides before retreating unharmed.517

Again, it is thought that a man who has been on a journey may have contracted some magic evil from the strangers with whom he has been brought into contact. Hence on returning home, before he is readmitted to the society of his tribe and friends, he has to undergo certain purificatory ceremonies. Thus the Bechuanas “cleanse or purify themselves after journeys by shaving their heads, etc., lest they should have contracted from strangers some evil by witchcraft or sorcery.”518 In some parts of Western Africa when a man returns home after a long absence, before he is allowed to visit his wife, he must wash his person with a particular fluid, and receive from the sorcerer a certain mark on his forehead, in order to counteract any magic spell which a stranger woman may have cast on him in his absence, and which might be communicated through him to the women of his village.519 Two Hindoo ambassadors, who had been sent to England by a native prince and had returned to India, were considered to have so polluted themselves by contact with strangers that nothing but being born again could restore them to purity. “For the purpose of regeneration it is directed to make an image of pure gold of the female power of nature, in the shape either of a woman or of a cow. In this statue the person to be regenerated is enclosed, and dragged through the [pg 158] usual channel. As a statue of pure gold and of proper dimensions would be too expensive, it is sufficient to make an image of the sacred Yoni, through which the person to be regenerated is to pass.” Such an image of pure gold was made at the prince's command, and his ambassadors were born again by being dragged through it.520 When Damaras return home after a long absence, they are given a small portion of the fat of particular animals which is supposed to possess certain virtues.521 In some of the Moluccas, when a brother or young blood-relation returns from a long journey, a young girl awaits him at the door with a caladi leaf in her hand and water in the leaf. She throws the water over his face and bids him welcome.522 The natives of Savage Island (South Pacific) invariably killed, not only all strangers in distress who were drifted to their shores, but also any of their own people who had gone away in a ship and returned home. This was done out of dread of disease. Long after they began to venture out to ships they would not immediately use the things they obtained from them, but hung them up in quarantine for weeks in the bush.523

Once again, it's believed that a man returning from a journey might have picked up some magical negativity from the strangers he encountered. So, when he comes home, before he can rejoin his family and friends, he has to participate in certain cleansing rituals. The Bechuanas "cleanse or purify themselves after traveling by shaving their heads, etc., so they don’t contract any evil from strangers through magic or sorcery."518 In parts of Western Africa, when a man comes back after being away for a long time, he must wash himself with a special fluid and receive a specific mark on his forehead from a sorcerer. This is to counteract any magic spell that a stranger woman might have cast on him during his absence, which could be passed on to the women in his village.519 Two Hindu ambassadors, sent to England by a native prince and then returning to India, were seen as so contaminated by their interactions with outsiders that only being reborn could restore their purity. “To facilitate regeneration, an image made of pure gold representing the female power of nature is created, either in the form of a woman or a cow. In this statue, the person who is to be regenerated is enclosed and pulled through the usual channel. Since a statue made of pure gold and the correct size would be too costly, it is enough to create an image of the sacred Yoni, which the person undergoing regeneration will pass through.” A pure gold image was created on the prince's orders, and his ambassadors were reborn by being dragged through it.520 When Damaras return home after a long time away, they are given a small amount of fat from specific animals believed to have special properties.521 In some of the Moluccas, when a brother or young relative returns from a long journey, a young girl stands at the door with a caladi leaf and water in it. She splashes the water on his face and welcomes him home.522 The natives of Savage Island (South Pacific) always killed not only any strangers in trouble who washed up on their shores but also their own people returning from a ship. They did this out of fear of disease. Even after they began to interact with ships, they wouldn't use the items they received immediately but would hang them up in quarantine in the bush for weeks.523

When precautions like these are taken on behalf of the people in general against the malignant influence supposed to be exercised by strangers, we shall not be surprised to find that special measures are adopted to protect the king from the same insidious danger. In the middle ages the envoys who visited a Tartar Khan were obliged to pass between two fires before they were admitted to his presence, and the gifts they brought were also carried between the fires. The [pg 159] reason assigned for the custom was that the fire purged away any magic influence which the strangers might mean to exercise over the Khan.524 When subject chiefs come with their retinues to visit Kalamba (the most powerful chief of the Bashilange in the Congo Basin) for the first time or after being rebellious, they have to bathe, men and women together, in two brooks on two successive days, passing the nights in the open air in the market-place. After the second bath they proceed, entirely naked, to the house of Kalamba, who makes a long white mark on the breast and forehead of each of them. Then they return to the market-place and dress, after which they undergo the pepper ordeal. Pepper is dropped into the eyes of each of them, and while this is being done the sufferer has to make a confession of all his sins, to answer all questions that may be put to him, and to take certain vows. This ends the ceremony, and the strangers are now free to take up their quarters in the town for as long as they choose to remain.525 At Kilema, in Eastern Africa, when a stranger arrives, a medicine is made out of a certain plant or a tree fetched from a distance, mixed with the blood of a sheep or goat. With this mixture the stranger is besmeared or besprinkled before he is admitted to the presence of the king.526 The King of Monomotapa (South-East Africa) might not wear any foreign stuffs for fear of their being poisoned.527 The [pg 160] King of Kakongo (West Africa) might not possess or even touch European goods, except metals, arms, and articles made of wood and ivory. Persons wearing foreign stuffs were very careful to keep at a distance from his person, lest they should touch him.528 The King of Loango might not look upon the house of a white man.529

When precautions like these are taken on behalf of the people generally against the harmful influence thought to be exerted by outsiders, we shouldn't be surprised to see that specific measures are taken to protect the king from the same hidden danger. In the Middle Ages, envoys visiting a Tartar Khan had to walk between two fires before being allowed to see him, and the gifts they brought were also passed between the flames. The reason given for this practice was that the fire would cleanse away any magical influence the strangers might try to exert over the Khan. When local chiefs come with their followers to visit Kalamba (the most powerful chief of the Bashilange in the Congo Basin) for the first time or after rebelling, they must bathe, both men and women together, in two streams over two days, spending the nights outdoors in the marketplace. After the second bath, they go, entirely naked, to Kalamba's house, where he marks a long white line on their chest and forehead. Then they return to the marketplace to get dressed, after which they undergo the pepper ordeal. Pepper is put into each person's eyes, and while this happens, the person must confess all their sins, answer any questions asked, and take certain vows. This concludes the ceremony, and the strangers are now free to settle in the town for as long as they wish to stay. In Kilema, in Eastern Africa, when a stranger arrives, a medicine is made from a certain plant or tree brought from afar, mixed with the blood of a sheep or goat. This mixture is rubbed or sprinkled on the stranger before they are allowed to see the king. The King of Monomotapa (South-East Africa) was not allowed to wear any foreign materials for fear they might be poisoned. The King of Kakongo (West Africa) could not own or even touch European goods, except for metals, weapons, and items made of wood and ivory. People wearing foreign materials were very careful to keep away from him, so they wouldn’t accidentally touch him. The King of Loango was not allowed to look at the house of a white man.

In the opinion of savages the acts of eating and drinking are attended with special danger; for at these times the soul may escape from the mouth, or be extracted by the magic arts of an enemy present. Precautions are therefore taken to guard against these dangers. Thus of the Battas of Sumatra it is said that “since the soul can leave the body, they always take care to prevent their soul from straying on occasions when they have most need of it. But it is only possible to prevent the soul from straying when one is in the house. At feasts one may find the whole house shut up, in order that the soul (tondi) may stay and enjoy the good things set before it.”530 In Fiji persons who suspected others of plotting against them avoided eating in their presence, or were careful to leave no fragment of food behind.531 The Zafimanelo in Madagascar lock their doors when they eat, and hardly any one ever sees them eating.532 The Warua will not allow any one to see them eating and drinking, being doubly particular that no person of the opposite [pg 161] sex shall see them doing so. “I had to pay a man to let me see him drink; I could not make a man let a woman see him drink.” When offered a drink of pombe they often ask that a cloth may be held up to hide them whilst drinking. Further, each man and woman must cook for themselves; each person must have his own fire.533 If these are the ordinary precautions taken by common people, the precautions taken by kings are extraordinary. The King of Loango may not be seen eating or drinking by man or beast under pain of death. A favourite dog having broken into the room where the king was dining, the king ordered it to be killed on the spot. Once the king's own son, a boy of twelve years old, inadvertently saw the king drink. Immediately the king ordered him to be finely apparelled and feasted, after which he commanded him to be cut in quarters, and carried about the city with a proclamation that he had seen the king drink. “When the king has a mind to drink, he has a cup of wine brought; he that brings it has a bell in his hand, and as soon as he has delivered the cup to the king he turns his face from him and rings the bell, on which all present fall down with their faces to the ground, and continue so till the king has drank.... His eating is much in the same style, for which he has a house on purpose, where his victuals are set upon a bensa or table: which he goes to and shuts the door; when he has done, he knocks and comes out. So that none ever see the king eat or drink. For it is believed that if any one should, the king shall immediately die.”534 The rules [pg 162] observed by the neighbouring King of Kakongo were similar; it was thought that the king would die if any of his subjects were to see him drink.535 It is a capital offence to see the King of Dahomey at his meals. When he drinks in public, as he does on extraordinary occasions, he hides himself behind a curtain, or handkerchiefs are held up round his head, and all the people throw themselves with their faces to the earth.536 Any one who saw the Muato Jamwo (a great potentate in the Congo Basin) eating or drinking would certainly be put to death.537 When the King of Tonga ate all the people turned their backs to him.538 In the palace of the Persian kings there were two dining-rooms opposite each other; in one of them the king dined, in the other his guests. He could see them through a curtain on the door, but they could not see him. Generally the king took his meals alone; but sometimes his wife or some of his sons dined with him.539

In the view of primitive people, eating and drinking carry significant risks; during these activities, the soul might escape from the mouth or be taken by the magical powers of an enemy nearby. Therefore, precautions are taken to protect against these threats. For example, the Battas of Sumatra believe that “since the soul can leave the body, they always take care to prevent their soul from straying at times when they really need it. However, it’s only possible to keep the soul from wandering when one is inside the house. At feasts, the entire house may be locked up so that the soul (tondi) can stay and enjoy the good food provided.”In Fiji, people who think others might be scheming against them avoid eating around them or make sure there are no leftover food scraps. The Zafimanelo in Madagascar lock their doors when they eat, and few people ever see them dining. The Warua do not permit anyone to observe them while eating or drinking, especially being careful that no one of the opposite [pg 161] sex sees them. “I had to pay a man to let me watch him drink; I couldn't force a man to let a woman see him drink.” When offered a drink of pombe, they often request that a cloth be held up to shield them while drinking. Moreover, each man and woman must cook for themselves; everyone must have their own fire.If these are the usual precautions taken by everyday people, the measures adopted by kings are something else entirely. The King of Loango can't be seen eating or drinking by anyone or anything, or it could lead to death. When a favorite dog entered the room while the king was having dinner, he ordered it to be killed right away. One time, the king's twelve-year-old son accidentally saw him drink. The king dressed him in fine clothes and threw a feast, then commanded him to be cut into quarters and displayed around the city with a notice that he had seen the king drink. "When the king wants to drink, a cup of wine is brought to him; the person delivering it carries a bell, and as soon as they hand the cup to the king, they turn away and ring the bell, making everyone present fall to the ground with their faces down and stay that way until the king has finished drinking... His eating is quite similar; he has a special room for it, where his food is placed on a bensa or table. He goes in and shuts the door; when he's done, he knocks and exits. This way, no one ever sees the king eat or drink. It's believed that if anyone did, the king would die immediately." The rules of the neighboring King of Kakongo were similar; it was thought he would die if any subjects saw him drink. It's a serious offense to witness the King of Dahomey at his meals. When he drinks in public, which happens very seldom, he hides behind a curtain, or handkerchiefs are held around his head, and everyone prostrates themselves with their faces to the ground. Anyone who saw the Muato Jamwo (a powerful ruler in the Congo Basin) eating or drinking would surely be executed. When the King of Tonga dined, everyone turned away from him. In the palace of the Persian kings, there were two dining rooms facing each other; in one, the king dined, while in the other, his guests did. He could see them through a curtain at the door, but they couldn’t see him. Generally, the king ate alone, but sometimes his wife or some of his sons would join him.

In these cases, however, the intention may perhaps be to hinder evil influences from entering the body rather than to prevent the escape of the soul. To the former rather than to the latter motive is to be ascribed the custom observed by some African sultans of veiling their faces. The Sultan of Darfur wraps up his face with a piece of white muslin, which goes round his head several times, covering his mouth and nose first, and then his forehead, so that only his eyes are visible. The same custom of veiling the face as a mark of sovereignty is said to be observed in other [pg 163] parts of Central Africa.540 The Sultan of Wadai always speaks from behind a curtain; no one sees his face except his intimates and a few favoured persons.541 Amongst the Touaregs of the Sahara all the men (but not the women) keep the lower part of their face, especially the mouth, veiled constantly; the veil is never put off, not even in eating or sleeping.542 In Samoa a man whose family god was the turtle might not eat a turtle, and if he helped a neighbour to cut up and cook one he had to wear a bandage tied over his mouth, lest an embryo turtle should slip down his throat, grow up, and be his death.543 In West Timor a speaker holds his right hand before his mouth in speaking lest a demon should enter his body, and lest the person with whom he converses should harm the speaker's soul by magic.544 In New South Wales for some time after his initiation into the tribal mysteries, a young blackfellow (whose soul at this time is in a critical state) must always cover his mouth with a rug when a woman is present.545 Popular expressions in the language of civilised peoples, such as to have one's heart in one's mouth, show how natural is the idea that the life or soul may escape by the mouth or nostrils.546

In these situations, however, the goal may be to block harmful forces from entering the body instead of preventing the soul from escaping. This motive is likely behind the practice of some African sultans covering their faces. The Sultan of Darfur wraps his face with a piece of white muslin, going around his head multiple times, first covering his mouth and nose, then his forehead, so that only his eyes are visible. This tradition of veiling the face as a sign of authority is reported in other [pg 163] regions of Central Africa. The Sultan of Wadai always speaks from behind a curtain; only his close friends and a few selected individuals see his face. Among the Touaregs of the Sahara, all men (but not women) constantly cover the lower part of their faces, especially their mouths, with a veil that is never removed, even while eating or sleeping. In Samoa, a man whose family god is the turtle is forbidden from eating turtle meat, and if he helps a neighbor prepare one, he must wear a bandage over his mouth to prevent an embryo turtle from slipping down his throat, growing up, and causing his death. In West Timor, a speaker holds his right hand in front of his mouth while talking to prevent a demon from entering his body and to protect his soul from being harmed by the listener's magic. In New South Wales, for a certain period after being initiated into tribal secrets, a young man (whose soul is in a delicate state at this time) must always cover his mouth with a cloth when a woman is present. Common phrases in the language of civilized societies, like having one's heart in one's mouth, illustrate how natural it is to think that life or the soul could escape through the mouth or nostrils.

[pg 164]

By an extension of the like precaution kings are sometimes forbidden ever to leave their palaces; or, if they are allowed to do so, their subjects are forbidden to see them abroad. We have seen that the priestly king at Shark Point, West Africa, may never quit his house or even his chair, in which he is obliged to sleep sitting.547 After his coronation the King of Loango is confined to his palace, which he may not leave.548 The King of Ibo (West Africa) “does not step out of his house into the town unless a human sacrifice is made to propitiate the gods: on this account he never goes out beyond the precincts of his premises.”549 The kings of Aethiopia were worshipped as gods, but were mostly kept shut up in their palaces.550 The kings of Sabaea (Sheba), the spice country of Arabia, were not allowed to go out of their palaces; if they did so, the mob stoned them to death.551 But at the top of the palace there was a window with a chain attached to it. If any man deemed he had suffered wrong, he pulled the chain, and the king perceived him and called him in and gave judgment.552 So to this day the kings of Corea, whose persons are sacred and receive “honours almost divine,” are shut up in their palace from the age of twelve or fifteen; and if a suitor wishes to obtain justice of the king he sometimes lights a great bonfire on a mountain facing the palace; the king sees the fire and informs himself of the case.553 The [pg 165] King of Tonquin was permitted to appear abroad twice or thrice a year for the performance of certain religious ceremonies; but the people were not allowed to look at him. The day before he came forth notice was given to all the inhabitants of the city and country to keep from the way the king was to go; the women were obliged to remain in their houses and durst not show themselves under pain of death, a penalty which was carried out on the spot if any one disobeyed the order, even through ignorance. Thus the king was invisible to all but his troops and the officers of his suite.554 In Mandalay a stout lattice-paling, six feet high and carefully kept in repair, lined every street in the walled city and all those in the suburbs through which the king was likely at any time to pass. Behind this paling, which stood two feet or so from the houses, all the people had to stay when the king or any of the queens went out. Any one who was caught outside it by the beadles after the procession had started was severely handled, and might think himself lucky if he got off with a beating. No one was supposed to look through the holes in the lattice-work, which were besides partly stopped up with flowering shrubs.555

By a similar precaution, kings are sometimes not allowed to leave their palaces; or, if they can, their subjects are prohibited from seeing them outside. We have observed that the priestly king at Shark Point, West Africa, can never leave his house or even his chair, where he has to sleep sitting. After his coronation, the King of Loango is confined to his palace and cannot leave. The King of Ibo (West Africa) “does not step out of his house into the town unless a human sacrifice is made to appease the gods: for this reason, he never goes beyond the boundaries of his premises.” The kings of Aethiopia were worshipped like gods but were mostly kept locked up in their palaces. The kings of Sabaea (Sheba), the spice country of Arabia, were not allowed to leave their palaces; if they did, the mob would stone them to death. However, at the top of the palace, there was a window with a chain attached to it. If anyone believed they had been wronged, they would pull the chain, and the king would see them and call them in to give a judgment. To this day, the kings of Corea, whose persons are sacred and receive “almost divine honors,” are confined to their palace from the age of twelve or fifteen; and if someone wishes to seek justice from the king, they sometimes light a big bonfire on a mountain facing the palace; the king sees the fire and learns about the case. The King of Tonquin was allowed to appear in public two or three times a year for certain religious ceremonies, but the people were not allowed to look at him. The day before he was to appear, an announcement was made to all the inhabitants of the city and surrounding areas to stay away from the path the king would take; women had to remain inside their homes and could not show themselves under the threat of death, a punishment that was enforced on the spot if anyone disobeyed, even out of ignorance. Thus, the king was invisible to everyone except his troops and his entourage. In Mandalay, a sturdy lattice fence, six feet high and well-maintained, lined every street in the walled city and those suburbs where the king might pass. Behind this fence, which stood about two feet away from the houses, everyone had to stay when the king or any of the queens went out. Anyone caught outside by the guards after the procession had started would face severe punishment and would be fortunate to escape with just a beating. No one was supposed to look through the openings in the lattice, which were partially blocked by flowering shrubs.

Again, magic mischief may be wrought upon a man through the remains of the food he has partaken of, or the dishes out of which he has eaten. Thus the Narrinyeri in South Australia think that if a man eats of the sacred animal (totem) of his tribe, and an enemy gets hold of a portion of the flesh, the latter [pg 166] can make it grow in the inside of the eater, and so cause his death. Therefore when a man eats of his totem he is careful to eat it all or else to conceal or destroy the remains.556 In Tana, one of the New Hebrides, people bury or throw into the sea the leavings of their food, lest these should fall into the hands of the disease-makers. For if a disease-maker finds the remnants of a meal, say the skin of a banana, he picks it up and burns it slowly in the fire. As it burns the person who ate the banana falls ill and sends to the disease-maker, offering him presents if he will stop burning the banana skin.557 Hence no one may touch the food which the King of Loango leaves upon his plate; it is buried in a hole in the ground. And no one may drink out of the king's vessel.558 Similarly no man may drink out of the same cup or glass with the King of Fida (in Guinea); “he hath always one kept particularly for himself; and that which hath but once touched another's lips he never uses more, though it be made of metal that may be cleansed by fire.”559 Amongst the Alfoers of Celebes there is a priest called the Leleen, whose duty appears to be to make the rice grow. His functions begin about a month before the rice is sown, and end after the crop is housed. During this time he has to observe certain taboos; amongst others he may not eat or drink with any one else, and he may drink out of no vessel but his own.560

Again, magic mischief can be done to a person through the leftovers of the food he has eaten or the dishes he has used. For example, the Narrinyeri in South Australia believe that if a man eats his tribe's sacred animal (totem) and an enemy obtains part of it, that enemy can cause the eater to become ill from within, potentially leading to his death. Therefore, when a man eats his totem, he is careful to consume it completely or to hide or destroy what remains. In Tana, one of the New Hebrides, people bury or throw away their food scraps to prevent them from falling into the hands of disease-makers. If a disease-maker finds a leftover, like a banana peel, they will pick it up and slowly burn it. As it burns, the person who ate the banana becomes ill and may send offerings to the disease-maker in hopes of stopping the burning of the peel. Because of this, no one is allowed to touch the food that the King of Loango leaves on his plate; it is buried in the ground. Additionally, no one may drink from the king's cup. Similarly, no one is allowed to share a cup or glass with the King of Fida (in Guinea); "he always has one kept specifically for himself, and he never uses a cup that has touched another person's lips, even if it is made of metal that can be cleansed by fire." Among the Alfoers of Celebes, there is a priest called the Leleen, whose responsibility seems to be to ensure the rice grows. His duties begin about a month before planting time and finish when the harvest is stored. During this period, he must follow certain taboos; among other restrictions, he cannot eat or drink with anyone else and can only use his own vessel for drinking.

We have seen that the Mikado's food was cooked [pg 167] every day in new pots and served up in new dishes; both pots and dishes were of common clay, in order that they might be broken or laid aside after they had been once used. They were generally broken, for it was believed that if any one else ate his food out of these sacred dishes his mouth and throat would become swollen and inflamed. The same ill effect was thought to be experienced by any one who should wear the Mikado's clothes without his leave; he would have swellings and pains all over his body.561 In the evil effects thus supposed to follow upon the use of the Mikado's vessels or clothes we see that other side of the divine king's or god-man's character to which attention has been already called. The divine person is a source of danger as well as of blessing; he must not only be guarded, he must also be guarded against. His sacred organism, so delicate that a touch may disorder it, is also electrically charged with a powerful spiritual force which may discharge itself with fatal effect on whatever comes in contact with it. Hence the isolation of the man-god is quite as necessary for the safety of others as for his own. His divinity is a fire, which, under proper restraints, confers endless blessings, but, if rashly touched or allowed to break bounds, burns and destroys what it touches. Hence the disastrous effects supposed to attend a breach of taboo; the offender has thrust his hand into the divine fire, which shrivels up and consumes him on the spot. To take an example from the taboo we are considering. It happened that a New Zealand chief of high rank and great sanctity had left the remains of his dinner by the wayside. A slave, a [pg 168] stout, hungry fellow, coming up after the chief had gone, saw the unfinished dinner, and ate it up without asking questions. Hardly had he finished when he was informed by a horror-stricken spectator that the food of which he had eaten was the chief's. “I knew the unfortunate delinquent well. He was remarkable for courage, and had signalised himself in the wars of the tribe.... No sooner did he hear the fatal news than he was seized by the most extraordinary convulsions and cramp in the stomach, which never ceased till he died, about sundown the same day. He was a strong man, in the prime of life, and if any pakeha [European] freethinker should have said he was not killed by the tapu [taboo] of the chief, which had been communicated to the food by contact, he would have been listened to with feelings of contempt for his ignorance and inability to understand plain and direct evidence.”562 This is not a solitary case. A Maori woman having eaten of some fruit, and being afterwards told that the fruit had being taken from a tabooed place, exclaimed that the spirit of the chief whose sanctity had been thus profaned would kill her. This was in the afternoon, and next day by twelve o'clock she was dead.563 An observer who knows the Maoris well, says, “Tapu [taboo] is an awful weapon. I have seen a strong young man die the same day he was tapued; the victims die under it as though their strength ran out as water.”564 A Maori chief's tinder-box was once the means of killing several persons; for having been lost by him, and found by some men who used it to [pg 169] light their pipes, they died of fright on learning to whom it had belonged. So too the garments of a high New Zealand chief will kill any one else who wears them. A chief was observed by a missionary to throw down a precipice a blanket which he found too heavy to carry. Being asked by the missionary why he did not leave it on a tree for the use of a future traveller, the chief replied that “it was the fear of its being taken by another which caused him to throw it where he did, for if it were worn, his tapu” (i.e. his spiritual power communicated by contact to the blanket and through the blanket to the man) “would kill the person.”565

We have seen that the Mikado's food was cooked [pg 167] every day in new pots and served up on new dishes; both pots and dishes were made of ordinary clay, so that they could be broken or set aside after one use. They were usually broken, because it was believed that if anyone else ate from these sacred dishes, their mouth and throat would become swollen and inflamed. The same negative effect was thought to happen to anyone who wore the Mikado's clothes without his permission; they would suffer from swellings and pains all over their body.561 In the harmful effects believed to follow the use of the Mikado’s vessels or clothes, we see that other aspect of the divine king's or god-man's identity that has already been mentioned. The divine person is both a source of danger and blessing; they must not only be protected, but also shielded from others. Their sacred being is so delicate that a single touch can disturb it, and it is also electrically charged with a powerful spiritual force that can harm whatever comes in contact with it. Therefore, the isolation of the man-god is just as crucial for the safety of others as it is for his own. His divinity resembles a fire that, when properly contained, brings endless blessings, but if recklessly approached or allowed to surpass its limits, it can burn and destroy everything it touches. Hence the disastrous consequences associated with breaking taboo; the offender has reached into the divine fire, which instantly shrivels and consumes them. To illustrate this taboo, there was a high-ranking New Zealand chief with great sanctity who had left the remnants of his dinner by the roadside. A slave, a [pg 168] hefty, hungry guy, came along after the chief had left, saw the unfinished meal, and ate it without asking any questions. Hardly had he finished when a horrified onlooker informed him that the food he had eaten belonged to the chief. "I knew the unfortunate person well. He was recognized for his bravery and had distinguished himself in the tribe's battles. As soon as he heard the tragic news, he was hit with violent convulsions and stomach cramps that didn't stop until he died that same day around sunset. He was a strong man, in the prime of his life, and if some European freethinker had suggested that he wasn't killed by the tapu [taboo] of the chief, which had transferred to the food through contact, people would have looked down on him for his ignorance and inability to understand clear and direct evidence."562 This is not an isolated case. A Maori woman ate some fruit and was later told that it had been taken from a sacred place; she exclaimed that the spirit of the chief whose sanctity had been violated would kill her. This was in the afternoon, and she was dead by noon the next day.563 An observer who knows the Maori well says, "Tapu [taboo] is a powerful force. I've witnessed a strong young man die on the very day he was declared tapu; the victims perish under it as if their strength drains away like water."564 A Maori chief's tinder box was once responsible for several deaths; after it was lost by him and found by some men who used it to [pg 169] light their pipes, they died of fright upon learning to whom it had belonged. Similarly, the garments of a high New Zealand chief can kill anyone else who wears them. A chief was seen by a missionary throwing a blanket down a cliff because he found it too heavy to carry. When the missionary asked him why he didn't leave it on a tree for a future traveler, the chief replied that "It was the fear of someone else taking it that made him throw it where he did, because if it was used, his tapu." (i.e. his spiritual power communicated through contact with the blanket and then to the person) “would take the person out.”565

No wonder therefore that the savage should rank these human divinities amongst what he regards as the dangerous classes, and should impose exactly the same restraints upon the one as upon the other. For instance, those who have defiled themselves by touching a dead body are regarded by the Maoris as in a very dangerous state, and are sedulously shunned and isolated. But the taboos observed by and towards these defiled persons (e.g. they may not touch food with their hands, and the vessels used by them may not be used by other people) are identical with those observed by and towards sacred chiefs.566 And, in general, the prohibition to use the dress, vessels, etc., of certain persons and the effects supposed to follow an infraction of the rule are exactly the same whether the persons to whom the things belong are sacred or what we might call unclean and polluted. As the garments which have been touched by a sacred chief [pg 170] kill those who handle them, so do the things which have been touched by a menstruous woman. An Australian blackfellow, who discovered that his wife had lain on his blanket at her menstrual period, killed her and died of terror himself within a fortnight.567 Hence Australian women at these times are forbidden under pain of death to touch anything that men use. They are also secluded at child-birth, and all vessels used by them during their seclusion are burned.568 Amongst some of the Indians of North America also women at menstruation are forbidden to touch men's utensils, which would be so defiled by their touch that their subsequent use would be attended by certain mischief or misfortune.569 Amongst the Eskimo of Alaska no one will willingly drink out of the same cup or eat out of the same dish that has been used by a woman at her confinement until it has been purified by certain incantations.570 Amongst some of the Tinneh Indians of North America the dishes out of which girls eat during their seclusion at puberty “are used by no other person, and wholly devoted to their own use.”571 Again amongst some Indian tribes of North America men who have slain enemies are considered to be in a state of uncleanness, and will not eat or drink out of any dish or smoke out of any pipe but their own for a considerable time after the slaughter, and no one will willingly use their dishes or pipes. They live in a kind of seclusion during this time, at the end of which all [pg 171] the dishes and pipes used by them during their seclusion are burned.572 Amongst the Kafirs, boys at circumcision live secluded in a special hut, and when they are healed all the vessels which they had used during their seclusion and the boyish mantles which they had hitherto worn are burned together with the hut.573 When a young Indian brave is out on the war-path for the first time the vessels he eats and drinks out of must be touched by no one else.574

No wonder that the savage ranks these human deities among what he sees as the dangerous classes and imposes the same restrictions on both. For example, those who have contaminated themselves by touching a dead body are seen by the Maoris as being in a very dangerous state and are carefully avoided and isolated. The taboos regarding these defiled individuals (e.g., they cannot touch food with their hands, and utensils used by them cannot be used by anyone else) are identical to those observed toward sacred chiefs.566 In general, the prohibition against using clothing, utensils, and so on belonging to certain people, as well as the consequences believed to follow a violation of this rule, are the same whether the individuals are sacred or what we might call unclean and polluted. Just as the garments touched by a sacred chief can harm those who handle them, so too can items touched by a menstruating woman. An Australian man, discovering that his wife had lain on his blanket while menstruating, killed her and died of fright himself within two weeks.567 Therefore, Australian women during their periods are forbidden under penalty of death to touch anything men use. They are also isolated during childbirth, and all items they use during this time are burned.568 Among some Native American tribes, women on their period are also prohibited from touching men’s utensils, which are considered so tainted by their touch that using them afterward would bring about certain harm or misfortune.569 Among the Eskimo of Alaska, no one willingly drinks from the same cup or eats from the same dish that a woman has used during childbirth until it has been purified through specific rituals.570 Among some of the Tinneh Indians of North America, the dishes used by girls during their puberty seclusion “are used by no other person and are completely dedicated to their own use.”571 Similarly, among some Native American tribes, men who have killed enemies are considered unclean and will only eat or drink from their own dishes or smoke from their pipes for a significant period after the act, and no one will willingly use their dishes or pipes. They live in a form of isolation during this time, after which all items used during their seclusion are burned.572 Among the Kafirs, boys during circumcision are secluded in a special hut, and once they are healed, all vessels they used during their seclusion and the boyish clothing they wore are burned along with the hut.573 When a young Native American warrior goes on his first war expedition, the utensils he eats and drinks from must not be touched by anyone else.574

Thus the rules of ceremonial purity observed by divine kings, chiefs, and priests, by homicides, women at child-birth, and so on, are in some respects alike. To us these different classes of persons appear to differ totally in character and condition; some of them we should call holy, others we might pronounce unclean and polluted. But the savage makes no such moral distinction between them; the conceptions of holiness and pollution are not yet differentiated in his mind. To him the common feature of all these persons is that they are dangerous and in danger, and the danger in which they stand and to which they expose others is what we should call spiritual or supernatural, that is, imaginary. The danger, however, is not less real because it is imaginary; imagination acts upon man as really as does gravitation, and may kill him as certainly as a dose of prussic acid. To seclude these persons from the rest of the world so that the dreaded spiritual danger shall neither reach them, nor spread from them, is the object of the taboos which they have to observe. [pg 172] These taboos act, so to say, as electrical insulators to preserve the spiritual force with which these persons are charged from suffering or inflicting harm by contact with the outer world.575

So, the rules of ritual purity followed by divine kings, chiefs, and priests, as well as by murderers, women in childbirth, and others, share some similarities. To us, these different groups seem completely different in nature and status; some we might consider sacred, while others we would view as unclean and defiled. However, the primitive person doesn’t see such moral distinctions; the ideas of holiness and pollution are not yet separated in their mind. For them, the common trait among all these individuals is that they are both dangerous and at risk, and the threat they pose and face is what we would categorize as spiritual or supernatural, meaning it’s imaginary. Still, this imagined danger is no less real; imagination affects a person as much as gravity does, and it can be just as lethal as a dose of prussic acid. The goal of the taboos they must follow is to keep these individuals isolated from the rest of the world, so that the feared spiritual danger doesn’t reach them or spread to others. [pg 172] These taboos function like electrical insulators, safeguarding the spiritual energy these individuals carry from causing or experiencing harm through contact with the outside world.575

No one was allowed to touch the body of the King or Queen of Tahiti;576 and no one may touch the King of Cambodia, for any purpose whatever, without his express command. In July 1874 the king was thrown from his carriage and lay insensible on the ground, but not one of his suite dared to touch him; a European coming to the spot carried the injured monarch to his palace.577 No one may touch the King of Corea; and if he deigns to touch a subject, the spot touched becomes sacred, and the person thus honoured must wear a visible mark (generally a cord of red silk) for the rest of his life. Above all, no iron may touch the king's body. In 1800 King Tieng-tsong-tai-oang died of a tumour in the back, no one dreaming of employing the lancet, which would probably have saved his life. It is said that one king suffered terribly from an abscess in the lip, till his physician called in a jester, whose antics made the king laugh heartily, and so the abscess burst.578 Roman and Sabine priests might not be shaved with iron but only with bronze razors or shears;579 and whenever an iron graving-tool was brought into the sacred grove of the Arval Brothers at Rome for the purpose of cutting an inscription in stone, an expiatory sacrifice of a lamb and a pig was offered, which was repeated when the graving-tool was removed from the [pg 173] grove.580 In Crete sacrifices were offered to Menedemus without the use of iron, because, it was said, Menedemus had been killed by an iron weapon in the Trojan war.581 The Archon of Plataeae might not touch iron; but once a year, at the annual commemoration of the men who fell at the battle of Plataeae, he was allowed to carry a sword wherewith to sacrifice a bull.582 To this day a Hottentot priest never uses an iron knife, but always a sharp splint of quartz in sacrificing an animal or circumcising a lad.583 Amongst the Moquis of Arizona stone knives, hatchets, etc., have passed out of common use, but are retained in religious ceremonies.584 Negroes of the Gold Coast remove all iron or steel from their person when they consult their fetish.585 The men who made the need-fire in Scotland had to divest themselves of all metal.586 In making the clavie (a kind of Yule-tide fire-wheel) at Burghead, no hammer may be used; the hammering must be done with a stone.587 Amongst the Jews no iron tool was used in building the temple at Jerusalem or in making an altar.588 The old wooden bridge (Pons Sublicius) at Rome, which was considered sacred, was made and had to be kept in repair without the use of iron or bronze.589 It was expressly provided by law that the temple of Jupiter Liber at Furfo might be repaired [pg 174] with iron tools.590 The council chamber at Cyzicus was constructed of wood without any iron nails, the beams being so arranged that they could be taken out and replaced.591 The late Raja Vijyanagram, a member of the Viceroy's Council, and described as one of the most enlightened and estimable of Hindu princes, would not allow iron to be used in the construction of buildings within his territory, believing that its use would inevitably be followed by small-pox and other epidemics.592

No one was allowed to touch the body of the King or Queen of Tahiti;576 and no one may touch the King of Cambodia, for any purpose whatsoever, without his explicit command. In July 1874 the king was thrown from his carriage and lay unconscious on the ground, but not one of his attendants dared to touch him; a European who came to the scene carried the injured monarch back to his palace.577 No one may touch the King of Korea; and if he chooses to touch a subject, the spot touched becomes sacred, and the person thus honored must wear a visible mark (usually a red silk cord) for the rest of their life. Above all, no iron may touch the king's body. In 1800 King Tieng-tsong-tai-oang died of a tumor in his back, and no one thought to use the lancet, which would probably have saved his life. It is said that one king suffered greatly from an abscess on his lip, until his physician called in a jester, whose antics made the king laugh heartily, causing the abscess to burst.578 Roman and Sabine priests could not be shaved with iron but only with bronze razors or shears;579 and whenever an iron graving tool was brought into the sacred grove of the Arval Brothers at Rome to cut an inscription in stone, an expiatory sacrifice of a lamb and a pig was offered, which was repeated when the graving tool was removed from the [pg 173] grove.580 In Crete, sacrifices were offered to Menedemus without the use of iron, because it was said that Menedemus had been killed by an iron weapon in the Trojan war.581 The Archon of Plataea could not touch iron; but once a year, at the annual commemoration of the men who fell in the battle of Plataea, he was allowed to carry a sword to sacrifice a bull.582 To this day, a Hottentot priest never uses an iron knife, but always a sharp splint of quartz when sacrificing an animal or circumcising a boy.583 Among the Moquis of Arizona, stone knives, hatchets, etc., have fallen out of common use but are kept for religious ceremonies.584 People from the Gold Coast remove all iron or steel from their bodies when they consult their fetish.585 The men who made the need-fire in Scotland had to strip themselves of all metal.586 In making the clavie (a kind of Yule-tide fire-wheel) at Burghead, no hammer may be used; the hammering must be done with a stone.587 Among the Jews, no iron tool was used in building the temple at Jerusalem or in making an altar.588 The old wooden bridge (Pons Sublicius) at Rome, which was considered sacred, was made and had to be maintained without the use of iron or bronze.589 It was explicitly stated by law that the temple of Jupiter Liber at Furfo could be repaired [pg 174] with iron tools.590 The council chamber at Cyzicus was constructed of wood without any iron nails, the beams arranged so that they could be easily removed and replaced.591 The late Raja Vijyanagram, a member of the Viceroy's Council, and described as one of the most enlightened and respected of Hindu princes, would not allow iron to be used in the construction of buildings within his territory, believing that its use would inevitably lead to smallpox and other epidemics.592

This superstitious objection to iron perhaps dates from that early time in the history of society when iron was still a novelty, and as such was viewed by many with suspicion and dislike. For everything new is apt to excite the awe and dread of the savage. “It is a curious superstition,” says a recent pioneer in Borneo, “this of the Dusuns, to attribute anything—whether good or bad, lucky or unlucky—that happens to them to something novel which has arrived in their country. For instance, my living in Kindram has caused the intensely hot weather we have experienced of late.”593 The first introduction of iron ploughshares into Poland having been followed by a succession of bad harvests, the farmers attributed the badness of the crops to the iron ploughshares, and discarded them for the old wooden ones.594 The general dislike of innovation, which always makes itself strongly felt in the sphere of religion, is sufficient by itself to [pg 175] account for the superstitious aversion to iron entertained by kings and priests and attributed by them to the gods; possibly this aversion may have been intensified in places by some such accidental cause as the series of bad seasons which cast discredit on iron ploughshares in Poland. But the disfavour in which iron is held by the gods and their ministers has another side. The very fact that iron is deemed obnoxious to spirits furnishes men with a weapon which may be turned against the spirits when occasion serves. As their dislike of iron is supposed to be so great that they will not approach persons and things protected by the obnoxious metal, iron may obviously be employed as a charm for banning ghosts and other dangerous spirits. And it often is so used. Thus when Scotch fishermen were at sea, and one of them happened to take the name of God in vain, the first man who heard him called out “Cauld airn,” at which every man of the crew grasped the nearest bit of iron and held it between his hands for a while.595 In Morocco iron is considered a great protection against demons; hence it is usual to place a knife or dagger under a sick man's pillow.596 In India “the mourner who performs the ceremony of putting fire into the dead person's mouth carries with him a piece of iron: it may be a key or a knife, or a simple piece of iron, and during the whole time of his separation (for he is unclean for a certain time, and no one will either touch him or eat or drink with him, neither can he change his clothes597) he carries the piece of iron about with [pg 176] him to keep off the evil spirit. In Calcutta the Bengali clerks in the Government Offices used to wear a small key on one of their fingers when they had been chief mourners.”598 In the north-east of Scotland immediately after a death had taken place, a piece of iron, such as a nail or a knitting-wire, used to be stuck into all the meal, butter, cheese, flesh, and whisky in the house, “to prevent death from entering them.” The neglect of this precaution is said to have been closely followed by the corruption of the food and drink; the whisky has been known to become as white as milk.599 When iron is used as a protective charm after a death, as in these Hindu and Scotch customs, the spirit against which it is directed is the ghost of the deceased.600

This superstitious fear of iron likely dates back to a time in society's history when iron was still new and viewed with suspicion and dislike by many. New things often provoke awe and fear in primitive cultures. "It's a weird superstition," says a recent traveler in Borneo, "The Dusuns believe that everything—good or bad, lucky or unlucky—that happens to them is due to something new that has come to their land. For instance, my being in Kindram has caused the extremely hot weather we've been having lately."593 When iron ploughshares were first introduced to Poland, they were followed by a series of poor harvests, leading farmers to blame the bad crops on the iron ploughshares and switch back to wooden ones.594 The general aversion to innovation, which is always strongly felt in religious matters, is enough to [pg 175] explain the superstitious dislike of iron that kings and priests have, attributing it to the gods; this aversion may have been amplified in some instances by events like the series of bad seasons that discredited iron ploughshares in Poland. However, the disapproval of iron by the gods and their followers has an interesting flip side. The belief that spirits find iron repulsive gives people a tool they can use against these spirits when necessary. Since it's thought that spirits will not approach people or things that are protected by iron, it can obviously be used as a charm to ward off ghosts and other malevolent entities. And it often is. For instance, when Scottish fishermen were at sea, if one of them swore, the first person who heard him would shout “Cold iron,” causing every crew member to grab the nearest piece of iron and hold it for a while.595 In Morocco, iron is considered a strong defense against demons; thus, it's common to place a knife or dagger under a sick person's pillow.596 In India, “The mourner who performs the ritual of placing fire in the mouth of the deceased carries a piece of iron, which can be a key, a knife, or just a simple piece of iron. Throughout the entire mourning period (since he is considered unclean for a certain time, and no one will touch him or eat or drink with him, nor can he change his clothes __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__), he keeps the piece of iron with him to ward off evil spirits. In Calcutta, Bengali clerks in Government Offices would wear a small key on one of their fingers when they were the chief mourners.”598 In the north-east of Scotland, immediately after a death, a piece of iron, such as a nail or knitting needle, would be stuck into all the food and drink in the house, "to stop death from reaching them." It's said that neglecting this practice closely preceded the spoilage of food and drink; whisky has even been known to turn as white as milk.599 When iron is used as a protective charm after a death, as seen in these Hindu and Scottish traditions, the spirit it is meant to protect against is the ghost of the deceased.600

There is a priestly king to the north of Zengwih in Burma, revered by the Sotih as the highest spiritual and temporal authority, into whose house no weapon or cutting instrument may be brought.601 This rule may perhaps be explained by a custom observed by various peoples after a death; they refrain from the use of sharp instruments so long as the ghost of the deceased is supposed to be near, lest they should wound it. Thus after a death the Roumanians of Transylvania are careful not to leave a knife lying with the sharp edge uppermost as long as the corpse remains in the house, “or else the soul will be forced to ride on the blade.”602 For seven days [pg 177] after a death, the corpse being still in the house, the Chinese abstain from the use of knives and needles, and even of chopsticks, eating their food with their fingers.603 Amongst the Innuit (Eskimos) of Alaska for four days after a death the women in the village do no sewing, and for five days the men do not cut wood with an axe.604 On the third, sixth, ninth, and fortieth days after the funeral the old Prussians and Lithuanians used to prepare a meal, to which, standing at the door, they invited the soul of the deceased. At these meals they sat silent round the table and used no knives, and the women who served up the food were also without knives. If any morsels fell from the table they were left lying there for the lonely souls that had no living relations or friends to feed them. When the meal was over the priest took a broom and swept the souls out of the house, saying, “Dear souls, ye have eaten and drunk. Go forth, go forth.”605 In cutting the nails and combing the hair of a dead prince in South Celebes only the back of the knife and of the comb may be used.606 The Germans say that a knife should not be left edge upwards, because God and the spirits dwell there, or because it will cut the face of God and the angels.607 We can now understand why no cutting instrument may be taken into the house of the Burmese pontiff. Like so many priestly kings, he is probably regarded as divine, [pg 178] and it is therefore right that his sacred spirit should not be exposed to the risk of being cut or wounded whenever it quits his body to hover invisible in the air or to fly on some distant mission.

There is a priestly king to the north of Zengwih in Burma, respected by the Sotih as the highest spiritual and temporal authority, into whose home no weapon or sharp object is allowed. 601 This rule may be explained by a custom observed by various cultures after a death; they avoid using sharp tools as long as it's believed that the ghost of the deceased is nearby, to avoid harming it. For instance, after a death, the Roumanians of Transylvania are careful not to leave a knife lying with the sharp edge facing up as long as the corpse is in the house, “or else the soul will have to ride on the blade.” 602 For seven days [pg 177] after a death, while the corpse is still in the house, the Chinese refrain from using knives and needles, even chopsticks, choosing to eat with their fingers. 603 Among the Innuit (Eskimos) of Alaska, for four days after a death, the women in the village do not sew, and for five days, the men avoid cutting wood with an axe. 604 On the third, sixth, ninth, and fortieth days after the funeral, the old Prussians and Lithuanians would prepare a meal, inviting the soul of the deceased to join them while standing at the door. During these meals, they sat silently around the table and did not use knives, and the women serving the food also did not have knives. If any food fell from the table, it was left there for lonely souls without living relatives or friends to nourish them. When the meal was done, the priest would take a broom and sweep the souls out of the house, saying, “Dear friends, you've eaten and drunk. Now, move on, move on.” 605 In South Celebes, when cutting the nails and combing the hair of a dead prince, only the back of the knife and comb may be used. 606 The Germans believe a knife should not be left with the edge up because God and the spirits dwell there, or because it could cut the face of God and the angels. 607 We can now understand why no cutting tool is allowed in the house of the Burmese pontiff. Like many priestly kings, he is likely seen as divine, [pg 178] and it is therefore fitting that his sacred spirit should not be exposed to the risk of being harmed whenever it leaves his body to hover invisibly in the air or to embark on a distant mission.

We have seen that the Flamen Dialis was forbidden to touch or even name raw flesh.608 In the Pelew Islands when a raid has been made on a village and a head carried off, the relations of the slain man are tabooed and have to submit to certain observances in order to escape the wrath of his ghost. They are shut up in the house, touch no raw flesh, and chew beetel over which an incantation has been uttered by the exorcist. After this the ghost of the slaughtered man goes away to the enemy's country in pursuit of his murderer.609 The taboo is probably based on the common belief that the soul or spirit of the animal is in the blood. As tabooed persons are believed to be in a perilous state—for example, the relations of the slain man are liable to the attacks of his indignant ghost—it is especially necessary to isolate them from contact with spirits; hence the prohibition to touch raw meat. But as usual the taboo is only the special enforcement in particular circumstances of a general rule; in other words, its observance is particularly enjoined in circumstances which are supposed especially to call for its application, but apart from such special circumstances the prohibition is also observed, though less strictly, as an ordinary rule of life. Thus some of the Esthonians will not taste blood because they believe that it contains the animal's soul, which would enter the body of the person who [pg 179] tasted the blood.610 Some Indian tribes of North America, “through a strong principle of religion, abstain in the strictest manner from eating the blood of any animal, as it contains the life and spirit of the beast.” These Indians “commonly pull their new-killed venison (before they dress it) several times through the smoke and flame of the fire, both by the way of a sacrifice and to consume the blood, life, or animal spirits of the beast, which with them would be a most horrid abomination to eat.”611 Many of the Slave, Hare, and Dogrib Indians scruple to taste the blood of game; hunters of the former tribes collect the blood in the animal's paunch and bury it in the snow.612 Jewish hunters poured out the blood of the game they had killed and covered it up with dust. They would not taste the blood, believing that the soul or life of the animal was in the blood, or actually was the blood.613 The same belief was held by the Romans,614 and is shared by the Arabs,615 and by some of the Papuan tribes of New Guinea.616

We have seen that the Flamen Dialis was not allowed to touch or even mention raw flesh. In the Pelew Islands, after a raid on a village and a head is taken, the relatives of the slain must follow certain rituals to avoid the anger of his ghost. They are confined to their home, avoid raw flesh, and chew betel leaf after it has been blessed by an exorcist. Following this, the ghost of the murdered man goes to the enemy's land to seek out his killer. The taboo likely stems from a common belief that the soul or spirit of the animal resides in the blood. Since tabooed individuals are thought to be in danger—like the relatives of the slain man who might be attacked by his angry ghost—it is particularly important to keep them away from any contact with spirits, hence the rule against touching raw meat. However, as is often the case, this taboo is a specific enforcement of a broader principle; in simpler terms, it’s emphasized in situations that specifically require such observance, but outside those specific scenarios, the prohibition is still observed, albeit less strictly, as part of everyday life. For instance, some Esthonians won’t taste blood because they believe it contains the animal's soul, which could enter anyone who consumes it. Some North American Indian tribes, “because of a strong religious belief, strictly avoid eating the blood of any animal, as it holds the life and spirit of the beast.” These tribes “often pass their freshly killed deer through the smoke and flames of the fire several times, both as a form of sacrifice and to remove the blood, life, or animal spirits, since consuming them would be a terrible abomination.” Many Slave, Hare, and Dogrib Indians also hesitate to sample game blood; hunters from these tribes collect the blood in the animal's stomach and bury it in the snow. Jewish hunters would pour out the blood of the game they had hunted and cover it with dust. They wouldn’t taste the blood, believing that the soul or life of the animal is contained within or is actually the blood itself. The Romans shared this belief, as do the Arabs and some Papuan tribes of New Guinea.

It is a common rule that royal blood must not be shed upon the ground. Hence when a king or one of his family is to be put to death a mode of execution is devised by which the royal blood shall not be spilt upon the earth. About the year 1688 the generalissimo of the army rebelled against the King of Siam and put him to death “after the manner of royal criminals, or as princes of the blood are treated when [pg 180] convicted of capital crimes, which is by putting them into a large iron caldron, and pounding them to pieces with wooden pestles, because none of their royal blood must be spilt on the ground, it being, by their religion, thought great impiety to contaminate the divine blood by mixing it with earth.”617 Other Siamese modes of executing a royal person are starvation, suffocation, stretching him on a scarlet cloth and thrusting a billet of odoriferous “saunders wood” into his stomach,618 or lastly, sewing him up in a leather sack with a large stone and throwing him into the river; sometimes the sufferer's neck is broken with sandal-wood clubs before he is thrown into the water.619 When Kublai Khan defeated and took his uncle Nayan, who had rebelled against him, he caused Nayan to be put to death by being wrapt in a carpet and tossed to and fro till he died, “because he would not have the blood of his Line Imperial spilt upon the ground or exposed in the eye of Heaven and before the Sun.”620 “Friar Ricold mentions the Tartar maxim: ‘One Khan will put another to death to get possession of the throne, but he takes great care that the blood be not spilt. For they say that it is highly improper that the blood of the Great Khan should be spilt upon the ground; so they cause the victim to be smothered somehow or other.’ The like feeling prevails at the court of Burma, where a peculiar mode of execution without bloodshed is reserved for princes of the blood.”621 In Tonquin the ordinary mode of execution is beheading, but persons of [pg 181] the blood royal are strangled.622 In Ashantee the blood of none of the royal family may be shed; if one of them is guilty of a great crime he is drowned in the river Dah.623 In Madagascar the blood of nobles might not be shed; hence when four Christians of that class were to be executed they were burned alive.624 When a young king of Uganda comes of age all his brothers are burnt except two or three, who are preserved to keep up the succession.625 The reluctance to shed royal blood seems to be only a particular case of a general reluctance to shed blood or at least to allow it to fall on the ground. Marco Polo tells us that in his day persons found on the streets of Cambaluc (Pekin) at unseasonable hours were arrested, and if found guilty of a misdemeanour were beaten with a stick. “Under this punishment people sometimes die, but they adopt it in order to eschew bloodshed, for their Bacsis say that it is an evil thing to shed man's blood.”626 When Captain Christian was shot by the Manx Government at the Restoration in 1660, the spot on which he stood was covered with white blankets, that his blood might not fall on the ground.627 Amongst some primitive peoples, when the blood of a tribesman has to be shed it is not suffered to fall upon the ground, but is received upon the bodies of his fellow tribesmen. Thus in some Australian tribes boys who are being circumcised are laid on a platform, formed by the living bodies of the tribesmen;628 and when a boy's tooth [pg 182] is knocked out as an initiatory ceremony, he is seated on the shoulders of a man, on whose breast the blood flows and may not be wiped away.629 When Australian blacks bleed each other as a cure for headache, and so on, they are very careful not to spill any of the blood on the ground, but sprinkle it on each other.630 We have already seen that in the Australian ceremony for making rain the blood which is supposed to imitate the rain is received upon the bodies of the tribesmen.631 In South Celebes at child-birth a female slave stands under the house (the houses being raised on posts above the ground) and receives in a basin on her head the blood which trickles through the bamboo floor.632 The unwillingness to shed blood is extended by some peoples to the blood of animals. When the Wanika in Eastern Africa kill their cattle for food, “they either stone or beat the animal to death, so as not to shed the blood.”633 Amongst the Damaras cattle killed for food are suffocated, but when sacrificed they are speared to death.634 But like most pastoral tribes in Africa, both the Wanika and Damaras very seldom kill their cattle, which are indeed commonly invested with a kind of sanctity.635 In killing an animal for food the Easter Islanders do not shed its blood, but stun it [pg 183] or suffocate it in smoke.636 The explanation of the reluctance to shed blood on the ground is probably to be found in the belief that the soul is in the blood, and that therefore any ground on which it may fall necessarily becomes taboo or sacred. In New Zealand anything upon which even a drop of a high chief's blood chances to fall becomes taboo or sacred to him. For instance, a party of natives having come to visit a chief in a fine new canoe, the chief got into it, but in doing so a splinter entered his foot, and the blood trickled on the canoe, which at once became sacred to him. The owner jumped out, dragged the canoe ashore opposite the chief's house, and left it there. Again, a chief in entering a missionary's house knocked his head against a beam, and the blood flowed. The natives said that in former times the house would have belonged to the chief.637 As usually happens with taboos of universal application, the prohibition to spill the blood of a tribesman on the ground applies with peculiar stringency to chiefs and kings, and is observed in their case long after it has ceased to be observed in the case of others.

It’s a common rule that royal blood must not be shed on the ground. Therefore, when a king or a member of his family is to be executed, a method is devised to ensure that the royal blood isn't spilled on the earth. Around 1688, the commander of the army revolted against the King of Siam and executed him "in the manner of royal criminals, or how princes of the blood are treated when convicted of capital crimes, which involves putting them into a large iron caldron and pounding them to pieces with wooden pestles, because none of their royal blood must be spilled on the ground; it is considered a great impiety by their religion to contaminate divine blood by mixing it with earth." Other Siamese methods of executing a royal person include starvation, suffocation, stretching him on a scarlet cloth and inserting a piece of fragrant “sandalwood” into his stomach, or stitching him up in a leather sack with a large stone and tossing him into the river; sometimes, the victim’s neck is broken with sandalwood clubs before he is thrown into the water. When Kublai Khan defeated and captured his uncle Nayan, who had rebelled against him, he ordered Nayan to be executed by being wrapped in a carpet and tossed around until he died, “because he did not want the blood of his Imperial Line spilled on the ground or exposed to Heaven’s eyes and the Sun.” “Friar Ricold mentions the Tartar saying: 'One Khan will execute another to take the throne, but he is careful not to spill blood. They believe it is highly improper for the blood of the Great Khan to fall on the ground, so the victim is smothered in some way.' This same sentiment exists at the court of Burma, where a unique method of execution without spilling blood is reserved for princes of the blood.” In Tonkin, the typical method of execution is beheading, but those of royal blood are strangled. In Ashantee, blood from any royal family member cannot be shed; if one of them commits a serious crime, he is drowned in the Dah River. In Madagascar, noble blood may not be shed; hence, when four Christians of that class were to be executed, they were burned alive. When a young king of Uganda reaches adulthood, all his brothers, except two or three, are burned to maintain the succession. The hesitation to spill royal blood seems to reflect a broader reluctance to shed any blood or at least to let it fall on the ground. Marco Polo tells us that in his time, people found on the streets of Cambaluc (Peking) at odd hours were arrested, and if guilty of a misdemeanor, they were beaten with a stick. “Under this punishment, people sometimes die, but it is done to avoid bloodshed, as their Bacsis say that shedding a man’s blood is an evil thing.” When Captain Christian was shot by the Manx Government during the Restoration in 1660, the spot where he stood was covered with white blankets to prevent his blood from falling on the ground. Among some primitive groups, when a tribesman’s blood needs to be spilled, it’s not allowed to fall on the ground, but is instead caught on the bodies of his fellow tribesmen. In some Australian tribes, boys being circumcised are laid on a platform made of living tribesmen. When a boy's tooth is knocked out during an initiation ceremony, he is placed on a man's shoulders, and his blood flows onto that person’s breast and may not be wiped away. When Australian Aborigines bleed each other as a remedy for headaches, they are very careful not to let any blood hit the ground but instead sprinkle it on each other. It has already been observed that in the Australian ceremony for invoking rain, the blood, thought to mimic rain, is received on the bodies of the tribesmen. In South Celebes, during childbirth, a female slave stands under the house (the houses being elevated on posts above the ground) and collects the blood that drips through the bamboo floor in a basin on her head. The reluctance to shed blood extends to animal blood as well. When the Wanika in Eastern Africa kill cattle for food, “they either stone or beat the animal to death, to avoid spilling blood.” Among the Damaras, cattle killed for food are suffocated, but when they are sacrificed, they are speared to death. However, like most pastoral tribes in Africa, both the Wanika and Damaras rarely kill their cattle, which are often regarded with a degree of sacredness. In killing an animal for food, the Easter Islanders do not let its blood spill but instead stun it or suffocate it in smoke. The likely reason behind the reluctance to let blood spill on the ground is the belief that the soul resides in the blood, and as such, any ground it falls on becomes taboo or sacred. In New Zealand, anything that even a drop of a high chief's blood touches becomes sacred to him. For example, a group of natives visiting a chief in a new canoe had a splinter accidentally enter the chief's foot, causing his blood to trickle onto the canoe, which immediately became sacred to him. The owner jumped out, dragged the canoe ashore near the chief's house, and left it. Similarly, a chief once bumped his head against a beam in a missionary's house, causing his blood to flow. The natives said that in the past, that house would have belonged to the chief. As is common with universal taboos, the prohibition against spilling the blood of a tribesman on the ground is especially strict for chiefs and kings, and this rule is upheld long after it is no longer observed for others.

We have seen that the Flamen Dialis was not allowed to walk under a trellised vine.638 The reason for this prohibition was perhaps as follows. It has been shown that plants are considered as animate beings which bleed when cut, the red juice which exudes from some plants being regarded as the blood of the plant.639 The juice of the grape is therefore naturally conceived as the blood of the vine.640 And since, as we have just [pg 184] seen, the soul is often believed to be in the blood, the juice of the grape is regarded as the soul, or as containing the soul, of the vine. This belief is strengthened by the intoxicating effects of wine. For, according to primitive notions, all abnormal mental states, such as intoxication or madness, are caused by the entrance of a spirit into the person; such mental states, in other words, are regarded as forms of possession or inspiration. Wine, therefore, is considered on two distinct grounds as a spirit or containing a spirit; first because, as a red juice, it is identified with the blood of the plant, and second because it intoxicates or inspires. Therefore if the Flamen Dialis had walked under a trellised vine, the spirit of the vine, embodied in the clusters of grapes, would have been immediately over his head and might have touched it, which for a person like him in a state of permanent taboo641 would have been highly dangerous. This interpretation of the prohibition will be made probable if we can show, first, that wine has been actually viewed by some peoples as blood and intoxication as inspiration produced by drinking the blood; and, second, that it is often considered dangerous, especially for tabooed persons, to have either blood or a living person over their heads.

We have seen that the Flamen Dialis was not allowed to walk under a trellised vine.638 The reason for this ban might be as follows. It has been shown that plants are viewed as living beings that bleed when cut, with the red juice that comes from some plants seen as the plant's blood.639 The juice of the grape is thus seen as the blood of the vine.640 And since, as we've just [pg 184] mentioned, the soul is often believed to be in the blood, the grape juice is viewed as the soul or as containing the soul of the vine. This belief is reinforced by the intoxicating effects of wine. According to primitive beliefs, all unusual mental states, such as intoxication or madness, are caused by a spirit entering a person; in other words, these mental states are seen as forms of possession or inspiration. Therefore, wine is understood in two distinct ways as a spirit or as containing a spirit—first, because, as a red juice, it is linked to the plant's blood, and second because it intoxicates or inspires. So if the Flamen Dialis had walked under a trellised vine, the spirit of the vine, embodied in the grape clusters, would have been directly above him and might have touched him, which would have been extremely dangerous for someone like him, who is in a state of permanent taboo.641 This interpretation of the prohibition will be more convincing if we can demonstrate, first, that some cultures actually view wine as blood and intoxication as inspiration resulting from drinking blood; and, second, that it is often considered dangerous, especially for tabooed individuals, to have either blood or a living person over their heads.

With regard to the first point, we are informed by Plutarch that of old the Egyptian kings neither drank wine nor offered it in libations to the gods, because they held it to be the blood of beings who had once fought against the gods, the vine having sprung from their rotting bodies; and the frenzy of intoxication was explained by the supposition that the drunken man was [pg 185] filled with the blood of the enemies of the gods.642 The Aztecs regarded pulque or the wine of the country as bad, on account of the wild deeds which men did under its influence. But these wild deeds were believed to be the acts, not of the drunken man, but of the wine-god by whom he was possessed and inspired; and so seriously was this theory of inspiration held that if any one spoke ill of or insulted a tipsy man, he was liable to be punished for disrespect to the wine-god incarnate in his votary. Hence, says Sahagun, it was believed, not without ground, that the Indians intoxicated themselves on purpose to commit with impunity crimes for which they would certainly have been punished if they had committed them sober.643 Thus it appears that on the primitive view intoxication or the inspiration produced by wine is exactly parallel to the inspiration produced by drinking the blood of animals.644 The soul or life is in the blood, and wine is the blood of the vine. Hence whoever drinks the blood of an animal is inspired with the soul of the animal or of the god, who, as we have seen,645 is often supposed to enter into the animal before it is slain; and whoever drinks wine drinks the blood, and so receives into himself the soul or spirit, of the god of the vine.

Regarding the first point, Plutarch tells us that in ancient times, the Egyptian kings neither drank wine nor offered it to the gods because they believed it to be the blood of beings who once fought against the gods, with the vine growing from their decomposed bodies. They explained the madness of intoxication by suggesting that a drunken person was [pg 185] filled with the blood of the enemies of the gods.642 The Aztecs viewed pulque, or the local wine, as bad because of the reckless acts people committed while under its influence. However, these reckless acts were thought to be the doing not of the intoxicated person but of the wine-god who possessed and inspired him; the belief in this kind of inspiration was taken so seriously that if anyone spoke poorly of or insulted a drunken man, they could be punished for disrespecting the wine-god embodied in him. Consequently, Sahagun notes that it was believed, not without reason, that the natives intentionally got drunk to commit crimes with impunity that they would definitely have been punished for if sober.643 Thus, it seems that in primitive belief, intoxication, or the inspiration from wine, is directly comparable to the inspiration derived from drinking animal blood.644 The soul or life is in the blood, and wine is seen as the blood of the vine. Therefore, anyone who drinks an animal's blood is thought to be inspired by the soul of that animal or of the god, who, as we have seen, 645 is often believed to enter the animal before it's killed; and anyone who drinks wine drinks blood, thereby receiving the soul or spirit of the god of the vine.

With regard to the second point, the fear of passing under blood or under a living person, we are told that some of the Australian blacks have a dread of passing under a leaning tree or even under the rails of a fence. The reason they give is that a woman may [pg 186] have been upon the tree or fence, and some blood from her may have fallen on it and might fall from it on them.646 In Ugi, one of the Solomon Islands, a man will never, if he can help it, pass under a tree which has fallen across the path, for the reason that a woman may have stepped over it before him.647 Amongst the Karens of Burma “going under a house, especially if there are females within, is avoided; as is also the passing under trees of which the branches extend downwards in a particular direction, and the butt-end of fallen trees, etc.”648 The Siamese think it unlucky to pass under a rope on which women's clothes are hung, and to avert evil consequences the person who has done so must build a chapel to the earth-spirit.649

Regarding the second point, the fear of passing under blood or a living person, we learn that some Aboriginal Australians are afraid to walk under a leaning tree or even under a fence rail. They believe that a woman may have been on the tree or fence, and some blood from her could have landed on it and might fall on them. In Ugi, one of the Solomon Islands, a man will avoid passing under a fallen tree across his path, fearing that a woman might have stepped over it beforehand. Among the Karens of Burma, “going under a house, especially if there are females inside, is avoided; so is passing under trees with branches that hang down in a specific way and the butt-ends of fallen trees, etc.” The Siamese consider it bad luck to pass under a rope on which women’s clothes are hung, and to prevent negative outcomes, the person who does so must build a chapel for the earth-spirit.

Probably in all such cases the rule is based on a fear of being brought into contact with blood, especially the blood of women. From a like fear a Maori will never lean his back against the wall of a native house.650 For the blood of women is believed to have disastrous effects upon males. In the Encounter Bay tribe of South Australia boys are warned that if they see the blood of women they will early become gray-headed and their strength will fail prematurely.651 Men of the Booandik tribe think that if they see the blood of their women they will not be able to fight against their enemies and will be killed; if the sun dazzles their eyes at a fight, the first woman they afterwards meet is sure to get a blow from their club.652 In the [pg 187] island of Wetar it is thought that if a man or a lad comes upon a woman's blood he will be unfortunate in war and other undertakings, and that any precautions he may take to avoid the misfortune will be vain.653 The people of Ceram also believe that men who see women's blood will be wounded in battle.654 Similarly the Ovahereró (Damaras) of South Africa think that if they see a lying-in woman shortly after child-birth they will become weaklings and will be shot when they go to war.655 It is an Esthonian belief that men who see women's blood will suffer from an eruption on the skin.656

Probably in all such cases, the rule is based on a fear of coming into contact with blood, especially women’s blood. For the same reason, a Maori man will never lean his back against the wall of a native house. For the blood of women is thought to have disastrous effects on men. In the Encounter Bay tribe of South Australia, boys are warned that if they see women’s blood, they will become gray-headed early and their strength will fail prematurely. Men of the Booandik tribe believe that if they see the blood of their women, they won’t be able to fight against their enemies and will end up getting killed; if the sun dazzles their eyes during a fight, the first woman they meet afterward is sure to get hit with their club. In the [pg 187] island of Wetar, it’s thought that if a man or boy encounters a woman’s blood, he will be unlucky in war and other endeavors, and any precautions he takes to avoid that misfortune will be pointless. The people of Ceram also believe that men who see women's blood will be injured in battle. Similarly, the Ovahereró (Damaras) of South Africa think that if they see a woman lying down shortly after giving birth, they will become weak and will be shot when they go to war. There's an Estonian belief that men who see women’s blood will suffer from a skin eruption.

Again, the reason for not passing under dangerous objects, like a vine or women's blood, is a fear that they may come in contact with the head; for among primitive people the head is peculiarly sacred. The special sanctity attributed to it is sometimes explained by a belief that it is the seat of a spirit which is very sensitive to injury or disrespect. Thus the Karens suppose that a being called the tso resides in the upper part of the head, and while it retains its seat no harm can befall the person from the efforts of the seven Kelahs, or personified passions. “But if the tso becomes heedless or weak certain evil to the person is the result. Hence the head is carefully attended to, and all possible pains are taken to provide such dress and attire as will be pleasing to the tso.”657 The Siamese think that a spirit called Khuan, or Chom Kuan, dwells in the human head, of which it is the [pg 188] guardian spirit. The spirit must be carefully protected from injury of every kind; hence the act of shaving or cutting the hair is accompanied with many ceremonies. The Khuan is very sensitive on points of honour, and would feel mortally insulted if the head in which he resides were touched by the hand of a stranger. When Dr. Bastian, in conversation with a brother of the king of Siam, raised his hand to touch the prince's skull in order to illustrate some medical remarks he was making, a sullen and threatening murmur bursting from the lips of the crouching courtiers warned him of the breach of etiquette he had committed, for in Siam there is no greater insult to a man of rank than to touch his head. If a Siamese touch the head of another with his foot, both of them must build chapels to the earth-spirit to avert the omen. Nor does the guardian spirit of the head like to have the hair washed too often; it might injure or incommode him. It was a grand solemnity when the king of Burmah's head was washed with water taken from the middle of the river. Whenever the native professor, from whom Dr. Bastian took lessons in Burmese at Mandalay, had his head washed, which took place as a rule once a month, he was generally absent for three days together, that time being consumed in preparing for, and recovering from, the operation of head-washing. Dr. Bastian's custom of washing his head daily gave rise to much remark.658

Again, the reason for avoiding dangerous objects like vines or women's menstrual blood is the fear that they might come into contact with the head; for many primitive cultures, the head is seen as particularly sacred. The special sanctity attributed to it is sometimes explained by a belief that it's the home of a spirit that is very sensitive to injury or disrespect. Thus, the Karens believe that a being called the tso resides in the upper part of the head, and as long as it stays there, no harm can come to the person from the actions of the seven Kelahs, or personified emotions. “But if the tso becomes careless or weak, it leads to misfortune for the person. That's why the head is taken care of carefully, and a lot of effort is put into providing clothing that will please the tso.”657 The Siamese believe that a spirit called Khuan, or Chom Kuan, resides in the human head, serving as its guardian spirit. This spirit must be carefully protected from any kind of harm; therefore, shaving or cutting hair involves many ceremonies. The Khuan is very particular about matters of respect and would be deeply insulted if the head it occupies were touched by a stranger's hand. When Dr. Bastian, in conversation with a brother of the king of Siam, raised his hand to touch the prince's skull to illustrate some medical points, a gloomy and threatening murmur from the crouching courtiers warned him of the etiquette breach he had committed, as in Siam, touching a person's head is the greatest insult. If a Siamese touches another's head with his foot, both parties must build chapels to the earth-spirit to ward off the bad omen. Additionally, the guardian spirit of the head doesn’t like the hair to be washed too often, as it might disturb or upset him. It was a significant event when the king of Burmah's head was washed with water taken from the middle of the river. Whenever the native professor, from whom Dr. Bastian studied Burmese at Mandalay, had his head washed—typically once a month—he would usually be absent for three days, spending that time preparing for and recovering from the head-washing ritual. Dr. Bastian's habit of washing his head daily attracted a lot of attention.658

Again, the Burmese think it an indignity to have any one, especially a woman, over their heads, and for this reason Burmese houses have never more than one story. The houses are raised on posts above the ground, and whenever anything fell through the floor [pg 189] Dr. Bastian had always difficulty in persuading a servant to fetch it from under the house. In Rangoon a priest, summoned to the bedside of a sick man, climbed up a ladder and got in at the window rather than ascend the staircase, to reach which he must have passed under a gallery. A pious Burman of Rangoon, finding some images of Buddha in a ship's cabin, offered a high price for them, that they might not be degraded by sailors walking over them on the deck.659 Similarily the Cambodians esteem it a grave offence to touch a man's head; some of them will not enter a place where anything whatever is suspended over their heads; and the meanest Cambodian would never consent to live under an inhabited room. Hence the houses are built of one story only; and even the Government respects the prejudice by never placing a prisoner in the stocks under the floor of a house, though the houses are raised high above the ground.660 The same superstition exists amongst the Malays; for an early traveller reports that in Java people “wear nothing on their heads, and say that nothing must be on their heads ... and if any person were to put his hand upon their head they would kill him; and they do not build houses with storeys, in order that they may not walk over each other's heads.”661 It is also found in full force throughout Polynesia. Thus of Gattanewa, a Marquesan chief, it is said that “to touch the top of his head, or any thing which had been on his head was sacrilege. To pass over his head [pg 190] was an indignity never to be forgotten. Gattanewa, nay, all his family, scorned to pass a gateway which is ever closed, or a house with a door; all must be as open and free as their unrestrained manners. He would pass under nothing that had been raised by the hand of man, if there was a possibility of getting round or over it. Often have I seen him walk the whole length of our barrier, in preference to passing between our water-casks; and at the risk of his life scramble over the loose stones of a wall, rather than go through the gateway.”662 Marquesan women have been known to refuse to go on the decks of ships for fear of passing over the heads of chiefs who might be below.663 But it was not the Marquesan chiefs only whose heads were sacred; the head of every Marquesan was taboo, and might neither be touched nor stepped over by another; even a father might not step over the head of his sleeping child.664 No one was allowed to be over the head of the king of Tonga.665 In Hawaii (the Sandwich Islands) if a man climbed upon a chief's house or upon the wall of his yard, he was put to death; if his shadow fell on a chief, he was put to death; if he walked in the shadow of a chief's house with his head painted white or decked with a garland or wetted with water, he was put to death.666 In Tahiti any one who stood over the king or queen, or passed his hand over their heads, might be put to death.667 Until certain rites were performed over it, a Tahitian infant was [pg 191] especially taboo; whatever touched the child's head, while it was in this state, became sacred and was deposited in a consecrated place railed in for the purpose at the child's house. If a branch of a tree touched the child's head, the tree was cut down; and if in its fall it injured another tree so as to penetrate the bark, that tree also was cut down as unclean and unfit for use. After the rites were performed, these special taboos ceased; but the head of a Tahitian was always sacred, he never carried anything on it, and to touch it was an offence.668 The head of a Maori chief was so sacred that “if he only touched it with his fingers, he was obliged immediately to apply them to his nose, and snuff up the sanctity which they had acquired by the touch, and thus restore it to the part from whence it was taken.”669 In some circumstances the tabooed person is forbidden to touch his head at all. Thus in North America, Tinneh girls at puberty, Creek lads during the year of their initiation into manhood, and young braves on their first war-path, are forbidden to scratch their heads with their fingers, and are provided with a stick for the purpose.670 But to return to the Maoris. On account of the sacredness of his head “a chief could not blow the fire with his mouth, for the breath being sacred, communicated his sanctity to it, and a brand might be taken by a slave, or a man of another tribe, or the fire might be used for other purposes, [pg 192] such as cooking, and so cause his death.”671 It is a crime for a sacred person in New Zealand to leave his comb, or anything else which has touched his head, in a place where food has been cooked, or to suffer another person to drink out of any vessel which has touched his lips. Hence when a chief wishes to drink he never puts his lips to the vessel, but holds his hands close to his mouth so as to form a hollow, into which water is poured by another person, and thence is allowed to flow into his mouth. If a light is needed for his pipe, the burning ember taken from the fire must be thrown away as soon as it is used; for the pipe becomes sacred because it has touched his mouth; the coal becomes sacred because it has touched the pipe; and if a particle of the sacred cinder were replaced on the common fire, the fire would also become sacred and could no longer be used for cooking.672 Some Maori chiefs, like other Polynesians, object to go down into a ship's cabin from fear of people passing over their heads.673 Dire misfortune was thought by the Maoris to await those who entered a house where any article of animal food was suspended over their heads. “A dead pigeon, or a piece of pork hung from the roof was a better protection from molestation than a sentinel.”674 If I am right, the reason for the special objection to having animal food over the head is the fear of bringing the sacred head into contact with the spirit [pg 193] of the animal; just as the reason why the Flamen Dialis might not walk under a vine was the fear of bringing his sacred head into contact with the spirit of the vine.

Once again, the Burmese find it disrespectful to have anyone, especially a woman, above them, which is why Burmese houses are typically only one story. These houses are built on posts above the ground, and whenever anything falls through the floor, [pg 189] Dr. Bastian always struggled to convince a servant to retrieve it from underneath. In Rangoon, a priest called to help a sick person climbed a ladder and entered through the window instead of using the staircase, which would have required him to go under a balcony. A devout Burman in Rangoon once found some images of Buddha in a ship's cabin and offered a high price for them to prevent sailors from stepping on them on deck.659 Similarly, Cambodians consider it a serious offense to touch a man’s head; many won’t enter a space if anything is suspended over them, and even the lowest-ranking Cambodian would never agree to live under an occupied room. This is why houses are constructed as single stories, and the government respects this belief by never putting prisoners in stocks beneath a house, even though the houses are built high off the ground.660 The same superstition exists among Malays; an early traveler reported that in Java, people "they wear nothing on their heads and think that nothing should be above them... and if anyone touches their heads, they would kill him; and they don’t build houses with multiple floors, so they won’t have to walk over each other’s heads."661 It can also be seen strongly throughout Polynesia. Of Gattanewa, a Marquesan chief, it is said that Touching the top of his head or anything that had been on it was considered disrespectful. Passing over his head [pg 190] was an unforgettable insult. Gattanewa, along with his whole family, refused to go through a doorway that was ever closed or enter a house with a door; everything had to be as open and free as their wild lifestyle. He would avoid going under anything made by humans if he could go around or over it. I often saw him walk the full length of our barrier just to avoid passing between our water barrels; he would even risk his life to climb over loose stones in a wall instead of using the gate.662 Marquesan women have been known to avoid going on ship decks out of fear of stepping over the heads of chiefs who might be below.663 Yet, it wasn't just the Marquesan chiefs whose heads were sacred; every Marquesan’s head was taboo, and it could not be touched or stepped over by another person; even a father could not step over his sleeping child's head.664 Nobody was allowed to be over the head of the king of Tonga.665 In Hawaii (the Sandwich Islands), if someone climbed onto a chief's house or the wall of his yard, they were executed; if a chief's shadow fell on someone, they were executed; if someone walked in the shadow of a chief's house with a painted white head or adorned with a garland, or wet from water, they were executed.666 In Tahiti, anyone standing over the king or queen, or passing their hand over their heads, could be put to death.667 Until certain rites were performed over it, a Tahitian infant was [pg 191] especially taboo; anything that touched the child's head while it was in this state became sacred and was placed in a consecrated spot at the child's home. If a tree branch touched the child's head, the tree was cut down; if it fell and damaged another tree to the point of penetrating the bark, that tree was also chopped down as unclean and unusable. After the rites, these specific taboos ceased; however, the head of a Tahitian was always sacred, he never carried anything on it, and touching it was an offense.668 The head of a Maori chief was so sacred that “If he merely touched it with his fingers, he had to quickly bring those fingers to his nose and inhale the sacredness they had gained from the touch, thereby returning it to the source from which it originated.”669 In some situations, the tabooed person cannot touch their head at all. For example, in North America, Tinneh girls at puberty, Creek boys during the year of initiation into manhood, and young warriors on their first war expedition are not allowed to scratch their heads with their fingers and are given a stick for that purpose.670 Returning to the Maori, due to the sacredness of his head “A chief couldn't blow fire with his mouth because his breath was sacred and would give it a sense of holiness. A burning ember could be taken by a slave or someone from another tribe, or the fire might be used for other purposes, [pg 192], like cooking, which could lead to his death.”671 It is a crime for a sacred person in New Zealand to leave his comb or anything that has touched his head in a place where food has been cooked, or to allow someone else to drink from any vessel that has touched his lips. So when a chief wants a drink, he never touches his lips to the vessel, but keeps his hands close to his mouth to form a hollow, into which another person pours water, and it flows into his mouth from there. If he needs a light for his pipe, the ember taken from the fire must be discarded as soon as it's used; the pipe becomes sacred because it touched his mouth, the ember becomes sacred because it touched the pipe, and if any piece of sacred ash were returned to the common fire, that fire would also become sacred and could no longer be used for cooking.672 Some Maori chiefs, like other Polynesians, avoid going down into a ship's cabin out of fear of people walking over their heads.673 The Maoris believed that dire misfortune awaited those who entered a house where any food item was hanging overhead. "A dead pigeon or a piece of pork hanging from the ceiling was seen as better protection against problems than having a guard."674 If I'm correct, the reason for the specific aversion to having animal food above one's head is the fear of the sacred head making contact with the spirit [pg 193] of the animal; just as the reason the Flamen Dialis could not walk under a vine was the fear of bringing his sacred head into contact with the spirit of the vine.

When the head was considered so sacred that it might not even be touched without grave offence, it is obvious that the cutting of the hair must have been a delicate and difficult operation. The difficulties and dangers which, on the primitive view, beset the operation are of two kinds. There is first the danger of disturbing the spirit of the head, which may be injured in the process and may revenge itself upon the person who molests him. Secondly, there is the difficulty of disposing of the shorn locks. For the savage believes that the sympathetic connection which exists between himself and every part of his body continues to exist even after the physical connection has been severed, and that therefore he will suffer from any harm that may befall the severed parts of his body, such as the clippings of his hair or the parings of his nails. Accordingly he takes care that these severed portions of himself shall not be left in places where they might either be exposed to accidental injury or fall into the hands of malicious persons who might work magic on them to his detriment or death. Such dangers are common to all, but sacred persons have more to fear from them than ordinary people, so the precautions taken by them are proportionately stringent. The simplest way of evading the danger is of course not to cut the hair at all; and this is the expedient adopted where the danger is thought to be more than usually great. The Frankish kings were not allowed to cut their hair.675 A Haida medicine-man may neither cut [pg 194] nor comb his hair, so it is always long and tangled.676 Amongst the Alfoers of Celebes the Leleen or priest who looks after the rice-fields may not cut his hair during the time that he exercises his special functions, that is, from a month before the rice is sown until it is housed.677 In Ceram men do not cut their hair: if married men did so, they would lose their wives; if young men did so, they would grow weak and enervated.678 In Timorlaut, married men may not cut their hair for the same reason as in Ceram, but widowers and men on a journey may do so after offering a fowl or a pig in sacrifice.679 Here men on a journey are specially permitted to cut their hair; but elsewhere men travelling abroad have been in the habit of leaving their hair uncut until their return. The reason for the latter custom is probably the danger to which, as we have seen, a traveller is believed to be exposed from the magic arts of the strangers amongst whom he sojourns; if they got possession of his shorn hair, they might work his destruction through it. The Egyptians on a journey kept their hair uncut till they returned home.680 “At Tâif when a man returned from a journey his first duty was to visit the Rabba and poll his hair.”681 The custom of keeping the hair unshorn during a dangerous expedition seems to have been observed, at least occasionally, by the Romans.682 Achilles kept unshorn his yellow hair, [pg 195] because his father had vowed to offer it to the river Sperchius if ever his son came home from the wars beyond the sea.683 Again, men who have taken a vow of vengeance sometimes keep their hair unshorn till they have fulfilled their vow. Thus of the Marquesans we are told that “occasionally they have their head entirely shaved, except one lock on the crown, which is worn loose or put up in a knot. But the latter mode of wearing the hair is only adopted by them when they have a solemn vow, as to revenge the death of some near relation, etc. In such case the lock is never cut off until they have fulfilled their promise.”684 Six thousand Saxons once swore that they would not cut their hair nor shave their beards until they had taken vengeance on their enemies.685 On one occasion a Hawaiian taboo is said to have lasted thirty years “during which the men were not allowed to trim their beards, etc.”686 While his vow lasted, a Nazarite might not have his hair cut: “All the days of the vow of his separation there shall no razor come upon his head.”687 Possibly in this case there was a special objection to touching the tabooed man's head with iron. The Roman priests, as we have seen, were shorn with bronze knives. The same feeling probably gave rise to the European rule that a child's nails should not be cut during the first year, but that if it is absolutely necessary to shorten them they should be bitten off by the mother or nurse.688 For [pg 196] in all parts of the world a young child is believed to be especially exposed to supernatural dangers, and particular precautions are taken to guard it against them; in other words, the child is under a number of taboos, of which the rule just mentioned is one. “Among Hindus the usual custom seems to be that the nails of a first-born child are cut at the age of six months. With other children a year or two is allowed to elapse.”689 The Slave, Hare, and Dogrib Indians of North America do not cut the nails of female children till they are four years of age.690 In some parts of Germany it is thought that if a child's hair is combed in its first year the child will be unlucky;691 or that if a boy's hair is cut before his seventh year he will have no courage.692

When it was considered so sacred that the head couldn't even be touched without serious offense, it's clear that cutting hair must have been a delicate and challenging procedure. The challenges and risks that, from a primitive perspective, surrounded the act are of two kinds. First, there's the threat of disturbing the spirit of the head, which could be harmed during the process and might seek revenge on anyone who disrespects it. Second, there's the issue of disposing of the cut hair. The primitive belief holds that the strong connection that exists between a person and every part of their body remains even after the physical link has been severed, meaning they would suffer from any misfortune that could happen to the severed parts, like their hair clippings or nail parings. Therefore, they are careful to ensure that these lost pieces of themselves are not left in places where they could be accidentally harmed or fall into the hands of malicious people who might use magic against them. These dangers apply to everyone, but sacred individuals are more vulnerable than regular people, so the precautions they take are accordingly stricter. The easiest way to avoid the risk is simply not to cut the hair at all, a strategy used when the danger is deemed particularly high. Frankish kings were forbidden from cutting their hair.675 A Haida medicine-man is not allowed to cut [pg 194] or comb his hair, so it’s always long and tangled.676 Among the Alfoers of Celebes, the Leleen or priest responsible for the rice-fields is not allowed to cut his hair for the duration of his special responsibilities, which is from a month before the rice is sown until it is harvested.677 In Ceram, men do not cut their hair; if married men were to do so, they would lose their wives, and if young men did, they would become weak and drained.678 In Timorlaut, married men can’t cut their hair for similar reasons as in Ceram, but widowers and men on a journey may do so after sacrificing a chicken or a pig.679 Here, men on a journey are specifically allowed to cut their hair; however, in other places, men traveling abroad usually wait to cut their hair until they return. The reason for this latter custom likely stems from the danger, as discussed, that a traveler is believed to face from the magical practices of the strangers among whom they stay; if those strangers obtained the traveler’s cut hair, they might use it to harm them. Egyptians on a journey would keep their hair uncut until they got home.680 “At Tâif, when a man came back from a trip, his first task was to visit the Rabba and trim his hair.”681 The practice of not cutting hair during a hazardous expedition seems to have been followed, at least sometimes, by the Romans.682 Achilles kept his golden hair uncut, [pg 195] because his father had promised to offer it to the river Sperchius if his son ever returned home from the wars overseas.683 Moreover, men who have vowed to seek revenge sometimes refrain from cutting their hair until they have fulfilled that vow. It is said that among the Marquesans, "Sometimes they have their head completely shaved except for one lock on the crown, which is worn loose or tied in a knot. However, they only adopt this hairstyle when they have a serious vow, like avenging the death of a close relative, etc. In such cases, the lock is never cut until they have fulfilled their promise."684 Six thousand Saxons once vowed not to cut their hair or shave their beards until they avenged their enemies.685 On one occasion, a Hawaiian taboo lasted thirty years "during which the men weren't allowed to trim their beards, etc."686 While he was under his vow, a Nazarite could not have his hair cut: "Throughout all the days of his vow of separation, he must not cut his hair."687 In this case, there might have been a specific objection to touching the head of the person under the taboo with metal. The Roman priests, as noted, were shaved with bronze knives. This same sentiment likely led to the European practice that a child's nails should not be cut during their first year; if it is absolutely necessary to trim them, they should be bitten off by the mother or nurse.688 For [pg 196] in all parts of the world, young children are believed to be especially vulnerable to supernatural risks, and specific measures are taken to protect them; in other words, children are subjected to various taboos, of which the aforementioned rule is one. "Among Hindus, it’s common for the nails of a first-born child to be trimmed at six months old. For other children, it usually takes one or two years."689 The Slave, Hare, and Dogrib Indians of North America do not cut the nails of female children until they turn four years old.690 In some regions of Germany, it's believed that if a child's hair is combed in their first year, it will bring bad luck;691 or that if a boy’s hair is cut before his seventh year, he will lack courage.692

But when it is necessary to cut the hair, precautions are taken to lessen the dangers which are supposed to attend the operation. Amongst the Maoris many spells were uttered at hair-cutting; one, for example, was spoken to consecrate the obsidian knife with which the hair was cut; another was pronounced to avert the thunder and lightning which hair-cutting was believed to cause.693 “He who has had his hair cut is in the immediate charge of the Atua (spirit); he is removed from the contact and society of [pg 197] his family and his tribe; he dare not touch his food himself; it is put into his mouth by another person; nor can he for some days resume his accustomed occupations or associate with his fellow men.”694 The person who cuts the hair is also tabooed; his hands having been in contact with a sacred head, he may not touch food with them or engage in any other employment; he is fed by another person with food cooked over a sacred fire. He cannot be released from the taboo before the following day, when he rubs his hands with potato or fern root which has been cooked on a sacred fire; and this food having been taken to the head of the family in the female line and eaten by her, his hands are freed from the taboo. In some parts of New Zealand the most sacred day of the year was that appointed for hair-cutting; the people assembled in large numbers on that day from all the neighbourhood.695 It is an affair of state when the king of Cambodia's hair is cut. The priests place on the barber's fingers certain old rings set with large stones, which are supposed to contain spirits favourable to the kings, and during the operation the Brahmans keep up a noisy music to drive away the evil spirits.696 The hair and nails of the Mikado could only be cut while he was asleep,697 perhaps because his soul being then absent from his body, there was less chance of injuring it with the shears.

But when it’s time to cut hair, precautions are taken to reduce the risks associated with the process. Among the Maoris, many chants were spoken during hair-cutting; one, for example, was said to bless the obsidian knife used for cutting hair; another was recited to ward off the thunder and lightning believed to be caused by hair-cutting. 693 "Someone who has just gotten a haircut is under the immediate protection of the Atua (spirit); they are kept apart from their family and tribe; they can't eat by themselves; someone else has to feed them; and for several days, they must not go back to their regular activities or interact with other people." 694 The person who cuts the hair is also considered taboo; since their hands have touched a sacred head, they cannot use them to handle food or do any other work; they are fed by someone else with food cooked over a sacred fire. They cannot be released from the taboo until the next day, when they rub their hands with potato or fern root that has been cooked on a sacred fire; after this food is taken to the head of the family in the female line and eaten by her, the taboo on their hands is lifted. In some parts of New Zealand, the most sacred day of the year was designated for hair-cutting, with people gathering in large numbers from the surrounding areas. 695 It is a state affair when the king of Cambodia gets his hair cut. The priests place certain old rings, adorned with large stones believed to hold spirits that favor the kings, onto the barber's fingers, and during the process, the Brahmans play loud music to chase away evil spirits. 696 The hair and nails of the Mikado could only be cut while he was asleep, 697 perhaps because his soul was thought to be absent from his body, reducing the risk of harming it with the shears.

But even when the hair and nails have been safely cut, there remains the difficulty of disposing of them, [pg 198] for their owner believes himself liable to suffer from any harm that may befall them. Thus, an Australian girl, sick of a fever, attributed her illness to the fact that some months before a young man had come behind her and cut off a lock of her hair; she was sure he had buried it and that it was rotting. “Her hair,” she said, “was rotting somewhere, and her Marm-bu-la (kidney fat) was wasting away, and when her hair had completely rotted, she would die.”698 A Marquesan chief told Lieutenant Gamble that he was extremely ill, the Happah tribe having stolen a lock of his hair and buried it in a plantain leaf for the purpose of taking his life. Lieut. Gamble argued with him, but in vain; die he must unless the hair and the plantain leaf were brought back to him; and to obtain them he had offered the Happahs the greater part of his property. He complained of excessive pain in the head, breast and sides.699 When an Australian blackfellow wishes to get rid of his wife, he cuts off a lock of her hair in her sleep, ties it to his spear-thrower, and goes with it to a neighbouring tribe, where he gives it to a friend. His friend sticks the spear-thrower up every night before the camp fire, and when it falls down it is a sign that his wife is dead.700 The way in which the charm operates was explained to Mr. Howitt by a Mirajuri man. “You see,” he said, “when a blackfellow doctor gets hold of something belonging to a man and roasts it with things, and sings over it, the fire catches hold of the smell of the man, and that settles the poor fellow.”701 In Germany it is a common [pg 199] notion that if birds find a person's cut hair, and build their nests with it, the person will suffer from headache;702 sometimes it is thought that he will have an eruption on the head.703 Again it is thought that cut or combed out hair may disturb the weather by producing rain and hail, thunder and lightning. We have seen that in New Zealand a spell was uttered at hair-cutting to avert thunder and lightning. In the Tirol, witches are supposed to use cut or combed out hair to make hail-stones or thunder-storms with.704 Thlinket Indians have been known to attribute stormy weather to the fact that a girl had combed her hair outside of the house.705 The Romans seem to have held similar views, for it was a maxim with them that no one on shipboard should cut his hair or nails except in a storm,706 that is, when the mischief was already done. In West Africa, when the Mani of Chitombe or Jumba died, the people used to run in crowds to the corpse and tear out his hair, teeth, and nails, which they kept as a rain-charm, believing that otherwise no rain would fall. The Makoko of Anzikos begged the missionaries to give him half their beards as a [pg 200] rain-charm.707 In some Victorian tribes the sorcerer used to burn human hair in time of drought; it was never burned at other times for fear of causing a deluge of rain. Also when the river was low, the sorcerer would place human hair in the stream to increase the supply of water.708

But even after the hair and nails have been cut, there's still the issue of getting rid of them, [pg 198] because their owner thinks they might suffer any harm that happens to those cuttings. For example, an Australian girl who was sick with a fever blamed her illness on a young man who had snuck up on her and cut off a lock of her hair a few months earlier; she was convinced he had buried it and that it was rotting. “Her hair,” she said, “was decaying somewhere, and her Marm-bu-la (kidney fat) was deteriorating, and when her hair had completely decayed, she would die.”698 A Marquesan chief told Lieutenant Gamble that he was very sick because the Happah tribe had stolen a lock of his hair and buried it in a plantain leaf to kill him. Lieut. Gamble tried to convince him otherwise, but it was no use; he believed he would die unless the hair and plantain leaf were returned to him, and he had offered the Happahs most of his belongings to get them back. He complained of severe pain in his head, chest, and sides.699 When an Australian man wants to get rid of his wife, he cuts off a lock of her hair while she's asleep, ties it to his spear-thrower, and brings it to a neighboring tribe, giving it to a friend. His friend sets up the spear-thrower by the campfire every night, and if it falls down, it's a sign that his wife is dead.700 A Mirajuri man explained to Mr. Howitt how the charm works: "Check it out," he said, "When a blackfellow doctor takes something that belongs to a man, roasts it with specific items, and sings over it, the fire absorbs the man's scent, and that's what affects the poor guy."701 In Germany, it's a common belief [pg 199] that if birds find a person's cut hair and use it to build their nests, that person will get headaches; 702 sometimes it's thought they will have a rash on their head.703 It's also believed that cut or combed hair can affect the weather by causing rain, hail, thunder, and lightning. We've seen that in New Zealand, a spell was spoken during hair-cutting to prevent thunder and lightning. In the Tirol, it's believed that witches use cut or combed hair to create hailstones or storms.704 The Thlinket Indians have been known to blame stormy weather on a girl combing her hair outside the house.705 The Romans seemed to have similar beliefs, as it was a rule among them that no one on board a ship should cut their hair or nails except during a storm,706 meaning when the damage was already done. In West Africa, when the Mani of Chitombe or Jumba died, people used to rush to the corpse and pull out his hair, teeth, and nails, which they kept as a rain charm, believing that without them, it wouldn't rain. The Makoko of Anzikos asked the missionaries for half their beards as a [pg 200] rain charm.707 In some Victorian tribes, sorcerers would burn human hair during droughts; it was never burned at other times for fear of causing a flood. Also, when the river ran low, the sorcerer would place human hair in the stream to help increase the water supply.708

To preserve the cut hair and nails from injury and from the dangerous uses to which they may be put by sorcerers, it is necessary to deposit them in some safe place. Hence the natives of the Maldives carefully keep the cuttings of their hair and nails and bury them, with a little water, in the cemeteries; “for they would not for the world tread upon them nor cast them in the fire, for they say that they are part of their body and demand burial as it does; and, indeed, they fold them neatly in cotton; and most of them like to be shaved at the gates of temples and mosques.”709 In New Zealand the severed hair was deposited on some sacred spot of ground “to protect it from being touched accidentally or designedly by any one.”710 The shorn locks of a chief were gathered with much care and placed in an adjoining cemetery.711 The Tahitians buried the cuttings of their hair at the temples.712 The cut hair and nails of the Flamen Dialis were buried under a lucky tree.713 The hair of the Vestal virgins was hung upon an ancient lotus-tree.714 In Germany [pg 201] the clippings of hair used often to be buried under an elder-bush.715 In Oldenburg cut hair and nails are wrapt in a cloth which is deposited in a hole in an elder-tree three days before the new moon; the hole is then plugged up.716 In the West of Northumberland it is thought that if the first parings of a child's nails are buried under an ash-tree, the child will turn out a fine singer.717 In Amboina before a child may taste sago-pap for the first time, the father cuts off a lock of the child's hair which he buries under a sago palm.718 In the Aru Islands, when a child is able to run alone, a female relation cuts off a lock of its hair and deposits it on a banana-tree.719 In the island of Roti it is thought that the first hair which a child gets is not his own and that, if it is not cut off, it will make him weak and ill. Hence, when the child is about a month old, his hair is cut off with much ceremony. As each of the friends who are invited to the ceremony enters the house he goes up to the child, cuts off a little of its hair and drops it into a cocoa-nut shell full of water. Afterwards the father or another relation takes the hair and packs it into a little bag made of leaves, which he fastens to the top of a palm-tree. Then he gives the leaves of the palm a good shaking, climbs down, and goes home without speaking to any one.720 Indians of the Yukon territory, Alaska, do not throw away their cut hair and nails, but tie them up in little bundles and place them in the crotches of trees or anywhere where they will [pg 202] not be disturbed by animals. For “they have a superstition that disease will follow the disturbance of such remains by animals.”721 The clipped hair and nails are often buried in any secret place, not necessarily in a temple or cemetery or under a tree, as in the cases already mentioned. In Swabia it is said that cut hair should be buried in a place where neither sun nor moon shines, therefore in the ground, under a stone, etc.722 In Danzig it is buried in a bag under the threshold.723 In Ugi, one of the Solomon Islands, men bury their hair lest it should fall into the hands of an enemy who would make magic with it and so bring sickness or calamity on them.724 The Zend Avesta directs that the clippings of hair and the parings of nails shall be placed in separate holes, and that three, six, or nine furrows shall be drawn round each hole with a metal knife.725 In the Grihya-Sûtras it is provided that the hair cut from a child's head at the end of the first, third, fifth, or seventh year shall be buried in the earth at a place covered with grass or in the neighbourhood of water.726 The Madi or Moru tribe of Central Africa bury the parings of their nails in the ground.727 The Kafirs carry still further this dread of allowing any portion of themselves to fall into the hands of an enemy; for not only do they bury their cut hair and nails in a sacred place, but when one of them cleans the head of another he preserves the insects which he [pg 203] finds, “carefully delivering them to the person to whom they originally appertained, supposing, according to their theory, that as they derived their support from the blood of the man from whom they were taken, should they be killed by another the blood of his neighbour would be in his possession, thus placing in his hands the power of some superhuman influence.”728 Amongst the Wanyoro of Central Africa all cuttings of the hair and nails are carefully stored under the bed and afterwards strewed about among the tall grass.729 In North Guinea they are carefully hidden (it is not said where) “in order that they may not be used as a fetish for the destruction of him to whom they belong.”730 In Bolang Mongondo (Celebes) the first hair cut from a child's head is kept in a young cocoa-nut, which is commonly hung on the front of the house, under the roof.731

To keep cut hair and nails safe from harm and the risky uses that sorcerers might put them to, it’s important to store them in a secure spot. Therefore, the people of the Maldives carefully maintain their hair and nail cuttings and bury them, along with a bit of water, in cemeteries; "because they would never step on them or throw them in the fire, as they believe these are part of their body and deserve a burial just like it does; and in fact, they wrap them carefully in cotton; and most prefer to be shaved at the entrances of temples and mosques."709 In New Zealand, severed hair is placed in a sacred area of land “to prevent it from being accidentally or intentionally touched by anyone.”710 The hair of a chief is carefully collected and laid in a nearby cemetery.711 The Tahitians bury their hair cuttings at temples.712 The cut hair and nails of the Flamen Dialis are buried beneath a fortunate tree.713 The hair of the Vestal virgins was hung on an ancient lotus tree.714 In Germany [pg 201] the hair clippings were often buried under an elder bush.715 In Oldenburg, cut hair and nails are wrapped in cloth and buried in a hole in an elder tree three days before the new moon; the hole is then sealed up.716 In western Northumberland, it’s believed that if the first nail clippings of a child are buried under an ash tree, the child will grow up to be a great singer.717 In Amboina, before a child can have sago-pap for the first time, the father cuts a lock of the child's hair and buries it under a sago palm.718 In the Aru Islands, when a child is able to walk on their own, a female relative cuts a lock of their hair and places it on a banana tree.719 On the island of Roti, people believe that the first hair a child gets isn’t really theirs and if it's not cut, it will make them weak and sick. So, about a month after birth, the child's hair is ceremoniously cut. As each invited friend arrives for the ceremony, they approach the child, cut a small amount of hair, and drop it into a coconut shell filled with water. Later, the father or another relative collects the hair and packs it into a small leaf bag, which is then tied to the top of a palm tree. After giving the palm leaves a good shake, he climbs down and heads home without speaking to anyone.720 The Indians in Yukon territory, Alaska, don’t throw away their hair and nails but bundle them up and place them in tree forks or anyplace where animals won't disturb them. Because "They believe that if animals disturb these remains, it will cause illness."721 Hair and nail clippings are often buried in secret spots—at times not in temples, cemeteries, or under trees, as seen previously. In Swabia, it is said that cut hair should be buried where neither the sun nor the moon shines, such as in the soil, under a stone, etc.722 In Danzig, it's buried in a bag beneath the threshold.723 In Ugi, one of the Solomon Islands, men bury their hair so it won’t fall into enemy hands who might use it to cast spells that could cause illness or disaster.724 The Zend Avesta states that hair clippings and nail parings should be placed in separate holes, with three, six, or nine furrows drawn around each hole using a metal knife.725 In the Grihya-Sûtras, it is indicated that hair cut from a child's head at the end of their first, third, fifth, or seventh year should be buried in grass-covered earth or near water.726 The Madi or Moru tribe in Central Africa bury their nail clippings in the ground.727 The Kafirs are even more fearful of any part of themselves falling into enemy hands; not only do they bury their hair and nails in sacred places, but when one cleans another’s head, they save the insects they find, [pg 203] “carefully giving them back to the person they belonged to, as they believe that since these insects fed on the individual's blood, if someone else killed them, that person would have the neighbor's blood, giving them some kind of supernatural control.”728 Among the Wanyoro of Central Africa, all cut hair and nail clippings are carefully kept under beds and later scattered among the tall grass.729 In North Guinea, they are carefully hidden (not specified where) "so that they can't be used as a fetish to harm the person they belong to."730 In Bolang Mongondo (Celebes), the first hair cut from a child's head is stored in a young coconut, which is often hung in front of the house, under the roof.731

Sometimes the severed hair and nails are preserved, not to prevent them from falling into the hands of a magician, but that the owner may have them at the resurrection of the body, to which some races look forward. Thus the Incas of Peru “took extreme care to preserve the nail-parings and the hairs that were shorn off or torn out with a comb; placing them in holes or niches in the walls, and if they fell out, any other Indian that saw them picked them up and put them in their places again. I very often asked different Indians, at various times, why [pg 204] they did this, in order to see what they would say, and they all replied in the same words, saying, ‘Know that all persons who are born must return to life’ (they have no word to express resuscitation), ‘and the souls must rise out of their tombs with all that belonged to their bodies. We, therefore, in order that we may not have to search for our hair and nails at a time when there will be much hurry and confusion, place them in one place, that they may be brought together more conveniently, and, whenever it is possible, we are also careful to spit in one place.’ ”732 In Chile this custom of stuffing the shorn hair into holes in the wall is still observed, it being thought the height of imprudence to throw the hair away.733 Similarly the Turks never throw away the parings of their nails, but carefully keep them in cracks of the walls or of the boards, in the belief that they will be needed at the resurrection.734 Some of the Esthonians keep the parings of their finger and toe nails in their bosom, in order to have them at hand when they are asked for them at the day of judgment.735 The Fors of Central Africa object to cut any one else's nails, for should the part cut off be lost and not delivered into its owner's hands, it will have to be made up to him somehow or other after death. The parings are buried in the ground.736 To spit upon the hair before throwing it away is thought in some parts of Europe sufficient to prevent [pg 205] its being used by witches.737 Spitting as a protective charm is well known.

Sometimes, severed hair and nails are kept, not to keep them from falling into a magician's hands, but so the owner can have them back at the resurrection of the body, which some cultures anticipate. For example, the Incas of Peru "took great care to preserve nail clippings and hair that was cut or combed out; they would place them in holes or niches in the walls, and if they fell out, any other Indian who saw them would pick them up and put them back. I often asked different Indians at different times why they did this, just to see what they would say, and they all replied with the same words, saying, 'Know that all people born must return to life' (they have no word for resurrection), 'and the souls must rise out of their graves with everything that belonged to their bodies. Therefore, we want to avoid searching for our hair and nails when there’s a lot of chaos, so we keep them together in one place for convenience, and whenever possible, we also make sure to spit in one spot.'" In Chile, the custom of stuffing shorn hair into holes in the wall is still practiced, as it is considered extremely careless to throw hair away. Similarly, Turks never discard their nail clippings but carefully store them in cracks in the walls or floorboards, believing they will be needed at the resurrection. Some Esthonians keep their fingernail and toenail clippings close to them, so they have them ready when asked for on judgment day. The Fors of Central Africa refuse to cut anyone else's nails, believing that if the clipped piece is lost and not returned to its owner, they will have to make it up to them somehow after death. The clippings are often buried in the ground. Spitting on hair before throwing it away is thought in some parts of Europe to be enough to prevent it from being used by witches. Spitting as a protective charm is well known.

Some people burn their loose hair to save it from falling into the power of sorcerers. This is done by the Patagonians and some of the Victorian tribes.738 The Makololo of South Africa either burn it or bury it secretly,739 and the same alternative is sometimes adopted by the Tirolese.740 Cut and combed out hair is burned in Pomerania and sometimes at Liége.741 In Norway the parings of nails are either burned or buried, lest the elves or the Finns should find them and make them into bullets wherewith to shoot the cattle.742 This destruction of the hair or nails plainly involves an inconsistency of thought. The object of the destruction is avowedly to prevent these severed portions of the body from being used by sorcerers. But the possibility of their being so used depends upon the supposed sympathetic connection between them and the man from whom they were severed. And if this sympathetic connection still exists, clearly these severed portions cannot be destroyed without injury to the man.

Some people burn their loose hair to keep it from falling into the hands of sorcerers. This practice is carried out by the Patagonians and some of the Victorian tribes.738 The Makololo of South Africa either burn it or bury it secretly,739 and the same choice is sometimes made by the Tirolese.740 Cut and combed hair is burned in Pomerania and occasionally in Liège.741 In Norway, nail clippings are either burned or buried so that elves or the Finns don't find them and turn them into bullets to shoot livestock.742 This practice of destroying hair or nails reveals a contradiction in thinking. The reason for the destruction is clearly to stop these severed parts of the body from being used by sorcerers. However, the possibility of their use depends on the believed sympathetic connection between the severed parts and the person they came from. If this sympathetic connection still exists, then clearly, destroying these severed parts could injure the person.

Before leaving this subject, on which I have perhaps dwelt too long, it may be well to call attention to the motive assigned for cutting a young child's hair in Roti.743 In that island the first hair is regarded as a danger to the child, and its removal is intended to avert the danger. The reason of this may be that as a [pg 206] young child is almost universally supposed to be in a tabooed or dangerous state, it is necessary, in removing the taboo, to destroy the separable parts of the child's body on the ground that they are infected, so to say, by the virus of the taboo and as such are dangerous. The cutting of the child's hair would thus be exactly parallel to the destruction of the vessels which have been used by a tabooed person.744 This view is borne out by a practice, observed by some Australians, of burning off part of a woman's hair after childbirth as well as burning every vessel which has been used by her during her seclusion.745 Here the burning of the woman's hair seems plainly intended to serve the same purpose as the burning of the vessels used by her; and as the vessels are burned because they are believed to be tainted with a dangerous infection, so, we must suppose, is also the hair. We can, therefore, understand the importance attached by many peoples to the first cutting of a child's hair and the elaborate ceremonies by which the operation is accompanied.746 Again, we can understand why a man should poll his head after a journey.747 For we have seen that a traveller is often believed to contract a dangerous infection from strangers and that, therefore, on his return home he is obliged to submit to various purificatory ceremonies before he is allowed to mingle freely with his own people.748 On my hypothesis the polling of the hair is simply one of these purificatory or disinfectant ceremonies. The cutting of the hair after a vow may have the same meaning. It is a way of ridding the [pg 207] man of what has been infected by the dangerous state of taboo, sanctity, or uncleanness (for all these are only different expressions for the same primitive conception) under which he laboured during the continuance of the vow. Similarly at some Hindu places of pilgrimage on the banks of rivers men who have committed great crimes or are troubled by uneasy consciences have every hair shaved off by professional barbers before they plunge into the sacred stream, from which “they emerge new creatures, with all the accumulated guilt of a long life effaced.”749

Before leaving this topic, which I might have spent too much time on, it's worth noting the reason given for cutting a young child's hair in Roti. On that island, the first haircut is seen as a threat to the child, and cutting it is meant to eliminate that threat. This may be because a young child is generally believed to be in a forbidden or dangerous state, so to remove the taboo, it's necessary to eliminate parts of the child's body, which are considered infected by the taboo and therefore dangerous. The act of cutting the child's hair is similar to destroying the objects used by someone who is taboo. This idea is supported by a practice observed among some Australians, who burn part of a woman's hair after she gives birth and also burn any items she used during her isolation. Here, burning the woman's hair seems clearly intended to serve the same purpose as burning the vessels she used, as both are believed to carry a dangerous infection. We can thus see why many cultures give great importance to a child's first haircut and the elaborate ceremonies surrounding it. Similarly, we can understand why a man might shave his head after a journey. A traveler is often thought to pick up dangerous infections from strangers and therefore must go through various purification ceremonies upon returning home before he can freely mix with his own people. In my view, shaving the hair is simply one of these purification or disinfecting rituals. Cutting hair after making a vow may carry the same meaning. It's a way of getting rid of what has been contaminated by the dangerous state of taboo, holiness, or uncleanliness—since all these are just different ways to describe the same basic idea—while he was under the vow. Likewise, at some Hindu pilgrimage sites along rivers, men who have committed serious crimes or feel guilty have all their hair shaved off by professional barbers before they enter the sacred water, from which "they emerge new creatures, with all the accumulated guilt of a long life erased.”

As might have been expected, the superstitions of the savage cluster thick about the subject of food; and he abstains from eating many animals and plants, wholesome enough in themselves, but which for one reason or another he considers would prove dangerous or fatal to the eater. Examples of such abstinence are too familiar and far too numerous to quote. But if the ordinary man is thus deterred by superstitious fear from partaking of various foods, the restraints of this kind which are laid upon sacred or tabooed persons, such as kings and priests, are still more numerous and stringent. We have already seen that the Flamen Dialis was forbidden to eat or even name several plants and animals, and that the flesh diet of the Egyptian kings was restricted to veal and goose.750 The Gangas or fetish priests of the Loango Coast are forbidden to eat or even see a variety of animals and fish, in consequence of which their flesh diet is extremely limited; often they live only on herbs and roots, though they may drink fresh blood.751 The heir to the throne of [pg 208] Loango is forbidden from infancy to eat pork; from early childhood he is interdicted the use of the cola fruit in company; at puberty he is taught by a priest not to partake of fowls except such as he has himself killed and cooked; and so the number of taboos goes on increasing with his years.752 In Fernando Po the king after installation is forbidden to eat cocco (arum acaule), deer, and porcupine, which are the ordinary foods of the people.753 Amongst the Murrams of Manipur (a district of Eastern India, on the border of Burma), “there are many prohibitions in regard to the food, both animal and vegetable, which the chief should eat, and the Murrams say the chief's post must be a very uncomfortable one.”754 To explain the ultimate reason why any particular food is prohibited to a whole tribe or to certain of its members would commonly require a far more intimate knowledge of the history and beliefs of the tribe than we possess. The general motive of such prohibitions is doubtless the same which underlies the whole taboo system, namely, the conservation of the tribe and the individual.

As you might expect, the superstitions of primitive people are often focused on food. They avoid eating many animals and plants that are perfectly safe, but for various reasons, they believe could be harmful or deadly. There are many examples of this kind of avoidance, too many to list. If regular people are held back by superstitions regarding what they can eat, the restrictions placed on sacred or taboo individuals, like kings and priests, are even more numerous and strict. We've already seen that the Flamen Dialis was not allowed to eat or even mention certain plants and animals, and the diet of Egyptian kings was limited to veal and goose. The fetish priests of the Loango Coast are not allowed to eat or even see a range of animals and fish, which severely limits their diet; they often survive on just herbs and roots, though they may drink fresh blood. The heir to the throne of Loango is prohibited from eating pork from a young age; as a child, he can't eat the cola fruit in company; and when he reaches puberty, a priest instructs him to only eat birds that he has killed and cooked himself, with the number of taboos increasing as he gets older. In Fernando Po, after being installed, the king is not allowed to eat cocco (arum acaule), deer, and porcupine, which are common foods among the people. Among the Murrams of Manipur (a region in Eastern India bordering Burma), “there are many prohibitions regarding the food, both animal and vegetable, that the chief should eat, and the Murrams say the chief's position must be very uncomfortable.” To explain why any specific food is banned for an entire tribe or certain members would usually require a deeper understanding of the tribe's history and beliefs than we have. The main reason behind such prohibitions is likely the same as the overall taboo system, which aims to protect the tribe and the individual.

It would be easy to extend the list of royal and priestly taboos, but the above may suffice as specimens. To conclude this part of our subject it only remains to state summarily the general conclusions to which our inquiries have thus far conducted us. We have seen that in savage or barbarous society there are often found men to whom the superstition of their fellows ascribes a controlling influence over the general course of nature. Such men are accordingly adored and treated as gods. Whether these human divinities [pg 209] also hold temporal sway over the lives and fortunes of their fellows, or whether their functions are purely spiritual and supernatural, in other words, whether they are kings as well as gods or only the latter, is a distinction which hardly concerns us here. Their supposed divinity is the essential fact with which we have to deal. In virtue of it they are a pledge and guarantee to their worshippers of the continuance and orderly succession of those physical phenomena upon which mankind depends for subsistence. Naturally, therefore, the life and health of such a god-man are matters of anxious concern to the people whose welfare and even existence are bound up with his; naturally he is constrained by them to conform to such rules as the wit of early man has devised for averting the ills to which flesh is heir, including the last ill, death. These rules, as an examination of them has shown, are nothing but the maxims with which, on the primitive view, every man of common prudence must comply if he would live long in the land. But while in the case of ordinary men the observance of the rules is left to the choice of the individual, in the case of the god-man it is enforced under penalty of dismissal from his high station, or even of death. For his worshippers have far too great a stake in his life to allow him to play fast and loose with it. Therefore all the quaint superstitions, the old-world maxims, the venerable saws which the ingenuity of savage philosophers elaborated long ago, and which old women at chimney corners still impart as treasures of great price to their descendants gathered round the cottage fire on winter evenings—all these antique fancies clustered, all these cobwebs of the brain were spun about the path of the old king, the human god, who, immeshed in them like [pg 210] a fly in the toils of a spider, could hardly stir a limb for the threads of custom, “light as air but strong as links of iron,” that crossing and recrossing each other in an endless maze bound him fast within a network of observances from which death or deposition alone could release him.

It would be easy to add more examples of royal and priestly taboos, but the ones mentioned above may be enough. To wrap up this part of our discussion, we just need to summarize the general conclusions our inquiries have led us to so far. We've found that in primitive or barbaric societies, there are often individuals whom the beliefs of others consider to have a powerful influence on the natural world. As a result, these individuals are worshiped and treated like gods. Whether these human divinities also have actual power over the daily lives and fortunes of their followers, or if their roles are purely spiritual and supernatural—essentially, whether they are kings as well as gods, or just the latter—is a distinction that isn't very important for our purpose here. Their supposedly divine nature is the key fact we need to focus on. Because of this, they serve as a promise and assurance to their worshippers about the ongoing and orderly occurrences of the physical phenomena that humanity relies on for survival. Therefore, the life and health of such a god-like figure are matters of great concern for the people whose well-being and even existence are tied to his; as a result, he is pressured by them to abide by the rules that early humans created to avoid the misfortunes that can affect anyone, including the ultimate misfortune, death. These rules, as we've seen through examination, are simply the guidelines that every sensible person in primitive times must follow if they want to live long. However, while ordinary individuals can choose whether to follow these rules, for the god-like figure, adherence is enforced with the threat of being removed from his elevated position, or even death. His followers have too much at stake in his survival to let him take risks with it. Thus, all the peculiar superstitions, the old sayings, and the time-honored beliefs that early philosophers developed long ago—many of which old women pass down like treasures to their grandchildren gathered around the fire on winter evenings—these old notions formed a web around the old king, the human god, who, trapped in them like a fly in a spider's web, could hardly move due to the customs, “light as air but strong as links of iron,” that intertwined in an endless maze, binding him tightly in a network of rituals from which only death or ousting could free him.

To students of the past the life of the old kings and priests thus teems with instruction. In it was summed up all that passed for wisdom when the world was young. It was the perfect pattern after which every man strove to shape his life; a faultless model constructed with rigorous accuracy upon the lines laid down by a barbarous philosophy. Crude and false as that philosophy may seem to us, it would be unjust to deny it the merit of logical consistency. Starting from a conception of the vital principle as a tiny being or soul existing in, but distinct and separable from, the living being, it deduces for the practical guidance of life a system of rules which in general hangs well together and forms a fairly complete and harmonious whole. The flaw—and it is a fatal one—of the system lies not in its reasoning, but in its premises; in its conception of the nature of life, not in any irrelevancy of the conclusions which it draws from that conception. But to stigmatise these premises as ridiculous because we can easily detect their falseness, would be ungrateful as well as unphilosophical. We stand upon the foundation reared by the generations that have gone before, and we can but dimly realise the painful and prolonged efforts which it has cost humanity to struggle up to the point, no very exalted one after all, which we have reached. Our gratitude is due to the nameless and forgotten toilers, whose patient thought and active exertions have largely made [pg 211] us what we are. The amount of new knowledge which one age, certainly which one man, can add to the common store is small, and it argues stupidity or dishonesty, besides ingratitude, to ignore the heap while vaunting the few grains which it may have been our privilege to add to it. There is indeed little danger at present of undervaluing the contributions which modern times and even classical antiquity have made to the general advancement of our race. But when we pass these limits, the case is different. Contempt and ridicule or abhorrence and denunciation are too often the only recognition vouchsafed to the savage and his ways. Yet of the benefactors whom we are bound thankfully to commemorate, many, perhaps most, were savages. For when all is said and done our resemblances to the savage are still far more numerous than our differences from him; and what we have in common with him, and deliberately retain as true and useful, we owe to our savage forefathers who slowly acquired by experience and transmitted to us by inheritance those seemingly fundamental ideas which we are apt to regard as original and intuitive. We are like heirs to a fortune which has been handed down for so many ages that the memory of those who built it up is lost, and its possessors for the time being regard it as having been an original and unalterable possession of their race since the beginning of the world. But reflection and inquiry should satisfy us that to our predecessors we are indebted for much of what we thought most our own, and that their errors were not wilful extravagances or the ravings of insanity, but simply hypotheses, justifiable as such at the time when they were propounded, but which a fuller experience has proved to be inadequate. It is only by the [pg 212] successive testing of hypotheses and rejection of the false that truth is at last elicited. After all, what we call truth is only the hypothesis which is found to work best. Therefore in reviewing the opinions and practices of ruder ages and races we shall do well to look with leniency upon their errors as inevitable slips made in the search for truth, and to give them the benefit of that indulgence which we may one day stand in need of ourselves: cum excusatione itaque veteres audiendi sunt.

To students of the past, the lives of the old kings and priests are full of lessons. It sums up all that was considered wisdom when the world was young. It was the ideal model that every man aimed to follow; a flawless example built with precision based on a primitive philosophy. As crude and incorrect as that philosophy might seem to us, it would be unfair to deny it the merit of logical consistency. Starting from the idea of a life force as a tiny being or soul that exists within, but is separate from, the living person, it creates a system of guidelines that generally fits well together and forms a fairly complete and cohesive whole. The flaw—and it’s a serious one—lies not in its reasoning but in its assumptions; in how it understands the nature of life, rather than in the irrelevance of its conclusions. However, it would be ungrateful and unphilosophical to label these assumptions as ridiculous just because we can see they are false. We stand on the foundation built by the generations that came before us, and we can only vaguely grasp the painful and prolonged efforts it took humanity to reach the not-so-lofty point we have today. We owe our gratitude to the unknown and forgotten workers whose patient thoughts and diligent actions have greatly shaped who we are. The amount of new knowledge that one age—or even one person—can add to the collective knowledge is small, and ignoring the vast amount while boasting about the tiny bits we might have contributed shows ignorance or dishonesty, along with ingratitude. There is indeed little risk today of underestimating the contributions that modern times and even classical antiquity have made to the overall progress of our species. But when we go beyond these limits, the situation changes. Often, the only recognition given to the savage and his ways is contempt, ridicule, or even anger. Yet many, if not most, of the benefactors we should be grateful for were savages. When all is said and done, our similarities to the savage far outnumber our differences. What we share with him, and intentionally keep as valid and useful, we owe to our savage ancestors, who gradually learned through experience and passed down valuable ideas that we mistakenly consider original and obvious. We are like heirs to a fortune that has been passed down for so long that the memories of those who built it are lost, and for the time being, its holders believe it has always belonged to their race since the dawn of time. However, reflection and inquiry should remind us that we owe much of what we think is uniquely ours to our predecessors, and their mistakes were not willful absurdities or insane ramblings but were simply hypotheses that made sense at the time they were proposed but have since been shown to be inadequate through greater experience. Only through the successive testing of hypotheses and the dismissal of the false can truth finally emerge. Ultimately, what we call truth is just the hypothesis that works best. Therefore, when we examine the beliefs and practices of more primitive ages and societies, we should be generous in evaluating their mistakes as natural missteps in the pursuit of truth and extend to them the understanding we might one day need ourselves: therefore, the old must be listened to with an excuse.

[pg 213]

Chapter III. Killing the God.

But there are still other superstitions that need to be revealed, ... so that you may know that in these secular religions, there are deaths that are consecrated to humanity.I'm ready to assist! Please provide the text you'd like me to modernize.Firmicus Maternus, De errore profanarum religionum, c. 6.

Killing the divine king.

Lacking the idea of eternal duration primitive man naturally supposes the gods to be mortal like himself. The Greenlanders believed that a wind could kill their most powerful god, and that he would certainly die if he touched a dog. When they heard of the Christian God, they kept asking if he never died, and being informed that he did not, they were much surprised and said that he must be a very great god indeed.755 In answer to the inquiries of Colonel Dodge, a North American Indian stated that the world was made by the Great Spirit. Being asked which Great Spirit he meant, the good one or the bad one, “Oh, neither of them replied he, “the Great Spirit that made the world is dead long ago. He could not possibly have lived as long as this.”756 A tribe in the Philippine Islands told the Spanish conquerors that the grave of [pg 214] the Creator was upon the top of Mount Cabunian.757 Heitsi-eibib, a god or divine hero of the Hottentots, died several times and came to life again. His graves are generally to be met with in narrow passes between mountains.758 The grave of Zeus, the great god of Greece, was shown to visitors in Crete as late as about the beginning of our era.759 The body of Dionysus was buried at Delphi beside the golden statue of Apollo, and his tomb bore the inscription, “Here lies Dionysus dead, the son of Semele.”760 According to one account, Apollo himself was buried at Delphi; for Pythagoras is said to have carved an inscription on his tomb, setting forth how the god had been killed by the python and buried under the tripod.761 Cronus was buried in Sicily,762 and the graves of Hermes, Aphrodite, and Ares were shown in Hermopolis, Cyprus, and Thrace.763

Lacking the idea of eternal existence, early humans naturally thought the gods were mortal like themselves. The Greenlanders believed that a wind could kill their most powerful god, and that he would definitely die if he touched a dog. When they heard about the Christian God, they kept asking if he never died. When they were told he didn't, they were quite surprised and said he must be a very great god indeed.755 In response to Colonel Dodge's questions, a North American Indian remarked that the world was created by the Great Spirit. When asked which Great Spirit he meant, the good one or the bad one, “Oh, neither of them” he replied, "The Great Spirit that created the world is long gone. There's no way He could have lived this long."756 A tribe in the Philippine Islands told the Spanish conquerors that the grave of [pg 214] the Creator was located on the top of Mount Cabunian.757 Heitsi-eibib, a god or divine hero of the Hottentots, died several times and came back to life. His graves are usually found in narrow passes between mountains.758 The grave of Zeus, the great god of Greece, was shown to visitors in Crete as late as the beginning of our era.759 The body of Dionysus was buried at Delphi next to the golden statue of Apollo, and his tomb had the inscription, “Here lies Dionysus, the son of Semele, dead.”760 According to one account, Apollo himself was buried at Delphi; Pythagoras is said to have carved an inscription on his tomb that described how the god had been killed by the python and buried under the tripod.761 Cronus was buried in Sicily,762 and the graves of Hermes, Aphrodite, and Ares were shown in Hermopolis, Cyprus, and Thrace.763

If the great invisible gods are thus supposed to die, it is not to be expected that a god who dwells in the flesh and blood of a man should escape the same fate. Now primitive peoples, as we have seen, sometimes believe that their safety and even that of the world is bound up with the life of one of these god-men or human incarnations of the divinity. Naturally, therefore, they take the utmost care of his life, out of a regard for their own. But no amount of care and precaution will prevent the man-god from growing old and feeble and at last dying. His worshippers have [pg 215] to lay their account with this sad necessity and to meet it as best they can. The danger is a formidable one; for if the course of nature is dependent on the man-god's life, what catastrophes may not be expected from the gradual enfeeblement of his powers and their final extinction in death? There is only one way of averting these dangers. The man-god must be killed as soon as he shows symptoms that his powers are beginning to fail, and his soul must be transferred to a vigorous successor before it has been seriously impaired by the threatened decay. The advantages of thus putting the man-god to death instead of allowing him to die of old age and disease are, to the savage, obvious enough. For if the man-god dies what we call a natural death, it means, according to the savage, that his soul has either voluntarily departed from his body and refuses to return, or more commonly that it has been extracted or at least detained in its wanderings by a demon or sorcerer.764 In any of these cases the soul of the man-god is lost to his worshippers; and with it their prosperity is gone and their very existence endangered. Even if they could arrange to catch the soul of the dying god as it left his lips or his nostrils and so transfer it to a successor, this would not effect their purpose; for, thus dying of disease, his soul would necessarily leave his body in the last stage of weakness and exhaustion, and as such it would continue to drag out a feeble existence in the body to which it might be transferred. Whereas by killing him his worshippers could, in the first place, make sure of catching his soul as it escaped and transferring it to a suitable successor; and, in the second place, by killing him before his natural force [pg 216] was abated, they would secure that the world should not fall into decay with the decay of the man-god. Every purpose, therefore, was answered, and all dangers averted by thus killing the man-god and transferring his soul, while yet at its prime, to a vigorous successor.

If the powerful invisible gods are thought to die, it's not surprising that a god who exists in the flesh and blood of a person should meet the same fate. As we've seen, primitive cultures often believe that their safety and even the world's well-being depend on the life of a god-man or a human incarnation of the divine. So, they take great care to preserve his life for their own sake. But no level of care and precaution can prevent the man-god from aging and weakening until he ultimately dies. His followers have to accept this unfortunate reality and deal with it as best they can. The threat is serious; if the natural order hinges on the life of the man-god, what disasters might arise from the slow degradation of his powers and their eventual end in death? The only way to avoid these dangers is to kill the man-god as soon as he shows signs of declining strength, and to transfer his soul to a strong successor before it has suffered serious harm from anticipated decline. The benefits of killing the man-god instead of letting him die of old age and illness are clear to the primitive mind. When a man-god dies a so-called natural death, it suggests, to them, that his soul has either voluntarily left his body and won’t return or, more commonly, has been taken or at least delayed in its journey by a demon or sorcerer. In any of these situations, the souls of the man-god are lost to his worshippers; along with it goes their prosperity and their very survival is threatened. Even if they could manage to catch the soul of the dying god as it leaves his mouth or nostrils and transfer it to a successor, they wouldn’t achieve their goal; for dying of illness, his soul would inevitably depart from his body in a state of weakness and exhaustion, dragging out a frail existence in the body it was moved to. On the other hand, by killing him, his followers can ensure they catch his soul as it departs and transfer it to a suitable successor; plus, by ending his life before his natural strength diminishes, they guarantee that the world doesn’t decline along with the man-god. So, killing the man-god and transferring his soul to a vigorous successor while it’s still strong fulfills every purpose and averts all dangers.

Some of the reasons for preferring a violent death to the slow death of old age or disease are obviously as applicable to common men as to the man-god. Thus the Mangaians think that “the spirits of those who die a natural death are excessively feeble and weak, as their bodies were at dissolution; whereas the spirits of those who are slain in battle are strong and vigorous, their bodies not having been reduced by disease.”765 Hence, men sometimes prefer to kill themselves or to be killed before they grow feeble, in order that in the future life their souls may start fresh and vigorous as they left their bodies, instead of decrepit and worn out with age and disease. Thus in Fiji, “self-immolation is by no means rare, and they believe that as they leave this life, so they will remain ever after. This forms a powerful motive to escape from decrepitude, or from a crippled condition, by a voluntary death.”766 Or, as another observer of the Fijians puts it more fully, “the custom of voluntary suicide on the part of the old men, which is among their most extraordinary usages, is also connected with their superstitions respecting a future life. They believe that persons enter upon the delights of their elysium with the same faculties, mental and physical, that they possess at the hour of death, in short, that the spiritual life commences where the corporeal existence terminates. [pg 217] With these views, it is natural that they should desire to pass through this change before their mental and bodily powers are so enfeebled by age as to deprive them of their capacity for enjoyment. To this motive must be added the contempt which attaches to physical weakness among a nation of warriors, and the wrongs and insults which await those who are no longer able to protect themselves. When therefore a man finds his strength declining with the advance of age, and feels that he will soon be unequal to discharge the duties of this life, and to partake in the pleasures of that which is to come, he calls together his relations, and tells them that he is now worn out and useless, that he sees they are all ashamed of him, and that he has determined to be buried.” So on a day appointed they meet and bury him alive.767 In Vaté (New Hebrides) the aged were buried alive at their own request. It was considered a disgrace to the family of an old chief if he was not buried alive.768 Of the Kamants, a Jewish tribe in Abyssinia, it is reported that “they never let a person die a natural death, but if any of their relatives is nearly expiring, the priest of the village is called to cut his throat; if this be omitted, they believe that the departed soul has not entered the mansions of the blessed.”769

Some reasons for choosing a violent death over the slow decline of old age or disease apply just as much to ordinary people as they do to legendary figures. For instance, the Mangaians believe that "The spirits of people who die a natural death are weak and frail, just like their bodies were at the time of death, while the spirits of those who are killed in battle are strong and lively, as their bodies haven't been weakened by illness."765 Because of this, some men prefer to take their own lives or to be killed before they grow frail, ensuring their souls enter the afterlife renewed and strong, rather than frail and exhausted from age and disease. In Fiji, "Self-immolation happens fairly often, and they believe that they will stay the same after they leave this life, which strongly drives them to escape from aging or disability through voluntary death."766 Additionally, as another observer of the Fijians explains, “The practice of voluntary suicide among the elderly, which is one of their more unusual customs, is connected to their beliefs about life after death. They believe that people experience the joys of the afterlife with the same mental and physical abilities they had at the time of death, meaning that spiritual existence begins where physical life ends. [pg 217] With this belief, it makes sense that they would want to make this transition before their mental and physical abilities deteriorate too much to feel joy. This motivation is reinforced by the disdain for physical weakness in a warrior society and the mistreatment that those who can no longer defend themselves may face. Hence, when a man realizes that his strength is diminishing with age and acknowledges he will soon be unable to meet his responsibilities or enjoy what comes next, he gathers his family and expresses that he feels exhausted and useless, that he sees their disappointment in him, and that he has chosen to be buried.” On a set day, they then come together and bury him alive.767 In Vaté (New Hebrides), the elderly would request to be buried alive. It was seen as a disgrace to an old chief's family if he were not buried alive.768 Among the Kamants, a Jewish tribe in Abyssinia, it is reported that “They never let someone die a natural death; if a family member is close to death, the village priest is brought in to cut their throat; if this doesn’t happen, they believe the deceased’s soul hasn’t entered the afterlife.”769

But it is with the death of the god-man—the divine king or priest—that we are here especially concerned. The people of Congo believed, as we have seen, that if their pontiff the Chitomé were to die a natural death, [pg 218] the world would perish, and the earth, which he alone sustained by his power and merit, would immediately be annihilated. Accordingly when he fell ill and seemed likely to die, the man who was destined to be his successor entered the pontiff's house with a rope or a club and strangled or clubbed him to death.770 The Ethiopian kings of Meroe were worshipped as gods; but whenever the priests chose, they sent a messenger to the king, ordering him to die, and alleging an oracle of the gods as their authority for the command. This command the kings always obeyed down to the reign of Ergamenes, a contemporary of Ptolemy II, King of Egypt. Having received a Greek education which emancipated him from the superstitions of his countrymen, Ergamenes ventured to disregard the command of the priests, and, entering the Golden Temple with a body of soldiers, put the priests to the sword.771 In the kingdom of Unyoro in Central Africa, custom still requires that as soon as the king falls seriously ill or begins to break up from age, he shall be killed by his own wives; for, according to an old prophecy, the throne will pass away from the dynasty in the event of the king dying a natural death.772 When the king of Kibanga, on the Upper Congo, seems near his end, the sorcerers put a rope round his neck, which they draw gradually tighter till he dies.773 It seems to have been a Zulu custom to put the king to death as soon as he began to have wrinkles or gray hairs. At least this seems implied in the following [pg 219] passage, written by one who resided for some time at the court of the notorious Zulu tyrant Chaka, in the early part of this century: “The extraordinary violence of the king's rage with me was mainly occasioned by that absurd nostrum, the hair oil, with the notion of which Mr. Farewell had impressed him as being a specific for removing all indications of age. From the first moment of his having heard that such a preparation was attainable, he evinced a solicitude to procure it, and on every occasion never forgot to remind us of his anxiety respecting it; more especially on our departure on the mission his injunctions were particularly directed to this object. It will be seen that it is one of the barbarous customs of the Zoolas in their choice or election of their kings that he must neither have wrinkles nor gray hairs, as they are both distinguishing marks of disqualification for becoming a monarch of a warlike people. It is also equally indispensable that their king should never exhibit those proofs of having become unfit and incompetent to reign; it is therefore important that they should conceal these indications so long as they possibly can. Chaka had become greatly apprehensive of the approach of gray hairs; which would at once be the signal for him to prepare to make his exit from this sublunary world, it being always followed by the death of the monarch.”774

But we are particularly concerned with the death of the god-man—the divine king or priest. The people of Congo believed, as we've seen, that if their pontiff, the Chitomé, were to die a natural death, [pg 218] the world would perish, and the earth, which he alone sustained by his power and merit, would be immediately destroyed. Thus, when he fell ill and seemed likely to die, the man chosen to succeed him would enter the pontiff's house with a rope or a club and strangle or bludgeon him to death.770 The Ethiopian kings of Meroe were revered as gods; however, whenever the priests decided, they sent a messenger to the king, ordering him to die, claiming an oracle from the gods as their justification for the order. This command was always followed by the kings until the reign of Ergamenes, a contemporary of Ptolemy II, King of Egypt. After receiving a Greek education that liberated him from the superstitions of his people, Ergamenes dared to disregard the priests' command and, entering the Golden Temple with a group of soldiers, executed the priests.771 In the kingdom of Unyoro in Central Africa, it is still customary that as soon as the king becomes seriously ill or starts to show signs of aging, he is killed by his own wives; as an old prophecy states, the throne will leave the dynasty if the king dies a natural death.772 When the king of Kibanga, on the Upper Congo, appears to be nearing death, sorcerers place a rope around his neck, gradually tightening it until he dies.773 It seems to have been a Zulu custom to execute the king as soon as he started to develop wrinkles or gray hair. At least, this is implied in the following [pg 219] passage written by someone who spent some time at the court of the infamous Zulu tyrant Chaka in the early part of this century: The king's extreme anger towards me was mainly sparked by that ridiculous hair oil treatment, which Mr. Farewell had convinced him would remove all signs of aging. From the moment he found out such a product existed, he was eager to get it and constantly reminded us of his concerns about it; especially before we left on the mission, his requests were particularly focused on this. It’s clear that one of the harsh traditions of the Zulus in selecting kings is that he must not have wrinkles or gray hair, as both indicate he’s unfit to lead a warrior society. It’s also crucial that their king shows no signs of being unworthy or unable to rule; therefore, hiding these signs for as long as possible is vital. Chaka became increasingly worried about getting gray hair; it would mean he needed to prepare for his exit from this world, as it was always followed by the death of the monarch.774

The custom of putting kings to death as soon as they suffered from any personal defect prevailed two centuries ago in the Kafir kingdoms of Sofala, to the north of the present Zululand. These kings of Sofala, as we have seen,775 were regarded as gods by their people, being entreated to give rain or sunshine, according as each might [pg 220] be wanted. Nevertheless a slight bodily blemish, such as the loss of a tooth, was considered a sufficient cause for putting one of these god-men to death, as we learn from the following passage of an old historian. “Contiguous to the domains of the Quiteva [the king of the country bordering on the river Sofala], are those of another prince called Sedanda. This prince becoming afflicted with leprosy, resolved on following implicitly the laws of the country, and poisoning himself, conceiving his malady to be incurable, or at least that it would render him so loathsome in the eyes of his people that they would with difficulty recognise him. In consequence he nominated his successor, holding as his opinion that sovereigns who should serve in all things as an example to their people ought to have no defect whatever, even in their persons; that when any defects may chance to befall them they cease to be worthy of life and of governing their dominions; and preferring death in compliance with this law to life, with the reproach of having been its violator. But this law was not observed with equal scrupulosity by one of the Quitevas, who, having lost a tooth and feeling no disposition to follow the practice of his predecessors, published to the people that he had lost a front tooth, in order that when they might behold, they yet might be able to recognise him; declaring at the same time that he was resolved on living and reigning as long as he could, esteeming his existence requisite for the welfare of his subjects. He at the same time loudly condemned the practice of his predecessors, whom he taxed with imprudence, nay, even with madness, for having condemned themselves to death for casual accidents to their persons, confessing plainly that it would be with much regret, even when the course of [pg 221] nature should bring him to his end, that he should submit to die. He observed, moreover, that no reasonable being, much less a monarch, ought to anticipate the scythe of time; and, abrogating this mortal law, he ordained that all his successors, if sane, should follow the precedent he gave, and the new law established by him.”776

The tradition of executing kings as soon as they showed any personal flaw was common two centuries ago in the Kafir kingdoms of Sofala, north of modern Zululand. These kings of Sofala, as we have seen, were worshipped as gods by their people, who prayed to them for rain or sunshine as needed. However, even a minor physical imperfection, like losing a tooth, was seen as a valid reason to kill one of these god-like rulers, as noted by an ancient historian. “Next to the lands of Quiteva [the king of the region along the river Sofala] are those of another ruler named Sedanda. This prince, afflicted with leprosy, decided to strictly follow the laws of his country and poisoned himself, believing his illness to be incurable, or at least that it would make him too repulsive for his people to recognize. He therefore appointed his successor, believing that rulers should be perfect examples to their people and should have no defects whatsoever, even physically; that if any flaws befell them, they would no longer be worthy of life or governing. He chose death over the shame of violating this law. But this law wasn't followed as strictly by one of the Quitevas, who, after losing a tooth, chose not to follow the tradition of his forebears. He announced to his people that he had lost a front tooth so they could still recognize him. He declared he intended to live and reign as long as possible, believing his life essential for the well-being of his subjects. He openly criticized the practices of his predecessors, accusing them of foolishness, even madness, for choosing death over minor physical accidents, stating that he would regret submitting to death when nature eventually took its course. He remarked that no rational being, especially a monarch, should rush toward death and abolished this brutal law, declaring that all his successors, if sane, should follow his example and the new law he established.”

This King of Sofala was, therefore, a bold reformer like Ergamenes, King of Ethiopia. We may conjecture that the ground for putting the Ethiopian kings to death was, as in the case of the Zulu and Sofala kings, the appearance on their person of any bodily defect or sign of decay; and that the oracle which the priests alleged as the authority for the royal execution was to the effect that great calamities would result from the reign of a king who had any blemish on his body; just as an oracle warned Sparta against a “lame reign,” that is, the reign of a lame king.777 This conjecture is confirmed by the fact that the kings of Ethiopia were chosen for their size, strength, and beauty long before the custom of killing them was abolished.778 To this day the Sultan of Wadâi must have no obvious bodily defect, and a king of Angoy cannot be crowned if he has a single blemish, such as a broken or filed tooth or the scar of an old wound.779 It is only natural, therefore, to suppose, especially [pg 222] with the other African examples before us, that any bodily defect or symptom of old age appearing on the person of the Ethiopian monarch was the signal for his execution. At a later time it is recorded that if the King of Ethiopia became maimed in any part of his body all his courtiers had to suffer the same mutilation.780 But this rule may perhaps have been instituted at the time when the custom of killing the king for any personal defect was abolished; instead of compelling the king to die because, e.g., he had lost a tooth, all his subjects would be obliged to lose a tooth, and thus the invidious superiority of the subjects over the king would be cancelled. A rule of this sort is still observed in the same region at the court of the Sultans of Darfur. When the Sultan coughs, every one makes the sound ts ts by striking the tongue against the root of the upper teeth; when he sneezes, the whole assembly utters a sound like the cry of the jeko; when he falls off his horse, all his followers must fall off likewise; if any one of them remains in the saddle, no matter how high his rank, he is laid on the ground and beaten.781 At the court of the King of Uganda in Central Africa, when the king laughs, every one laughs; when he sneezes, every one sneezes; when he has a cold, every one pretends to have a cold; when he has his hair cut, so has every one.782 At the court of Boni in Celebes it is a rule that whatever the king does all the courtiers must do. If he stands, they stand; if he sits, they sit; [pg 223] if he falls off his horse, they fall off their horses; if he bathes, they bathe, and passers-by must go into the water in the dress, good or bad, which they happen to have on.783 But to return to the death of the divine man. The old Prussians acknowledged as their supreme lord a ruler who governed them in the name of the gods, and was known as God's Mouth (Kirwaido). When he felt himself weak and ill, if he wished to leave a good name behind him, he had a great heap made of thorn-bushes and straw, on which he mounted and delivered a long sermon to the people, exhorting them to serve the gods and promising to go to the gods and speak for the people. Then he took some of the perpetual fire which burned in front of the holy oak-tree, and lighting the pile with it burned himself to death.784

This King of Sofala was a daring reformer, similar to Ergamenes, the King of Ethiopia. We can guess that the reason for executing Ethiopian kings was, just like with the Zulu and Sofala kings, any visible physical defect or sign of decline on their bodies. The oracle that the priests claimed justified these royal executions warned that great disasters would arise from a king who had any blemish. This is akin to an oracle that warned Sparta about a “lame rule,” meaning the reign of a lame king.777 This speculation is supported by the fact that Ethiopian kings were chosen for their size, strength, and beauty long before the practice of killing them was stopped.778 Even today, the Sultan of Wadâi cannot have any visible physical defect, and a king of Angoy cannot be crowned if he has even a single flaw, like a broken or filed tooth or the scar from an old wound.779 Therefore, it’s reasonable to assume, especially [pg 222] with other African examples in mind, that any physical defect or signs of aging on the Ethiopian king would signal his execution. Later accounts indicate that if the King of Ethiopia was injured in any part of his body, all his courtiers had to endure the same injury.780 However, this rule might have been established when the tradition of killing the king for personal defects was abolished; instead of forcing the king to die just because, e.g., he lost a tooth, every subject would be required to lose a tooth, thereby eliminating the unequal status between the king and his subjects. A similar rule is still practiced in the region at the court of the Sultans of Darfur. When the Sultan coughs, everyone mimics the sound ts ts by striking their tongue against the roof of their mouth; when he sneezes, the entire assembly makes a sound like the cry of the jeko; when he falls off his horse, all his followers must fall off too; if any of them stays in the saddle, regardless of their rank, they are thrown to the ground and beaten.781 At the court of the King of Uganda in Central Africa, when the king laughs, everyone laughs; when he sneezes, everyone sneezes; when he has a cold, everyone pretends to have a cold; when he gets his hair cut, everyone gets theirs cut too.782 At the court of Boni in Celebes, there’s a rule that whatever the king does, all the courtiers must do. If he stands, they stand; if he sits, they sit; [pg 223] if he falls off his horse, they all fall off their horses; if he bathes, they bathe, and passers-by must enter the water in whatever clothing they’re wearing, good or bad.783 Now, to return to the death of the divine man. The old Prussians recognized a ruler as their supreme lord who governed in the name of the gods and was known as God's Mouth (Kirwaido). When he felt weak and ill and wanted to leave a good legacy, he would create a large pile of thorn bushes and straw, climb onto it, and give a lengthy sermon to the people, urging them to serve the gods and promising to go to the gods and speak on their behalf. Then he would take some of the perpetual fire that burned in front of the sacred oak tree, light the pile with it, and burn himself to death.784

In the cases hitherto described, the divine king or priest is suffered by his people to retain office until some outward defect, some visible symptom of failing health or advancing age warns them that he is no longer equal to the discharge of his divine duties; but not until such symptoms have made their appearance is he put to death. Some peoples, however, appear to have thought it unsafe to wait for even the slightest symptom of decay and have preferred to kill the king while he was still in the full vigour of life. Accordingly, they have fixed a term beyond which he might not reign, and at the close of which he must die, the term fixed upon being short enough to exclude the probability of his degenerating physically in the interval. In some parts of Southern India the period fixed was twelve years. [pg 224] Thus, according to an old traveller, in the province of Quilacare “There is a Gentile house of prayer, in which there is an idol which they hold in great account, and every twelve years they celebrate a great feast to it, whither all the Gentiles go as to a jubilee. This temple possesses many lands and much revenue; it is a very great affair. This province has a king over it; who has not more than twelve years to reign from jubilee to jubilee. His manner of living is in this wise, that is to say, when the twelve years are completed, on the day of this feast there assemble together innumerable people, and much money is spent in giving food to Bramans. The king has a wooden scaffolding made, spread over with silken hangings; and on that day he goes to bathe at a tank with great ceremonies and sound of music, after that he comes to the idol and prays to it, and mounts on to the scaffolding, and there before all the people he takes some very sharp knives and begins to cut off his nose, and then his ears and his lips and all his members and as much flesh of himself as he can; and he throws it away very hurriedly until so much of his blood is spilled that he begins to faint, and then he cuts his throat himself. And he performs this sacrifice to the idol; and whoever desires to reign other twelve years, and undertake this martyrdom for love of the idol, has to be present looking on at this; and from that place they raise him up as king.”785

In the situations mentioned so far, the divine king or priest is allowed by his people to hold his position until some noticeable flaw, like a clear sign of poor health or the effects of aging, indicates that he is no longer fit to carry out his divine responsibilities; however, he is not executed until such signs appear. Some cultures, though, seem to have considered it risky to waiting for even the slightest sign of decline and preferred to eliminate the king while he was still at the peak of life. Therefore, they established a time limit beyond which he could not rule, and at the end of which he had to die, with the duration being short enough to avoid the chance of him physically deteriorating in between. In certain regions of Southern India, the set period was twelve years. [pg 224] An old traveler noted that in the province of Quilacare "There is a Gentile house of prayer that has an idol they hold in high esteem, and every twelve years, they hold a grand feast for it, where all the Gentiles gather as if it were a jubilee. This temple owns a lot of land and brings in considerable revenue; it’s a big deal. This province has a king who can only reign for a maximum of twelve years, from one jubilee to the next. His lifestyle is like this: when the twelve years are over, on the day of this feast, countless people come together, and a lot of money is spent to provide food for the Brahmans. The king has a wooden platform built, decorated with silk hangings; and on that day, he goes to bathe in a tank with much ceremony and music. After that, he approaches the idol, prays to it, climbs onto the platform, and in front of everyone, he takes very sharp knives and starts cutting off his nose, then his ears and lips, and as much flesh as he can; he quickly throws away the pieces until he bleeds so much that he starts to faint, and then he cuts his own throat. He performs this sacrifice to the idol; and anyone who wants to rule for another twelve years and go through this martyrdom out of love for the idol must be there to witness it; and from that moment, they elevate him as king."785

Formerly the Samorin or King of Calicut, on the Malabar coast, had also to cut his throat in public at the end of a twelve years' reign. But towards the end of the seventeenth century the rule had been [pg 225] modified as follows: “A new custom is followed by the modern Samorins, that jubilee is proclaimed throughout his dominions, at the end of twelve years, and a tent is pitched for him in a spacious plain, and a great feast is celebrated for ten or twelve days, with mirth and jollity, guns firing night and day, so at the end of the feast any four of the guests that have a mind to gain a crown by a desperate action, in fighting their way through 30 or 40,000 of his guards, and kill the Samorin in his tent, he that kills him succeeds him in his empire. In anno 1695, one those jubilees happened, and the tent pitched near Pennany, a sea-port of his, about fifteen leagues to the southward of Calicut. There were but three men that would venture on that desperate action, who fell in, with sword and target among the guard, and, after they had killed and wounded many were themselves killed. One of the desperados had a nephew of fifteen or sixteen years of age, that kept close by his uncle in the attack on the guards, and, when he saw him fall, the youth got through the guards into the tent, and made a stroke at his Majesty's head, and had certainly despatched him, if a large brass lamp which was burning over his head, had not marred the blow; but, before he could make another he was killed by the guards; and, I believe, the same Samorin reigns yet. I chanced to come that time along the coast and heard the guns for two or three days and nights successively.”786

Previously, the Samorin or King of Calicut, located on the Malabar coast, had to take his own life publicly after a twelve-year reign. However, by the late seventeenth century, this practice changed as follows: [pg 225] A new tradition began with the modern Samorins, where a jubilee is announced across his lands every twelve years. A tent is set up for him in a large open area, and a grand feast lasts for ten to twelve days, filled with joy and celebration, accompanied by cannon fire day and night. At the end of the festivities, any four guests who want to claim the crown can try to fight through 30 to 40,000 of his guards and kill the Samorin in his tent. The person who succeeds inherits the throne. In 1695, one of these jubilees took place, and the tent was set up near Pennany, a port town about fifteen leagues south of Calicut. Only three men dared to attempt this bold act. They fought with sword and shield against the guards and, after injuring and killing many, were themselves slain. One of the attackers had a nephew who was about fifteen or sixteen years old and stayed close to his uncle during the assault. When he saw his uncle fall, the boy managed to get past the guards into the tent and aimed a blow at the king's head. He would have undoubtedly succeeded if a large brass lamp overhead hadn’t interfered with his strike; however, before he could try again, he was killed by the guards. I believe the same Samorin is still in power. I happened to be traveling along the coast at that time and heard the cannon fire for two or three days and nights in a row.786

In some places it appears that the people could not trust the king to remain in full bodily and mental vigour for more than a year; hence at the end of a year's reign he was put to death, and a new king [pg 226] appointed to reign in his turn a year, and suffer death at the end of it. At least this is the conclusion to which the following evidence points. According to the historian Berosus, who as a Babylonian priest spoke with ample knowledge, there was annually celebrated in Babylon a festival called the Sacaea. It began on the 16th day of the month Lous, and lasted for five days. During these five days masters and servants changed places, the servants giving orders and the masters obeying them. A prisoner condemned to death was dressed in the king's robes, seated on the king's throne, allowed to issue whatever commands he pleased, to eat, drink, and enjoy himself, and to lie with the king's concubines. But at the end of the five days he was stripped of his royal robes, scourged, and crucified.787 This custom might perhaps have been explained as merely a grim jest perpetrated in a season of jollity at the expense of an unhappy criminal. But one circumstance—the leave given to the mock king to enjoy the king's concubines—is decisive against this interpretation. Considering the jealous seclusion of [pg 227] an oriental despot's harem we may be quite certain that permission to invade it would never have been granted by the despot, least of all to a condemned criminal, except for the very gravest cause. This cause could hardly be other than that the condemned man was about to die in the king's stead, and that to make the substitution perfect it was necessary he should enjoy the full rights of royalty during his brief reign. There is nothing surprising in this substitution. The rule that the king must be put to death either on the appearance of any symptom of bodily decay or at the end of a fixed period is certainly one which, sooner or later, the kings would seek to abolish or modify. We have seen that in Ethiopia and Sofala the rule was boldly set aside by enlightened monarchs; and that in Calicut the old custom of killing the king at the end of twelve years was changed into a permission granted to any one at the end of the twelve years' period to attack the king, and, in the event of killing him, to reign in his stead; though, as the king took care at these times to be surrounded by his guards, the permission was little more than a form. Another way of modifying the stern old rule is seen in the Babylonian custom just described. When the time drew near for the king to be put to death (in Babylon this appears to have been at the end of a single year's reign) he abdicated for a few days, during which a temporary king reigned and suffered in his stead. At first the temporary king may have been an innocent person, possibly a member of the king's own family; but with the growth of civilisation the sacrifice of an innocent person would be revolting to the public sentiment, and accordingly a condemned criminal would be invested with the brief and fatal sovereignty. In [pg 228] the sequel we shall find other examples of a dying criminal representing a dying god. For we must not forget that the king is slain in his character of a god, his death and resurrection, as the only means of perpetuating the divine life unimpaired, being deemed necessary for the salvation of his people and the world.

In some places, people seemed unable to trust the king to stay in good health, both physically and mentally, for more than a year. As a result, at the end of a year's reign, he was executed, and a new king was appointed to rule for a year before meeting the same fate. This conclusion is supported by the evidence below. According to the historian Berosus, who was a Babylonian priest well-versed in these matters, there was an annual festival in Babylon called the Sacaea. It began on the 16th day of the month Lous and lasted five days. During these five days, masters and servants switched roles, with the servants giving orders and the masters obeying them. A prisoner sentenced to death was dressed in the king's robes, seated on the king's throne, allowed to issue commands, eat, drink, and enjoy himself, and even lie with the king's concubines. However, at the end of the five days, he was stripped of his royal robes, whipped, and crucified. This custom might have been seen as a morbid joke during a festive period at the expense of an unfortunate criminal. Yet, one detail—the permission for the mock king to enjoy the king's concubines—strongly argues against this interpretation. Considering the jealous isolation of an oriental despot's harem, it's clear that permission to enter would never have been granted by the despot, especially not to a condemned criminal, unless it was for a very serious reason. That reason could only be that the condemned man was about to die in the king's place, and that to make the substitution complete, he must experience the full privileges of royalty during his short reign. This substitution is not surprising. The rule that the king had to be killed either upon showing any signs of physical decline or at the end of a set period is one that kings would eventually try to abolish or change. We have seen that in Ethiopia and Sofala, progressive monarchs boldly ignored this rule, and in Calicut, the old custom of executing the king after twelve years was altered to allow anyone the chance to attack the king after twelve years, and if they succeeded in killing him, to take his place; although this was usually just a formality, as the king always surrounded himself with guards. Another way of changing this harsh old rule is reflected in the Babylonian custom just described. When it was time for the king to be executed (in Babylon, this seemed to happen at the end of a single year's reign), he would abdicate for a few days, during which a temporary king would rule and suffer in his place. Initially, the temporary king may have been an innocent person, perhaps a member of the royal family; but as civilization advanced, sacrificing an innocent person would have been unacceptable to public sentiment, so a condemned criminal was chosen to wear the brief and deadly crown. In the following sections, we will uncover more examples of a dying criminal embodying a dying god. It's important to remember that the king is killed in his role as a god; his death and resurrection are considered necessary for preserving the divine life unblemished and are essential for the salvation of his people and the world.

In some places this modified form of the old custom has been further softened down. The king still abdicates annually for a short time and his place is filled by a more or less nominal sovereign; but at the close of his short reign the latter is no longer killed, though sometimes a mock execution still survives as a memorial of the time when he was actually put to death. To take examples. In the month of Méac (February) the King of Cambodia annually abdicated for three days. During this time he performed no act of authority, he did not touch the seals, he did not even receive the revenues which fell due. In his stead there reigned a temporary king called Sdach Méac, that is, King February. The office of temporary king was hereditary in a family distantly connected with the royal house, the sons succeeding the fathers and the younger brothers the elder brothers, just as in the succession to the real sovereignty. On a favourable day fixed by the astrologers the temporary king was conducted by the mandarins in triumphal procession. He rode one of the royal elephants, seated in the royal palanquin, and escorted by soldiers who, dressed in appropriate costumes, represented the neighbouring peoples of Siam, Annam, Laos, and so on. Instead of the golden crown he wore a peaked white cap, and his regalia, instead of being of gold encrusted with diamonds, were of rough wood. After paying homage to the real king, from whom he received the sovereignty for three days, [pg 229] together with all the revenues accruing during that time (though this last custom has been omitted for some time), he moved in procession round the palace and through the streets of the capital. On the third day, after the usual procession, the temporary king gave orders that the elephants should trample under foot the “mountain of rice,” which was a scaffold of bamboo surrounded by sheaves of rice. The people gathered up the rice, each man taking home a little with him to secure a good harvest. Some of it was also taken to the king, who had it cooked and presented to the monks.788

In some places, this modified version of the old custom has been softened even further. The king still abdicates for a short time each year, and his role is taken on by a largely ceremonial ruler; however, at the end of his brief reign, the latter is no longer executed, though sometimes a mock execution still takes place as a reminder of when he was actually killed. For example, in the month of Méac (February), the King of Cambodia annually abdicates for three days. During this period, he does not exercise any authority, does not touch the royal seals, and does not even collect the taxes that are due. In his place, a temporary king known as Sdach Méac, or King February, reigns. The role of temporary king is passed down through a family that is distantly related to the royal lineage, with sons succeeding their fathers and younger brothers taking the place of older brothers, similar to the actual line of succession. On a favorable day chosen by astrologers, the temporary king is paraded through the streets in a grand procession. He rides on one of the royal elephants, seated in a royal palanquin, and is accompanied by soldiers dressed in traditional outfits representing neighboring peoples like Siam, Annam, Laos, and others. Instead of a golden crown, he wears a pointed white cap, and his royal insignia, rather than being made of gold and adorned with diamonds, consists of rough wood. After paying homage to the real king, from whom he receives authority for three days—though this last tradition has been passed over for some time—he parades around the palace and through the capital. On the third day, following the usual procession, the temporary king orders the elephants to trample the “mountain of rice,” a bamboo structure surrounded by bundles of rice. The people collect the rice, each taking a little home to ensure a good harvest. Some of it is also brought to the king, who has it cooked and serves it to the monks.

In Siam on the sixth day of the moon in the sixth month (the end of April) a temporary king is appointed, who for three days enjoys the royal prerogatives, the real king remaining shut up in his palace. This temporary king sends his numerous satellites in all directions to seize and confiscate whatever they can find in the bazaar and open shops; even the ships and junks which arrive in harbour during the three days are confiscated to him and must be redeemed. He goes to a field in the middle of the city, whither is brought a gilded plough drawn by gaily-decked oxen. After the plough has been anointed and the oxen rubbed with incense, the mock king traces nine furrows with the plough, followed by aged dames of the palace scattering the first seed of the season. As soon as the nine furrows are drawn, the crowd of spectators rushes in and scrambles for the seed which has just been sown, believing that, mixed with the seed-rice, it will ensure a plentiful crop. Then the oxen are unyoked, and [pg 230] rice, maize, sesame, sago, bananas, sugar-cane, melons, etc. are set before them; whatever they eat first will, it is thought, be dear in the year following, though some people interpret the omen in the opposite sense. During this time the temporary king stands leaning against a tree with his right foot resting on his left knee. From standing thus on one foot he is popularly known as King Hop; but his official title is Phaya Phollathep, “Lord of the Heavenly Hosts.”789 He is a sort of Minister of Agriculture; all disputes about fields, rice, and so on, are referred to him. There is moreover another ceremony in which he personates the king. It takes place in the second month (which falls in the cold season) and lasts three days. He is conducted in procession to an open place opposite the Temple of the Brahmans, where there are a number of poles dressed like May-poles, upon which the Brahmans swing. All the while that they swing and dance, the Lord of the Heavenly Hosts has to stand on one foot upon a seat which is made of bricks plastered over, covered with a white cloth, and hung with tapestry. He is supported by a wooden frame with a gilt canopy, and two Brahmans stand one on each side of him. The dancing Brahmans carry buffalo horns with which they draw water from a large copper caldron and sprinkle it on the people; this is supposed to bring good luck, causing the people to dwell in peace and quiet, health and prosperity. The time during which the Lord of the Heavenly Hosts has to stand on one foot is about three hours. This is thought “to prove the dispositions of the Devattas and spirits.” If he lets his foot down [pg 231] “he is liable to forfeit his property and have his family enslaved by the king; as it is believed to be a bad omen, portending destruction to the state, and instability to the throne. But if he stand firm he is believed to have gained a victory over evil spirits, and he has moreover the privilege, ostensibly at least, of seizing any ship which may enter the harbour during these three days, and taking its contents, and also of entering any open shop in the town and carrying away what he chooses.”790

In Siam, on the sixth day of the moon in the sixth month (the end of April), a temporary king is appointed, who enjoys royal privileges for three days while the real king stays shut up in his palace. This temporary king sends his many followers in all directions to seize and confiscate whatever they can find in the marketplace and shops. Even the ships and junks that arrive in the harbor during these three days are taken by him and must be redeemed. He goes to a field in the middle of the city, where a gilded plow is brought in, drawn by decorated oxen. After the plow is anointed and the oxen are rubbed with incense, the mock king traces nine furrows with the plow, followed by elderly ladies from the palace who sprinkle the first seeds of the season. Once the nine furrows are drawn, the crowd rushes in and scrambles for the seeds that have just been sown, believing that mixed with the seed-rice, it will guarantee a plentiful crop. The oxen are then unyoked, and rice, maize, sesame, sago, bananas, sugarcane, melons, etc. are laid before them; whatever they eat first is thought to be expensive in the following year, although some interpret the omen differently. During this time, the temporary king leans against a tree with his right foot resting on his left knee. Because he stands on one foot, he is popularly known as King Hop, but his official title is Phaya Phollathep, “Lord of the Heavenly Hosts.” He acts as a sort of Minister of Agriculture; all disputes about fields, rice, and so on are referred to him. There is also another ceremony in which he plays the role of the king. This occurs in the second month (during the cold season) and lasts three days. He is led in a procession to an open area opposite the Temple of the Brahmans, where there are several poles dressed like May-poles, which the Brahmans swing from. While they swing and dance, the Lord of the Heavenly Hosts must stand on one foot on a seat made of plastered bricks, covered with a white cloth and hung with tapestry. He is supported by a wooden frame with a gilt canopy, and two Brahmans stand beside him. The dancing Brahmans carry buffalo horns, with which they draw water from a large copper cauldron and sprinkle it on the people; this is supposed to bring good luck, leading to peace, quiet, health, and prosperity for them. The time the Lord of the Heavenly Hosts must stand on one foot is about three hours. It is believed “to prove the dispositions of the Devattas and spirits.” If he puts his foot down, “he risks losing his property and having his family enslaved by the king, as it’s seen as a bad omen portending destruction to the state and instability to the throne. But if he stands firm, he is believed to have triumphed over evil spirits, and he also has the supposed privilege to seize any ship entering the harbor during these three days and take its contents, as well as to enter any open shop in town and carry away what he wishes.”

In Upper Egypt on the first day of the solar year by Coptic reckoning, that is on 10th September, when the Nile has generally reached its highest point, the regular government is suspended for three days and every town chooses its own ruler. This temporary lord wears a sort of tall fool's cap and a long flaxen beard, and is enveloped in a strange mantle. With a wand of office in his hand and attended by men disguised as scribes, executioners, etc., he proceeds to the Governor's house. The latter allows himself to be deposed; and the mock king, mounting the throne, holds a tribunal, to the decisions of which even the governor and his officials must bow. After three days the mock king is condemned to death; the envelope or shell in which he was encased is committed to the flames, and from its ashes the Fellah creeps forth.791

In Upper Egypt, on the first day of the solar year according to the Coptic calendar, which is September 10th, when the Nile is usually at its highest level, the regular government is put on hold for three days, and each town selects its own leader. This temporary ruler wears a tall fool's cap, a long flaxen beard, and a peculiar robe. Holding a staff of authority and accompanied by men dressed as scribes, executioners, and others, he goes to the Governor's residence. The Governor allows himself to be overthrown, and the mock king takes the throne, holding court even the governor and his officials must respect. After three days, the mock king is sentenced to death; the container or shell that enveloped him is burned, and from its ashes, the Fellah emerges. 791

Sometimes the temporary king occupies the throne, not annually, but once for all at the beginning of each reign. Thus in the kingdom of Jambi (in Sumatra) it is the custom that at the beginning of a new reign a man of the people should occupy the throne and [pg 232] exercise the royal prerogatives for a single day. The origin of the custom is explained by a tradition that there were once five royal brothers, the four elder of whom all declined the crown on the ground of various bodily defects, leaving it to their youngest brother. But the eldest occupied the throne for one day, and reserved for his descendants a similar privilege at the beginning of every reign. Thus the office of temporary king is hereditary in a family akin to the royal house.792 In Bilaspur it seems to be the custom, after the death of a Rajah, for a Brahman to eat rice out of the dead Rajah's hand, and then to occupy the throne for a year. At the end of the year the Brahman receives presents and is dismissed from the territory, being forbidden apparently to return. “The idea seems to be that the spirit of the Rájá enters into the Bráhman who eats the khír (rice and milk) out of his hand when he is dead, as the Brahman is apparently carefully watched during the whole year, and not allowed to go away.” The same or a similar custom is believed to obtain among the hill states about Kángrá.793 At the installation of a prince of Carinthia a peasant, in whose family the office was hereditary, ascended a marble stone which stood surrounded by meadows in a spacious valley; on his right stood a black mother-cow, on his left an ugly mare. A rustic crowd gathered about him. Then the future prince, dressed as a peasant and carrying a shepherd's staff, drew near, attended by courtiers and magistrates. On perceiving him the peasant called out, “Who is this whom I see coming so proudly along?” The people answered, “The [pg 233] prince of the land.” The peasant was then prevailed on to surrender the marble seat to the prince on condition of receiving sixty pence, the cow and mare, and exemption from taxes. But before yielding his place he gave the prince a light blow on the cheek.794

Sometimes the temporary king takes the throne, not every year, but just once at the start of each reign. In the kingdom of Jambi (in Sumatra), it's customary that at the beginning of a new reign, a common man sits on the throne and [pg 232] exercises royal privileges for a single day. This tradition stems from a story about five royal brothers, where the four older brothers rejected the crown due to various physical imperfections, leaving it for their youngest brother. However, the eldest brother took the throne for one day, granting his descendants the same privilege at the start of every reign. Therefore, the role of the temporary king is hereditary in a family connected to the royal lineage.792 In Bilaspur, it seems to be the custom that after a Rajah dies, a Brahman eats rice from the deceased Rajah's hand and then occupies the throne for a year. At the end of the year, the Brahman is given gifts and is sent away from the territory, apparently banned from returning. The idea is that the spirit of the Rájá enters the Bráhman who eats the khír (rice and milk) from his hand after he dies, since the Bráhman is closely watched all year and not permitted to leave. A similar custom is believed to exist among the hill states near Kángrá.793 During the installation of a prince of Carinthia, a peasant, whose family had held the position for generations, stepped up onto a marble stone surrounded by meadows in a broad valley; a black mother cow stood on his right, and an unattractive mare stood on his left. A crowd of farmers gathered around him. Then the future prince, dressed as a peasant and holding a shepherd's staff, approached, accompanied by courtiers and officials. Upon seeing him, the peasant called out, “Who is this person approaching with such confidence?” The crowd replied, “The prince of the land.” The peasant was eventually persuaded to give up the marble seat to the prince in exchange for sixty pence, the cow and mare, and exemption from taxes. But before giving up his position, he lightly smacked the prince on the cheek.794

Some points about these temporary kings deserve to be specially noticed before we pass to the next branch of the evidence. In the first place, the Cambodian and Siamese examples bring clearly out the fact that it is especially the divine or supernatural functions of the king which are transferred to his temporary substitute. This appears from the belief that by keeping up his foot the temporary king of Siam gained a victory over the evil spirits; whereas by letting it down he imperilled the existence of the state. Again, the Cambodian ceremony of trampling down the “mountain of rice,” and the Siamese ceremony of opening the ploughing and sowing, are charms to produce a plentiful harvest, as appears from the belief that those who carry home some of the trampled rice or of the seed sown will thereby secure a good crop. But the task of making the crops grow, thus deputed to the temporary kings, is one of the supernatural functions regularly supposed to be discharged by kings in primitive society. The rule that the mock king must stand on one foot upon a raised seat in the rice-field was perhaps originally meant as a charm to make the crop grow high; at least this was the object of a similar ceremony observed by the old Prussians. The tallest girl, standing on one foot upon a seat, with her lap full of cakes, a cup of brandy in her right hand and a piece of elm-bark [pg 234] or linden-bark in her left, prayed to the god Waizganthos that the flax might grow as high as she was standing. Then, after draining the cup, she had it refilled, and poured the brandy on the ground as an offering to Waizganthos, and threw down the cakes for his attendant sprites. If she remained steady on one foot throughout the ceremony, it was an omen that the flax crop would be good; but if she let her foot down, it was feared that the crop might fail.795 The gilded plough with which the Siamese mock king opens the ploughing may be compared with the bronze ploughs which the Etruscans employed at the ceremony of founding cities;796 in both cases the use of iron was probably forbidden on superstitious grounds.797

Some points about these temporary kings deserve special attention before we move on to the next branch of the evidence. First, the examples from Cambodia and Siam clearly show that it’s mainly the divine or supernatural functions of the king that are passed on to his temporary substitute. This is evident from the belief that when the temporary king of Siam keeps his foot up, he achieves victory over evil spirits; while letting it down puts the existence of the state at risk. Additionally, the Cambodian ceremony of trampling the "mountain of rice," and the Siamese ceremony of starting the ploughing and sowing, are rituals intended to ensure a bountiful harvest, as seen in the belief that those who take home some of the trampled rice or sown seeds will thus secure a good crop. However, the responsibility of making the crops grow, assigned to the temporary kings, is one of the supernatural roles that are traditionally believed to be performed by kings in primitive societies. The rule that the mock king must stand on one foot on a raised seat in the rice-field was likely originally intended as a charm to encourage the crop to grow tall; at least that was the purpose of a similar ceremony practiced by the old Prussians. The tallest girl, standing on one foot on a seat, with her lap full of cakes, a cup of brandy in her right hand, and a piece of elm-bark [pg 234] or linden-bark in her left, prayed to the god Waizganthos for the flax to grow as high as she was standing. After sipping from the cup, she had it refilled, poured the brandy on the ground as an offering to Waizganthos, and threw down the cakes for his attendant spirits. If she could remain steady on one foot during the ceremony, it was a sign that the flax crop would be good; but if she let her foot down, it was feared that the crop might fail.795 The gilded plough that the Siamese mock king uses to initiate the ploughing can be compared to the bronze ploughs used by the Etruscans in their city founding ceremonies;796 in both cases, iron was likely avoided for superstitious reasons.797

Another point to notice about these temporary kings is that in two places (Cambodia and Jambi) they come of a stock which is believed to be akin to the royal family. If the view here taken of the origin of these temporary kingships is correct, the fact that the temporary king is sometimes of the same race as the real king admits of a ready explanation. When the king first succeeded in getting the life of another accepted as a sacrifice in lieu of his own, he would have to show that the death of that other would serve the purpose quite as well as his own would have done. Now it was as a god that the king had to die; therefore the substitute who died for him had to be invested, at least for the occasion, with the divine attributes of the king. This, as we have just seen, was certainly the case with the temporary kings of Siam and Cambodia; [pg 235] they were invested with the supernatural functions, which in an earlier stage of society were the special attributes of the king. But no one could so well represent the king in his divine character as his son, who might be supposed to share the divine afflatus of his father. No one, therefore, could so appropriately die for the king and, through him, for the whole people, as the king's son. There is evidence that amongst the Semites of Western Asia (the very region where the redemption of the king's life by the sacrifice of another comes out so unmistakably in the Sacaean festival) the king, in a time of national danger, sometimes gave his own son to die as a sacrifice for the people. Thus Philo of Byblus, in his work on the Jews, says: “It was an ancient custom in a crisis of great danger that the ruler of a city or nation should give his beloved son to die for the whole people, as a ransom offered to the avenging demons; and the children thus offered were slain with mystic rites. So Cronus, whom the Phoenicians call Israel, being king of the land and having an only-begotten son called Jeoud (for in the Phoenician tongue Jeoud signifies ‘only-begotten’), dressed him in royal robes and sacrificed him upon an altar in a time of war, when the country was in great danger from the enemy.”798 When the King of Moab was besieged by the Israelites and hard beset, he took his eldest son, who should have reigned in his stead, and offered him for a burnt offering on the wall.799 But amongst the Semites the practice of sacrificing their children was not confined to kings. In times of great calamity, such as pestilence, drought, or defeat in war, the Phoenicians [pg 236] used to sacrifice one of their dearest to Baal. “Phoenician history,” says an ancient writer, “is full of such sacrifices.”800 When the Carthaginians were defeated and besieged by Agathocles, they ascribed their disasters to the wrath of Baal; for whereas in former times they had been wont to sacrifice to him their own children, they had latterly fallen into the habit of buying children and rearing them to be victims. So, to appease the angry god, two hundred children of the noblest families were picked out for sacrifice, and the tale of victims was swelled by not less than three hundred more who volunteered to die for the fatherland. They were sacrificed by being placed, one by one, on the sloping hands of the brazen image, from which they rolled into a pit of fire.801 If an aristocracy thus adopted the practice of sacrificing other people's children instead of their own, kings may very well have followed or set the example. A final mitigation of the custom would be the substitution of condemned criminals for innocent victims. Such a substitution is known to have taken place in the human sacrifices annually offered in Rhodes to Baal.802

Another point to notice about these temporary kings is that in two places (Cambodia and Jambi) they come from a lineage believed to be related to the royal family. If we accept the view here regarding the origin of these temporary kingships, the fact that the temporary king is sometimes from the same ethnicity as the real king makes sense. When the king first managed to have someone else's life accepted as a sacrifice in place of his own, he needed to demonstrate that the death of that other person would fulfill the purpose just as well as his own would have. The king had to die as a god; therefore, the substitute who died for him had to be granted, at least for the occasion, the divine attributes of the king. This, as we have just seen, was certainly true for the temporary kings of Siam and Cambodia; they were given the supernatural functions that were, in earlier stages of society, the special qualities of the king. No one could better represent the king in his divine form than his son, who might be seen as sharing the divine essence of his father. Therefore, no one was more appropriate to die for the king and, through him, for the whole people, than the king's son. There is evidence that among the Semites of Western Asia (the very area where the redemption of the king's life through the sacrifice of another is clearly seen in the Sacaean festival), the king, in times of national danger, sometimes offered his own son to die as a sacrifice for the people. Thus Philo of Byblus, in his work on the Jews, says: “It was an ancient custom in a crisis of great danger that the ruler of a city or nation should give his beloved son to die for the whole people, as a ransom offered to the avenging demons; and the children thus offered were slain with mystic rites. So Cronus, whom the Phoenicians call Israel, being king of the land and having an only-begotten son called Jeoud (for in Phoenician, Jeoud means ‘only-begotten’), dressed him in royal robes and sacrificed him upon an altar in a time of war, when the country was in great danger from the enemy.” When the King of Moab was besieged by the Israelites and in dire straits, he took his eldest son, who should have succeeded him, and sacrificed him as a burnt offering on the city wall. But among the Semites, the practice of sacrificing their children was not limited to kings. During serious calamities, such as plagues, droughts, or military defeats, the Phoenicians used to sacrifice one of their loved ones to Baal. “Phoenician history,” says an ancient writer, “is full of such sacrifices.” When the Carthaginians were defeated and besieged by Agathocles, they attributed their misfortunes to Baal's anger; for while in earlier times they would sacrifice their own children to him, they had recently adopted the practice of buying children and raising them to be victims. So, to appease the angry god, they selected two hundred children from the noblest families for sacrifice, with at least three hundred more volunteering to die for their homeland. They were sacrificed by being placed one by one on the sloped hands of a bronze statue, from which they rolled into a pit of fire. If an aristocracy adopted the practice of sacrificing other people's children instead of their own, kings might very well have followed or set the example. A final alleviation of the custom would be replacing innocent victims with condemned criminals. Such substitutions are known to have occurred in the human sacrifices annually offered in Rhodes to Baal.

The custom of sacrificing children, especially the first born, is not peculiarly Semitic. In some tribes of New South Wales the first-born child of every woman was eaten by the tribe as part of a religious ceremony.803 The Indians of Florida sacrificed their first-born male children.804 Amongst the people of Senjero in Eastern Africa we are told that many families “must offer up their first-born sons as sacrifices, [pg 237] because once upon a time, when summer and winter were jumbled together in a bad season, and the fruits of the earth would not ripen, the soothsayers enjoined it. At that time a great pillar of iron is said to have stood at the entrance of the capital, which by the advice of the soothsayers was broken down by order of the king, upon which the seasons became regular again. To avert the recurrence of such a confusion of the seasons, the soothsayers are reported to have enjoined the king to pour human blood once a year on the base of the broken shaft of the pillar, and also upon the throne. Since then certain families are obliged to deliver up their first-born sons, who are sacrificed at an appointed time.”805 The heathen Russians often sacrificed their first-born to the god Perun.806

The practice of sacrificing children, especially the firstborn, is not uniquely Semitic. In some tribes of New South Wales, the first-born child of every woman was consumed by the tribe during a religious ceremony.803 The Indians of Florida sacrificed their first-born male children.804 Among the people of Senjero in Eastern Africa, it is said that many families "must sacrifice their first-born sons, [pg 237] because there was a time when summer and winter got mixed up during a bad season, causing the earth's fruits not to ripen. The soothsayers demanded this. At that time, it was said that a great iron pillar stood at the entrance of the capital, which the king ordered to be destroyed on the advice of the soothsayers, and after that, the seasons returned to normal. To prevent such a mix-up from happening again, the soothsayers supposedly instructed the king to pour human blood on the base of the broken pillar and on the throne once a year. Since then, certain families have been required to sacrifice their first-born sons at a set time."805 The pagan Russians often sacrificed their first-born to the god Perun.806

The condemnation and pretended death by fire of the mock king in Egypt is probably a reminiscence of a real custom of burning him. Evidence of a practice of burning divine personages will be forthcoming later on. In Bilaspur the expulsion of the Brahman who had occupied the king's throne for a year is perhaps a substitute for putting him to death.

The condemnation and fake death by fire of the mock king in Egypt likely recalls an actual custom of burning him. More evidence of the practice of burning divine figures will be presented later. In Bilaspur, the expulsion of the Brahman who held the king's throne for a year might be a replacement for executing him.

The explanation here given of the custom of killing divine persons assumes, or at least is readily combined with, the idea that the soul of the slain divinity is transmitted to his successor. Of this transmission I have no direct proof; and so far a link in [pg 238] the chain of evidence is wanting. But if I cannot prove by actual examples this succession to the soul of the slain god, it can at least be made probable that such a succession was supposed to take place. For it has been already shown that the soul of the incarnate deity is often supposed to transmigrate at death into another incarnation;807 and if this takes place when the death is a natural one, there seems no reason why it should not take place when the death is a violent one. Certainly the idea that the soul of a dying person may be transmitted to his successor is perfectly familiar to primitive peoples. In Nias the eldest son usually succeeds his father in the chieftainship. But if from any bodily or mental defect the eldest son is incapacitated from ruling, the father determines in his life-time which of his sons shall succeed him. In order, however, to establish his right of succession it is necessary that the son upon whom his father's choice falls shall catch in his mouth or in a bag the last breath, and with it the soul, of the dying chief. For whoever catches his last breath is chief equally with the appointed successor. Hence the other brothers, and sometimes also strangers, crowd round the dying man to catch his soul as it passes. The houses in Nias are raised above the ground on posts, and it has happened that when the dying man lay with his face on the floor, one of the candidates has bored a hole in the floor and sucked in the chief's last breath through a bamboo tube. When the chief has no son, his soul is caught in a bag, which is fastened to an image made to represent the deceased; the [pg 239] soul is then believed to pass into the image.808 Amongst the Takilis or Carrier Indians of North-West America, when a corpse is burned the priest pretends to catch the soul of the deceased in his hands, which he closes with many gesticulations. He then communicates the captured soul to the dead man's successor by throwing his hands towards and blowing upon him. The person to whom the soul is thus communicated takes the name and rank of the deceased. On the death of a chief the priest thus fills a responsible and influential position, for he may transmit the soul to whom he will, though, doubtless, he generally follows the regular line of succession.809 Algonkin women who wished to become mothers flocked to the side of a dying person in the hope of receiving and being impregnated by the passing soul. Amongst the Seminoles of Florida when a woman died in childbed the infant was held over her face to receive her parting spirit.810 The Romans caught the breath of dying friends in their mouths, and so received into themselves the soul of the departed.811 The same custom is said to be still practised in Lancashire.812 We may therefore fairly suppose that when the divine king or priest is put to death his spirit is believed to pass into his successor.

The explanation provided here about the practice of killing divine figures assumes—or can easily be connected to—the idea that the soul of the slain deity is passed on to his successor. I have no direct proof of this transmission; thus far, a link in [pg 238] the chain of evidence is missing. However, while I can’t provide actual examples of this succession of the soul of the killed god, it’s at least plausible that such a succession was believed to happen. It has already been shown that the soul of an incarnate deity is often thought to move into another incarnation at death;807 and if this can occur with natural deaths, there seems to be no reason it wouldn’t happen with violent ones. The notion that the soul of a dying person may transfer to a successor is well known among primitive societies. In Nias, the eldest son typically takes over his father's leadership. However, if the oldest son has any physical or mental issues that prevent him from leading, the father decides during his lifetime which of his sons will succeed him. To establish his right to the succession, the chosen son must catch the last breath—and the soul—of the dying chief in his mouth or a bag. Whoever catches the last breath is equally recognized as chief alongside the appointed successor. Therefore, other brothers and sometimes outsiders gather around the dying man to capture his soul as it departs. In Nias, houses are built on posts above the ground, and there have been instances where, with the dying man face down on the floor, one of the candidates bored a hole in the floor to suck in the chief's last breath with a bamboo tube. If the chief has no son, his soul is caught in a bag attached to an image made to represent him; the [pg 239] soul is then believed to enter the image.808 Among the Takilis or Carrier Indians of North-West America, when a body is cremated, the priest pretends to catch the deceased's soul in his hands, which he closes with elaborate gestures. He then passes the captured soul to the deceased's successor by throwing his hands toward him and blowing. The recipient of the soul takes on the name and status of the departed. When a chief dies, the priest holds a significant and influential role, as he can transfer the soul at his discretion, though he typically follows the standard line of succession.809 Algonquin women hoping to become mothers gather around a dying person in hopes of receiving and getting pregnant by the passing soul. Among the Seminoles of Florida, when a woman died in childbirth, the infant was held over her face to receive her departing spirit.810 The Romans used to catch the breath of dying friends in their mouths to take in the soul of the departed.811 This custom is said to still occur in Lancashire.812 Thus, we can reasonably assume that when the divine king or priest is killed, his spirit is thought to pass into his successor.

[pg 240]

Killing the tree spirit.

It remains to ask what light the custom of killing the divine king or priest sheds upon the subject of our inquiry. In the first chapter we saw reason to suppose that the King of the Wood was regarded as an incarnation of the tree-spirit or of the spirit of vegetation, and that as such he would be endowed, in the belief of his worshippers, with a supernatural power of making the trees to bear fruit, the crops to grow, and so on. His life must therefore have been held very precious by his worshippers, and was probably hedged in by a system of elaborate precautions or taboos like those by which, in so many places, the life of the god-man has been guarded against the malignant influence of demons and sorcerers. But we have seen that the very value attached to the life of the man-god necessitates his violent death as the only means of preserving it from the inevitable decay of age. The same reasoning would apply to the King of the Wood; he too had to be killed in order that the divine spirit, incarnate in him, might be transferred in unabated vigour to his successor. The rule that he held office till a stronger should slay him might be supposed to secure both the preservation of his divine life in full vigour and its transference to a suitable successor as soon as that vigour began to be impaired. For so long as he could maintain his position by the strong hand, it might be inferred that his natural force was not abated; whereas his defeat and death at the hands of another proved that his strength was beginning to fail and that it was time his divine life should be lodged in a less [pg 241] dilapidated tabernacle. This explanation of the rule that the King of the Wood had to be slain by his successor at least renders that rule perfectly intelligible. Moreover it is countenanced by the analogy of the Chitombé, upon whose life the existence of the world was supposed to hang, and who was therefore slain by his successor as soon as he showed signs of breaking up. Again, the terms on which in later times the King of Calicut held office are identical with those attached to the office of King of the Wood, except that whereas the former might be assailed by a candidate at any time, the King of Calicut might only be attacked once every twelve years. But as the leave granted to the King of Calicut to reign so long as he could defend himself against all comers was a mitigation of the old rule which set a fixed term to his life, so we may conjecture that the similar permission granted to the King of the Wood was a mitigation of an older custom of putting him to death at the end of a set period. In both cases the new rule gave to the god-man at least a chance for his life, which under the old rule was denied him; and people probably reconciled themselves to the change by reflecting that so long as the god-man could maintain himself by the sword against all assaults, there was no reason to apprehend that the fatal decay had set in.

It’s worth asking what the practice of killing the divine king or priest reveals about our topic. In the first chapter, we suggested that the King of the Wood was seen as an embodiment of the tree spirit or the spirit of vegetation. Because of this, his worshippers likely believed he had supernatural powers to make trees bear fruit and crops grow. Therefore, his life was probably very valuable to his worshippers and was likely protected by a complex system of precautions or taboos, similar to those that protect the life of the god-man from negative influences like demons and sorcerers. However, we noted that the very value placed on the life of the man-god makes his violent death necessary to preserve it from the inevitable decline that comes with age. The same reasoning would apply to the King of the Wood; he too had to be killed so that the divine spirit within him could be passed on to his successor in full strength. The rule that he would hold his position until someone stronger killed him could be seen as ensuring both the preservation of his divine life and its transfer to a suitable successor as soon as his strength began to wane. As long as he could defend his position, it could be inferred that he was still strong; conversely, his defeat and death at the hands of another proved that his strength was fading and it was time for his divine life to be housed in a less worn vessel. This explanation of the rule that the King of the Wood must be slain by his successor makes that rule quite clear. Moreover, it is supported by the example of the Chitombé, whose life was believed to hold the world together and who was therefore killed by his successor as soon as he showed signs of decline. Additionally, the terms on which the King of Calicut held office are similar to those of the King of the Wood, with the distinction that while the former could be challenged at any time, the King of Calicut could only be attacked every twelve years. However, the king's ability to reign as long as he could defend himself represented a relaxation of the older rule that established a set tenure for his life. We might speculate that the similar permission given to the King of the Wood was also a softening of an older tradition of killing him after a set time. In both cases, the new rule allowed the god-man at least a chance to survive, which was denied under the old rule, and people likely came to accept this change by reasoning that as long as the god-man could fight off all challenges, there was no indicator that decline had begun.

The conjecture that the King of the Wood was formerly put to death at the expiry of a set term, without being allowed a chance for his life, will be confirmed if evidence can be adduced of a custom of periodically killing his counterparts, the human representatives of the tree-spirit, in Northern Europe. Now in point of fact such a custom has left unmistakable [pg 242] traces of itself in the rural festivals of the peasantry. To take examples.

The theory that the King of the Wood was once killed after a certain period, without being given a chance to survive, will be supported if there's proof of a tradition of periodically sacrificing his human counterparts, who represent the tree spirit, in Northern Europe. In reality, this tradition has left clear [pg 242] traces in the rural festivals of the peasantry. To provide some examples.

In Lower Bavaria the Whitsuntide representative of the tree-spirit—the Pfingstl as he was called—was clad from top to toe in leaves and flowers. On his head he wore a high pointed cap, the ends of which rested on his shoulders, only two holes being left in it for his eyes. The cap was covered with water flowers and surmounted with a nosegay of peonies. The sleeves of his coat were also made of water-plants, and the rest of his body was enveloped in alder and hazel leaves. On each side of him marched a boy holding up one of the Pfingstl's arms. These two boys carried drawn swords, and so did most of the others who formed the procession. They stopped at every house where they hoped to receive a present; and the people, in hiding, soused the leaf-clad boy with water. All rejoiced when he was well drenched. Finally he waded into the brook up to his middle; whereupon one of the boys, standing on the bridge, pretended to cut off his head.813 At Wurmlingen in Swabia a score of young fellows dress themselves on Whit-Monday in white shirts and white trousers, with red scarves round their waists and swords hanging from the scarves. They ride on horse-back into the wood, led by two trumpeters blowing their trumpets. In the wood they cut down leafy oak branches, in which they envelop from head to foot him who was the last of their number to ride out of the village. His legs, however, are encased separately, so that he may be able to mount his horse again. Further, they give him a long artificial neck, with an [pg 243] artificial head and a false face on the top of it. Then a May-tree is cut, generally an aspen or beech about ten feet high; and being decked with coloured handkerchiefs and ribbons it is entrusted to a special “May-bearer.” The cavalcade then returns with music and song to the village. Amongst the personages who figure in the procession are a Moorish king with a sooty face and a crown on his head, a Dr. Iron-Beard, a corporal, and an executioner. They halt on the village green, and each of the characters makes a speech in rhyme. The executioner announces that the leaf-clad man has been condemned to death and cuts off his false head. Then the riders race to the May-tree, which has been set up a little way off. The first man who succeeds in wrenching it from the ground as he gallops past keeps it with all its decorations. The ceremony is observed every second or third year.814

In Lower Bavaria, the Whitsun representative of the tree spirit—the Pfingstl—was dressed head to toe in leaves and flowers. He wore a tall, pointed cap that rested on his shoulders, with only two eye holes cut out. The cap was adorned with water flowers and topped with a bouquet of peonies. His sleeves were also made of water plants, and the rest of his body was wrapped in alder and hazel leaves. On either side of him marched a boy holding up one of the Pfingstl's arms. These boys, along with most of the others in the procession, carried drawn swords. They stopped at each house hoping for presents, while people inside, hiding, soaked the leaf-clad boy with water, and everyone cheered when he got drenched. Finally, he waded into the brook up to his waist, at which point one of the boys on the bridge pretended to cut off his head.813 In Wurmlingen, Swabia, a group of young men dress in white shirts and trousers with red scarves around their waists and swords hanging from these scarves on Whit-Monday. They ride horseback into the woods, led by two trumpeters. In the woods, they cut down leafy oak branches and cover the last guy who rode out of the village from head to toe in them. His legs are separately wrapped so he can mount his horse again. They also give him a long fake neck, with an [pg 243] artificial head and a false face on top. Then, a May-tree, usually an aspen or beech about ten feet tall, is cut down and decorated with colored handkerchiefs and ribbons; it's handed to a designated "May bearer." The group then returns to the village with music and singing. Among the characters in the procession are a Moorish king with a black face and a crown, a Dr. Iron-Beard, a corporal, and an executioner. They pause at the village green, where each character delivers a speech in rhyme. The executioner declares that the leaf-clad man has been sentenced to death and pretends to cut off his false head. Then, the riders dash to the May-tree, placed a little way off. The first one to successfully pull it from the ground while galloping past keeps it along with all its decorations. This ceremony happens every second or third year.814

In Saxony and Thüringen there is a Whitsuntide ceremony called “chasing the Wild Man out of the bush,” or “fetching the Wild Man out of the wood.” A young fellow is enveloped in leaves or moss and called the Wild Man. He hides in the wood and the other lads of the village go out to seek him. They find him, lead him captive out of the wood, and fire at him with blank muskets. He falls like dead to the ground, but a lad dressed as a doctor bleeds him, and he comes to life again. At this they rejoice and binding him fast on a waggon take him to the village, where they tell all the people how they have caught the Wild Man. At every house they receive a gift.815 In [pg 244] the Erzgebirge the following custom was annually observed at Shrovetide about the beginning of the seventeenth century. Two men disguised as Wild Men, the one in brushwood and moss, the other in straw, were led about the streets, and at last taken to the market-place, where they were chased up and down, shot and stabbed. Before falling they reeled about with strange gestures and spirted blood on the people from bladders which they carried. When they were down, the huntsmen placed them on boards and carried them to the alehouse, the miners marching beside them and winding blasts on their mining tools as if they had taken a noble head of game.816 A very similar Shrovetide custom is still observed in the neighbourhood of Schluckenau (Bohemia). A man dressed up as a Wild Man is chased through several streets till he comes to a narrow lane across which a cord is stretched. He stumbles over the cord and, falling to the ground, is overtaken and caught by his pursuers. The executioner runs up and stabs with his sword a bladder filled with blood which the Wild Man wears round his body; so the Wild Man dies, while a stream of blood reddens the ground. Next day a straw-man, made up to look like the Wild Man, is placed on a litter, and, accompanied by a great crowd, is taken to a pool into which it is thrown by the executioner. The ceremony is called “burying the Carnival.”817

In Saxony and Thüringen, there’s a Whitsuntide tradition known as “chasing the Wild Man out of the woods,” or "getting the Wild Man out of the woods." A young guy wraps himself in leaves or moss and is called the Wild Man. He hides in the woods while the other guys from the village go out to find him. They discover him, capture him, and shoot at him with blank muskets. He falls to the ground as if dead, but then a boy dressed as a doctor bleeds him, and he comes back to life. Everyone cheers, and they tie him up on a wagon and take him back to the village, where they tell everyone how they caught the Wild Man. At each house, they receive a gift.815 In [pg 244] the Erzgebirge, a similar custom was celebrated every year at Shrovetide around the early seventeenth century. Two men dressed as Wild Men—one in brushwood and moss, and the other in straw—were paraded through the streets and eventually taken to the marketplace, where they were chased around, shot, and stabbed. Before falling, they staggered around with odd movements and squirted blood on the crowd from bladders they carried. Once they were down, the hunters placed them on boards and carried them to the pub, while the miners marched alongside, blowing their mining tools as if they had captured a prized catch.816 A very similar Shrovetide tradition is still practiced in the Schluckenau area (Bohemia). A man dressed as a Wild Man is chased through several streets until he reaches a narrow lane with a cord stretched across it. He trips over the cord and falls to the ground, where his pursuers catch him. The executioner rushes in and stabs a blood-filled bladder that the Wild Man wears around his body, making him appear to die while a stream of blood spills onto the ground. The next day, a straw figure made to look like the Wild Man is placed on a litter and taken to a pool, where the executioner throws it in. This ceremony is called “canceling the Carnival.”817

In Semic (Bohemia) the custom of beheading the King is observed on Whit-Monday. A troop of young people disguise themselves; each is girt with a girdle of bark and carries a wooden sword and a [pg 245] trumpet of willow-bark. The King wears a robe of tree-bark adorned with flowers, on his head is a crown of bark decked with flowers and branches, his feet are wound about with ferns, a mask hides his face, and for a sceptre he has a hawthorn switch in his hand. A lad leads him through the village by a rope fastened to his foot, while the rest dance about, blow their trumpets, and whistle. In every farmhouse the King is chased round the room, and one of the troop, amid much noise and outcry, strikes with his sword a blow on the King's robe of bark till it rings again. Then a gratuity is demanded.818 The ceremony of decapitation, which is here somewhat slurred over, is carried out with a greater semblance of reality in other parts of Bohemia. Thus in some villages of the Königgrätz district on Whit-Monday the girls assemble under one lime-tree and the young men under another, all dressed in their best and tricked out with ribbons. The young men twine a garland for the Queen and the girls for the King. When they have chosen the King and Queen they all go in procession, two and two, to the alehouse, from the balcony of which the crier proclaims the names of the King and Queen. Both are then invested with the insignia of their dignity and are crowned with the garlands, while the music plays up. Then some one gets on a bench and accuses the King of various offences, such as ill-treating the cattle. The King appeals to witnesses and a trial ensues, at the close of which the judge, who carries a white wand as his badge of office, pronounces a verdict of “guilty” or “not guilty.” If the verdict is “guilty” the judge breaks his wand, the [pg 246] King kneels on a white cloth, all heads are bared, and a soldier sets three or four hats, one above the other, on the King's head. The judge then pronounces the word “guilty” thrice in a loud voice, and orders the crier to behead the King. The crier obeys by striking off the King's hats with his wooden sword.819

In Semic (Bohemia), the tradition of beheading the King takes place on Whit-Monday. A group of young people dresses up; each one wears a belt made of bark and carries a wooden sword and a trumpet made from willow bark. The King dons a robe made of tree bark decorated with flowers, has a crown of bark adorned with flowers and branches on his head, his feet are wrapped in ferns, a mask conceals his face, and he wields a hawthorn switch as a scepter. A boy leads him through the village with a rope tied to his foot, while the rest dance around, blowing their trumpets and whistling. In every farmhouse, the King is chased around the room, and one of the group, amidst a lot of noise and commotion, hits the King’s bark robe with his sword until it rings. Then a tip is requested. The beheading ceremony, which is briefly mentioned here, is conducted with a more realistic approach in other areas of Bohemia. In some villages in the Königgrätz district on Whit-Monday, the girls gather under one lime tree and the young men under another, all dressed in their finest and adorned with ribbons. The young men weave a garland for the Queen and the girls do the same for the King. After they have selected the King and Queen, they all march in pairs to the pub, from the balcony of which the town crier announces the names of the King and Queen. Both are then given their symbols of authority and crowned with garlands while the music plays. Then, someone climbs onto a bench and accuses the King of various offenses, such as mistreating the livestock. The King calls for witnesses, and a trial follows, at the end of which the judge, who carries a white wand as a sign of his authority, declares a verdict of “guilty” or “not guilty.” If the verdict is “guilty,” the judge breaks his wand, the King kneels on a white cloth, everyone removes their hats, and a soldier places three or four hats on the King’s head, one on top of the other. The judge then loudly declares “guilty” three times and orders the crier to behead the King. The crier complies by knocking off the King’s hats with his wooden sword.

But perhaps, for our purpose, the most instructive of these mimic executions is the following Bohemian one, which has been in part described already.820 In some places of the Pilsen district (Bohemia) on Whit-Monday the King is dressed in bark, ornamented with flowers and ribbons; he wears a crown of gilt paper and rides a horse, which is also decked with flowers. Attended by a judge, an executioner and other characters, and followed by a train of soldiers, all mounted, he rides to the village square, where a hut or arbour of green boughs has been erected under the May-trees, which are firs, freshly cut, peeled to the top, and dressed with flowers and ribbons. After the dames and maidens of the village have been criticised and a frog beheaded, in the way already described, the cavalcade rides to a place previously determined upon, in a straight, broad street. Here they draw up in two lines and the King takes to flight. He is given a short start and rides off at full speed, pursued by the whole troop. If they fail to catch him he remains King for another year, and his companions must pay his score at the alehouse in the evening. But if they overtake and catch him he is scourged with hazel rods or beaten with the wooden swords and compelled to dismount. Then the executioner asks, “Shall I behead this King?” The answer is given, “Behead him;” the executioner [pg 247] brandishes his axe, and with the words, “One, two, three, let the King headless be!” he strikes off the King's crown. Amid the loud cries of the bystanders the King sinks to the ground; then he is laid on a bier and carried to the nearest farmhouse.821

But maybe, for our purposes, the most interesting of these mock executions is the following Bohemian one, which has already been partially described.820 In some areas of the Pilsen district (Bohemia) on Whit-Monday, the King is dressed in bark, decorated with flowers and ribbons; he wears a crown made of gold paper and rides a horse that is also adorned with flowers. Accompanied by a judge, an executioner, and other characters, and followed by a line of mounted soldiers, he rides to the village square, where a hut or arbor of green branches has been set up under the May trees, which are freshly cut firs, peeled to the top, and dressed with flowers and ribbons. After the ladies and maidens of the village have been criticized and a frog has been beheaded, as previously described, the procession rides to a designated place on a straight, wide street. Here, they line up in two rows, and the King takes off running. He gets a brief head start and rides off at full speed, chased by the whole group. If they fail to catch him, he remains King for another year, and his companions have to pay his tab at the pub that evening. But if they catch him, he is whipped with hazel rods or struck with wooden swords and forced to dismount. Then the executioner asks, "Should I behead this King?" The response is given, "Decapitate him;" the executioner [pg 247] raises his axe, and with the words, "One, two, three, let's make the King headless!" he strikes off the King's crown. Amid the loud shouts of the onlookers, the King falls to the ground; then he is placed on a bier and carried to the nearest farmhouse.821

In the personages who are thus slain in mimicry it is impossible not to recognise representatives of the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation, as he is supposed to manifest himself in spring. The bark, leaves, and flowers in which the actors are dressed, and the season of the year at which they appear, show that they belong to the same class as the Grass King, King of the May, Jack-in-the-Green, and other representatives of the vernal spirit of vegetation which we examined in the first chapter. As if to remove any possible doubt on this head, we find that in two cases822 these slain men are brought into direct connection with May-trees, which are (as we have seen) the impersonal, as the May King, Grass King, etc., are the personal representatives of the tree-spirit. The drenching of the Pfingstl with water and his wading up to the middle into the brook are, therefore, no doubt rain-charms like those which have been already described.823

In the characters who are killed in this performance, it’s hard not to see representations of the tree spirit or the spirit of vegetation, as he is believed to appear in spring. The bark, leaves, and flowers that the actors wear, along with the time of year they show up, indicate that they belong to the same group as the Grass King, King of the May, Jack-in-the-Green, and other symbols of the spring spirit of vegetation we discussed in the first chapter. To eliminate any doubt about this, we find that in two cases822 these slain characters are directly linked to May-trees, which are, as we’ve noted, the impersonal counterparts of the May King, Grass King, and others who represent the tree spirit personally. The soaking of the Pfingstl with water and his wading halfway into the brook are, therefore, undoubtedly rain charms like those we’ve already described.823

But if these personages represent, as they certainly do, the spirit of vegetation in spring, the question arises, Why kill them? What is the object of slaying the spirit of vegetation at any time and above all in spring, when his services are most wanted? The only answer to this question seems to be given in the explanation already proposed of the custom of killing the divine king or priest. The divine life, incarnate in a material and mortal body, is liable [pg 248] to be tainted and corrupted by the weakness of the frail medium in which it is for a time enshrined; and if it is to be saved from the increasing enfeeblement which it must necessarily share with its human incarnation as he advances in years, it must be detached from him before, or at least as soon as, he exhibits signs of decay, in order to be transferred to a vigorous successor. This is done by killing the old representative of the god and conveying the divine spirit from him to a new incarnation. The killing of the god, that is, of his human incarnation, is, therefore, only a necessary step to his revival or resurrection in a better form. Far from being an extinction of the divine spirit, it is only the beginning of a purer and stronger manifestation of it. If this explanation holds good of the custom of killing divine kings and priests in general, it is still more obviously applicable to the custom of annually killing the representative of the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation in spring. For the decay of vegetation in winter is readily interpreted by primitive man as an enfeeblement of the spirit of vegetation; the spirit has (he thinks) grown old and weak and must therefore be renovated by being slain and brought to life in a younger and fresher form. Thus the killing of the representative of the tree-spirit in spring is regarded as a means to promote and quicken the growth of vegetation. For the killing of the tree-spirit is associated always (we must suppose) implicitly, and sometimes explicitly also, with a revival or resurrection of him in a more youthful and vigorous form. Thus in the Saxon and Thüringen custom, after the Wild Man has been shot he is brought to life again by a doctor;824 and in the Wurmlingen ceremony there [pg 249] figures a Dr. Iron-Beard, who probably once played a similar part; certainly in another spring ceremony (to be described presently) Dr. Iron-Beard pretends to restore a dead man to life. But of this revival or resurrection of the god we shall have more to say anon.

But if these figures represent, as they clearly do, the spirit of vegetation in spring, the question comes up: Why kill them? What’s the purpose of eliminating the spirit of vegetation at any time, especially in spring when it’s needed the most? The only answer to this question seems to be in the explanation already mentioned regarding the custom of killing the divine king or priest. The divine life, embodied in a material and mortal body, is vulnerable to being tainted and corrupted by the frailty of the human form in which it temporarily resides; and if it is to be preserved from the inevitable decline that comes with aging, it must be separated from its host before or as soon as he shows signs of deterioration, in order to be passed on to a strong successor. This is accomplished by killing the old representative of the god and transferring the divine spirit to a new embodiment. The killing of the god, meaning his human incarnation, is therefore just a necessary step towards his revival or resurrection in a better form. Rather than being an end to the divine spirit, it marks the start of a purer and stronger expression of it. If this explanation applies to the practice of killing divine kings and priests in general, it is even more clearly relevant to the annual custom of killing the representative of the tree spirit or spirit of vegetation in spring. The decline of vegetation in winter is easily understood by primitive people as a weakening of the spirit of vegetation; they think the spirit has become old and weak and must be renewed by being killed and reborn in a younger and fresher form. Thus, the killing of the tree spirit’s representative in spring is seen as a way to promote and accelerate the growth of vegetation. The killing of the tree spirit is always associated, we must assume, implicitly and sometimes explicitly, with his revival or resurrection in a more youthful and vigorous form. For example, in the Saxon and Thüringen customs, after the Wild Man has been shot, he is brought back to life by a doctor; and in the Wurmlingen ceremony, there is a Dr. Iron-Beard, who likely once had a similar role; in another spring ceremony (which will be described shortly), Dr. Iron-Beard pretends to restore a dead man to life. But we will discuss this revival or resurrection of the god in more detail later.

The points of similarity between these North European personages and the subject of our inquiry—the King of the Wood or priest of Nemi—are sufficiently striking. In these northern maskers we see kings, whose dress of bark and leaves, along with the hut of green boughs and the fir-trees under which they hold their court, proclaim them unmistakably as, like their Italian counterpart, Kings of the Wood. Like him they die a violent death; but like him they may escape from it for a time by their bodily strength and agility; for in several of these northern customs the flight and pursuit of the king is a prominent part of the ceremony, and in one case at least if the king can outrun his pursuers he retains his life and his office for another year. In this last case, in fact, the king holds office on condition of running for his life once a year, just as the King of Calicut in later times held office on condition of defending his life against all comers once every twelve years, and just as the priest of Nemi held office on condition of defending himself against any assault at any time. In all these cases the life of the god-man is prolonged on condition of showing, in a severe physical contest of fight or flight, that his bodily strength is not decayed, and that, therefore, the violent death, which sooner or later is inevitable, may for the present be postponed. With regard to flight it is noticeable that flight figured conspicuously both in the legend and the practice of the King of the Wood. He [pg 250] had to be a runaway slave (fugitivus) in memory of the flight of Orestes, the traditional founder of the worship; hence the Kings of the Wood are described by an ancient writer as “both strong of hand and fleet of foot.”825 Perhaps if we knew the ritual of the Arician grove fully we might find that the king was allowed a chance for his life by flight, like his Bohemian brother. We may conjecture that the annual flight of the priestly king at Rome (regifugium)826 was at first a flight of the same kind; in other words, that he was originally one of those divine kings who are either put to death after a fixed period or allowed to prove by the strong hand or the fleet foot that their divinity is vigorous and unimpaired. One more point of resemblance may be noted between the Italian King of the Wood and his northern counterparts. In Saxony and Thüringen the representative of the tree-spirit, after being killed, is brought to life again by a doctor. This is exactly what legend affirmed to have happened to the first King of the Wood at Nemi, Hippolytus or Virbius, who after he had been killed by his horses was restored to life by the physician Aesculapius.827 Such a legend tallies well with the theory that the slaying of the King of the Wood was only a step to his revival or resurrection in his successor.

The similarities between these Northern European figures and the subject of our study—the King of the Wood or priest of Nemi—are quite striking. In these northern performers, we see kings whose outfits made of bark and leaves, along with their shelters of green branches and fir trees where they hold court, clearly mark them as, like their Italian counterpart, Kings of the Wood. Like him, they face violent deaths; however, they can temporarily escape this fate through their physical strength and agility. In several of these northern customs, the king’s flight and the chase are key elements of the ceremony, and in at least one instance, if the king can outrun his pursuers, he keeps his life and position for another year. In that case, the king actually holds his position on the condition that he runs for his life once a year, similar to how the King of Calicut in later periods maintained his position by defending his life against all challengers every twelve years, and like the priest of Nemi, who had to defend himself against any attack at any time. In all these cases, the divine king’s life is extended on the condition that he demonstrates, through a rigorous physical contest, that his strength is still intact, thus delaying the inevitable violent death for now. Regarding flight, it stands out prominently in both the legend and the rituals of the King of the Wood. He had to be a runaway slave (fugitivus) in remembrance of Orestes's flight, the traditional founder of the worship; hence the Kings of the Wood are described by an ancient writer as “both strong of hand and fleet of foot.” Perhaps if we fully understood the rituals of the Arician grove, we would find that the king was given a chance at survival through flight, like his Bohemian counterpart. We might speculate that the annual flight of the priestly king at Rome (regifugium) was originally a similar escape; in other words, he was likely one of those divine kings who are either killed after a fixed term or allowed to prove through strength or speed that their divinity is vibrant and intact. One more point of similarity can be observed between the Italian King of the Wood and his northern equivalents. In Saxony and Thüringen, the representative of the tree spirit, after being killed, is brought back to life by a doctor. This mirrors the legend that the first King of the Wood at Nemi, Hippolytus or Virbius, was revived by the physician Aesculapius after being killed by his horses. Such a legend aligns well with the theory that the slaying of the King of the Wood was only a step toward his revival or resurrection in his successor.

It has been assumed that the mock killing of the Wild Man and of the King in North European folk-custom is a modern substitute for an ancient custom of killing them in earnest. Those who best know the tenacity of life possessed by folk-custom and its tendency, with the growth of civilisation, to dwindle from solemn ritual into mere pageant and pastime, will be [pg 251] least likely to question the truth of this assumption. That human sacrifices were commonly offered by the ancestors of the civilised races of North Europe (Celts, Teutons, and Slavs) is certain.828 It is not, therefore, surprising that the modern peasant should do in mimicry what his forefathers did in reality. We know as a matter of fact that in other parts of the world mock human sacrifices have been substituted for real ones. Thus Captain Bourke was informed by an old chief that the Indians of Arizona used to offer human sacrifices at the Feast of Fire when the days are shortest. The victim had his throat cut, his breast opened, and his heart taken out by one of the priests. This custom was abolished by the Mexicans, but for a long time afterwards a modified form of it was secretly observed as follows. The victim, generally a young man, had his throat cut, and blood was allowed to flow freely; but the medicine-men sprinkled “medicine” on the gash, which soon healed up, and the man recovered.829 So in the ritual of Artemis at Halae in Attica, a man's throat was cut and the blood allowed to gush out, but he was not killed.830 At the funeral of a chief in Nias slaves are sacrificed; a little of their hair is cut off, and then they are beheaded. The victims are generally purchased for the purpose, and their number is proportioned to the wealth and power of the deceased. But if the number required is excessively great or cannot be procured, some of the chief's own slaves undergo a sham sacrifice. They are told, and believe, that [pg 252] they are about to be decapitated; their heads are placed on a log and their necks struck with the back of a sword. The fright drives some of them crazy.831 When a Hindoo has killed or ill-treated an ape, a bird of prey of a certain kind, or a cobra capella, in the presence of the worshippers of Vishnu, he must expiate his offence by the pretended sacrifice and resurrection of a human being. An incision is made in the victim's arm, the blood flows, he grows faint, falls, and feigns to die. Afterwards he is brought to life by being sprinkled with blood drawn from the thigh of a worshipper of Vishnu. The crowd of spectators is fully convinced of the reality of this simulated death and resurrection.832 Sometimes the mock sacrifice is carried out, not on a living person but on an image. Thus an Indian law-book, the Calica Puran, prescribes that when the sacrifice of lions, tigers, or human beings is required, an image of a lion, tiger, or man shall be made with butter, paste, or barley meal, and sacrificed instead.833 Some of the Gonds of India formerly offered human sacrifices; they now sacrifice straw-men instead.834 Colonel Dalton was told that in some of their villages the Bhagats (Hindooised Oraons) “annually make an image of a man in wood, put clothes and ornaments on it, and present it before the altar of a Mahádeo. The person who officiates as priest on the occasion says: ‘O, Mahádeo, we sacrifice this man to you according to ancient customs. Give us rain in due season, and a [pg 253] plentiful harvest.’ Then with one stroke of the axe the head of the image is struck off, and the body is removed and buried.”835

It has been assumed that the mock killing of the Wild Man and the King in North European folk traditions is a modern replacement for an ancient practice of actually killing them. Those who are most familiar with how persistent folk customs can be, and their tendency to shift from serious rituals to mere performances and entertainment as civilization progresses, are the least likely to question this assumption. It is certain that human sacrifices were commonly made by the ancestors of the civilized races of North Europe (Celts, Teutons, and Slavs). Therefore, it’s not surprising that the modern peasant might mimic what their ancestors did for real. We know that in other parts of the world, mock human sacrifices have replaced actual ones. For example, Captain Bourke was told by an old chief that the Indians of Arizona used to offer human sacrifices at the Feast of Fire when the days were shortest. The victim would have his throat cut, his chest opened, and his heart removed by one of the priests. This practice was ended by the Mexicans, but for a long time afterward, a modified version of it was secretly carried out. The victim, usually a young man, would have his throat cut, and blood would flow freely; however, the medicine men would sprinkle “medicine” on the wound, which would soon heal up, allowing the man to recover. Similarly, in the ritual of Artemis at Halae in Attica, a man's throat was cut, and blood was allowed to flow out, but he was not killed. At the funeral of a chief in Nias, slaves are sacrificed; their hair is trimmed, and then they are beheaded. The victims are usually purchased for this purpose, and the number sacrificed is in proportion to the wealth and power of the deceased. But if the required number is too great or cannot be obtained, some of the chief's own slaves undergo a simulated sacrifice. They are told, and they believe, that they are about to be decapitated; their heads are placed on a log, and their necks are struck with the back of a sword. The fear drives some of them insane. When a Hindu has killed or mistreated an ape, a certain type of bird of prey, or a cobra, in front of worshippers of Vishnu, he must make up for his wrongdoing with a pretend sacrifice and resurrection of a human. An incision is made in the victim's arm, blood flows, he becomes faint, collapses, and pretends to die. Then he is "brought back to life" by being sprinkled with blood drawn from the thigh of a worshipper of Vishnu. The crowd of spectators is completely convinced of the authenticity of this staged death and resurrection. Sometimes the mock sacrifice is performed, not on a living person but on a statue. For example, an Indian law book, the Calica Puran, states that when the sacrifice of lions, tigers, or humans is required, an image of a lion, tiger, or man should be made from butter, paste, or barley meal and sacrificed instead. Some of the Gonds of India used to offer human sacrifices; they now sacrifice straw figures instead. Colonel Dalton was informed that in some of their villages, the Bhagats (Hinduized Oraons) "annually make a wooden image of a man, dress it in clothes and ornaments, and present it before the altar of a Mahádeo. The person serving as priest during the ceremony says: ‘O, Mahádeo, we sacrifice this man to you according to ancient customs. Give us rain in due season, and a plentiful harvest.’ Then, with one stroke of the axe, the head of the image is cut off, and the body is removed and buried.”

§ 3.—Carrying Out the Execution.

Thus far I have offered an explanation of the rule which required that the priest of Nemi should be slain by his successor. The explanation claims to be no more than probable; our scanty knowledge of the custom and of its history forbids it to be more. But its probability will be augmented in proportion to the extent to which the motives and modes of thought which it assumes can be proved to have operated in primitive society. Hitherto the god with whose death and resurrection we have been chiefly concerned has been the tree-god. Tree-worship may perhaps be regarded (though this is a conjecture) as occupying an intermediate place in the history of religion, between the religion of the hunter and shepherd on the one side, whose gods are mostly animals, and the religion of the husbandman on the other hand, in whose worship the cultivated plants play a leading part. If then I can show that the custom of killing the god and the belief in his resurrection originated, or at least existed, in the hunting and pastoral stage of society, when the slain god was an animal, and survived into the agricultural stage, when the slain god was the corn or a human being representing the corn, the probability of my explanation will have been considerably increased. This I shall attempt to do in the remainder of this chapter, in the course of which [pg 254] I hope to clear up some obscurities which still remain, and to answer some objections which may have suggested themselves to the reader.

So far, I have provided an explanation for the rule that the priest of Nemi must be killed by his successor. This explanation is only tentative; our limited understanding of the custom and its history prevents it from being more definitive. However, its likelihood will increase based on how well we can demonstrate that the motivations and ways of thinking it relies on were present in early societies. Until now, the god associated with death and resurrection that we've mainly discussed has been the tree-god. Tree worship might be seen (though this is just a guess) as a middle step in the evolution of religion, sitting between the beliefs of hunters and shepherds—whose gods are primarily animals—and the beliefs of farmers—whose worship focuses on cultivated plants. If I can show that the custom of killing the god and the belief in his resurrection originated, or at least existed, during the hunting and pastoral phase of society when the god was an animal, and that this practice continued into the agricultural phase when the god became corn or a human figure representing corn, the plausibility of my explanation will significantly increase. I will attempt to do this in the rest of this chapter, during which [pg 254] I hope to clarify some remaining ambiguities and address any objections that may have occurred to the reader.

We start from the point at which we left off—the spring customs of European peasantry. Besides the ceremonies already described there are two kindred sets of observances in which the simulated death of a divine or supernatural being is a leading feature. These observances are commonly known as “Burying the Carnival,” and “Driving or carrying out Death.” Both customs are chiefly practised, or at least best known, on German and Slavonic ground. The former custom is observed on the last day of the Carnival, namely, Shrove Tuesday (Fastnacht), or on the first day of Lent, namely, Ash Wednesday. The latter custom is commonly observed on the Fourth Sunday in Lent, which hence gets the name of Dead Sunday (Todtensonntag); but in some places it is observed a week earlier; in others again, as amongst the Czechs of Bohemia, a week later. Originally the date of the celebration of the “Carrying out Death” appears not to have been fixed, but to have depended on the appearance of the first swallow or of some other natural phenomenon.836 A Bohemian form of the custom of “Burying the Carnival” has been already described.837 The following Swabian form is obviously similar. In the neighbourhood of Tübingen on Shrove Tuesday a straw-man, called the Shrovetide Bear, is made up; he is dressed in a pair of old trousers, and a [pg 255] fresh black-pudding or two squirts filled with blood are inserted in his neck. After a formal condemnation he is beheaded, laid in a coffin, and on Ash Wednesday is buried in the churchyard. This is called “Burying the Carnival” (die Fastnacht vergraben).838 Amongst some of the Saxons of Transylvania the Carnival is hung. Thus at Braller on Ash Wednesday or Shrove Tuesday two white and two chestnut horses draw a sledge on which is placed a straw-man swathed in a white cloth; beside him is a cart-wheel which is kept turning round. Two lads disguised as old men follow the sledge lamenting. The rest of the village lads, mounted on horseback and decked with ribbons, accompany the procession, which is headed by two girls crowned with evergreen and drawn in a waggon or sledge. A trial is held under a tree, at which lads disguised as soldiers pronounce sentence of death. The two old men try to rescue the straw-man and to fly with him, but to no purpose; he is caught by the two girls and handed over to the executioner, who hangs him on a tree. In vain the old men try to climb up the tree and take him down; they always tumble down, and at last in despair they throw themselves on the ground and weep and howl for the hanged man. An official then makes a speech in which he declares that the Carnival was condemned to death because he had done them harm, by wearing out their shoes and making them tired and sleepy.839 At the “Burial of Carnival” in Lechrain, a man dressed as a woman in black clothes is carried on a litter or bier by four men; he is lamented over by men disguised as [pg 256] women in black clothes, then thrown down before the village dung-heap, drenched with water, buried in the dung-heap, and covered with straw.840 Similarly in Schörzingen, near Schömberg, the “Carnival (Shrovetide) Fool” was carried all about the village on a bier, preceded by a man dressed in white, and followed by a devil who was dressed in black and carried chains, which he clanked. One of the train collected gifts. After the procession the Fool was buried under straw and dung.841 In Rottweil the “Carnival Fool” is made drunk on Ash Wednesday and buried under straw amid loud lamentation.842 In Wurmlingen the Fool is represented by a young fellow enveloped in straw, who is led about the village by a rope as a “Bear” on Shrove Tuesday and the preceding day. He dances to the flute. Then on Ash Wednesday a straw-man is made, placed on a trough, carried out of the village to the sound of drums and mournful music, and buried in a field.843 In Altdorf and Weingarten on Ash Wednesday the Fool, represented by a straw-man, is carried about and then thrown into the water to the accompaniment of melancholy music. In other villages of Swabia the part of fool is played by a live person, who is thrown into the water after being carried about in procession.844 At Balwe, in Westphalia, a straw-man is made on Shrove Tuesday and thrown into the river amid rejoicings. This is called, as usual, “Burying the Carnival.”845 On the evening of Shrove Tuesday, the Esthonians make a [pg 257] straw figure called metsik or “wood-spirit;” one year it is dressed with a man's coat and hat, next year with a hood and a petticoat. This figure is stuck on a long pole, carried across the boundary of the village with loud cries of joy, and fastened to the top of a tree in the wood. The ceremony is believed to be a protection against all kinds of misfortune.846 Sometimes the resurrection of the pretended dead person is enacted. Thus, in some parts of Swabia, on Shrove Tuesday Dr. Iron-Beard professes to bleed a sick man, who thereupon falls as dead to the ground; but the doctor at last restores him to life by blowing air into him through a tube.847 In the Harz mountains, when Carnival is over, a man is laid on a baking-trough and carried with dirges to a grave; but in the grave, instead of the man, a glass of brandy is placed. A speech is delivered and then the people return to the village-green or meeting-place, where they smoke the long clay pipes which are distributed at funerals. On the morning of Shrove Tuesday in the following year the brandy is dug up and the festival begins by every one tasting the brandy which, as the phrase goes, has come to life again.848

We pick up from where we left off—the spring traditions of European peasants. In addition to the ceremonies already mentioned, there are two related sets of rituals featuring the simulated death of a divine or supernatural being. These rituals are commonly known as “Ending the Carnival,” and “Causing or committing murder.” Both customs are primarily practiced, or at least most well-known, in German and Slavic regions. The first custom is observed on the last day of Carnival, known as Shrove Tuesday (Mardi Gras), or on the first day of Lent, which is Ash Wednesday. The second custom is usually observed on the Fourth Sunday in Lent, which is referred to as Dead Sunday (Remembrance Sunday); however, in some areas it is celebrated a week earlier, while in others, like among the Czechs in Bohemia, it is observed a week later. Initially, the date of celebrating "Executing Death" was not fixed and depended on when the first swallow appeared or some other natural event. A Bohemian version of the “Ending the Carnival” custom has been described. The following Swabian version is quite similar. Near Tübingen on Shrove Tuesday, a straw figure known as the Shrovetide Bear is created; he is dressed in a pair of old pants, and a [pg 255] fresh black pudding or two blood-filled tubes are inserted into his neck. After a formal condemnation, he is beheaded, placed in a coffin, and on Ash Wednesday buried in the churchyard. This is called “Ending the Carnival” (bury the Carnival).838 Among some Saxons in Transylvania, the Carnival is hanged. In Braller, on Ash Wednesday or Shrove Tuesday, two white and two chestnut horses pull a sled that carries a straw figure wrapped in white cloth; alongside is a cartwheel that keeps turning. Two young men dressed as old men follow the sled, mourning. The other young men from the village, on horseback and adorned with ribbons, join the procession, led by two girls crowned with evergreen and drawn in a wagon or sled. Under a tree, a trial is held where boys dressed as soldiers declare a death sentence. The two old men try to rescue the straw figure and escape with him, but it’s futile; he is caught by the two girls and handed to the executioner, who hangs him from a tree. The old men try to climb the tree to get him down, but always fall, and ultimately they throw themselves on the ground in despair, weeping and wailing for the hanged figure. An official then gives a speech declaring that the Carnival was sentenced to death for causing them trouble by wearing out their shoes and making them tired and sleepy.839 At the "End of Carnival" in Lechrain, a man dressed as a woman in black is carried on a stretcher by four men; he is lamented by men in black costumes pretending to be women, before being thrown down before the village dung heap, soaked with water, buried in the dung, and covered with straw.840 Similarly, in Schörzingen, near Schömberg, the "Carnival (Shrovetide) Jester" is paraded through the village on a stretcher, followed by a man in white and a devil in black rattling chains. One of the procession collects donations. After the parade, the Fool is buried under straw and dung.841 In Rottweil, the “Carnival Jester” is made drunk on Ash Wednesday and buried under straw while lamentations ring out.842 In Wurmlingen, the Fool is represented by a young man wrapped in straw, who is led through the village on a rope as a "Bear" on Shrove Tuesday and the day before. He dances to the flute. Then, on Ash Wednesday, a straw figure is made, placed on a trough, taken out of the village to the beat of drums and mournful music, and buried in a field.843 In Altdorf and Weingarten, on Ash Wednesday, the Fool, symbolized by a straw figure, is carried around and then thrown into the water to the sound of sad music. In other villages in Swabia, a real person plays the role of the fool, who is thrown into the water after being paraded.844 In Balwe, Westphalia, a straw figure is created on Shrove Tuesday and tossed into the river amid celebrations. This is commonly referred to as "Ending the Carnival."845 On the evening of Shrove Tuesday, Estonians create a straw figure called wild or “wood spirit;” one year dressed in a man's coat and hat, the next in a hood and a skirt. This figure is attached to a long pole and carried across the village boundary with loud cheers, then fixed to the top of a tree in the woods. This ceremony is believed to protect against all kinds of misfortune.846 Sometimes the resurrection of the supposed dead person is acted out. For instance, in some areas of Swabia, on Shrove Tuesday, Dr. Iron-Beard pretends to bleed a sick man, who subsequently collapses as if dead; however, the doctor eventually brings him back to life by blowing air into him through a tube.847 In the Harz mountains, when Carnival is over, a man is laid on a baking tray and carried with dirges to a grave; but in the grave, instead of the man, a glass of brandy is placed. A speech is made, and then the villagers return to the village green or meeting place, where they smoke long clay pipes usually given at funerals. The morning of the following Shrove Tuesday, the brandy is dug up, and the festival begins with everyone tasting the brandy which, as the saying goes, has come back to life.848

The ceremony of “Carrying out Death” presents much the same features as “Burying the Carnival;” except that the figure of Death is oftener drowned or burned than buried, and that the carrying out of Death is generally followed by a ceremony, or at least accompanied by a profession, of bringing in Summer, Spring, or Life. Thus, in some villages of Thüringen on the Fourth Sunday of Lent, the children used to carry a puppet of birchen twigs through the village, [pg 258] and then threw it into a pool, while they sang, “We carry the old Death out behind the herdsman's old house; we have got Summer, and Kroden's(?) power is destroyed.”849 In one village of Thüringen (Dobschwitz near Gera), the ceremony of “Driving out Death” is still annually observed on the 1st of March. The young people make up a figure of straw or the like materials, dress it in old clothes which they have begged from the houses in the village, and carry it out and throw it into the river. On returning to the village they announce the fact to the people, and receive eggs and other victuals as a reward. In other villages of Thüringen, in which the population was originally Slavonic, the carrying out of the puppet is accompanied with the singing of a song, which begins, “Now we carry Death out of the village and Spring into the village.”850 In Bohemia the children go out with a straw-man, representing Death, to the end of the village, where they burn it, singing—

The ceremony of “Executing Death” has many of the same features as "Burying the Carnival;" except that the figure of Death is more often drowned or burned rather than buried, and the act of carrying out Death is usually followed by a ceremony, or at least a declaration, of welcoming Summer, Spring, or Life. For instance, in some villages in Thüringen on the Fourth Sunday of Lent, children used to carry a puppet made of birch twigs through the village, [pg 258] and then throw it into a pond while singing, “We take the old Death out behind the herdsman's old house; we have Summer now, and Kroden's power is gone.”849 In one village in Thüringen (Dobschwitz near Gera), the ceremony of "Driving Away Death" is still celebrated every year on March 1st. The young people create a figure made of straw or similar materials, dress it in old clothes they’ve gathered from houses in the village, and carry it out to throw it into the river. Upon returning, they announce to the villagers what they've done and receive eggs and other foods as a reward. In other villages in Thüringen, where the population was originally Slavic, the carrying out of the puppet is accompanied by a song that begins, "Now we bring Death out of the village and bring Spring into the village."850 In Bohemia, children go out with a scarecrow representing Death to the edge of the village, where they burn it while singing—

Now let's take Death out of the village,
The new summer arrived in the village,
Welcome, dear summer,
Green little corn!851

At Tabor (Bohemia) the figure of Death is carried out of the town and flung from a high rock into the water, while they sing—

At Tabor (Bohemia), the figure of Death is taken out of the town and thrown from a high rock into the water, while they sing—

"Death floats on the water,"
Summer is almost here,
We took Death away for you,
We brought the summer.
And you, O holy Marketa,
Give us a great year
For wheat and rye.852
[pg 259]

In other parts of Bohemia they carry Death to the end of the village, singing—

In other parts of Bohemia, they take Death to the edge of the village, singing—

We take Death out of the village,
And the New Year came to the village.
Dear Spring, we welcome you,
Green grass, we welcome you.

Behind the village they erect a pyre, on which they burn the straw figure, reviling and scoffing at it the while. Then they return, singing—

Behind the village, they build a pyre, where they burn the straw figure, insulting and mocking it the whole time. Then they return, singing—

“We have conquered Death,”
And brought life back.
He has set up his residence in the village,
So sing joyful songs.853

At Nürnberg, girls of seven to eighteen years of age, dressed in their best, carry through the streets a little open coffin in which is a doll, hidden under a shroud. Others carry a beech branch, with an apple fastened to it for a head, in an open box. They sing, “We carry Death into the water, it is well,” or, “We carry Death into the water, carry him in and out again.”854

At Nürnberg, girls aged seven to eighteen, dressed up in their best clothes, walk through the streets carrying a small open coffin with a doll hidden beneath a shroud. Others carry a beech branch with an apple attached as a head, placed in an open box. They sing, "We bring Death into the water, that's fine." or, "We bring Death into the water, taking him in and out again."854

The effigy of Death is often regarded with fear and treated with marks of hatred and contempt. In Lusatia the figure is sometimes made to look in at the window of a house, and it is believed that some one in the house will die within the year unless his life is redeemed by the payment of money.855 Again, after throwing the effigy away, the bearers sometimes run home lest Death should follow them; and if one of them falls in running, it is believed that he will die within the year.856 At Chrudim, in Bohemia, the [pg 260] figure of Death is made out of a cross, with a head and mask stuck at the top, and a shirt stretched out on it. On the Fifth Sunday in Lent the boys take this effigy to the nearest brook or pool, and standing in a line throw it into the water. Then they all plunge in after it; but as soon as it is caught no one more may enter the water. The boy who did not enter the water or entered it last will die within the year, and he is obliged to carry the Death back to the village. The effigy is then burned.857 On the other hand it is believed that no one will die within the year in the house out of which the figure of Death has been carried;858 and the village out of which Death has been driven is sometimes supposed to be protected against sickness and plague.859 In some villages of Austrian Silesia on the Saturday before Dead Sunday an effigy is made of old clothes, hay, and straw, for the purpose of driving Death out of the village. On Sunday the people, armed with sticks and straps, assemble before the house where the figure is lodged. Four lads then draw the effigy by cords through the village amid exultant shouts, while all the others beat it with their sticks and straps. On reaching a field which belongs to a neighbouring village they lay down the figure, cudgel it soundly, and scatter the fragments over the field. The people believe that the village from which Death has been thus carried out will be safe from any infectious disease for the whole year.860 In Slavonia the figure of Death is cudgelled and then [pg 261] rent in two.861 In Poland the effigy, made of hemp and straw, is flung into a pool or swamp with the words, “The devil take thee.”862

The figure of Death is often seen with fear and treated with disdain and contempt. In Lusatia, the figure can sometimes be made to peer in through a window of a house, and it's believed that someone inside will die within the year unless their life is saved by paying money.855 After throwing the effigy away, the people carrying it may run home, fearing that Death will follow them; if one of them falls while running, it is thought that he will die within the year.856 In Chrudim, Bohemia, the figure of Death is crafted from a cross, with a head and mask on top, and a shirt draped over it. On the Fifth Sunday of Lent, the boys take this effigy to the nearest brook or pool and, standing in a line, toss it into the water. They then all dive in after it; but once it’s caught, no one else may enter the water. The boy who did not enter the water or who entered last will die within the year and must carry the Death figure back to the village. The effigy is then burned.857 On the other hand, it is believed that no one will die within the year in a house from which the figure of Death has been taken;858 and the village from which Death has been expelled is sometimes thought to be safe from illness and plague.859 In some villages in Austrian Silesia, on the Saturday before Dead Sunday, an effigy is made from old clothes, hay, and straw to drive Death out of the village. On Sunday, people gather in front of the house where the figure is kept, armed with sticks and straps. Four boys then drag the effigy through the village on cords, cheered on by shouts, while everyone else beats it with their sticks and straps. When they reach a field owned by a nearby village, they lay the figure down, thoroughly beat it, and scatter the pieces over the field. People believe that the village from which Death has been thus driven will be protected from infectious diseases for the entire year.860 In Slavonia, the figure of Death is beaten and then [pg 261] ripped in two.861 In Poland, the effigy, made of hemp and straw, is thrown into a pool or swamp with the words, “Damn you.”862

The custom of “sawing the Old Woman,” which is or used to be observed in Italy and Spain on the Fourth Sunday in Lent, is doubtless, as Grimm supposes, merely another form of the custom of “carrying out Death.” A great hideous figure representing the oldest woman of the village was dragged out and sawn in two, amid a prodigious noise made with cow-bells, pots and pans, etc.863 In Palermo the ceremony used to be still more realistic. At Mid-Lent an old woman was drawn through the streets on a cart, attended by two men dressed in the costume of the Compagnia de'Bianchi, a society or religious order whose function it was to attend and console prisoners condemned to death. A scaffold was erected in a public square; the old woman mounted it, and two mock executioners proceeded, amid a storm of huzzas and hand-clapping, to saw through her neck or rather through a bladder of blood which had been previously fitted to her neck. The blood gushed out and the old woman pretended to swoon and die. The last of these mock executions took place in 1737.864 At Florence, during the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, the Old Woman was represented by a figure stuffed with walnuts and dried figs and fastened to the top of a ladder. At Mid-Lent this effigy was sawn through the middle under the Loggie of the Mercato Nuovo, and as the dried fruits tumbled out they were scrambled for by the crowd. A trace of the custom is still to be seen in the practice, observed [pg 262] by urchins, of secretly pinning paper ladders to the shoulders of women of the lower classes who happen to show themselves in the streets on the morning of Mid-Lent.865 A similar custom is observed by urchins in Rome; and at Naples on the 1st of April boys cut strips of cloth into the shape of saws, smear them with gypsum, and strike passers-by with their “saws” on the back, thus imprinting the figure of a saw upon their clothes.866 At Montalto in Calabria boys go about at Mid-Lent with little saws made of cane and jeer at old people, who therefore generally stay indoors on that day. The Calabrian women meet together at this time and feast on figs, chestnuts, honey, etc.; this they call “sawing the Old Woman”—a reminiscence probably of a custom like the old Florentine one.867

The tradition of “sawing the old lady,” which is or used to be celebrated in Italy and Spain on the Fourth Sunday in Lent, is likely, as Grimm suggests, just another version of the custom of “executing a death sentence.” A large, ugly figure symbolizing the oldest woman in the village was dragged out and sawed in half, accompanied by a huge commotion made with cow-bells, pots, pans, and more.863 In Palermo, the ceremony was even more dramatic. During Mid-Lent, an old woman was pulled through the streets on a cart, accompanied by two men dressed in the costume of the Compagnia de' Bianchi, a group or religious order dedicated to attending to and comforting prisoners on death row. A scaffold was set up in a public square; the old woman climbed onto it, and two mock executioners, amidst cheers and clapping, proceeded to saw through her neck or rather through a bladder of blood that had been attached to her neck beforehand. The blood gushed out, and the old woman pretended to faint and die. The last of these mock executions happened in 1737.864 In Florence, during the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, the Old Woman was represented by a figure stuffed with walnuts and dried figs and tied to the top of a ladder. At Mid-Lent, this effigy was sawed in half under the Loggie of the Mercato Nuovo, and as the dried fruits fell out, the crowd scrambled to grab them. Some remnants of this tradition can still be seen in the practice, observed [pg 262] by children, of secretly pinning paper ladders to the shoulders of lower-class women who are out in the streets on the morning of Mid-Lent.865 A similar tradition is seen with children in Rome; and in Naples on April 1st, boys cut strips of cloth into the shape of saws, coat them in gypsum, and hit passers-by on the back with their saws, leaving a saw-like print on their clothes.866 In Montalto, Calabria, boys walk around during Mid-Lent with small saws made of cane, mocking old people, who tend to stay indoors on that day. The women in Calabria gather together at this time and feast on figs, chestnuts, honey, and more; they call it “sawing the Old Lady”—likely a reminder of a tradition similar to the old Florentine one.867

In Barcelona on the day in question boys run about the streets, some with saws, others with billets of wood, others again with cloths in which they collect gratuities. They sing a song in which it is said that they are looking for the oldest woman of the city for the purpose of sawing her in two in honour of Mid-Lent; at last, pretending to have found her, they saw something in two and burn it. A like custom is found amongst the South Slavs. In Lent the Croats tell their children that at noon an old woman is being sawn in two outside the gates; and in Carniola also the saying is current that at Mid-Lent an old woman is taken out of the village and sawn in two. The North Slavonian expression for keeping Mid-Lent is bábu rezati, that is, “sawing the Old Wife.”868

In Barcelona on the day in question, boys run around the streets, some with saws, others with pieces of wood, and others with cloths to collect tips. They sing a song saying they're looking for the oldest woman in the city to saw her in half in honor of Mid-Lent; finally, pretending to have found her, they saw something in half and burn it. A similar custom exists among the South Slavs. During Lent, Croats tell their children that at noon an old woman is being sawed in half outside the gates; similarly, in Carniola, there's a saying that at Mid-Lent an old woman is taken out of the village and sawed in two. The North Slavonian phrase for celebrating Mid-Lent is cutting wood, which means “sawing the Old Woman.”868

[pg 263]

In the preceding ceremonies the return of Spring, Summer, or Life, as a sequel to the expulsion of Death, is only implied or at most announced. In the following ceremonies it is plainly enacted. In some parts of Bohemia the effigy of Death is buried at sunset; then the girls go out into the wood and cut down a young tree with a green crown, hang a doll dressed as a woman on it, deck the whole with green, red, and white ribbons, and march in procession with their Líto (Summer) into the village, collecting gifts and singing—

In the earlier ceremonies, the arrival of Spring, Summer, or Life, following the banishment of Death, is just suggested or at most mentioned. In the subsequent ceremonies, it's clearly acted out. In some areas of Bohemia, the figure of Death is buried at sunset; then the girls head into the woods to cut down a young tree with a green crown, hang a doll dressed like a woman on it, adorn the entire thing with green, red, and white ribbons, and parade with their Sorry (Summer) into the village, gathering gifts and singing—

We took Death out of the village,
We're bringing Summer to the village.869

In many Silesian villages the figure of Death, after being treated with respect, is stripped of its clothes and flung with curses into the water, or torn in pieces in a field. Then a fir-tree adorned with ribbons, coloured egg-shells, and motley bits of cloth, is carried through the streets by boys who collect pennies and sing—

In many Silesian villages, people treat the figure of Death with respect, then they strip it of its clothes and throw it with curses into the water, or tear it apart in a field. After that, a fir tree decorated with ribbons, colored eggshells, and various bits of cloth is carried through the streets by boys who collect pennies and sing—

"We have carried Death out,"
We're bringing back the beloved Summer,
Summer and May
And all the flowers are bright.870

At Eisenach on the Fourth Sunday in Lent young people used to fasten a straw-man, representing Death, to a wheel, which they trundled to the top of a hill. Then setting fire to the figure they allowed it and the wheel to roll downhill. Next they cut a tall fir-tree, tricked it out with ribbons, and set it up in the plain. The men then climbed the tree to fetch down the [pg 264] ribbons.871 In Upper Lusatia the figure of Death, made of straw and rags, is dressed in a veil furnished by the last bride and a shirt furnished by the house in which the last death occurred. Thus arrayed the figure is stuck on the end of a long pole and carried at full speed by the tallest and strongest girl, while the rest pelt the effigy with sticks and stones. Whoever hits it will be sure to live through the year. In this way Death is carried out of the village and thrown into the water or over the boundary of the next village. On their way home each one breaks a green branch and carries it gaily with him till he reaches the village, when he throws it away. Sometimes the young people of the next village, upon whose land the figure has been thrown, run after them and hurl it back, not wishing to have Death among them. Hence the two parties occasionally come to blows.872

At Eisenach on the Fourth Sunday in Lent, young people used to tie a straw dummy representing Death to a wheel and roll it to the top of a hill. After lighting the figure on fire, they let it and the wheel roll down the hill. Then they cut down a tall fir tree, decorated it with ribbons, and set it up in the field. The men would then climb the tree to retrieve the ribbons. In Upper Lusatia, the figure of Death, made of straw and rags, is dressed in a veil provided by the last bride and a shirt from the household where the last death occurred. Dressed like this, the figure is hoisted on a tall pole and carried swiftly by the tallest and strongest girl, while the rest throw sticks and stones at it. Whoever hits the figure will be sure to live through the year. This way, Death is taken out of the village and thrown into water or over the boundary into the next village. On their way back, each person breaks off a green branch and cheerfully carries it with them until they reach the village, where they throw it away. Sometimes, the young people from the next village, where the figure was tossed, chase after them and throw it back, not wanting Death among them. As a result, the two groups sometimes end up in a fight.

In these cases Death is represented by the puppet which is thrown away, Summer or Life by the branches or trees which are brought back. But sometimes a new potency of life seems to be attributed to the image of Death itself, and by a kind of resurrection it becomes the instrument of the general revival. Thus in some parts of Lusatia women alone are concerned in carrying out Death, and suffer no male to meddle with it. Attired in mourning, which they wear the whole day, they make a puppet of straw, clothe it in a white shirt, and give it a broom in one hand and a scythe in the other. Singing songs and pursued by urchins throwing stones, they carry the puppet to the village boundary, where they tear it in pieces. Then they cut down [pg 265] a fine tree, hang the shirt on it, and carry it home singing.873 On the Feast of Ascension the Saxons of a village near Hermanstadt (Transylvania) observe the ceremony of “carrying out Death” in the following manner. After forenoon church all the school-girls repair to the house of one of their number, and there dress up the Death. This is done by tying a threshed-out corn-sheaf into the rough semblance of a head and body, while the arms are simulated by a broomstick stuck horizontally. The figure is dressed in the Sunday clothes of a village matron. It is then displayed at the window that all people may see it on their way to afternoon church. As soon as vespers are over the girls seize the effigy and, singing a hymn, carry it in procession round the village. Boys are excluded from the procession. After the procession has traversed the village from end to end, the figure is taken to another house and stripped of its attire; the naked straw bundle is then thrown out of the window to the boys, who carry it off and fling it into the nearest stream. This is the first act of the drama. In the second, one of the girls is solemnly invested with the clothes and ornaments previously worn by the figure of Death, and, like it, is led in procession round the village to the singing of the same hymns as before. The ceremony ends with a feast at the house of the girl who acted the chief part; as before, the boys are excluded. “According to popular belief, it is allowed to eat fruit only after this day, as now the ‘Death,’ that is, the unwholesomeness—has been expelled from them. Also the river in which the Death has been drowned may now be considered fit for public bathing. If this ceremony be neglected in the [pg 266] village where it is customary, such neglect is supposed to entail death to one of the young people, or loss of virtue to a girl.”874

In these cases, Death is represented by a puppet that is discarded, while Summer or Life is symbolized by the branches or trees that are brought back. However, sometimes, a new sense of life seems to be associated with the image of Death itself, and through a kind of resurrection, it becomes a tool for the overall revival. In certain parts of Lusatia, only women handle the ritual of carrying out Death, and they do not allow any men to interfere. Dressed in mourning attire that they wear all day, they create a straw puppet, dress it in a white shirt, and give it a broom in one hand and a scythe in the other. They sing songs while being chased by kids throwing stones, as they take the puppet to the village boundary, where they tear it apart. Then they cut down a fine tree, hang the shirt on it, and return home singing. On the Feast of Ascension, the Saxons of a village near Hermanstadt (Transylvania) celebrate the ceremony of “carrying out Death” in the following way. After the morning church service, all the schoolgirls go to one of their homes and dress up Death. They do this by tying a threshed-out corn-sheaf into a rough likeness of a head and body, with broomsticks for arms. The figure is dressed in the Sunday clothes of a village matron and displayed at the window for everyone to see as they walk to the afternoon church. Once vespers are over, the girls seize the effigy and, singing a hymn, carry it in a procession around the village. Boys are not allowed to join the procession. After they have paraded through the village, the figure is taken to another house and undressed; the naked straw bundle is then tossed out of the window to the boys, who take it away and throw it into the nearest stream. This is the first act of the drama. In the second act, one of the girls is ceremonially dressed in the clothes and ornaments previously worn by the figure of Death and, like it, is led in procession around the village to the same hymns sung before. The ceremony concludes with a feast at the house of the girl who played the main role, with boys again being excluded. “According to popular belief, it is acceptable to eat fruit only after this day, as now the ‘Death,’ meaning the unwholesomeness, has been expelled from them. Additionally, the river where Death has been drowned can now be considered safe for public bathing. If this ceremony is neglected in the village where it is customary, such neglect is thought to result in the death of a young person or a loss of virtue for a girl.”

In the first of these two ceremonies the tree which is brought home after the destruction of the figure of Death is plainly equivalent to the trees or branches which, in the preceding customs, were brought back as representatives of Summer or Life, after Death had been thrown away or destroyed. But the transference of the shirt worn by the effigy of Death to the tree clearly indicates that the tree is a kind of revivification, in a new form, of the destroyed effigy.875 This comes out also in the Transylvanian custom; the dressing of a girl in the clothes worn by the Death, and the leading her about the village to the same songs which had been sung when the Death was being carried about, show that she is intended to be a kind of resuscitation of the being whose effigy has just been destroyed. These examples therefore suggest that the Death whose demolition is represented in these ceremonies cannot be regarded as the purely destructive agent which we understand by Death. If the tree which is brought back as an embodiment of the reviving vegetation of spring is clothed in the shirt worn by the Death which has been just destroyed, the object certainly cannot be to check and counteract the revival of vegetation; it can only be to foster and promote it. Therefore the being which has just been destroyed—the so-called Death—must be supposed to be endowed with a vivifying and quickening influence, which it can communicate to the vegetable and even the animal world. This ascription of a life-giving virtue to the [pg 267] figure of Death is put beyond a doubt by the custom, observed in some places, of taking pieces of the straw effigy of Death and placing them in the fields to make the crops grow, or in the manger to make the cattle thrive. Thus in Spachendorf (Austrian Silesia) the figure of Death made of straw, brushwood, and rags, is carried out with wild songs to an open place outside the village and there burned, and while it is burning a general struggle takes place for the pieces, which are pulled out of the flames with bare hands. Each one who secures a fragment of the effigy ties it to a branch of the largest tree in his garden, or buries it in his field, in the belief that this causes the crops to grow better.876 In the Troppau district (Austrian Silesia) the straw figure which the boys make on the Fourth Sunday in Lent is dressed by the girls in woman's clothes and hung with ribbons, necklace, and garlands. Attached to a long pole it is carried out of the village, followed by a troop of young people of both sexes, who alternately frolic, lament, and sing songs. Arrived at its destination—a field outside the village—the figure is stripped of its clothes and ornaments; then the crowd rushes on it and tears it to bits, scuffling for the fragments. Every one tries to get a wisp of the straw of which the effigy was made, because such a wisp, placed in the manger, is believed to make the cattle thrive.877 Or the straw is put in the hens' nest, it being supposed that this prevents the hens from carrying away their eggs, and makes them brood much better.878 The same attribution of a fertilising power to the figure of Death appears in the belief that [pg 268] if the bearers of the figure, after throwing it away, meet cattle and strike them with their sticks, this will render the cattle prolific.879 Perhaps the sticks had been previously used to beat the Death,880 and so had acquired the fertilising power ascribed to the effigy. In Leipzig at Mid-Lent men and women of the lowest class used to carry through all the streets a straw effigy of Death, which they exhibited to young wives, and finally threw into the river, alleging that this made young wives fruitful, cleansed the city, and averted the plague and other sickness from the inhabitants for that year.881

In the first of these two ceremonies, the tree that is brought home after the figure of Death is destroyed clearly represents the trees or branches that were previously brought back as symbols of Summer or Life, once Death had been discarded or destroyed. The act of transferring the shirt worn by the effigy of Death to the tree indicates that the tree serves as a form of revival, rejuvenating the destroyed effigy. This is also evident in the Transylvanian custom, where a girl is dressed in the clothes worn by Death and paraded around the village to the same songs that were sung when the Death effigy was carried around, showing that she symbolizes a kind of resurrection of the being whose effigy has just been destroyed. These examples suggest that the Death depicted in these ceremonies cannot be seen merely as a destructive force as we typically understand it. If the tree, which embodies the rebirth of spring, is dressed in the shirt of the just-destroyed Death, its purpose cannot be to hinder or negate the revival of nature; it must be to encourage and enhance it. Thus, the being that has just been destroyed—the so-called Death—must be thought to possess a life-giving and invigorating power, which it can share with both plant and animal life. This attribution of life-giving qualities to the figure of Death is reinforced by the practice in some areas of taking pieces of the straw effigy of Death and placing them in fields to promote crop growth or in the animal stalls to help livestock thrive. For instance, in Spachendorf (Austrian Silesia), a figure of Death made from straw, brushwood, and rags is taken out with lively songs to a spot outside the village and burned. While it burns, everyone struggles to grab pieces from the flames using their bare hands. Anyone who obtains a fragment ties it to a branch of the largest tree in their garden or buries it in their field, believing this will enhance their crops. In the Troppau district (Austrian Silesia), boys construct a straw figure on the Fourth Sunday in Lent, which girls then dress in women's clothing and adorn with ribbons, necklaces, and garlands. The figure is attached to a long pole and carried out of the village, followed by a group of young people who play, mourn, and sing. Once they reach a field outside the village, the figure is stripped of its clothes and ornaments, and the crowd rushes in to tear it apart, competing for the remnants. Everyone tries to grab a handful of the straw from the effigy, as placing a piece in the animal stall is believed to help livestock thrive. Alternatively, the straw may be put in a hens' nest, as it is thought to prevent hens from taking away their eggs and encourages better brooding. The same belief in the fertilizing power of the Death figure appears in the idea that if the bearers of the figure, after discarding it, encounter cattle and hit them with their sticks, this will make the cattle more fertile. It’s possible that the sticks were previously used to strike the effigy of Death, thus gaining the fertility power attributed to it. In Leipzig during Mid-Lent, lower-class men and women used to carry a straw effigy of Death through the streets, showing it to young wives before finally throwing it into the river, claiming this act would make young wives fruitful, cleanse the city, and ward off plague and other illnesses for the year.

It seems hardly possible to separate from the May-trees the trees or branches which are brought into the village after the destruction of the Death. The bearers who bring them in profess to be bringing in the Summer;882 therefore the trees obviously represent the Summer; and the doll which is sometimes attached to the Summer-tree is a duplicate representative of the Summer, just as the May is sometimes represented at the same time by a May-tree and a May Lady.883 Further, the Summer-trees are adorned like May-trees with ribbons, etc.; like May-trees, when large, they are planted in the ground and climbed up; and like May-trees, when small, they are carried from door to door by boys or girls singing songs and collecting money.884 And as if to demonstrate the identity of the two sets of customs the bearers of the Summer-tree sometimes announce that they are bringing in the Summer [pg 269] and the May.885 The customs, therefore, of bringing in the May and bringing in the Summer are essentially the same; and the Summer-tree is merely another form of the May-tree, the only distinction (besides that of name) being in the time at which they are respectively brought in; for while the May-tree is usually fetched in on the 1st of May or at Whitsuntide, the Summer-tree is fetched in on the Fourth Sunday in Lent. Therefore, if the explanation here adopted of the May-tree (namely, that it is an embodiment of the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation) is correct, the Summer-tree must likewise be an embodiment of the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation. But we have seen that the Summer-tree is in some cases a revivification of the effigy of Death. It follows, therefore, that in these cases the effigy called Death must be an embodiment of the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation. This inference is confirmed, first, by the vivifying and fertilising influence which the fragments of the effigy of Death are believed to exercise both on vegetable and on animal life;886 for this influence, as we saw in the first chapter, is supposed to be a special attribute of the tree-spirit. It is confirmed, secondly, by observing that the effigy of Death is sometimes composed of birchen twigs, of the branch of a beech-tree, of a threshed-out corn-sheaf, or of hemp;887 and that sometimes it is hung on a little tree and so carried about by girls collecting money,888 just as is done with the May-tree and the May Lady, and with the Summer-tree and the [pg 270] doll attached to it. In short we are driven to regard the expulsion of Death and the bringing in of Summer as, in some cases at least, merely another form of that death and resuscitation of the spirit of vegetation in spring which we saw enacted in the killing and resurrection of the Wild Man.889 The burial and resurrection of the Carnival is probably another way of expressing the same idea. The burying of the representative of the Carnival under a dung-heap is natural, if he is supposed to possess a quickening and fertilising influence like that ascribed to the effigy of Death. By the Esthonians, indeed, the straw figure which is carried out of the village in the usual way on Shrove Tuesday is not called the Carnival, but the Wood-spirit (Metsik), and the identity of it with the wood-spirit is further shown by fixing it to the top of a tree in the wood, where it remains for a year, and is besought almost daily with prayers and offerings to protect the herds; for like a true wood-spirit the Metsik is a patron of cattle. Sometimes the Metsik is made of sheafs of corn.890 Therefore, we may fairly conjecture that the names Carnival, Death, and Summer, are comparatively late and inadequate expressions for the beings personified or embodied in the customs described. The very abstractness of the names bespeaks a modern origin; the personification of times and seasons like the Carnival and Summer, or of an abstract notion like death, is hardly primitive. But the ceremonies themselves bear the stamp of a dateless antiquity; therefore we can hardly help supposing that in their origin the [pg 271] ideas which they embodied were of a more simple and concrete order. The conception of a tree, perhaps of a particular kind of tree (for some savages have no word for tree in general), or even of an individual tree, is sufficiently concrete to supply a basis from which by a gradual process of generalisation the wider conception of a spirit of vegetation might be reached. But this general conception of vegetation would readily be confounded with the season in which it manifests itself; hence the substitution of Spring, Summer, or May for the tree-spirit or spirit of vegetation would be easy and natural. Again the concrete notion of the dying tree or dying vegetation would by a similar process of generalisation glide into a notion of death in general; so that instead of the carrying out of the dying or dead vegetation in spring (as a preliminary to its revival) we should in time get a carrying out of Death itself. The view that in these spring ceremonies Death meant originally the dying or dead vegetation of winter has the high support of W. Mannhardt; and he confirms it by the analogy of the name Death as applied to the spirit of the ripe corn. Commonly the spirit of the ripe corn is conceived, not as dead, but as old, and hence it goes by the name of the Old Man or the Old Woman. But in some places the last sheaf cut at harvest, which is generally believed to be the seat of the corn spirit, is called “the Dead One;” children are warned against entering the corn-fields because Death sits in the corn; and, in a game played by Saxon children in Transylvania at the maize harvest, Death is represented by a child completely covered with maize leaves.891

It seems almost impossible to separate the May trees from the trees or branches that are brought into the village after the celebration of Death. The people who bring them in claim to be bringing in the Summer; therefore, the trees obviously represent Summer. The doll that is sometimes attached to the Summer tree is another representation of Summer, just like May is sometimes represented by both a May tree and a May Lady. Furthermore, the Summer trees are decorated like May trees with ribbons and other adornments; similar to May trees, when they are large, they are planted in the ground and climbed; and like May trees, when they are small, they are carried from door to door by boys or girls singing songs and collecting money. And to emphasize the connection between these two customs, the bearers of the Summer tree sometimes announce that they are bringing in both Summer and May. Therefore, the customs of bringing in May and bringing in Summer are essentially the same; the Summer tree is just another version of the May tree, with the only difference (besides the name) being the time they are brought in. The May tree is usually brought in on May 1st or at Whitsun, while the Summer tree is brought in on the Fourth Sunday in Lent. Thus, if the explanation of the May tree (that it represents the tree spirit or the spirit of vegetation) is correct, then the Summer tree must also represent the tree spirit or the spirit of vegetation. However, we've seen that the Summer tree can sometimes be a revival of the effigy of Death. It follows, therefore, that in these cases, the effigy referred to as Death must represent the tree spirit or the spirit of vegetation. This conclusion is supported, first, by the life-giving and fertilizing influence that the fragments of the effigy of Death are believed to have on both plant and animal life; for this influence, as discussed in the first chapter, is said to be a special attribute of the tree spirit. It is further confirmed by observing that the effigy of Death can sometimes be made of birch twigs, a branch from a beech tree, a threshed harvest sheaf, or of hemp; and that sometimes it is hung on a small tree and carried around by girls collecting money, just like what is done with the May tree and the May Lady, and with the Summer tree and the doll attached to it. In short, we are led to view the expelling of Death and the welcoming of Summer as, at least in some cases, merely another expression of that death and revival of the spirit of vegetation in spring that we witnessed in the killing and resurrection of the Wild Man. The burial and resurrection of the Carnival likely express the same idea. Burying the representative of Carnival under a manure heap makes sense if he is believed to have a life-giving and fertilizing influence similar to that attributed to the effigy of Death. Among the Esthonians, the straw figure that is typically taken out of the village on Shrove Tuesday is not called Carnival, but the Wood-spirit (Metsik), and the connection to the wood-spirit is further shown by attaching it to the top of a tree in the woods, where it remains for a year, receiving almost daily prayers and offerings to protect the livestock; for like a true wood spirit, the Metsik is a patron of cattle. Sometimes the Metsik is made from sheaves of grain. Therefore, we can reasonably suggest that the names Carnival, Death, and Summer are relatively recent and inadequate terms for the beings personified or represented in these customs. The abstractness of these names indicates a modern origin; the personification of seasons like Carnival and Summer, or abstract concepts like death, is hardly primitive. However, the ceremonies themselves clearly show a timeless ancientness; thus, we cannot help but assume that their origins involved ideas that were simpler and more concrete. The concept of a tree, perhaps a specific type of tree (since some savage cultures lack a general word for tree), or even an individual tree, is concrete enough to form a basis from which, through gradual generalization, the broader idea of a spirit of vegetation could emerge. Yet, this general notion of vegetation would easily become associated with the seasons in which it thrives; hence, replacing the term tree spirit or spirit of vegetation with Spring, Summer, or May would be understandable and natural. Likewise, the concrete idea of a dying tree or dying vegetation would, through similar generalization, evolve into an idea of death in general; so that instead of taking out the dying or dead vegetation in spring (as a precursor to its revival), over time we would end up with a carrying out of Death itself. The perspective that in these spring customs Death originally referred to the dying or dead vegetation of winter is strongly backed by W. Mannhardt; he reinforces this by pointing out how the name Death is used to refer to the spirit of ripe grain. Typically, the spirit of ripe grain is viewed not as dead but as old, and that’s why it is referred to as the Old Man or the Old Woman. However, in some regions, the final sheaf harvested is generally thought to be the seat of the grain spirit and is called “the Dead One;” children are cautioned against entering the cornfields because Death resides there; and in a game played by Saxon children in Transylvania during maize harvest, Death is represented by a child completely covered with maize leaves.

[pg 272]

The supposition that behind the conceptions of Death, Carnival, Summer, etc., as embodied in these spring ceremonies, there lurk older and more concrete notions is to a certain extent countenanced by the fact that in Russia funeral ceremonies like those of “Burying the Carnival” and “Carrying out Death” are celebrated under the names, not of Death or the Carnival, but of certain mythic figures, Kostrubonko, Kostroma, Kupalo, Lada, and Yarilo. These Russian ceremonies are observed both in spring and at midsummer. Thus “in Little Russia it used to be the custom at Eastertide to celebrate the funeral of a being called Kostrubonko, the deity of the spring. A circle was formed of singers who moved slowly around a girl who lay on the ground as if dead, and as they went they sang—

The idea that deeper, older concepts exist behind the ideas of Death, Carnival, Summer, and so on, as seen in these spring ceremonies, is somewhat supported by the fact that in Russia, funeral ceremonies like “Burying the Carnival” and “Carrying out Death” are celebrated under the names of certain mythic figures—Kostrubonko, Kostroma, Kupalo, Lada, and Yarilo—rather than Death or the Carnival itself. These Russian ceremonies take place in both spring and midsummer. For example, “in Little Russia, it used to be the custom at Easter to celebrate the funeral of a being called Kostrubonko, the spring deity. A circle was formed of singers who moved slowly around a girl lying on the ground as if dead, and as they went, they sang—”

‘Dead, our Kostrubonko is dead!’
Gone, our beloved one is gone!

until the girl suddenly sprang up, on which the chorus joyfully exclaimed—

until the girl suddenly jumped up, at which point the chorus happily shouted—

Kostrubonko, come to life, come to life!
Awaken, awaken, our beloved one! ”892

On the Eve of St. John (Midsummer Eve) a figure of Kupalo is made of straw and “is dressed in woman's clothes, with a necklace and a floral crown. Then a tree is felled, and, after being decked with ribbons, is set up on some chosen spot. Near this tree, to which they give the name of Marena [Winter or Death], the straw figure is placed, together with a table, on which stand spirits and viands. Afterwards a bonfire is lit, and the young men and maidens jump over it in couples, carrying the figure with them. On [pg 273] the next day they strip the tree and the figure of their ornaments, and throw them both into a stream.”893 On St. Peter's Day (29th June) or on the following Sunday, “the Funeral of Kostroma” or of Lada or of Yarilo is celebrated in Russia. In the Governments of Penza and Simbirsk the “funeral” used to be represented as follows. A bonfire was kindled on the 28th of June, and on the next day the maidens chose one of their number to play the part of Kostroma. Her companions saluted her with deep obeisances, placed her on a board, and carried her to the bank of a stream. There they bathed her in the water, while the oldest girl made a basket of lime-tree bark and beat it like a drum. Then they returned to the village and ended the day with processions, games, and dances.894 In the Murom district, Kostroma was represented by a straw figure dressed in woman's clothes and flowers. This was laid in a trough and carried with songs to the bank of a lake or river. Here the crowd divided into two sides, of which the one attacked and the other defended the figure. At last the assailants gained the day, stripped the figure of its dress and ornaments, tore it in pieces, trod the straw of which it was made under foot, and flung it into the stream; while the defenders of the figure hid their faces in their hands and pretended to bewail the death of Kostroma.895 In the district of Kostroma the burial of Yarilo was celebrated on the 29th or 30th of June. The people chose an old man and gave him a small coffin containing a Priapus-like figure representing Yarilo. This he carried out of the town, followed by women chanting [pg 274] dirges and expressing by their gestures grief and despair. In the open fields a grave was dug, and into it the figure was lowered amid weeping and wailing, after which games and dances were begun, “calling to mind the funeral games celebrated in old times by the pagan Slavonians.”896 In Little Russia the figure of Yarilo was laid in a coffin and carried through the streets after sunset surrounded by drunken women, who kept repeating mournfully, “He is dead! he is dead!” The men lifted and shook the figure as if they were trying to recall the dead man to life. Then they said to the women, “Women, weep not. I know what is sweeter than honey.” But the women continued to lament and chant, as they do at funerals. “Of what was he guilty? He was so good. He will arise no more. O how shall we part from thee? What is life without thee? Arise, if only for a brief hour. But he rises not, he rises not.” At last the Yarilo was buried in a grave.897

On the Eve of St. John (Midsummer Eve), a figure of Kupalo is made from straw and “dressed in women's clothes, with a necklace and a floral crown. Then a tree is cut down, decorated with ribbons, and set up in a chosen spot. Near this tree, named Marena [Winter or Death], the straw figure is placed, along with a table that has food and drinks. After that, a bonfire is lit, and young men and women jump over it in pairs, carrying the figure with them. On the next day, they take off the ornaments from the tree and the figure and throw them both into a stream.” On St. Peter's Day (June 29) or on the following Sunday, “the Funeral of Kostroma” or of Lada or Yarilo is celebrated in Russia. In the Penza and Simbirsk regions, the “funeral” was represented like this: a bonfire was started on June 28, and the next day the girls chose one of their group to play the role of Kostroma. Her friends greeted her with deep bows, placed her on a board, and carried her to the riverbank. There, they bathed her in the water while the oldest girl made a basket from lime tree bark and beat it like a drum. Then they returned to the village and ended the day with parades, games, and dances. In the Murom district, Kostroma was represented by a straw figure dressed in women's clothes and flowers. This was placed in a trough and carried with singing to the bank of a lake or river. Here, the crowd split into two sides, with one side attacking and the other defending the figure. In the end, the attackers won, stripped the figure of its clothes and decorations, tore it into pieces, trampled the straw it was made of, and threw it into the stream, while the defenders hid their faces in their hands and pretended to mourn for Kostroma. In the Kostroma region, Yarilo's burial was celebrated on June 29 or 30. The people picked an old man and gave him a small coffin containing a Priapus-like figure representing Yarilo. He carried it out of town, followed by women singing dirges and showing their grief through their gestures. In the open fields, a grave was dug, and the figure was lowered into it amidst crying and wailing, after which games and dances began, “calling to mind the funeral games celebrated in old times by the pagan Slavonians.” In Little Russia, the figure of Yarilo was placed in a coffin and carried through the streets after sunset, surrounded by drunk women who kept morosely repeating, “He is dead! he is dead!” The men lifted and shook the figure as if trying to bring the dead man back to life. Then they said to the women, “Women, don’t cry. I know what is sweeter than honey.” But the women continued to mourn and chant, just like at funerals. “What did he do wrong? He was so good. He will not rise again. Oh, how will we part with you? What is life without you? Arise, even if only for a brief moment. But he does not rise; he does not rise.” In the end, Yarilo was buried in a grave.

These Russian customs are plainly of the same nature as those which in Austria and Germany are known as “Burying the Carnival” and “Carrying out Death.” Therefore if my interpretation of the latter is right, the Russian Kostroma, Yarilo, etc. must also have been originally embodiments of the spirit of vegetation, and their death must have been regarded as a necessary preliminary to their revival. The revival as a sequel to the death is enacted in the first of the ceremonies described, the death and resurrection of Kostrubonko. The reason why in some of these Russian ceremonies the death of the spirit of vegetation is celebrated at midsummer may [pg 275] be that the decline of summer is dated from Midsummer Day, after which the days begin to shorten, and the sun sets out on his downward journey—

These Russian customs are clearly similar to those in Austria and Germany known as “End of the Carnival” and "Executing Death." So if I’m interpreting the latter correctly, the Russian Kostroma, Yarilo, etc. must have originally represented the spirit of vegetation, and their death was seen as a necessary step for their revival. The revival following death is illustrated in the first ceremony described, the death and resurrection of Kostrubonko. The reason why some of these Russian ceremonies celebrate the death of the spirit of vegetation at midsummer may be because the decline of summer starts from Midsummer Day, after which the days begin to get shorter, and the sun begins its downward journey— [pg 275]

“To the dark hollows”
Where the winter frosts settle.

Such a turning-point of the year, when vegetation might be thought to share the incipient though still almost imperceptible decay of summer, might very well be chosen by primitive man as a fit moment for resorting to those magic ceremonies by which he hopes to stay the decline, or at least to ensure the revival, of plant life.

Such a turning point of the year, when plants seem to be starting to subtly decline along with summer, could easily have been picked by early humans as an appropriate time to engage in magical rituals that they hoped would halt the decline or at least promote the renewal of plant life.

But while the death of vegetation appears to have been represented in all, and its revival in some, of these spring and midsummer ceremonies, there are features in some of them which can hardly be explained on this hypothesis alone. The solemn funeral, the lamentations, and the mourning attire, which often characterise these ceremonies, are indeed appropriate at the death of the beneficent spirit of vegetation. But what shall we say of the glee with which the effigy is often carried out, of the sticks and stones with which it is assailed, and the taunts and curses which are hurled at it? What shall we say of the dread of the effigy evinced by the haste with which the bearers scamper home as soon as they have thrown it away, and by the belief that some one must soon die in any house into which it has looked? This dread might perhaps be explained by a belief that there is a certain infectiousness in the dead spirit of vegetation which renders its approach dangerous. But this explanation, besides being rather strained, does not cover the rejoicings which often attend the carrying out of Death.

But while the death of plants seems to be showcased in all these spring and midsummer ceremonies, and its revival in some, there are aspects of some of them that can hardly be explained by this idea alone. The solemn funerals, the mourning, and the black attire that often characterize these events are certainly fitting for the death of the nurturing spirit of nature. But what do we make of the excitement with which the effigy is often taken out, the sticks and stones that are thrown at it, and the insults and curses directed at it? What do we say about the fear of the effigy shown by the way the bearers rush home as soon as they’ve discarded it, and the belief that someone will soon die in any house it has glanced at? This fear might be explained by a belief that the dead spirit of nature has some sort of contagious quality, making its presence dangerous. However, this explanation is a bit far-fetched and doesn’t account for the celebrations that often accompany the carrying out of Death.

[pg 276]

We must therefore recognise two distinct and seemingly opposite features in these ceremonies; on the one hand, sorrow for the death, and affection and respect for the dead; on the other hand, fear and hatred of the dead, and rejoicings at his death. How the former of these features is to be explained I have attempted to show; how the latter came to be so closely associated with the former is a question which I shall try to answer in the sequel.

We need to recognize two clear and seemingly opposing aspects of these ceremonies; on one side, there’s grief for the death, along with love and respect for the deceased; on the other side, there’s fear and animosity towards the dead, as well as celebrations of their passing. I have tried to explain the former aspect; how the latter became so closely linked to the former is a question I will attempt to answer later.

Before we quit these European customs to go farther afield, it will be well to notice that occasionally the expulsion of Death or of a mythic being is conducted without any visible representative of the personage expelled. Thus at Königshain, near Görlitz (Silesia), all the villagers, young and old, used to go out with straw torches to the top of a neighbouring hill, called Todtenstein (Death-stone), where they lit their torches, and so returned home singing, “We have driven out Death, we are bringing back Summer.”898 In Albania young people light torches of resinous wood on Easter Eve, and march in procession through the village brandishing them. At last they throw the torches into the river, saying, “Ha, Kore, we fling you into the river, like these torches, that you may return no more.” Some say that the intention of the ceremony is to drive out winter; but Kore is conceived as a malignant being who devours children.899

Before we move on from these European customs to explore further, it's worth noting that sometimes the expulsion of Death or a mythical figure happens without any visible representation of the being being expelled. For instance, in Königshain, near Görlitz (Silesia), all the villagers, young and old, would go out with straw torches to the top of a nearby hill called Deadstone (Death-stone), where they would light their torches and then return home singing, "We've banished Death, and we're bringing back Summer."898 In Albania, young people light torches made of resinous wood on Easter Eve and march in a procession through the village, waving them around. Finally, they throw the torches into the river, saying, “Ha, Kore, we throw you into the river, like these torches, so you won't come back.” Some people believe that the purpose of this ceremony is to drive out winter; however, Kore is seen as a harmful being who devours children.899

In the Kânagrâ district, India, there is a custom observed by young girls in spring which closely resembles some of the European spring ceremonies just described. It is called the Ralî Ka melâ, or [pg 277] fair of Rali, the Ralî being a small painted earthen image of Siva or Pârvatî. It lasts through most of Chet (March-April) up to the Sankrânt of Baisâkh (April), and is in vogue all over the Kânagrâ district. Its celebration is entirely confined to young girls. On a morning in March all the young girls of the village take small baskets of dûb grass and flowers to a certain fixed spot, where they throw them in a heap. Round this heap they stand in a circle and sing. This goes on every day for ten days, till the heap of grass and flowers has reached a fair height. Then they cut in the jungle two branches having three prongs at one end, and place them, prongs downwards, over the heap of flowers, so as to make two tripods or pyramids. On the single uppermost points of these branches they get an image-maker to construct two clay images, one to represent Siva, and the other Pârvatî. The girls then divide themselves into two parties, one for Siva and one for Pârvatî, and marry the images in the usual way, leaving out no part of the ceremony. After the marriage they have a feast, the cost of which is defrayed by contributions solicited from their parents. Then at the next Sankrânt (Baisâkh) they all go together to the riverside, throw the images into a deep pool, and weep over the place, as though they were performing funeral obsequies. The boys of the neighbourhood often annoy them by diving after the images, bringing them up, and waving them about while the girls are crying over them. The object of the fair is said to be to secure a good husband.900

In the Kânagrâ district of India, there’s a tradition followed by young girls in the spring that closely resembles some European spring ceremonies just mentioned. It’s called the Ralî Ka melâ, or the [pg 277] fair of Rali, where Ralî is a small painted earthen figure of Siva or Pârvatî. The celebration lasts throughout most of Chet (March-April) until the Sankrânt of Baisâkh (April), and it is popular all over the Kânagrâ district. Only young girls participate in this celebration. One morning in March, all the young girls in the village gather small baskets of dûb grass and flowers and take them to a designated spot, where they toss them into a heap. They then form a circle around this heap and sing. This routine continues daily for ten days, during which the pile of grass and flowers grows nicely. They then venture into the jungle to cut two branches with three prongs at one end, which they place prongs down over the heap of flowers, creating two tripods or pyramids. At the very top of these branches, they have a craftsman make two clay figures, one of Siva and one of Pârvatî. The girls then split into two groups, one for Siva and one for Pârvatî, and conduct a marriage ceremony for the figures, ensuring no part of the ritual is missed. After the wedding, they celebrate with a feast, the expenses of which are covered by contributions from their parents. Then, at the next Sankrânt (Baisâkh), they all head to the riverside, toss the figures into a deep pool, and mourn over the spot as if they were performing funeral rites. The neighborhood boys often tease them by diving for the figures, pulling them up, and waving them around while the girls are crying over them. The purpose of the fair is said to be to secure a good husband.

That in this Indian ceremony the deities Siva and Pârvatî are conceived as spirits of vegetation seems to [pg 278] be proved by the fact that their images are placed on branches over a heap of grass and flowers. Here, as often in European folk-custom, the divinities of vegetation are represented in duplicate, by plants and by puppets. The marriage of these Indian deities in spring corresponds to the European ceremonies in which the marriage of the vernal spirits of vegetation is represented by the King and Queen of May, the May Bride, Bridegroom of the May, etc.901 The throwing of the images into the water, and the mourning for them, are the equivalents of the European customs of throwing the dead spirit of vegetation (under the name of Death, Yarilo, Kostroma, etc.) into the water and lamenting over it. Again, in India, as often in Europe, the rite is performed exclusively by females. The notion that the ceremony was effective for procuring husbands to the girls can be explained by the quickening and fertilising influence which the spirit of vegetation is believed to exert upon human and animal, as well as upon vegetable life.902

In this Indian ceremony, the deities Siva and Pârvatî are seen as spirits of vegetation, which is evident since their images are placed on branches over a pile of grass and flowers. Similar to many European folk customs, the nature deities are symbolized in two forms, through plants and puppets. The spring marriage of these Indian deities parallels the European rituals where the union of spring spirits is depicted by the May King and Queen, the May Bride, and the May Bridegroom. The act of throwing the images into the water and mourning for them is equivalent to European traditions of casting the deceased spirit of vegetation (known as Death, Yarilo, Kostroma, etc.) into water and grieving over it. Additionally, in India, much like in Europe, this rite is performed solely by women. The belief that this ceremony helps girls find husbands can be understood by the idea that the spirit of vegetation is thought to have a life-giving and fertilizing effect on humans, animals, and plant life.

§ 4.—Adonis.

But it is in Egypt and Western Asia that the death and resurrection of vegetation appear to have been most widely celebrated with ceremonies like those of modern Europe. Under the names of Osiris, Adonis, Thammuz, Attis, and Dionysus, the Egyptians, Syrians, Babylonians, Phrygians, and Greeks represented the decay and revival of vegetation with rites which, as the ancients themselves recognised, [pg 279] were substantially the same, and which find their parallels in the spring and midsummer customs of our European peasantry. The nature and worship of these deities have been discussed at length by many learned writers; all that I propose to do is to sketch those salient features in their ritual and legends which seem to establish the view here taken of their nature. We begin with Adonis or Thammuz.

But it is in Egypt and Western Asia that the death and resurrection of plants seem to have been most widely celebrated with ceremonies similar to those in modern Europe. Under the names of Osiris, Adonis, Thammuz, Attis, and Dionysus, the Egyptians, Syrians, Babylonians, Phrygians, and Greeks represented the decay and revival of vegetation through rites that, as the ancients themselves recognized, [pg 279] were essentially the same, and which have counterparts in the spring and midsummer customs of our European peasantry. The nature and worship of these deities have been thoroughly discussed by many scholars; all I intend to do is to outline the key aspects of their rituals and legends that seem to support the perspective presented here about their essence. We start with Adonis or Thammuz.

The worship of Adonis was practised by the Semitic peoples of Syria, from whom it was borrowed by the Greeks as early at least as the fifth century before Christ. The name Adonis is the Phoenician Adon, “lord.”903 He was said to have been a fair youth, beloved by Aphrodite (the Semitic Astarte), but slain by a boar in his youthful prime. His death was annually lamented with a bitter wailing, chiefly by women; images of him, dressed to resemble corpses, were carried out as to burial and then thrown into the sea or into springs;904 and in some places his revival was celebrated on the following day.905 But the ceremonies varied somewhat both in the manner and the season of their celebration in different places. At Alexandria images of Adonis and Aphrodite were displayed on two couches; beside them were set ripe fruits of all kinds, cakes, plants growing in flower pots, and green bowers twined with anise. The marriage of the lovers was celebrated one day, and on the next the image of Adonis was borne by women attired as mourners, with streaming hair and bared breasts, to [pg 280] the sea-shore and committed to the waves.906 The date at which this Alexandrian ceremony was observed is not expressly stated; but from the mention of the ripe fruits it has been inferred that it took place in late summer.907 At Byblus the death of Adonis was annually mourned with weeping, wailing, and beating of the breast; but next day he was believed to come to life again and ascend up to heaven in the presence of his worshippers.908 This celebration appears to have taken place in spring; for its date was determined by the discoloration of the river Adonis, and this has been observed by modern travellers to occur in spring. At that season the red earth washed down from the mountains by the rain tinges the water of the river and even the sea for a great way with a blood-red hue, and the crimson stain was believed to be the blood of Adonis, annually wounded to death by the boar on Mount Lebanon.909 Again, the red anemone910 was said to have sprung from the blood of Adonis; and as the anemone blooms in Syria about Easter, this is a fresh proof that the festival of Adonis, or at least one of his festivals, was celebrated in spring. The name of the flower is probably derived from Naaman (“darling”), which seems to have been an epithet of Adonis. The Arabs still call the anemone “wounds of the Naaman.”911

The worship of Adonis was practiced by the Semitic peoples of Syria, and the Greeks adopted it as early as the fifth century BCE. The name Adonis comes from the Phoenician Adon, "lord."903 He was said to be a handsome young man, loved by Aphrodite (the Semitic Astarte), but killed by a boar in his youth. His death was mourned every year with loud wails, especially by women; images of him, dressed to look like corpses, were taken out for burial and then tossed into the sea or into springs;904 and in some places, his resurrection was celebrated the next day.905 However, the rituals varied somewhat in both their form and timing across different regions. In Alexandria, images of Adonis and Aphrodite were displayed on two couches; nearby, various ripe fruits, cakes, potted plants, and green arbors decorated with anise were arranged. The lovers' wedding was celebrated one day, and on the next day, women dressed as mourners, with disheveled hair and bare breasts, carried the image of Adonis to [pg 280] the shore and released it into the waves.906 The specific date for this Alexandrian ceremony is not explicitly stated, but the mention of ripe fruits suggests it occurred in late summer.907 In Byblus, Adonis's death was mourned each year with weeping, wailing, and breast-beating; however, the following day, it was believed he would come back to life and ascend to heaven in front of his worshippers.908 This celebration seems to have occurred in spring, as its timing was linked to the discoloration of the river Adonis, which modern travelers have noted happens in spring. During that season, the red soil washed down from the mountains by rain tints the river's water and even the sea a deep red, and this crimson stain was thought to be the blood of Adonis, who was annually killed by the boar on Mount Lebanon.909 Additionally, the red anemone910 was said to have grown from Adonis's blood; and since the anemone blooms in Syria around Easter, this further indicates that Adonis's festival, or at least one of his festivals, was celebrated in spring. The flower's name likely comes from Naaman (“babe”), which seems to have been an epithet of Adonis. The Arabs still refer to the anemone as "Naaman's wounds."911

[pg 281]

The resemblance of these ceremonies to the Indian and European ceremonies previously described is obvious. In particular, apart from the somewhat doubtful date of its celebration, the Alexandrian ceremony is almost identical with the Indian. In both of them the marriage of two divinities, whose connection with vegetation seems indicated by the fresh plants with which they are surrounded, is celebrated in effigy, and the effigies are afterwards mourned over and thrown into the water.912 From the similarity of these customs to each other and to the spring and midsummer customs of modern Europe we should naturally expect that they all admit of a common explanation. Hence, if the explanation here adopted of the latter is correct, the ceremony of the death and resurrection of Adonis must also have been a representation of the decay and revival of vegetation. The inference thus based on the similarity of the customs is confirmed by the following features in the legend and ritual of Adonis. His connection with vegetation comes out at once in the common story of his birth. He was said to have been born from a myrrh-tree, the bark of which bursting, after a ten months' gestation, allowed the lovely infant to come forth. According to some, a boar rent the bark with his tusk and so opened a passage for the babe. A faint rationalistic colour was given to the legend by saying that his mother was a woman named Myrrh, who had been turned into a myrrh-tree soon after she had conceived the child.913 Again the story that Adonis [pg 282] spent half, or according to others a third, of the year in the lower world and the rest of it in the upper world,914 is explained most simply and naturally by supposing that he represented vegetation, especially the corn, which lies buried in the earth half the year and reappears above ground the other half. Certainly of the annual phenomena of nature there is none which suggests so obviously the idea of a yearly death and resurrection as the disappearance and reappearance of vegetation in autumn and spring. Adonis has been taken for the sun; but there is nothing in the sun's annual course within the temperate and tropical zones to suggest that he is dead for half or a third of the year and alive for the other half or two-thirds. He might, indeed, be conceived as weakened in winter,915 but dead he could not be thought to be; his daily reappearance contradicts the supposition. Within the arctic circle, where the sun annually disappears for a continuous period of from twenty-four hours to six months, according to the latitude, his annual death and resurrection would certainly be an obvious idea; but no one has suggested that the Adonis worship came from those regions. On the other hand the annual death and revival of vegetation is a conception which readily presents itself to men in every stage of savagery and civilisation; and the vastness of the scale on which this yearly decay and regeneration [pg 283] takes place, together with man's intimate dependence on it for subsistence, combine to render it the most striking annual phenomenon in nature, at least within the temperate zones. It is no wonder that a phenomenon so important, so striking, and so universal should, by suggesting similar ideas, have given rise to similar rites in many lands. We may, therefore, accept as probable an explanation of the Adonis worship which accords so well with the facts of nature and with the analogy of similar rites in other lands, and which besides is countenanced by a considerable body of opinion amongst the ancients themselves.916

The similarity of these ceremonies to the Indian and European ceremonies previously mentioned is clear. Specifically, aside from the uncertain date of its celebration, the Alexandrian ceremony closely resembles the Indian one. In both, the marriage of two deities, indicated by the fresh plants surrounding them, is celebrated in effigy, and the effigies are later mourned and thrown into the water. From the resemblance of these customs to each other and to the spring and midsummer traditions of modern Europe, we would naturally expect all of them to have a common explanation. Therefore, if the explanation we have adopted for the latter is correct, the ceremony of Adonis's death and resurrection must also represent the decay and revival of vegetation. This conclusion is supported by several elements in the legend and ritual of Adonis. His connection to vegetation is evident in the shared story of his birth. He was said to have been born from a myrrh tree, whose bark split after a ten-month gestation, allowing the beautiful infant to emerge. According to some, a boar tore the bark with its tusk, creating a path for the baby. A somewhat rational explanation of the legend suggests that his mother was a woman named Myrrh, who was transformed into a myrrh tree shortly after conceiving. Again, the story that Adonis spent half, or according to others a third, of the year in the underworld and the rest in the upper world is most simply understood by assuming he represented vegetation, particularly corn, which lies buried in the ground for half the year and reappears above the surface for the other half. Certainly, of the annual phenomena in nature, none conveys the idea of a yearly death and resurrection as clearly as the disappearance and reappearance of vegetation in autumn and spring. Adonis has been identified with the sun; however, there’s nothing in the sun's annual journey in temperate and tropical zones to suggest he is dead for half or a third of the year and alive for the other half or two-thirds. He might indeed be thought of as weakened in winter, but he couldn’t be considered dead; his daily return contradicts this idea. In the Arctic Circle, where the sun disappears annually for a continuous period ranging from twenty-four hours to six months, the concept of his death and resurrection might be very apparent; however, no one has claimed that Adonis worship originated from those areas. On the other hand, the annual death and revival of vegetation is a notion that easily occurs to people at every level of savagery and civilization; the vast scale of this yearly decay and regeneration, along with humanity's close dependence on it for survival, makes it the most noticeable annual phenomenon in nature, especially in temperate zones. It’s no surprise that such an important, striking, and universal phenomenon has inspired similar rites in many places. Therefore, we can consider it likely that the worship of Adonis can be explained in a way that aligns well with the facts of nature and the similarities of rituals in other regions, and it is also supported by a significant body of opinion among the ancients themselves.

The character of Thammuz or Adonis as a corn-spirit comes out plainly in an account of his festival given by an Arabic writer of the tenth century. In describing the rites and sacrifices observed at the different seasons of the year by the heathen Syrians of Harran, he says:—“Thammuz (July). In the middle of this month is the festival of el-Bûgât, that is, of the weeping women, and this is the Tâ-uz festival, which is celebrated in honour of the god Tâ-uz. The women bewail him, because his lord slew him so cruelly, ground his bones in a mill, and then scattered them to [pg 284] the wind. The women (during this festival) eat nothing which has been ground in a mill, but limit their diet to steeped wheat, sweet vetches, dates, raisins, and the like.”917 Thammuz (of which Tâ-uz is only another form of pronunciation) is here like Burns's John Barleycorn—

The character of Thammuz or Adonis as a corn spirit is clearly illustrated in an account of his festival provided by an Arabic writer from the tenth century. He describes the rituals and sacrifices practiced at various times of the year by the pagan Syrians of Harran, stating:—"Thammuz (July). In the middle of this month is the festival of el-Bûgât, which translates to the festival of the weeping women, and this is the Tâ-uz festival, celebrated in honor of the god Tâ-uz. The women mourn for him because his lord killed him so brutally, ground his bones in a mill, and then scattered them to the wind. During this festival, the women avoid eating anything that has been milled, instead sticking to soaked wheat, sweet vetches, dates, raisins, and similar foods."917 Thammuz (of which Tâ-uz is just a different pronunciation) is similar to Burns's John Barleycorn—

They wasted away in a blazing fire,
The essence of his bones;
But a miller treated him worst of all,
For he crushed him between two stones.918

But perhaps the best proof that Adonis was a deity of vegetation is furnished by the gardens of Adonis, as they were called. These were baskets or pots filled with earth, in which wheat, barley, lettuces, fennel, and various kinds of flowers were sown and tended for eight days, chiefly or exclusively by women. Fostered by the sun's heat, the plants shot up rapidly, but having no root withered as rapidly away, and at the end of eight days were carried out with the images of the dead Adonis, and flung with them into the sea or into springs.919 At Athens these ceremonies were observed at midsummer. For we know that the fleet which Athens fitted out against Syracuse, and by the destruction of which her power was permanently crippled, sailed at midsummer, and by an ominous coincidence the sombre rites of Adonis were being celebrated at the very time. As the troops marched down to the harbour to embark, the streets through which they [pg 285] passed were lined with coffins and corpse-like effigies, and the air was rent with the noise of women wailing for the dead Adonis. The circumstance cast a gloom over the sailing of the most splendid armament that Athens ever sent to sea.920

But maybe the best evidence that Adonis was a god of vegetation comes from the gardens of Adonis, as they were called. These were baskets or pots filled with soil, where wheat, barley, lettuce, fennel, and various kinds of flowers were planted and cared for over eight days, mostly or entirely by women. Nurtured by the sun’s warmth, the plants grew quickly, but without roots, they withered just as fast. At the end of eight days, they were carried out along with images of the dead Adonis and thrown into the sea or into springs. 919 In Athens, these ceremonies took place at midsummer. We know that the fleet Athens sent against Syracuse, which ultimately weakened its power, set sail at midsummer, and by a grim coincidence, the mournful rites of Adonis were being celebrated at the same time. As the troops marched down to the harbor to board the ships, the streets they passed were filled with coffins and corpse-like effigies, and the air was filled with the sounds of women mourning for the dead Adonis. This situation cast a shadow over the departure of the most impressive fleet that Athens ever sent to sea. 920

These gardens of Adonis are most naturally interpreted as representatives of Adonis or manifestations of his power; they represented him, true to his original nature, in vegetable form, while the images of him, with which they were carried out and cast into the water, represented him in his later anthropomorphic form. All these Adonis ceremonies, if I am right, were originally intended as charms to promote the growth and revival of vegetation; and the principle by which they were supposed to produce this effect was sympathetic magic. As was explained in the first chapter, primitive people suppose that by representing or mimicking the effect which they desire to produce they actually help to produce it; thus by sprinkling water they make rain, by lighting a fire they make sunshine, and so on. Similarly by mimicking the growth of crops, they hope to insure a good harvest. The rapid growth of the wheat and barley in the gardens of Adonis was intended to make the corn shoot up; and the throwing of the gardens and of the images into the water was a charm to secure a due supply of fertilising rain.921 The same, I take it, was the object of throwing the [pg 286] effigies of Death and the Carnival into water in the corresponding ceremonies of modern Europe. We have seen that the custom of drenching a leaf-clad person (who undoubtedly personifies vegetation) with water is still resorted to in Europe for the express purpose of producing rain.922 Similarly the custom of throwing water on the last corn cut at harvest, or on the person who brings it home (a custom observed in Germany and France, and till quite lately in England and Scotland), is in some places practised with the avowed intent to procure rain for the next year's crops. Thus in Wallachia and amongst the Roumanians of Transylvania, when a girl is bringing home a crown made of the last ears of corn cut at harvest, all who meet her hasten to throw water on her, and two farm-servants are placed at the door for the purpose; for they believe that if this were not done, the crops next year would perish from drought.923 So amongst the Saxons of Transylvania, the person who wears the wreath made of the last corn cut (sometimes the reaper who cut the last corn also wears the wreath) is drenched with water to the skin; for the wetter he is the better will be next year's harvest, and the more grain there will be threshed out.924 At the spring ploughing in Prussia, when the ploughmen and sowers returned in the evening from their work in the fields, the farmer's wife and the servants used to splash water over them. The ploughmen and sowers retorted by seizing every one, throwing them into the pond, and ducking them under the water. The [pg 287] farmer's wife might claim exemption on payment of a forfeit; but every one else had to be ducked. By observing this custom they hoped to ensure a due supply of rain for the seed.925 Also after harvest in Prussia, the person who wore a wreath made of the last corn cut was drenched with water, while a prayer was uttered that “as the corn had sprung up and multiplied through the water, so it might spring up and multiply in the barn and granary.”926 In a Babylonian legend, the goddess Istar (Astarte, Aphrodite) descends to Hades to fetch the water of life with which to restore to life the dead Thammuz, and it appears that the water was thrown over him at a great mourning ceremony, at which men and women stood round the funeral pyre of Thammuz lamenting.927 This legend, as Mannhardt points out, is probably a mythical explanation of a Babylonian festival resembling the Syrian festival of Adonis. At this festival, which doubtless took place in the month Thammuz (June-July)928 and therefore about midsummer, the dead Thammuz was probably represented in effigy, water was poured over him, and he came to life again. This Babylonian legend is, therefore, of importance, since it confirms the view that the purpose for which the images and gardens of Adonis were thrown into the water was to effect the resurrection of the god, that [pg 288] is, to secure the revival of vegetation. The connection of Thammuz with vegetation is proved by a fragment of a Babylonian hymn, in which Thammuz is described as dwelling in the midst of a great tree at the centre of the earth.929

These gardens of Adonis can naturally be seen as representations of Adonis or expressions of his power; they depicted him, true to his original essence, in plant form, while the images of him, which were created and cast into the water, represented him in his later human form. All these Adonis rituals, if I’m correct, were initially meant as charms to encourage the growth and revival of plants; the principle behind their effectiveness was sympathetic magic. As explained in the first chapter, primitive people believe that by representing or imitating the effect they want to create, they actually help to bring it about; for example, by sprinkling water they create rain, by lighting a fire they create sunshine, and so on. Likewise, by mimicking the growth of crops, they hope to ensure a good harvest. The quick growth of the wheat and barley in the gardens of Adonis was meant to stimulate corn growth; and throwing the gardens and the images into the water was a charm to ensure adequate fertilizing rain. I believe the same was true for throwing the effigies of Death and Carnival into water during similar ceremonies in modern Europe. We have noted that the practice of soaking a leaf-clad person (who certainly symbolizes vegetation) with water is still common in Europe for the specific purpose of invoking rain. Similarly, the tradition of splashing water on the last ear of corn harvested or on the person who brings it home (a practice observed in Germany and France, and until very recently in England and Scotland) is sometimes done with the stated intent of securing rain for the next year’s crops. For example, in Wallachia and among the Romanians of Transylvania, when a girl brings home a crown made of the last ears of corn cut during harvest, everyone who meets her rushes to splash water on her, and two farmhands are stationed at the door for this reason; they believe that if this isn’t done, the next year’s crops will suffer from drought. Similarly, amongst the Saxons of Transylvania, the person wearing the wreath made from the last corn cut (sometimes the reaper of the last corn also wears it) gets soaked through; the more soaked they are, the better the harvest will be for the next year, and the more grain will be threshed. During the spring plowing in Prussia, when the plowmen and seeders returned in the evening from their work in the fields, the farmer's wife and the servants would splash water on them. The plowmen and seeders would retaliate by grabbing everyone, throwing them into the pond, and dunking them under the water. The farmer's wife could avoid this by paying a forfeit; but everyone else was required to be dunked. By following this custom, they hoped to ensure a proper supply of rain for the seeds. Additionally, after harvest in Prussia, the person wearing a wreath made from the last corn cut was drenched in water while a prayer was said that “as the corn had sprung up and multiplied through the water, so it might spring up and multiply in the barn and granary.” In a Babylonian legend, the goddess Istar (Astarte, Aphrodite) goes down to Hades to fetch the water of life needed to restore the dead Thammuz to life, and it seems that the water was poured over him during a significant mourning ceremony, where men and women gathered around Thammuz's funeral pyre lamenting. This legend, as Mannhardt points out, likely serves as a mythical explanation of a Babylonian festival similar to the Syrian festival of Adonis. At this festival, which likely took place in the month of Thammuz (June-July) and thus around midsummer, the dead Thammuz was probably represented in effigy, water was poured over him, and he was brought back to life. This Babylonian legend is significant as it reinforces the idea that the purpose of throwing the images and gardens of Adonis into the water was to achieve the resurrection of the god, which means to ensure the revival of vegetation. The link between Thammuz and vegetation is supported by a fragment of a Babylonian hymn, in which Thammuz is described as living in the midst of a great tree at the center of the earth.

The opinion that the gardens of Adonis are essentially charms to promote the growth of vegetation, especially of the crops, and that they belong to the same class of customs as those spring and midsummer folk-customs of modern Europe which have been described, does not rest for its evidence merely on the intrinsic probability of the case. Fortunately, we are able to show that gardens of Adonis (if we may use the expression in a general sense) are still planted, first, by a primitive race at their sowing season, and, second, by European peasants at midsummer. Amongst the Oraons and Mundas of Bengal, when the time comes for planting out the rice which has been grown in seed-beds, a party of young people of both sexes go to the forest and cut a young Karma tree, or the branch of one. Bearing it in triumph they return dancing, singing, and beating drums, and plant it in the middle of the village dancing-ground. A sacrifice is offered to the tree; and next morning the youth of both sexes, linked arm-in-arm, dance in a great circle round the Karma tree, which is decked with strips of coloured cloth and sham bracelets and necklets of plaited straw. As a preparation for the festival, the daughters of the head-man of the village cultivate blades of barley in a peculiar way. The seed is sown in moist, sandy soil, mixed with turmeric, and the blades sprout and unfold of a pale yellow or primrose colour. On the day of [pg 289] the festival the girls take up these blades and carry them in baskets to the dancing-ground, where, prostrating themselves reverentially, they place some of the plants before the Karma tree. Finally, the Karma tree is taken away and thrown into a stream or tank.930 The meaning of planting these barley blades and then presenting them to the Karma tree is hardly open to question. We have seen that trees are supposed to exercise a quickening influence upon the growth of crops, and that amongst the very people in question—the Mundas or Mundaris—“the grove deities are held responsible for the crops.”931 Therefore, when at the season for planting out the rice the Mundas bring in a tree and treat it with so much respect, their object can only be to foster thereby the growth of the rice which is about to be planted out; and the custom of causing barley blades to sprout rapidly and then presenting them to the tree must be intended to subserve the same purpose, perhaps by reminding the tree-spirit of his duty towards the crops, and stimulating his activity by this visible example of rapid vegetable growth. The throwing of the Karma tree into the water is to be interpreted as a rain-charm. Whether the barley blades are also thrown into the water is not said; but, if my interpretation of the custom is right, probably they are so. A distinction between this Bengal custom and the Greek rites of Adonis is that in the former the tree-spirit appears in his original form as a tree; whereas in the Adonis worship he appears in anthropomorphic form, represented as a dead man, though his vegetable nature is indicated by the gardens of [pg 290] Adonis, which are, so to say, a secondary manifestation of his original power as a tree-spirit.

The idea that the gardens of Adonis are basically charms to encourage the growth of plants, especially crops, and that they fit into the same category of customs as those spring and midsummer folk traditions in modern Europe, isn't just based on how likely it seems. Fortunately, we can demonstrate that gardens of Adonis (if we can use that term broadly) are still created, first by a primitive culture during their planting season, and second by European farmers in midsummer. Among the Oraons and Mundas of Bengal, when it's time to transplant rice grown in seed-beds, a group of young people from both genders go to the forest to cut down a young Karma tree or its branch. They return dancing, singing, and drumming while proudly carrying it, and then plant it in the center of the village's dancing area. A sacrifice is made to the tree, and the next morning, the young people, linking arms, dance in a large circle around the Karma tree, which is adorned with strips of colored cloth and fake bracelets and necklaces made of woven straw. To prepare for the festival, the daughters of the village head cultivate blades of barley in a special way. They plant the seeds in moist, sandy soil mixed with turmeric, and the blades grow and unfold in a pale yellow or primrose color. On the day of the festival, the girls gather these blades and carry them in baskets to the dancing area, where they humbly bow and place some of the plants in front of the Karma tree. Finally, the Karma tree is removed and thrown into a stream or tank. The meaning behind planting these barley blades and then offering them to the Karma tree is pretty clear. We know that trees are believed to have a stimulating effect on crop growth, and that among the Mundas or Mundaris, “the grove deities are held responsible for the crops.” Therefore, when it’s time to transplant the rice, and the Mundas bring in a tree and treat it with such respect, their goal must be to encourage the growth of the rice that is about to be planted. The practice of making barley blades sprout quickly and then giving them to the tree likely serves the same purpose, perhaps as a way to remind the tree-spirit of its duty to the crops, and to motivate it by showcasing this visible example of rapid plant growth. Throwing the Karma tree into the water is understood as a rain charm. It’s unclear if the barley blades are also tossed into the water, but if my interpretation is correct, then they probably are. A difference between this Bengali custom and the Greek rites of Adonis is that in the former, the tree-spirit appears in its original form as a tree; while in the Adonis worship, it appears as a human figure, represented as a dead man, though its plant nature is symbolized by the gardens of Adonis, which are, in a sense, a secondary representation of its original power as a tree-spirit.

In Sardinia the gardens of Adonis are still planted in connection with the great midsummer festival which bears the name of St. John. At the end of March or on the 1st of April a young man of the village presents himself to a girl and asks her to be his comare (gossip or sweetheart), offering to be her compare. The invitation is considered as an honour by the girl's family, and is gladly accepted. At the end of May the girl makes a pot of the bark of the cork-tree, fills it with earth, and sows a handful of wheat and barley in it. The pot being placed in the sun and often watered, the corn sprouts rapidly and has a good head by Midsummer Eve (St. John's Eve, 23d June). The pot is then called Erme or Nenneri. On St. John's Day the young man and the girl, dressed in their best, accompanied by a long retinue and preceded by children gambolling and frolicking, move in procession to a church outside the village. Here they break the pot by throwing it against the door of the church. Then they sit down in a ring on the grass and eat eggs and herbs to the music of flutes. Wine is mixed in a cup and passed round, each one drinking as it passes. Then they join hands and sing “Sweethearts of St. John” (Compare e comare di San Giovanni) over and over again, the flutes playing the while. When they tire of singing, they stand up and dance gaily in a ring till evening. This is the general Sardinian custom. As practised at Ozieri it has some special features. In May the pots are made of cork-bark and planted with corn, as already described. Then on the Eve of St. John the window-sills are draped with rich cloths, on which the pots are placed, [pg 291] adorned with crimson and blue silk and ribbons of various colours. On each of the pots they used formerly to place a statuette or cloth doll dressed as a woman, or a Priapus-like figure made of paste; but this custom, rigorously forbidden by the Church, has fallen into disuse. The village swains go about in a troop to look at the pots and their decorations and to wait for the girls, who assemble on the public square to celebrate the festival. Here a great bonfire is kindled, round which they dance and make merry. Those who wish to be “Sweethearts of St. John” act as follows. The young man stands on one side of the bonfire and the girl on the other, and they, in a manner, join hands by each grasping one end of a long stick, which they pass three times backwards and forwards across the fire, thus thrusting their hands thrice rapidly into the flames. This seals their relationship to each other. Dancing and music go on till late at night.932 The correspondence of these Sardinian pots of grain to the gardens of Adonis seems complete, and the images formerly placed in them answer to the images of Adonis which accompanied his gardens.

In Sardinia, the gardens of Adonis are still planted in connection with the big midsummer festival named after St. John. At the end of March or on April 1st, a young man from the village approaches a girl and asks her to be his compare (gossip or sweetheart), offering to be her compare. The girl's family sees this as an honor, and they happily accept. By the end of May, the girl prepares a pot from cork tree bark, fills it with soil, and sows a handful of wheat and barley. The pot is placed in the sun and watered frequently, causing the grains to sprout quickly, reaching a good height by Midsummer Eve (St. John’s Eve, June 23). This pot is then called Erme or Nenneri. On St. John's Day, the young man and the girl, dressed in their finest clothes, are accompanied by a long procession, with children playing and having fun, as they head to a church outside the village. There, they break the pot by throwing it against the church door. They then sit in a circle on the grass, eating eggs and herbs while flutes play music. Wine is mixed in a cup and passed around for everyone to drink. Then they hold hands and sing “Sweethearts of St. John’s” (Compare and comare of San Giovanni) repeatedly as the flutes play. When they get tired of singing, they stand up and dance joyfully in a circle until evening. This is the traditional Sardinian custom. At Ozieri, this tradition includes some unique elements. In May, the pots made of cork bark are planted with corn, as previously mentioned. Then, on the Eve of St. John, they drape the window sills with rich fabrics, on which the pots are placed, [pg 291] adorned with crimson and blue silk and ribbons of various colors. In the past, they used to place a statuette or cloth doll dressed as a woman, or a Priapus-like figure made of paste on each of the pots, but this practice has fallen out of favor due to strict prohibitions from the Church. The village boys gather in groups to admire the pots and their decorations while waiting for the girls, who gather in the town square to celebrate the festival. Here, a large bonfire is lit, around which they dance and have fun. Those who wish to be “Sweethearts of St. John” do the following: the young man stands on one side of the bonfire and the girl on the other, joining hands by each holding one end of a long stick, which they pass three times back and forth over the fire, briefly thrusting their hands into the flames. This action seals their bond. Dancing and music continue until late at night. 932 The connection between these Sardinian pots of grain and the gardens of Adonis seems complete, and the images that used to be placed in them correspond to the images of Adonis that accompanied his gardens.

This Sardinian custom is one of those midsummer customs, once celebrated in many parts of Europe, a chief feature of which is the great bonfire round which people dance and over which they leap. Examples of these customs have already been cited from Sweden and Bohemia.933 These examples sufficiently [pg 292] prove the connection of the midsummer bonfire with vegetation; for both in Sweden and Bohemia an essential part of the festival is the raising of a May-pole or Midsummer-tree, which in Bohemia is burned in the bonfire. Again, in the Russian midsummer ceremony cited above,934 the straw figure of Kupalo, the representative of vegetation, is placed beside a May-pole or Midsummer-tree and then carried to and fro across a bonfire. Kupalo is here represented in duplicate, in tree-form by the Midsummer-tree, and in anthropomorphic form by the straw effigy, just as Adonis was represented both by an image and a garden of Adonis; and the duplicate representatives of Kupalo, like those of Adonis, are finally cast into water. In the Sardinian custom the Gossips or Sweethearts of St. John probably correspond to the Lord and Lady or King and Queen of May. In the province of Blekinge (Sweden), part of the midsummer festival is the election of a Midsummer Bride, who chooses her bridegroom; a collection is made for the pair, who for the time being are looked upon as man and wife.935 Such Midsummer pairs are probably, like the May pairs, representatives of the spirit of vegetation in its reproductive capacity; they represent in flesh and blood what the images of Siva and Pârvatî in the Indian ceremony, and the images of Adonis and Aphrodite in the Alexandrian ceremony, represented in effigy. The reason why ceremonies whose aim is to foster the growth of vegetation should thus be associated with bonfires; why in particular the representative of vegetation should be burned in tree-form or passed across the fire in effigy or in the form of a living couple, will be explained later on. Here [pg 293] it is enough to have proved the fact of such association and therefore to have obviated the objection which might have been raised to my interpretation of the Sardinian custom, on the ground that the bonfires have nothing to do with vegetation. One more piece of evidence may here be given to prove the contrary. In some parts of Germany young men and girls leap over midsummer bonfires for the express purpose of making the hemp or flax grow tall.936 We may, therefore, assume that in the Sardinian custom the blades of wheat and barley which are forced on in pots for the midsummer festival, and which correspond so closely to the gardens of Adonis, form one of those widely-spread midsummer ceremonies, the original object of which was to promote the growth of vegetation, and especially of the crops. But as, by an easy extension of ideas, the spirit of vegetation was believed to exercise a beneficent influence over human as well as animal life, the gardens of Adonis would be supposed, like the May-trees or May-boughs, to bring good luck to the family or to the individual who planted them; and even after the idea had been abandoned that they operated actively to bring good luck, omens might still be drawn from them as to the good or bad fortune of families or individuals. It is thus that magic dwindles into divination. Accordingly we find modes of divination practised at midsummer which resemble more or less closely the gardens of Adonis. Thus an anonymous Italian writer of the sixteenth century has recorded that it was customary to sow barley and wheat a few days before the festival of St. John (Midsummer Day) and also before that of St. Vitus; and it was believed that the person for whom they were [pg 294] sown would be fortunate and get a good husband or a good wife, if the grain sprouted well; but if they sprouted ill, he or she would be unlucky.937 In various parts of Italy and all over Sicily it is still customary to put plants in water or in earth on the Eve of St. John, and from the manner in which they are found to be blooming or fading on St. John's Day omens are drawn, especially as to fortune in love. Amongst the plants used for this purpose are Ciuri di S. Giuvanni (St. John's wort?) and nettles.938 In Prussia two hundred years ago the farmers used to send out their servants, especially their maids, to gather St. John's wort on Midsummer Eve or Midsummer Day (St. John's Day). When they had fetched it, the farmer took as many plants as there were persons and stuck them in the wall or between the beams; and it was thought that the person whose plant did not bloom would soon fall sick or die. The rest of the plants were tied in a bundle, fastened to the end of a pole, and set up at the gate or wherever the corn would be brought in at the next harvest. This bundle was called Kupole; the ceremony was known as Kupole's festival; and at it the farmer prayed for a good crop of hay, etc.939 This Prussian custom is particularly notable, inasmuch as it strongly confirms the opinion expressed above that Kupalo (doubtless identical with Kupole) was originally a deity of vegetation.940 For here Kupalo is represented by a bundle [pg 295] of plants specially associated with midsummer in folk-custom; and her influence over vegetation is plainly signified by placing her plant-formed representative over the place where the harvest is brought in, as well as by the prayers for a good crop which are uttered on the occasion. A fresh argument is thus supplied in support of the conclusion that the Death, whose analogy to Kupalo, Yarilo, etc., has been shown, was originally a personification of vegetation, more especially of vegetation as dying or dead in winter. Further, my interpretation of the gardens of Adonis is confirmed by finding that in this Prussian custom the very same kind of plants are used to form the gardens of Adonis (as we may call them) and the image of the deity. Nothing could set in a stronger light the truth of the view that the gardens of Adonis are merely another manifestation of the god himself.

This Sardinian custom is one of those midsummer traditions that were once celebrated in many parts of Europe, with a key aspect being the large bonfire around which people dance and jump over. Examples of these customs have already been mentioned from Sweden and Bohemia. These examples clearly show the connection between the midsummer bonfire and vegetation; in both Sweden and Bohemia, an essential part of the festival is the raising of a May-pole or Midsummer-tree, which is burned in the bonfire in Bohemia. Similarly, in the Russian midsummer ceremony referenced above, the straw figure of Kupalo, representing vegetation, is placed next to a May-pole or Midsummer-tree and then carried back and forth across a bonfire. Kupalo is represented in two ways: in tree-form by the Midsummer-tree and in human form by the straw effigy, just like Adonis was represented both by an image and a garden of Adonis. The dual representations of Kupalo, like those of Adonis, are eventually thrown into water. In the Sardinian custom, the Gossips or Sweethearts of St. John likely correspond to the Lord and Lady or King and Queen of May. In the province of Blekinge (Sweden), part of the midsummer festival includes electing a Midsummer Bride, who chooses her groom; a collection is made for the couple, who are temporarily seen as husband and wife. Such Midsummer pairs probably symbolize the spirit of vegetation in its reproductive role; they embody in flesh and blood what the images of Siva and Pârvatî in the Indian ceremony, and the images of Adonis and Aphrodite in the Alexandrian ceremony, represented in effigy. The reason for festivals that aim to encourage the growth of vegetation to be associated with bonfires, and particularly for the representation of vegetation to be burned in tree form or passed through fire in effigy or as a living couple, will be explained later. Here, it suffices to establish that such an association exists and therefore address any objections that could be raised against my interpretation of the Sardinian custom on the grounds that the bonfires have nothing to do with vegetation. One more piece of evidence can be provided to support the opposite. In some parts of Germany, young men and women jump over midsummer bonfires specifically to help the hemp or flax grow tall. We can therefore assume that in the Sardinian custom, the blades of wheat and barley that are grown in pots for the midsummer festival, which closely resemble the gardens of Adonis, are part of a widespread midsummer celebration aimed at promoting the growth of vegetation, especially crops. However, as people easily extended this idea, the spirit of vegetation was believed to have a positive impact on human and animal life as well. Therefore, the gardens of Adonis would be thought to bring good luck to the families or individuals who tended them, and even after the idea that they actively brought good fortune faded, omens could still be drawn from them regarding the success or failure of families or individuals. This is how magic gradually turns into divination. Consequently, we find forms of divination practiced at midsummer that closely resemble the gardens of Adonis. An anonymous Italian writer from the sixteenth century recorded that it was customary to sow barley and wheat a few days before the festival of St. John (Midsummer Day) and also before that of St. Vitus; it was believed that the person for whom they were sown would have good luck and find a great husband or wife if the grain grew well, but if they grew poorly, he or she would be unlucky. In various parts of Italy and throughout Sicily, it is still common to place plants in water or soil on the Eve of St. John, and from how they appear on St. John's Day, omens are drawn, especially regarding luck in love. The plants used for this purpose include St. John's wort and nettles. In Prussia, two hundred years ago, farmers would send out their servants, especially their maids, to collect St. John's wort on Midsummer Eve or Midsummer Day (St. John's Day). Once they brought it back, the farmer would take as many plants as there were people and stick them in the wall or between the beams; it was believed that the person whose plant did not bloom would soon fall sick or die. The remaining plants were bundled up, attached to the end of a pole, and set up at the gate or wherever the grain would be brought in for the next harvest. This bundle was called Kupole; the ceremony was known as Kupole's festival, during which the farmer prayed for a good crop of hay, etc. This Prussian custom is particularly significant, as it strongly supports the idea that Kupalo (undoubtedly identical to Kupole) was originally a vegetation deity. Here, Kupalo is represented by a bundle of plants specifically linked to midsummer in folk tradition, and its influence over vegetation is indicated by placing its plant-form representative where the harvest is collected, as well as through the prayers for a good crop said during the event. This provides further evidence that Death, whose similarity to Kupalo, Yarilo, etc., has been established, was originally a personification of vegetation—specifically vegetation as it dies or goes dormant in winter. Additionally, my interpretation of the gardens of Adonis is further validated by the fact that the same kinds of plants are used in this Prussian custom to create the gardens of Adonis (as we can refer to them) and the image of the deity. Nothing could highlight more strongly the truth of the view that the gardens of Adonis are simply another expression of the god himself.

The last example of the gardens of Adonis which I shall cite is the following. At the approach of Easter, Sicilian women sow wheat, lentils, and canary-seed in plates, which are kept in the dark and watered every two days. The plants soon shoot up; the stalks are tied together with red ribbons, and the plates containing them are placed on the sepulchres which, with effigies of the dead Christ, are made up in Roman Catholic and Greek churches on Good Friday,941 just as the gardens of Adonis were placed on the grave of the dead Adonis.942 The whole custom—sepulchres as well as plates of sprouting grain—is [pg 296] probably nothing but a continuation, under a different name, of the Adonis worship.

The last example of the gardens of Adonis that I’ll mention is this one. Around Easter, Sicilian women plant wheat, lentils, and canary-seed in dishes, which are kept in the dark and watered every two days. The plants quickly grow; the stalks are tied together with red ribbons, and the dishes are placed on the graves that, with images of the deceased Christ, are created in Roman Catholic and Greek churches on Good Friday, just like the gardens of Adonis were put on the grave of the dead Adonis. The whole tradition—both the graves and the dishes of sprouting grain—is [pg 296] probably just a continuation, under a different name, of the Adonis worship.

§ 5.—Attis.

The next of those gods, whose supposed death and resurrection struck such deep roots into the religious faith and ritual of Western Asia, is Attis. He was to Phrygia what Adonis was to Syria. Like Adonis, he appears to have been a god of vegetation, and his death and resurrection were annually mourned and rejoiced over at a festival in spring. The legends and rites of the two gods were so much alike that the ancients themselves sometimes identified them.943 Attis was said to have been a fair youth who was beloved by the great Phrygian goddess Cybele. Two different accounts of his death were current. According to the one, he was killed by a boar, like Adonis. According to the other, he mutilated himself under a pine-tree, and died from the effusion of blood. The latter is said to have been the local story told by the people of Pessinus, a great centre of Cybele worship, and the whole legend of which it forms a part is stamped with a character of rudeness and savagery that speaks strongly for its antiquity.944 But the genuineness of the other story seems also vouched for by the fact that his worshippers, especially the people of Pessinus, [pg 297] abstained from eating swine.945 After his death Attis is said to have been changed into a pine-tree.946 The ceremonies observed at his festival are not very fully known, but their general order appears to have been as follows.947 At the spring equinox (22d March) a pine-tree was cut in the woods and brought into the sanctuary of Cybele, where it was treated as a divinity. It was adorned with woollen bands and wreaths of violets, for violets were said to have sprung from the blood of Attis, as anemones from the blood of Adonis; and the effigy of a young man was attached to the middle of the tree.948 On the second day (23d March) the chief ceremony seems to have been a blowing of trumpets.949 The third day (24th March) was known as the Day of Blood: the high priest drew blood from his arms and presented it as an offering.950 It was perhaps on this day or night that the mourning for Attis took place over an effigy, which was afterwards solemnly buried.951 The fourth day (25th March) was the Festival of Joy (Hilaria), at which the resurrection of Attis was probably celebrated—at least the celebration of his resurrection seems to have followed closely upon [pg 298] that of his death.952 The Roman festival closed on 27th March with a procession to the brook Almo, in which the bullock-cart of the goddess, her image, and other sacred objects were bathed. But this bath of the goddess is known to have also formed part of her festival in her Asiatic home. On returning from the water the cart and oxen were strewn with fresh spring flowers.953

The next of those gods, whose supposed death and resurrection deeply influenced the religious beliefs and rituals of Western Asia, is Attis. He was to Phrygia what Adonis was to Syria. Similar to Adonis, he seems to have been a god of vegetation, and his death and resurrection were annually mourned and celebrated at a spring festival. The stories and rites of the two gods were so similar that the ancients sometimes confused them. Attis was said to be a handsome young man who was loved by the great Phrygian goddess Cybele. Two different accounts of his death existed. In one version, he was killed by a boar, just like Adonis. In the other, he mutilated himself under a pine tree and bled to death. The latter tale is believed to be the local version told by the people of Pessinus, a major center of Cybele worship, and the entire legend has a rough and primitive quality that suggests it is very old. However, the authenticity of the other story is also supported by the fact that his worshippers, especially the people of Pessinus, abstained from eating pork. After his death, Attis was said to have been transformed into a pine tree. The details of the ceremonies at his festival are not very well known, but their general order seems to have been as follows. At the spring equinox (March 22), a pine tree was cut down in the woods and brought into the sanctuary of Cybele, where it was treated as a deity. It was decorated with woolly ribbons and wreaths of violets, as violets were believed to have grown from Attis' blood, just as anemones bloomed from Adonis' blood; and a figure of a young man was attached to the middle of the tree. On the second day (March 23), the main ceremony appears to have been the blowing of trumpets. The third day (March 24) was known as the Day of Blood, when the high priest would draw blood from his arms and present it as an offering. It was likely on this day or night that the mourning for Attis occurred over an effigy, which was later solemnly buried. The fourth day (March 25) was the Festival of Joy (Hilaria), during which Attis' resurrection was probably celebrated—at least the celebration of his resurrection seems to have closely followed that of his death. The Roman festival concluded on March 27 with a procession to the brook Almo, where the goddess's bullock cart, her image, and other sacred objects were bathed. This bathing of the goddess was also known to be part of her festival in her Asian homeland. On their return from the water, the cart and oxen were covered with fresh spring flowers.

The original character of Attis as a tree-spirit is brought out plainly by the part which the pine-tree plays in his legend and ritual. The story that he was a human being transformed into a pine-tree is only one of those transparent attempts at rationalising the old beliefs which meet us so frequently in mythology. His tree origin is further attested by the story that he was born of a virgin, who conceived by putting in her bosom a ripe almond or pomegranate.954 The bringing in of the pine-tree from the wood, decked with violets and woollen bands, corresponds to bringing in the May-tree or Summer-tree in modern folk-custom; and the effigy which was attached to the pine-tree was only a duplicate representative of the tree-spirit or [pg 299] Attis. At what point of the ceremonies the violets and the effigy were attached to the tree is not said, but we should assume this to be done after the mimic death and burial of Attis. The fastening of his effigy to the tree would then be a representation of his coming to life again in tree-form, just as the placing of the shirt of the effigy of Death upon a tree represents the revival of the spirit of vegetation in a new form.955 After being attached to the tree, the effigy was kept for a year and then burned.956 We have seen that this was apparently sometimes done with the May-pole;957 and we shall see presently that the effigy of the corn-spirit, made at harvest, is often preserved till it is replaced by a new effigy at next year's harvest. The original intention of thus preserving the effigy for a year and then replacing it by a new one was doubtless to maintain the spirit of vegetation in fresh and vigorous life. The bathing of the image of Cybele was probably a rain-charm, like the throwing of the effigies of Death and of Adonis into the water. Like tree-spirits in general, Attis appears to have been conceived as exercising power over the growth of corn, or even to have been identified with the corn. One of his epithets was “very fruitful;” he was addressed as the “reaped green (or yellow) ear of corn,” and the story of his sufferings, death, and resurrection was interpreted as the ripe grain wounded by the reaper, buried in the granary, and coming to life again when sown in the ground.958 His worshippers abstained from eating seeds and the roots of vegetables,959 just as at the Adonis ceremonies women abstained from [pg 300] eating corn ground in a mill. Such acts would probably have been esteemed a sacrilegious partaking of the life or of the bruised and broken body of the god.

The character of Attis as a tree spirit is clearly shown by the role the pine tree plays in his legend and rituals. The story that he was a human who turned into a pine tree is just one of those obvious attempts to rationalize old beliefs that we often see in mythology. His tree heritage is further supported by the tale that he was born of a virgin who conceived by placing a ripe almond or pomegranate in her bosom. The act of bringing the pine tree from the woods, decorated with violets and woolen bands, is similar to the custom of bringing in the May tree or Summer tree in modern folk traditions. The effigy attached to the pine tree was merely a replica of the tree spirit or Attis. It isn't clear at which point in the ceremonies the violets and effigy were attached to the tree, but we can assume this happened after the mock death and burial of Attis. Fastening his effigy to the tree would then represent his rebirth in tree form, just as placing the shirt of the effigy of Death on a tree symbolizes the revival of the spirit of vegetation in a new form. After being attached to the tree, the effigy was kept for a year and then burned. We have previously seen that this was sometimes done with the May pole, and we will soon see that the effigy of the corn spirit made at harvest is often kept until it is replaced by a new effigy at next year’s harvest. The original purpose of keeping the effigy for a year and then replacing it with a new one was likely to keep the spirit of vegetation alive and vigorous. The bathing of the image of Cybele was probably a rain charm, similar to the act of throwing the effigies of Death and Adonis into water. Like other tree spirits, Attis seems to have been thought to have power over the growth of corn, or even to be identified with it. One of his titles was “very fruitful;” he was referred to as the “reaped green (or yellow) ear of corn,” and his story of suffering, death, and resurrection was interpreted as ripe grain being cut down by the reaper, buried in the granary, and coming back to life when planted in the ground. His followers refrained from eating seeds and vegetable roots, just as during the Adonis ceremonies, women abstained from eating corn ground in a mill. Such actions would likely have been considered sacrilegious, as they would involve partaking in the life or the wounded and broken body of the god.

From inscriptions it appears that both at Pessinus and Rome the high priest of Cybele was regularly called Attis.960 It is therefore a reasonable conjecture that the high priest played the part of the legendary Attis at the annual festival.961 We have seen that on the Day of Blood he drew blood from his arms, and this may have been an imitation of the self-inflicted death of Attis under the pine-tree. It is not inconsistent with this supposition that Attis was also represented at these ceremonies by an effigy; for we have already had cases in which the divine being is first represented by a living person and afterwards by an effigy, which is then burned or otherwise destroyed.962 Perhaps we may go a step farther and conjecture that this mimic killing of the priest (if it was such), accompanied by a real effusion of his blood, was in Phrygia, as it has been elsewhere, a substitute for a human sacrifice which in earlier times was actually offered. Professor W. M. Ramsay, whose authority on all questions relating to Phrygia no one will dispute, is of opinion that at these Phrygian ceremonies “the representative of the god was probably slain each year by a cruel death, just as the god himself died.”963 We know from Strabo964 that the priests of Pessinus were at one time potentates as well as priests; they may, therefore, [pg 301] have belonged to that class of divine kings or popes whose duty it was to die each year for their people and the world. As a god of vegetation, annually slain, the representative of Attis would be parallel to the Wild Man, the King, etc., of north European folk-custom, and to the Italian priest of Nemi.

From inscriptions, it seems that both at Pessinus and Rome, the high priest of Cybele was regularly referred to as Attis.960 Therefore, it’s reasonable to assume that the high priest took on the role of the legendary Attis during the annual festival.961 We’ve seen that on the Day of Blood, he drew blood from his arms, which may have been an imitation of Attis’s self-inflicted death under the pine tree. This idea is supported by the fact that Attis may have also been represented at these ceremonies by an effigy; we’ve already encountered instances where a divine figure is first represented by a living person and then by an effigy that is burned or otherwise destroyed.962 We might further speculate that this mimic killing of the priest (if it was indeed that), along with the actual shedding of his blood, served in Phrygia, as it has elsewhere, as a substitute for a human sacrifice that was once performed. Professor W. M. Ramsay, whose expertise on all matters related to Phrygia is unquestionable, believes that at these Phrygian ceremonies "The representative of the god was likely killed in a brutal way each year, just like the god himself died."963 According to Strabo964, the priests of Pessinus were once both powerful leaders and priests; they may thus have belonged to that class of divine kings or popes whose role it was to die each year for their people and the world. As a god of vegetation who is slain annually, the representative of Attis would parallel the Wild Man, the King, etc., of northern European folk customs, as well as the Italian priest of Nemi.

§ 6.—Osiris.

There seem to be some grounds for believing that Osiris, the great god of ancient Egypt, was one of those personifications of vegetation, whose annual death and resurrection have been celebrated in so many lands. But as the chief of the gods he appears to have absorbed the attributes of other deities, so that his character and rites present a complex of heterogeneous elements which, with the scanty evidence at our disposal, it is hardly possible to sort out. It may be worth while, however, to put together some of the facts which lend support to the view that Osiris or at least one of the deities out of whom he was compounded was a god of vegetation, analogous to Adonis and Attis.

There seems to be some reason to believe that Osiris, the major god of ancient Egypt, was one of those symbols of vegetation whose annual death and rebirth have been celebrated in many cultures. However, as the chief god, he seems to have taken on the traits of other deities, making his character and rituals a mix of different elements that are hard to separate with the limited evidence we have. It might be helpful, though, to gather some of the facts that support the idea that Osiris or at least one of the gods he was made up of was a god of vegetation, similar to Adonis and Attis.

The outline of his myth is as follows.965 Osiris was the son of the earth-god Qeb (or Seb, as the name is sometimes transliterated).966 Reigning as a king on earth, he reclaimed the Egyptians from savagery, gave them [pg 302] laws, and taught them to worship the gods. Before his time the Egyptians had been cannibals. But Isis, the sister and wife of Osiris, discovered wheat and barley growing wild, and Osiris introduced the cultivation of these grains amongst his people, who forthwith abandoned cannibalism and took kindly to a corn diet.967 Afterwards Osiris travelled over the world diffusing the blessings of civilisation wherever he went. But on his return his brother Set (whom the Greeks called Typhon), with seventy-two others, plotted against him, and having inveigled him into a beautifully decorated coffer, they nailed it down on him, soldered it fast with molten lead, and flung it into the Nile. It floated down to the sea. This happened on the 17th day of the month Athyr. Isis put on mourning, and wandered disconsolately up and down seeking the body, till at last she found it at Byblus, on the Syrian coast, whither it had drifted with the waves. An erica tree had shot up and enfolded the coffer within its stem, and the King of Byblus, admiring the fine growth of the tree, had caused it to be cut down and converted into a pillar of his palace. From him Isis obtained leave to open the trunk of the tree, and having taken out the coffer, she carried it away with her. But she left it to visit her son Horus at Butus in the Delta, and Typhon found the coffer as he was hunting a boar by the light of a full moon.968 He recognised the body of Osiris, rent it into fourteen pieces, and scattered them abroad. Isis sailed up and down the marshes in a papyrus boat seeking the fragments, and as she found each she buried it. Hence many graves of Osiris were shown in Egypt. Others said that Isis left an effigy of Osiris [pg 303] in every city, pretending it was his body, in order that Osiris might be worshipped in many places, and to prevent Typhon from discovering the real corpse. Afterwards her son Horus fought against Typhon, conquered him, and bound him fast. But Isis, to whom he had been delivered, loosed his bonds and let him go. This angered Horus, and he pulled the crown from his mother's head; but Hermes replaced it with a helmet made in the shape of a cow's head. Typhon was subsequently defeated in two other battles. The rest of the myth included the dismemberment of Horus and the beheading of Isis.

The outline of his myth is as follows. Osiris was the son of the earth-god Qeb (or Seb, as it’s sometimes spelled). He reigned as a king on earth, bringing the Egyptians out of savagery, providing them with laws, and teaching them to worship the gods. Before his time, the Egyptians had engaged in cannibalism. But Isis, the sister and wife of Osiris, discovered wheat and barley growing wild, and Osiris introduced the cultivation of these grains among his people, who then stopped cannibalism and adopted a diet of grains. Afterwards, Osiris traveled around the world spreading the blessings of civilization wherever he went. However, on his return, his brother Set (whom the Greeks called Typhon), along with seventy-two others, plotted against him. They tricked him into a beautifully decorated coffin, nailed it shut, sealed it with molten lead, and tossed it into the Nile, where it floated down to the sea. This happened on the 17th day of the month Athyr. Isis mourned and wandered aimlessly seeking his body until she finally found it at Byblus, on the Syrian coast, where it had drifted. An erica tree had grown up and enveloped the coffin within its trunk, and the King of Byblus, admiring the tree, had it cut down and turned into a pillar for his palace. Isis got permission to open the trunk of the tree, removed the coffin, and took it with her. However, she left it to visit her son Horus at Butus in the Delta, and Typhon discovered the coffin while hunting a boar by the light of a full moon. He recognized Osiris's body, tore it into fourteen pieces, and scattered them. Isis searched the marshes in a papyrus boat for the fragments, and as she found each piece, she buried it. Hence, many graves of Osiris were shown in Egypt. Others said that Isis had left a statue of Osiris in every city, pretending it was his body to ensure that he was worshipped in many places and to keep Typhon from finding the real corpse. Later, her son Horus fought Typhon, defeated him, and bound him. However, Isis, to whom he was given, released his bonds and let him go. This angered Horus, who took the crown from his mother's head, but Hermes replaced it with a helmet shaped like a cow's head. Typhon was later defeated in two other battles. The rest of the myth included the dismemberment of Horus and the beheading of Isis.

So much for the myth of Osiris. Of the annual rites with which his death and burial were celebrated we unfortunately know very little. The mourning lasted five days,969 from the 8th to the 12th of the month Athyr.970 The ceremonies began with the “earth-ploughing,” that is, with the opening of the field labours, when the waters of the Nile are sinking. The other rites included the search for the mangled body of Osiris, the rejoicings at its discovery, and its solemn burial. The burial took place on the 11th of November, and was accompanied by the recitation of lamentations from the liturgical books. These lamentations, of which several copies have been discovered in modern times, were put in the [pg 304] mouth of Isis and Nephthys, sisters of Osiris. “In form and substance,” says Brugsch, “they vividly recall the dirges chanted at the Adonis' rites over the dead god.”971 Next day was the joyous festival of Sokari, that being the name under which the hawk-headed Osiris of Memphis was invoked. The solemn processions of priests which on this day wound round the temples with all the pomp of banners, images, and sacred emblems, were amongst the most stately pageants that ancient Egypt could show. The whole festival ended on the 16th of November with a special rite called the erection of the Tatu, Tat, or Ded pillar.972 This pillar appears from the monuments to have been a column with cross bars at the top, like the yards of a mast, or more exactly like the superposed capitals of a pillar.973 On a Theban tomb the king himself, assisted by his relations and a priest, is represented hauling at the ropes by which the pillar is being raised. The pillar was interpreted, at least in later Egyptian theology, as the backbone of Osiris. It might very well be a conventional representation of a tree stripped of its leaves; and if Osiris was a tree-spirit, the bare trunk and branches of a tree might naturally be described as his backbone. The erection of the column would then be, as Erman interprets it, a representation of the resurrection of Osiris, which, as we learn from Plutarch, appears to have been celebrated at his mysteries.974 Perhaps the ceremony which [pg 305] Plutarch describes as taking place on the third day of the festival (the 19th day of the month Athyr) may also have referred to the resurrection. He says that on that day the priests carried the sacred ark down to the sea. Within the ark was a golden casket, into which drinking-water was poured. A shout then went up that Osiris was found. Then some mould was mixed with water, and out of the paste thus formed a crescent-shaped image was fashioned, which was then dressed in robes and adorned.975

So much for the myth of Osiris. Unfortunately, we know very little about the annual rituals commemorating his death and burial. The mourning lasted five days, from the 8th to the 12th of the month Athyr. The ceremonies began with the "earth-ploughing," which marked the start of the agricultural season as the waters of the Nile receded. Other rites included searching for Osiris's dismembered body, celebrating its discovery, and conducting his solemn burial. The burial took place on November 11th and was accompanied by the recitation of lamentations from liturgical texts. Several copies of these lamentations have been found in modern times and were attributed to Isis and Nephthys, sisters of Osiris. "In form and substance," says Brugsch, "they vividly recall the dirges chanted at the Adonis' rites over the dead god." The next day was the joyful festival of Sokari, the name under which the hawk-headed Osiris of Memphis was called. The grand processions of priests on this day paraded around the temples with elaborate banners, images, and sacred symbols, representing some of the most impressive displays of ancient Egypt. The entire festival concluded on November 16th with a special rite known as the erection of the Tatu, Tat, or Ded pillar. This pillar, as depicted in monuments, seems to have been a column with crossbars at the top, similar to the yards of a mast, or more specifically, like the superimposed capitals of a pillar. On a Theban tomb, the king is shown, assisted by his relatives and a priest, pulling the ropes used to raise the pillar. In later Egyptian theology, the pillar was interpreted as the backbone of Osiris. It could also represent a tree stripped of its leaves; if Osiris was a tree spirit, then the bare trunk and branches might be seen as his backbone. Thus, the raising of the column would symbolize, as Erman suggests, the resurrection of Osiris, which, as we learn from Plutarch, seems to have been celebrated during his mysteries. Perhaps the ceremony that Plutarch notes occurred on the third day of the festival (the 19th day of the month Athyr) was also related to the resurrection. He mentions that on that day the priests carried the sacred ark down to the sea. Inside the ark was a golden casket filled with drinking water. A shout then arose that Osiris was found. Afterward, some clay was mixed with water, and from that paste, a crescent-shaped figure was made, which was then dressed in robes and adorned.

The general similarity of the myth and ritual of Osiris to those of Adonis and Attis is obvious. In all three cases we see a god whose untimely and violent death is mourned by a loving goddess and annually celebrated by their worshippers. The character of Osiris as a deity of vegetation is brought out by the legend that he was the first to teach men the use of corn, and by the fact that his annual festival began with ploughing the earth. He is said also to have introduced the cultivation of the vine.976 In one of the chambers dedicated to Osiris in the great temple of Isis at Philae the dead body of Osiris is represented with stalks of corn springing from it, and a priest is watering the stalks from a pitcher which he holds in his hand. The accompanying inscription sets forth that “This is the form of him whom one may not name, Osiris of the mysteries, who springs from the returning waters.”977 It would seem impossible to devise a more graphic way of representing Osiris as a personification of the corn; while the inscription proves that this personification was the kernel of the [pg 306] mysteries of the god, the innermost secret that was only revealed to the initiated. In estimating the mythical character of Osiris very great weight must be given to this monument. The legend that his mangled remains were scattered up and down the land may be a mythical way of expressing either the sowing or the winnowing of the grain. The latter interpretation is supported by the story that Isis placed the severed limbs of Osiris on a corn-sieve.978 Or the legend may be a reminiscence of the custom of slaying a human victim (probably considered as a representative of the corn-spirit) and distributing his flesh or scattering his ashes over the fields to fertilise them. We have already seen that in modern Europe the figure of “Death” is sometimes torn in pieces, and that the fragments are then buried in the fields to make the crops grow well.979 Later on we shall meet with examples of human victims being treated in the same way. With regard to the ancient Egyptians, we have it on the authority of Manetho that they used to burn red-haired men and scatter their ashes with winnowing-fans.980 That this custom was not, as might perhaps have been supposed, a mere way of wreaking their spite on foreigners, amongst whom rather than amongst the native Egyptians red-haired people would generally be found, appears from the fact that the oxen which were sacrificed had also to be red; a single black or white hair found on a beast would have disqualified it for the sacrifice.981 The red hair of the human victims was thus probably essential; the fact that they were generally foreigners was only accidental. [pg 307] If, as I conjecture, these human sacrifices were intended to promote the growth of the crops—and the winnowing of their ashes seems to support this view—red-haired victims were perhaps selected as best fitted to represent the spirit of the golden grain. For when a god is represented by a living person, it is natural that the human representative should be chosen on the ground of his supposed resemblance to the god. Hence the ancient Mexicans, conceiving the maize as a personal being who went through the whole course of life between seed-time and harvest, sacrificed new-born babes when the maize was sown, older children when it had sprouted, and so on till it was fully ripe, when they sacrificed old men.982 A name for Osiris was the “crop” or “harvest”;983 and the ancients sometimes explained him as a personification of the corn.984

The overall similarity between the myth and ritual of Osiris and those of Adonis and Attis is clear. In all three cases, we see a god whose premature and violent death is grieved by a loving goddess and celebrated each year by their followers. Osiris is characterized as a god of vegetation through the legend that he was the first to teach humans how to grow corn, and his annual festival began with plowing the earth. He is also said to have introduced grape cultivation. In one of the chambers dedicated to Osiris in the grand temple of Isis at Philae, his dead body is depicted with stalks of corn growing from it, while a priest waters the stalks from a pitcher in his hand. The accompanying inscription states that "This is the form of the one whose name cannot be spoken, Osiris of the mysteries, who arises from the returning waters." It seems impossible to imagine a more vivid way to depict Osiris as a representation of corn; the inscription confirms that this representation was central to the [pg 306] mysteries of the god, the deepest secret revealed only to the initiated. In assessing the mythical nature of Osiris, this monument is very significant. The legend that his dismembered remains were scattered throughout the land might mythically illustrate either the sowing or winnowing of grain. The latter interpretation is supported by the story that Isis placed Osiris's severed limbs on a grain sieve. Alternatively, the legend could recall the practice of sacrificing a human (likely viewed as a representative of the corn spirit) and distributing his flesh or scattering his ashes over the fields to fertilize them. We have already noted that in modern Europe, the figure of "Passing" is sometimes torn apart, and the fragments are then buried in the fields to ensure good crop growth. Later, we will encounter examples of human victims treated similarly. Concerning the ancient Egyptians, we have the authoritative Manetho indicating that they often burned red-haired men and scattered their ashes using winnowing fans. That this practice was not merely a way to take out their resentment on foreigners, among whom red-haired people were more common than among native Egyptians, is evident from the fact that the oxen sacrificed also had to be red; even one black or white hair on an animal would disqualify it from sacrifice. The red hair of the human victims was likely essential; their being primarily foreigners was probably coincidental. [pg 307] If, as I suspect, these human sacrifices aimed to promote crop growth—and the sorting of their ashes seems to support this idea—red-haired victims may have been chosen as most suited to symbolize the spirit of golden grain. When a god is represented by a living person, it makes sense that the human representative would be selected based on their supposed similarity to the god. Thus, the ancient Mexicans, viewing maize as a personal being that experienced life from planting to harvest, sacrificed newborn babies during sowing, older children when it sprouted, and continuing until it was fully ripe, when they sacrificed elderly men. A name for Osiris was the “crop” or “harvest”; and the ancients occasionally interpreted him as a personification of corn.

But Osiris was not only a corn-spirit; he was also a tree-spirit, and this was probably his original character; for, as we have already observed, the corn-spirit seems to be only an extension of the older tree-spirit. His character as a tree-spirit was represented very graphically in a ceremony described by Firmicus Maternus.985 A pine-tree was cut down, the centre was hollowed out, and with the wood thus excavated an image of Osiris was made, which was then “buried” [pg 308] in the hollow of the tree. Here, again, it is hard to imagine how the conception of a tree as tenanted by a personal being could be more plainly expressed. The image of Osiris thus made was kept for a year and then burned, exactly as was done with the image of Attis which was attached to the pine-tree. The ceremony of cutting the tree, as described by Firmicus Maternus, appears to be alluded to by Plutarch.986 It was probably the ritual counterpart of the mythical discovery of the body of Osiris enclosed in the erica tree. We may conjecture that the erection of the Tatu pillar at the close of the annual festival of Osiris987 was identical with the ceremony described by Firmicus; it is to be noted that in the myth the erica tree formed a pillar in the King's house. Like the similar custom of cutting a pine-tree and fastening an image to it in the rites of Attis, the ceremony perhaps belonged to that class of customs of which the bringing in the May-pole is among the most familiar. As to the pine-tree in particular, at Denderah the tree of Osiris is a conifer, and the coffer containing the body of Osiris is here represented as enclosed within the tree.988 A pine-cone is often represented on the monuments as offered to Osiris, and a MS. of the Louvre speaks of the cedar as sprung from Osiris.989 The sycamore and the tamarisk are also his trees. In inscriptions he is spoken of as residing in them;990 and his mother Nut is frequently represented in a sycamore.991 In a sepulchre [pg 309] at How (Diospolis Parva) a tamarisk is represented overshadowing the coffer of Osiris; and in the series of sculptures which represent the mystic history of Osiris in the great temple of Isis at Philae, a tamarisk is depicted with two men pouring water on it. The inscription on this last monument leaves no doubt, says Brugsch, that the verdure of the earth is believed to be connected with the verdure of the tree, and that the sculpture refers to the grave of Osiris at Philae, of which Plutarch says that it was overshadowed by a methide plant, taller than any olive-tree. This sculpture, it may be observed, occurs in the same chamber in which Osiris is represented as a corpse with ears of corn sprouting from him.992 In inscriptions Osiris is referred to as “the one in the tree,” “the solitary one in the acacia,” etc.993 On the monuments he sometimes appears as a mummy covered with a tree or with plants.994 It accords with the character of Osiris as a tree-spirit that his worshippers were forbidden to injure fruit-trees, and with his character as a god of vegetation in general that they were not allowed to stop up wells of water, which are so important for purposes of irrigation in hot southern lands.995

But Osiris was not just a corn spirit; he was also a tree spirit, which was likely his original role. As we've noted, the corn spirit seems to be an offshoot of the older tree spirit. His identity as a tree spirit was vividly depicted in a ceremony described by Firmicus Maternus. A pine tree was cut down, the center was hollowed out, and from the wood taken out, an image of Osiris was created, which was then "buried" [pg 308] in the hollow of the tree. Here, it’s hard to imagine how the idea of a tree inhabited by a personal being could be more clearly illustrated. The image of Osiris made in this way was kept for a year and then burned, just like the image of Attis that was attached to the pine tree. The ceremony of cutting the tree, as explained by Firmicus Maternus, seems to be referenced by Plutarch. It was likely the ritual counterpart to the mythical discovery of Osiris's body enclosed in the Erica tree. We might infer that the erection of the Tatu pillar at the end of the annual Osiris festival Tattoos was the same as the ceremony described by Firmicus; it's noteworthy that in the myth, the erica tree served as a pillar in the King's house. Similar to the practice of cutting a pine tree and attaching an image to it in the rites of Attis, this ceremony likely falls into the category of customs similar to the Maypole tradition. Specifically regarding the pine tree, at Denderah, Osiris's tree is a conifer, and the coffer containing Osiris's body is represented as being enclosed within the tree. A pine cone is often shown in monuments as being offered to Osiris, and a manuscript from the Louvre mentions cedar as originating from Osiris. The sycamore and tamarisk are also considered his trees. In inscriptions, he is said to dwell in them; his mother Nut is frequently depicted within a sycamore. In a tomb [pg 309] at How (Diospolis Parva), a tamarisk is shown overshadowing the coffer of Osiris; and in the series of sculptures depicting the mystical story of Osiris in the great temple of Isis at Philae, a tamarisk is illustrated with two men pouring water on it. The inscription on this last monument leaves no doubt, as Brugsch notes, that the greenery of the earth is thought to be related to the greenery of the tree, and that the sculpture refers to Osiris's grave at Philae, which Plutarch mentions was overshadowed by a methide plant, taller than any olive tree. This sculpture, it’s worth noting, is found in the same chamber where Osiris is depicted as a corpse with ears of corn growing from him. In inscriptions, Osiris is referred to as “the one in the tree,” “the lone one in the acacia,” etc. On monuments, he sometimes appears as a mummy covered with trees or plants. This aligns with Osiris’s identity as a tree spirit, as his worshipers were forbidden to harm fruit trees, and in keeping with his role as a god of vegetation in general, they were not allowed to block up wells of water, which are essential for irrigation in hot southern regions.

The original meaning of the goddess Isis is still more difficult to determine than that of her brother and husband Osiris. Her attributes and epithets were so numerous that in the hieroglyphics she is called [pg 310] “the many-named,” “the thousand-named,” and in Greek inscriptions “the myriad-named.”996 Tiele confesses candidly that “it is now impossible to tell precisely to what natural phenomena the character of Isis at first referred.”997 Mr. Renouf states that Isis was the Dawn,998 but without assigning any reason whatever for the identification. There are at least some grounds for seeing in her a goddess of corn. According to Diodorus, whose authority appears to have been the Egyptian historian Manetho, the discovery of wheat and barley was attributed to Isis, and at her festivals stalks of these grains were carried in procession to commemorate the boon she had conferred on men. Further, at harvest-time, when the Egyptian reapers had cut the first stalks, they laid them down and beat their breasts, lamenting and calling upon Isis.999 Amongst the epithets by which she is designated on the inscriptions are “creatress of the green crop,” “the green one, whose greenness is like the greenness of the earth,” and “mistress of bread.”1000 According to Brugsch she is “not only the creatress of the fresh verdure of vegetation which covers the earth, but is actually the green corn-field itself, which is personified as a goddess.”1001 This is confirmed by her epithet Sochit or Sochet, meaning “a corn-field,” a sense which the word still retains in Coptic.1002 It is in this character of a corn-goddess that the Greeks conceived Isis, for they [pg 311] identified her with Demeter.1003 In a Greek epigram she is described as “she who has given birth to the fruits of the earth,” and “the mother of the ears of corn,”1004 and in a hymn composed in her honour she speaks of herself as “queen of the wheat-field,” and is described as “charged with the care of the fruitful furrow's wheat-rich path.”1005

The original meaning of the goddess Isis is even harder to determine than that of her brother and husband Osiris. She had so many attributes and titles that in the hieroglyphics she is referred to as [pg 310] "the multiple-named," "the thousand names," and in Greek inscriptions “the many-named.”996 Tiele openly admits that "It’s now impossible to determine exactly which natural phenomena the character of Isis originally referred to."997 Mr. Renouf claims that Isis was the Dawn,998 but he does not provide any reasoning for this identification. There are at least some reasons to view her as a goddess of corn. According to Diodorus, whose authority seems to have been the Egyptian historian Manetho, the discovery of wheat and barley was credited to Isis, and during her festivals, stalks of these grains were carried in procession to honor the gift she had given to humanity. Additionally, during harvest time, when the Egyptian reapers had cut the first stalks, they would lay them down and beat their breasts, mourning and calling upon Isis.999 Some of the titles used to describe her in the inscriptions include “creator of the green crop,” “the green one, whose green is like the green of the earth,” and “bread mistress.”1000 Brugsch states she is "not only the creator of the new greenery of plants that covers the earth, but is actually the green cornfield itself, personified as a goddess."1001 This is supported by her epithet Sochit or Sochet, meaning "cornfield," a definition that the word still holds in Coptic.1002 In this aspect as a corn-goddess, the Greeks understood Isis, as they [pg 311] identified her with Demeter.1003 In a Greek epigram, she is described as "she who has given birth to the fruits of the earth," and "the mother of the corn ears,"1004 and in a hymn written in her honor, she refers to herself as “queen of the wheat field,” and is described as "responsible for taking care of the wheat-filled fields."1005

Osiris has been sometimes interpreted as the sun-god; and this view has been held by so many distinguished writers in modern times that a few words of reply seem called for. If we inquire on what evidence Osiris has been identified with the sun or the sun-god, it will be found on examination that the evidence is minute in quantity and dubious, where it is not absolutely worthless, in quality. The diligent Jablonski, the first modern scholar to collect and examine the testimony of classical writers on Egyptian religion, says that it can be shown in many ways that Osiris is the sun, and that he could produce a cloud of witnesses to prove it, but that it is needless to do so, since no learned man is ignorant of the fact.1006 Of the writers whom he condescends to quote, the only two who expressly identify Osiris with the sun are Diodorus and Macrobius. The passage in Diodorus runs thus:1007 “It is said that the aboriginal inhabitants of Egypt, looking up to the sky, and smitten with awe and wonder at the nature of the universe, supposed that there were two gods, eternal and primeval, the sun and the moon, of whom they named the sun Osiris and the moon Isis.” Even if Diodorus's authority for this statement is Manetho, as there is some ground for believing,1008 [pg 312] little or no weight can be attached to it. For it is plainly a philosophical, and therefore a late, explanation of the first beginnings of Egyptian religion, reminding us of Kant's familiar saying about the starry heavens and the moral law rather than of the rude traditions of a primitive people. Jablonski's second authority, Macrobius, is no better but rather worse. For Macrobius was the father of that large family of mythologists who resolve all or most gods into the sun. According to him Mercury was the sun, Mars was the sun, Janus was the sun, Saturn was the sun, so was Jupiter, also Nemesis, likewise Pan, etc.1009 It was, therefore, nearly a matter of course that he should identify Osiris with the sun.1010 But apart from the general principle, so frankly enunciated by Professor Maspero, that all the gods are the sun (Comme tous les dieux, Osiris est le soleil),1011 Macrobius has not much cause to show for identifying Osiris in particular with the sun. He argues that Osiris must be the sun because an eye was one of his symbols. The premise is correct,1012 but what exactly it has to do with the conclusion is not clear. The opinion that Osiris was the sun is also mentioned, but not accepted, by Plutarch,1013 and it is referred to by Firmicus Maternus.1014

Osiris has sometimes been interpreted as a sun-god, and many respected modern writers support this view, so a response seems necessary. If we look closely at the evidence linking Osiris to the sun or sun-god, we'll find it is limited and questionable, if not entirely worthless. The diligent Jablonski, the first modern scholar to gather and analyze the writings of classical authors on Egyptian religion, claims that there are many ways to show Osiris is the sun, asserting he could easily provide support for this, but he believes it’s unnecessary since no educated person is unaware of the fact.1006 Among the authors he quotes, only Diodorus and Macrobius clearly identify Osiris with the sun. Diodorus states:1007 “It’s said that the first people of Egypt, gazing at the sky and filled with wonder at the universe, believed in two gods, everlasting and ancient: the sun and the moon, which they named Osiris and Isis, respectively.” Even if Diodorus's reference comes from Manetho, which is somewhat believed,1008 little to no credibility can be given to it. It is obviously a philosophical, and therefore a later, interpretation of the origins of Egyptian religion, reminiscent of Kant's famous quote about the starry heavens and the moral law rather than the primitive traditions of an early people. Jablonski's second source, Macrobius, is not any better, and arguably worse. Macrobius is known for being the originator of a wide range of mythologists who reduce all or most gods to the sun. He claimed Mercury was the sun, Mars was the sun, Janus was the sun, Saturn was the sun, so was Jupiter, and also Nemesis, Pan, and others.1009 Therefore, it's almost expected that he would equate Osiris with the sun.1010 However, aside from the general idea stated outright by Professor Maspero that all gods are the sun (Like all the gods, Osiris is the sun),1011 Macrobius has little solid reasoning for specifically identifying Osiris as the sun. He claims Osiris must be the sun because one of his symbols is an eye. The premise is correct,1012 but it’s unclear how it supports the conclusion. The idea that Osiris was the sun is also mentioned, but not endorsed, by Plutarch,1013 and referenced by Firmicus Maternus.1014

Amongst modern Egyptologists, Lepsius, in identifying Osiris with the sun, appears to rely mainly on the passage of Diodorus already quoted. But the monuments, he adds, also show “that down to a late time Osiris was sometimes conceived as Ra. In this quality he is named Osiris-Ra even in the ‘Book of the Dead,’ [pg 313] and Isis is often called ‘the royal consort of Ra.’ ”1015 That Ra was both the physical sun and the sun-god is of course undisputed; but with every deference for the authority of so great a scholar as Lepsius, it may be doubted whether such identification can be taken as evidence of the original character of Osiris. For the religion of ancient Egypt1016 may be described as a confederacy of local cults which, while maintaining against each other a certain measure of jealous and even hostile independence, were yet constantly subjected to the fusing and amalgamating action of political centralisation and philosophical reflection. The history of the religion appears to have largely consisted of a struggle between these opposite forces or tendencies. On the one side there was the conservative tendency to preserve the local cults with all their distinctive features, fresh, sharp, and crisp, as they had been handed down from an immemorial past. On the other side there was the progressive tendency, favoured by the gradual fusion of the people under a powerful central government, first to dull the edge of these provincial distinctions, and finally to break them down completely and merge them in a single national religion. The conservative party probably mustered in its ranks the great bulk of the people, their prejudices and affections being warmly enlisted in favour of the local deity, with whose temple and rites they had been familiar from childhood; and the popular aversion to change, based on the endearing effect of old association, must [pg 314] have been strongly reinforced by the less disinterested opposition of the local clergy, whose material interests would necessarily suffer with any decay of their shrines. On the other hand the kings, whose power and glory rose with the political and ecclesiastical consolidation of the nation, were the natural champions of religious unity; and their efforts would be seconded by the cultured and reflecting minority, who could hardly fail to be shocked by the many barbarous and revolting elements in the local rites. As usual in such cases, the process of religious unification appears to have been largely effected by discovering points of similarity, real or imaginary, between various local gods, which were thereupon declared to be only different names or manifestations of the same god.

Among modern Egyptologists, Lepsius, who connects Osiris with the sun, seems to mainly rely on the previously cited passage from Diodorus. However, he adds that the monuments also demonstrate "Even in later periods, Osiris was sometimes seen as Ra. In this form, he is referred to as Osiris-Ra even in the ‘Book of the Dead,’ [pg 313] and Isis is often called ‘the royal consort of Ra.’ "1015 That Ra was both the actual sun and the sun-god is certainly undisputed; however, with all respect for the authority of such a significant scholar as Lepsius, one might question whether this identification can serve as proof of Osiris’s original character. The religion of ancient Egypt1016 could be seen as a coalition of local cults that, while maintaining a certain level of jealous and even hostile independence from one another, were nonetheless constantly influenced by the unifying actions of political centralization and philosophical thought. The history of this religion seems to have largely revolved around a struggle between these opposing forces or tendencies. On one side, there was a conservative inclination to preserve the local cults with all their unique features, fresh, sharp, and crisp, as they had been passed down from a time long ago. On the other side, a progressive trend, supported by the gradual merging of the populace under a strong central government, aimed to lessen the distinctness of these regional identities, ultimately working to eradicate them altogether in favor of a single national religion. The conservative faction probably included the vast majority of the people, who had deeply ingrained affections for the local deity, with whose temple and rituals they had grown up. Their natural aversion to change, stemming from the comforting bond of longstanding associations, must [pg 314] have been significantly bolstered by the less-than-altruistic opposition from local clergy, whose financial well-being would inevitably decline with any diminishment of their shrines. Conversely, the kings, whose power and prestige increased alongside the political and religious consolidation of the nation, were the natural advocates for religious unity, and their efforts would be supported by a learned minority that would undoubtedly be disturbed by the many barbaric and shocking elements present in local rituals. As often happens in such situations, the process of religious unification appears to have been largely achieved by finding points of similarity, whether genuine or fabricated, among various local gods, which were then proclaimed to be merely different names or expressions of the same god.

Of the deities who thus acted as centres of attraction, absorbing in themselves a multitude of minor divinities, by far the most important was the sun-god Ra. There appear to have been few gods in Egypt who were not at one time or other identified with him. Ammon of Thebes, Horus of the East, Horus of Edfu, Chnum of Elephantine, Atum of Heliopolis, all were regarded as one god, the sun. Even the water-god Sobk, in spite of his crocodile shape, did not escape the same fate. Indeed one king, Amenhôtep IV, undertook to sweep away all the old gods at a stroke and replace them by a single god, the “great living disc of the sun.”1017 In the hymns composed in his honour, this deity is referred to as “the living disc of the sun, besides whom there is none other.” He is said to have made “the far heaven” and “men, beasts, and birds; he strengtheneth [pg 315] the eyes with his beams, and when he showeth himself, all flowers live and grow, the meadows flourish at his upgoing and are drunken at his sight, all cattle skip on their feet, and the birds that are in the marsh flutter for joy.” It is he “who bringeth the years, createth the months, maketh the days, calculateth the hours, the lord of time, by whom men reckon.” In his zeal for the unity of god, the king commanded to erase the names of all other gods from the monuments, and to destroy their images. His rage was particularly directed against the god Ammon, whose name and likeness were effaced wherever they were found; even the sanctity of the tomb was violated in order to destroy the memorials of the hated god. In some of the halls of the great temples at Carnac, Luxor, and other places, all the names of the gods, with a few chance exceptions, were scratched out. In no inscription cut in this king's reign was any god mentioned save the sun. He even changed his own name, Amenhôtep, because it was compounded of Ammon, and took instead the name of Chuen-'eten, “gleam of the sun's disc.” His death was followed by a violent reaction. The old gods were reinstated in their rank and privileges; their names and images were restored; and new temples were built. But all the shrines and palaces reared by the late king were thrown down; even the sculptures that referred to him and to his god in rock-tombs and on the sides of hills were erased or filled up with stucco; his name appears on no later monument, and was carefully omitted from all official lists.

Of the deities who served as focal points, drawing in numerous lesser gods, the most significant was the sun-god Ra. It seems that there were very few gods in Egypt who were not at any point linked to him. Ammon of Thebes, Horus of the East, Horus of Edfu, Chnum of Elephantine, Atum of Heliopolis, all were seen as one god, the sun. Even the water-god Sobk, despite his crocodile form, wasn't excluded from this. In fact, one king, Amenhôtep IV, sought to eliminate all the old gods at once and replace them with a single god, the “awesome living disk of the sun.”1017 In the hymns written in his honor, this deity is called “the bright disc of the sun, beside whom there is no one else.” It is said he created “the distant sky” and "men, animals, and birds; he brightens the eyes with his light, and when he shows up, all flowers bloom and grow, the meadows thrive at his rise and are energized by his presence, all cattle jump with joy, and the birds in the marsh flutter with happiness." He is the one “who brings the years, creates the months, makes the days, calculates the hours, the lord of time, by whom people measure time.” In his pursuit of the unity of god, the king ordered the erasure of all other gods' names from monuments and the destruction of their images. His anger was especially directed at the god Ammon, whose name and likeness were wiped out wherever found; even the sanctity of the tomb was violated to destroy the memorials of the despised god. In some of the halls of the great temples at Karnak, Luxor, and other sites, nearly all the names of the gods were scratched off, with just a few random exceptions. In no inscription from this king's reign was any god mentioned except for the sun. He even changed his own name, Amenhôtep, because it included Ammon, and adopted the name Chuen-'eten, "shine of the sun." After his death, there was a strong backlash. The old gods were restored to their former status and privileges; their names and images were reinstated, and new temples were constructed. But all the shrines and palaces built by the late king were dismantled; even the carvings related to him and his god in rock-tombs and on hillsides were erased or covered with plaster; his name does not appear on any later monument and was deliberately left out of all official records.

This attempt of King Amenhôtep IV is only an extreme example of a tendency which appears to have been at work on the religion of Egypt as far back [pg 316] as we can trace it. Therefore, to come back to our point, in attempting to discover the original character of any Egyptian god, no weight can be given to the identification of him with other gods, least of all with the sun-god Ra. Far from helping to follow up the trail, these identifications only cross and confuse it. The best evidence for the original character of the Egyptian gods is to be found in their ritual and myths, so far as these are known (which unfortunately is little enough), and in the figured representations of them on the monuments. It is on evidence drawn from these sources that I rely mainly for the interpretation of Osiris as a deity of vegetation.

This effort by King Amenhôtep IV is just a standout example of a trend that seems to have influenced the religion of Egypt for as long as we can trace it. So, to get back to our main point, when trying to understand the original nature of any Egyptian god, we can't put much weight on their identification with other gods, especially not with the sun-god Ra. Rather than helping to clarify the trail, these identifications only complicate and confuse it. The best evidence for the original nature of the Egyptian gods is found in their rituals and myths, as much as we know about them (which isn't a lot), and in their depictions on monuments. It's from these sources that I mainly draw evidence to interpret Osiris as a deity of vegetation.

Amongst a younger generation of scholars, Tiele is of opinion that Osiris is the sun, because “in the hymns, his accession to the throne of his father is compared to the rising of the sun, and it is even said of him in so many words: ‘He glitters on the horizon, he sends out rays of light from his double feather and inundates the world with it, as the sun from out the highest heaven.’ ”1018 By the same token Marie Antoinette must have been a goddess of the morning star, because Burke saw her at Versailles “just above the horizon, decorating and cheering the elevated sphere she just began to move in,—glittering like the morning star, full of life, and splendour, and joy.” If such comparisons prove anything, they prove that Osiris was not the sun. There are always two terms to a comparison; a thing cannot be compared to itself. But Tiele also appeals to the monuments. What is his evidence? Osiris is sometimes represented by a figure surmounted by “the so-called Tat pillar, entirely made up of a kind of superimposed capitals, one of which has a rude face scratched [pg 317] upon it.” Tiele is of opinion that this rude face is “intended, no doubt, to represent the shining sun.”1019 If every “rude face scratched” is to be taken as a symbol of the shining sun, sun-worship will be discovered in some unexpected places. But, on the whole, Tiele, like Jablonski, prudently keeps to the high ground of vague generalities, and the result of his occasional descents to the level of facts is not such as to encourage him to prolong his stay. “Were we to come down to details,” he says, “and to attend to slight variations, we should be lost in an ocean of symbolism and mysticism.”1020 This is like De Quincey's attitude towards murder. “General principles I will suggest. But as to any particular case, once for all I will have nothing to do with it.” There is no having a man who takes such lofty ground.

Among the younger generation of scholars, Tiele believes that Osiris is the sun because “In the hymns, his ascent to his father's throne is likened to the rising sun, and it is even clearly stated: ‘He shines on the horizon, sending out rays of light from his double feather, flooding the world with it, just like the sun from the highest heaven.’ ” 1018 Similarly, Marie Antoinette must have been a goddess of the morning star, as Burke saw her at Versailles "Just above the horizon, illuminating and elevating the higher realm she had just started to enter—sparkling like the morning star, full of vitality, brightness, and happiness." If such comparisons mean anything, they show that Osiris was not the sun. There are always two sides to a comparison; something cannot be compared to itself. But Tiele also references the monuments. What is his evidence? Osiris is sometimes depicted by a figure topped with “the so-called Tat pillar, made completely of a type of stacked capitals, one of which has a rough face scratched [pg 317] onto it.” Tiele believes that this rough face is "clearly meant to represent the shining sun." 1019 If every "rough, scratched face" is seen as a symbol of the shining sun, we might find sun-worship in some surprising places. Overall, Tiele, like Jablonski, wisely sticks to vague generalities, and the instances where he moves down to factual details do not seem to encourage him to stay there long. "If we were to concentrate on details," he says, "and pay attention to small differences, we would get overwhelmed by a flood of symbolism and mysticism." 1020 This echoes De Quincey's stance on murder. "I'll suggest some general principles, but I won't get involved in any specific cases." You can't engage with someone who takes such a high view.

Mr. Le Page Renouf also considers that Osiris is the sun,1021 and his position is still stronger than Tiele's. For whereas Tiele produces bad arguments for his view, Mr. Renouf produces none at all, and therefore cannot possibly be confuted.

Mr. Le Page Renouf also thinks that Osiris is the sun,1021 and his argument is even more convincing than Tiele's. While Tiele offers weak arguments for his perspective, Mr. Renouf provides none, making it impossible to refute him.

The ground upon which some recent writers seem chiefly to rely for the identification of Osiris with the sun is that the story of his death fits better with the solar phenomena than with any other in nature. It may readily be admitted that the daily appearance and disappearance of the sun might very naturally be expressed by a myth of his death and resurrection; and writers who regard Osiris as the sun are careful to emphasise the fact that it is the diurnal, and not the annual, course of the sun to which they understand the myth to apply. Mr. Renouf expressly admits that the [pg 318] Egyptian sun cannot with any show of reason be described as dead in winter.1022 But if his daily death was the theme of the legend, why was it celebrated by an annual ceremony? This fact alone seems fatal to the interpretation of the myth as descriptive of sunset and sunrise. Again, though the sun may be said to die daily, in what sense can he be said to be torn in pieces?1023

The basis that some recent writers seem to rely on for connecting Osiris with the sun is that his death story aligns more closely with solar phenomena than with anything else in nature. It's easy to agree that the sun's daily rise and set could be represented by a myth about death and resurrection; those who consider Osiris to be the sun emphasize that the myth pertains to the daily, not the annual, cycle of the sun. Mr. Renouf specifically acknowledges that the Egyptian sun can't reasonably be called dead in winter. But if his every day death was the focus of the legend, why is it commemorated with an yearly ceremony? This fact alone undermines the idea that the myth is about sunset and sunrise. Additionally, while the sun can be said to die every day, in what way can it be described as being torn into pieces?

In the course of our inquiry, it has, I trust, been made clear that there is another natural phenomenon [pg 319] to which the conception of death and resurrection is as applicable as to sunset and sunrise, and which, as a matter of fact has been so conceived and represented in folk-custom. This phenomenon is the annual growth and decay of vegetation. A strong reason for interpreting the death of Osiris as the decay of vegetation rather than as the sunset is to be found in the general (though not unanimous) voice of antiquity, which classed together the worship and myths of Osiris, Adonis, Attis, Dionysus, and Demeter, as religions of essentially the same type.1024 The consensus of ancient opinion on this subject seems too great to be rejected as a mere fancy. So closely did the rites of Osiris resemble those of Adonis at Byblus that some of the people of Byblus themselves maintained that it was Osiris and not Adonis whose death was mourned by them.1025 Such a view could certainly not have been held if the rituals of the two gods had not been so alike as to be almost indistinguishable. Again, Herodotus found the similarity between the rites of Osiris and Dionysus so great, that he thought it impossible the latter could have arisen independently; they must, he thought, have been recently borrowed, with slight alterations, by the Greeks from the Egyptians.1026 Again, Plutarch, a very intelligent student of comparative religion, insists upon the detailed resemblance of the rites of Osiris to those of Dionysus.1027 We cannot [pg 320] reject the evidence of such intelligent and trustworthy witnesses on plain matters of fact which fell under their own cognisance. Their explanations of the worships it is indeed possible to reject, for the meaning of religious cults is often open to question; but resemblances of ritual are matters of observation. Therefore, those who explain Osiris as the sun are driven to the alternative of either dismissing as mistaken the testimony of antiquity to the similarity of the rites of Osiris, Adonis, Attis, Dionysus, and Demeter, or of interpreting all these rites as sun-worship. No modern scholar has fairly faced and accepted either side of this alternative. To accept the former would be to affirm that we know the rites of these deities better than the men who practised, or at least who witnessed them. To accept the latter would involve a wrenching, clipping, mangling, and distorting of myth and ritual from which even Macrobius shrank.1028 On the other hand, the view that the essence of all these rites was the mimic death and revival of vegetation, explains them separately and collectively in an easy and natural way, and harmonises with the general testimony borne by antiquity to their substantial similarity. The evidence for thus explaining Adonis, Attis, and Osiris has now been presented to the reader; it remains to do the same for Dionysus and Demeter.

During our inquiry, I hope it has become clear that there is another natural phenomenon [pg 319] where the ideas of death and resurrection apply just as well as to sunset and sunrise, and which has actually been represented in folk customs. This phenomenon is the yearly growth and decay of plants. A strong argument for interpreting the death of Osiris as the decay of vegetation rather than as sunset lies in the general (though not unanimous) opinion of ancient times, which grouped together the worship and myths of Osiris, Adonis, Attis, Dionysus, and Demeter as religions of essentially the same type.1024 The common ancient belief on this topic seems too significant to disregard as mere imagination. The rituals of Osiris were so similar to those of Adonis at Byblus that some residents of Byblus claimed it was Osiris and not Adonis whose death they mourned.1025 Such a belief couldn't have existed if the rituals of the two gods had not been so alike as to be nearly indistinguishable. Moreover, Herodotus observed the similarity between the rites of Osiris and Dionysus to be so great that he believed it was impossible for the latter to have developed independently; he thought that the Greeks must have recently borrowed them, with minor changes, from the Egyptians.1026 Similarly, Plutarch, a keen student of comparative religion, emphasizes the detailed likeness of the rites of Osiris to those of Dionysus.1027 We cannot [pg 320] dismiss the evidence of such knowledgeable and reliable witnesses on straightforward matters that they observed firsthand. Their interpretations of the worships can certainly be questioned, as the meanings of religious practices are often debatable; however, ritual similarities are matters of observation. Therefore, those who interpret Osiris as the sun are forced to either reject the testimonies of ancient similarities between the rites of Osiris, Adonis, Attis, Dionysus, and Demeter as erroneous or to interpret all these rites as sun-worship. No modern scholar has fairly confronted and accepted either side of this dilemma. Accepting the former would mean claiming we understand the rites of these deities better than the people who practiced or at least witnessed them. Accepting the latter would involve a twisting, cutting, and distorting of mythology and ritual that even Macrobius found unpalatable.1028 Conversely, the idea that the core of all these rites was the mimicry of the death and revival of vegetation explains them both individually and collectively in a straightforward and natural manner, and aligns with the overall ancient testimony regarding their substantial similarity. The evidence for explaining Adonis, Attis, and Osiris this way has already been presented to the reader; it remains to apply the same reasoning to Dionysus and Demeter.

§ 7.—Dionysus.

The Greek god Dionysus or Bacchus1029 is best known as the god of the vine, but he was also a god [pg 321] of trees in general. Thus we are told that almost all the Greeks sacrificed to “Dionysus of the tree.”1030 In Boeotia one of his titles was “Dionysus in the tree.”1031 His image was often merely an upright post, without arms, but draped in a mantle, with a bearded mask to represent the head, and with leafy boughs projecting from the head or body to show the nature of the deity.1032 On a vase his rude effigy is depicted appearing out of a low tree or bush.1033 He was the patron of cultivated trees;1034 prayers were offered to him that he would make the trees grow;1035 and he was especially honoured by husbandmen, chiefly fruit-growers, who set up an image of him, in the shape of a natural tree-stump, in their orchards.1036 He was said to have discovered all tree-fruits, amongst which apples and figs are particularly mentioned;1037 and he was himself spoken of as doing a husbandman's work.1038 He was referred to as “well-fruited,” “he of the green fruit,” and “making the fruit to grow.”1039 One of his titles was “teeming” or “bursting” (as of sap or blossoms);1040 and there was a Flowery Dionysus in Attica and at Patrae in Achaea.1041 Amongst the trees particularly sacred to him, in addition to the vine, was the pine-tree.1042 [pg 322] The Delphic oracle commanded the Corinthians to worship a particular pine-tree “equally with the god,” so they made two images of Dionysus out of it, with red faces and gilt bodies.1043 In art a wand, tipped with a pine-cone, is commonly carried by the god or his worshippers.1044 Again, the ivy and the fig-tree were especially associated with him. In the Attic township of Acharnae there was a Dionysus Ivy;1045 at Lacedaemon there was a Fig Dionysus; and in Naxos, where figs were called meilicha, there was a Dionysus Meilichios, the face of whose image was made of fig-wood.1046

The Greek god Dionysus, also known as Bacchus, is best known as the god of the vine, but he was also a god [pg 321] of trees in general. Almost all the Greeks sacrificed to "Dionysus of the tree." In Boeotia, one of his titles was “Dionysus in the tree.” His image was often just an upright post, without arms, draped in a mantle, with a bearded mask as the head, and leafy branches coming from the head or body to represent the nature of the deity. On a vase, his simple figure is depicted emerging from a low tree or bush. He was the patron of cultivated trees; prayers were offered to him for the trees to thrive, and he was especially honored by farmers, particularly fruit-growers, who set up an image of him, shaped like a natural tree-stump, in their orchards. He was said to have discovered all tree-fruits, especially apples and figs; and he was talked about as engaging in a farmer's work. He was referred to as "fruitful," “the guy with the green fruit,” and “growing the fruit.” One of his titles was bustling or "exploding" (like sap or blossoms); and there was a Flowery Dionysus in Attica and at Patrae in Achaea. Among the trees particularly sacred to him, besides the vine, was the pine-tree. [pg 322] The Delphic oracle instructed the Corinthians to worship a specific pine-tree "equal to the god," so they made two images of Dionysus from it, with red faces and gilt bodies. In art, a wand topped with a pine-cone is often held by the god or his worshippers. Additionally, the ivy and the fig-tree were especially associated with him. In the Attic township of Acharnae, there was a Dionysus Ivy; at Lacedaemon, there was a Fig Dionysus; and in Naxos, where figs were called meilicha, there was a Dionysus Meilichios, whose image was made of fig-wood.

Like the other gods of vegetation whom we have been considering, Dionysus was believed to have died a violent death, but to have been brought to life again; and his sufferings, death, and resurrection were enacted in his sacred rites. The Cretan myth, as related by Firmicus, ran thus. He was said to have been the bastard son of Jupiter (Zeus), a Cretan king. Going abroad, Jupiter transferred the throne and sceptre to the child Dionysus, but, knowing that his wife Juno (Hera) cherished a jealous dislike of the child, he entrusted Dionysus to the care of guards upon whose fidelity he believed he could rely. Juno, however, bribed the guards, and amusing the child with toys and a cunningly-wrought looking-glass lured him into an ambush, where her satellites, the Titans, rushed upon him, cut him limb from limb, boiled his body [pg 323] with various herbs and ate it. But his sister Minerva, who had shared in the deed, kept his heart and gave it to Jupiter on his return, revealing to him the whole history of the crime. In his rage, Jupiter put the Titans to death by torture, and, to soothe his grief for the loss of his son, made an image in which he enclosed the child's heart, and then built a temple in his honour.1047 In this version a Euhemeristic turn has been given to the myth by representing Jupiter and Juno (Zeus and Hera) as a king and queen of Crete. The guards referred to are the mythical Curetes who danced a war-dance round the infant Dionysus as they are said to have done round the infant Zeus.1048 Pomegranates were supposed to have sprung from the blood of Dionysus,1049 as anemones from the blood of Adonis and violets from the blood of Attis. According to some, the severed limbs of Dionysus were pieced together, at the command of Zeus, by Apollo, who buried them on Parnassus.1050 The grave of Dionysus was shown in the Delphic temple beside a golden statue of Apollo.1051 Thus far the resurrection of the slain god is not mentioned, but in other versions of the myth it is variously related. One version, which represented Dionysus as a son of Demeter, averred that his mother pieced together his mangled limbs and made him young again.1052 In others it is simply said that shortly after his burial he rose from [pg 324] the dead and ascended up to heaven;1053 or that Zeus raised him up as he lay mortally wounded;1054 or that Zeus swallowed the heart of Dionysus and then begat him afresh by Semele,1055 who in the common legend figures as mother of Dionysus. Or, again, the heart was pounded up and given in a potion to Semele, who thereby conceived him.1056

Like the other gods of vegetation we've been discussing, Dionysus was thought to have died a violent death but was brought back to life; his struggles, death, and resurrection were acted out in his sacred rituals. According to the Cretan myth related by Firmicus, he was said to be the illegitimate son of Jupiter (Zeus), a king of Crete. While away, Jupiter handed the throne and scepter to his child Dionysus, but knowing that his wife Juno (Hera) harbored jealousy toward the child, he entrusted Dionysus to the care of guards he believed could be trusted. However, Juno bribed the guards, amusing the child with toys and a cleverly made mirror, luring him into an ambush where her followers, the Titans, attacked him, tore him apart, boiled his body with various herbs, and consumed it. Yet, his sister Minerva, who was involved in the act, kept his heart and gave it to Jupiter upon his return, revealing the full story of the crime. In his fury, Jupiter tortured the Titans to death, and to ease his grief for losing his son, he created an image containing the child's heart and then built a temple in his honor. In this version, the myth takes a Euhemeristic turn by depicting Jupiter and Juno (Zeus and Hera) as a king and queen of Crete. The guards mentioned are the mythical Curetes who performed a war dance around infant Dionysus, just as they were said to have done for infant Zeus. Pomegranates were believed to have emerged from the blood of Dionysus, just as anemones came from the blood of Adonis and violets from the blood of Attis. According to some, Zeus commanded Apollo to piece together Dionysus's severed limbs, and Apollo buried them on Parnassus. The grave of Dionysus was shown in the Delphic temple next to a golden statue of Apollo. Up until now, the resurrection of the slain god hasn’t been mentioned, but in other versions of the myth, it is told in various ways. One version, which depicted Dionysus as a son of Demeter, claimed that his mother pieced together his broken limbs and made him young again. In other versions, it’s simply stated that shortly after his burial, he rose from the dead and ascended to heaven; or that Zeus raised him while he was still mortally injured; or that Zeus swallowed the heart of Dionysus and then renewed him with Semele, who in common legend is known as the mother of Dionysus. Alternatively, the heart was ground up and given in a drink to Semele, resulting in her conceiving him.

Turning from the myth to the ritual, we find that the Cretans celebrated a biennial1057 festival at which the sufferings and death of Dionysus were represented in every detail.1058 Where the resurrection formed part of the myth, it also was enacted at the rites,1059 and it even appears that a general doctrine of resurrection, or at least of immortality, was inculcated on the worshippers; for Plutarch, writing to console his wife on the death of their infant daughter, comforts her with the thought of the immortality of the soul as taught by tradition and revealed in the mysteries of Dionysus.1060

Turning from the myth to the ritual, we find that the Cretans celebrated a biennial festival at which the sufferings and death of Dionysus were portrayed in every detail. Where the resurrection was part of the myth, it was also performed during the rites, and it seems that a general belief in resurrection, or at least immortality, was taught to the worshippers; for Plutarch, writing to comfort his wife after the death of their infant daughter, reassures her with the idea of the soul's immortality as taught by tradition and revealed in the mysteries of Dionysus.

A different form of the myth of the death and resurrection of Dionysus is that he descended into Hades to bring up his mother Semele from the dead.1061 The local Argive tradition was that he descended [pg 325] through the Alcyonian lake; and his return from the lower world, in other words his resurrection, was annually celebrated on the spot by the Argives, who summoned him from the water by trumpet blasts, while they threw a lamb into the lake as an offering to the warder of the dead.1062 Whether this was a spring festival does not appear, but the Lydians certainly celebrated the advent of Dionysus in spring; the god was supposed to bring the season with him.1063 Deities of vegetation, who are supposed to pass a certain portion of each year underground, naturally come to be regarded as gods of the lower world or of the dead. Both Dionysus and Osiris were so conceived.1064

A different version of the myth about the death and resurrection of Dionysus is that he went to Hades to bring his mother Semele back from the dead.1061 The local tradition in Argos said he descended [pg 325] through Alcyonian lake; and his return from the underworld, or his resurrection, was celebrated every year on that spot by the Argives, who called him up from the water with trumpet blasts while throwing a lamb into the lake as an offering to the guardian of the dead.1062 It's unclear if this was a spring festival, but the Lydians definitely celebrated the arrival of Dionysus in spring; the god was believed to bring the season with him.1063 Deities associated with vegetation, who are thought to spend part of each year underground, are often seen as gods of the underworld or of the dead. Both Dionysus and Osiris were viewed this way.1064

A feature in the mythical character of Dionysus, which at first sight appears inconsistent with his nature as a deity of vegetation, is that he was often conceived and represented in animal shape, especially in the form, or at least with the horns, of a bull. Thus he is spoken of as “cow-born,” “bull,” “bull-shaped,” “bull-faced,” “bull-browed,” “bull-horned,” “horn-bearing,” “two-horned,” “horned.”1065 He was believed to appear, at least occasionally, as a bull.1066 His images were often, as at Cyzicus, made in bull shape,1067 or with bull horns;1068 and he was painted with horns.1069 Types of the horned Dionysus are found amongst the surviving [pg 326] monuments of antiquity.1070 On one statuette he appears clad in a bull's hide, the head, horns, and hoofs hanging down behind.1071 At his festivals Dionysus was believed to appear in bull form. The women of Elis hailed him as a bull, and prayed him to come with his bull's-foot. They sang, “Come here, Dionysus, to thy holy temple by the sea; come with the Graces to thy temple, rushing with thy bull's-foot, O goodly bull, O goodly bull!”1072 According to the myth, it was in the shape of a bull that he was torn to pieces by the Titans;1073 and the Cretans, in representing the sufferings and death of Dionysus, tore a live bull to pieces with their teeth.1074 Indeed, the rending and devouring of live bulls and calves appear to have been a regular feature of the Dionysiac rites.1075 The practice of representing the god in bull form or with some of the features of a bull, the belief that he appeared in bull form to his worshippers at the sacred rites, and the legend that it was in bull form that he had been torn in pieces—all these facts taken together leave no room to doubt that in rending and devouring a live bull at his festival his worshippers believed that they were killing the god, eating his flesh, and drinking his blood.

A characteristic of the mythical figure of Dionysus that seems inconsistent with his identity as a god of vegetation is that he was often imagined and depicted in animal form, particularly as a bull, or at least with bull horns. He is referred to as “money-making,” “bull” "bull-shaped," "bull-headed," “heavy-browed,” "bullhorned," “horned,” "two-horned" “horned.”1065 He was thought to appear, at least sometimes, as a bull.1066 His images were frequently created in the shape of a bull, as seen in Cyzicus, 1067 or with bull horns;1068 and he was often painted with horns.1069 Examples of the horned Dionysus can be found among the remaining [pg 326] monuments from ancient times.1070 In one statuette, he is depicted wearing a bull's hide, with the head, horns, and hooves hanging down behind.1071 At his festivals, Dionysus was believed to appear in the form of a bull. The women of Elis celebrated him as a bull, praying for him to come with his bull's foot. They sang, “Come here, Dionysus, to your sacred temple by the sea; come with the Graces to your temple, charging in with your bull's foot, O beautiful bull, O beautiful bull!”1072 According to the myth, it was in the shape of a bull that he was torn apart by the Titans;1073 and the Cretans, when depicting the sufferings and death of Dionysus, tore a live bull apart with their teeth.1074 In fact, the act of tearing and consuming live bulls and calves seems to have been a standard aspect of the Dionysian rituals.1075 The tradition of representing the god in bull form or with bull-like features, the belief that he appeared as a bull to his worshippers during sacred rites, and the legend that he was torn apart in bull form—all of these together leave no doubt that by tearing and consuming a live bull at his festival, his worshippers believed they were killing the god, eating his flesh, and drinking his blood.

Another animal whose form Dionysus assumed was the goat. One of his names was Kid.1076 To save him from the wrath of Hera, his father Zeus changed [pg 327] him into a kid;1077 and when the gods fled to Egypt to escape the fury of Typhon, Dionysus was turned into a goat.1078 Hence when his worshippers rent in pieces a live goat and devoured it raw,1079 they must have believed that they were eating the body and blood of the god.

Another animal that Dionysus took the form of was the goat. One of his names was Child.1076 To protect him from Hera's anger, his father Zeus turned [pg 327] him into a kid;1077 and when the gods fled to Egypt to escape Typhon's rage, Dionysus was transformed into a goat.1078 Therefore, when his followers tore apart a live goat and ate it raw,1079 they must have thought they were consuming the body and blood of the god.

This custom of killing a god in animal form, which we shall examine more fully presently, belongs to a very early stage in human culture, and is apt in later times to be misunderstood. The advance of thought tends to strip the old animal and plant gods of their bestial and vegetable husk, and to leave their human attributes (which are always the kernel of the conception) as the final and sole residuum. In other words, animal and plant gods tend to become purely anthropomorphic. When they have become wholly or nearly so, the animals and plants which were at first the deities themselves, still retain a vague and ill-understood connection with the anthropomorphic gods which have been developed out of them. The origin of the relationship between the deity and the animal or plant having been forgotten, various stories are invented to explain it. These explanations may follow one of two lines according as they are based on the habitual or on the exceptional treatment of the sacred animal or plant. The sacred animal was habitually spared, and only exceptionally slain; and accordingly the myth might be devised to explain either why it was spared or why [pg 328] it was killed. Devised for the former purpose, the myth would tell of some service rendered to the deity by the animal; devised for the latter purpose, the myth would tell of some injury inflicted by the animal on the god. The reason given for sacrificing goats to Dionysus is an example of a myth of the latter sort. They were sacrificed to him, it was said, because they injured the vine.1080 Now the goat, as we have seen, was originally an embodiment of the god himself. But when the god had divested himself of his animal character and had become essentially anthropomorphic, the killing of the goat in his worship came to be regarded no longer as a slaying of the god himself, but as a sacrifice to him; and since some reason had to be assigned why the goat in particular should be sacrificed, it was alleged that this was a punishment inflicted on the goat for injuring the vine, the object of the god's especial care. Thus we have the strange spectacle of a god sacrificed to himself on the ground that he is his own enemy. And as the god is supposed to partake of the victim offered to him, it follows that, when the victim is the god's old self, the god eats of his own flesh. Hence the goat-god Dionysus is represented as eating raw goat's blood;1081 and the bull-god Dionysus is called “eater of bulls.”1082 On the analogy of these instances we may conjecture that wherever a god is described as the eater of a particular animal, the animal in question was originally nothing but the god himself.1083

This practice of killing a god in animal form, which we will explore in more detail shortly, comes from an early stage of human culture and can be easily misinterpreted in later times. As human thought evolves, the ancient animal and plant gods lose their raw, natural forms, retaining only their human characteristics, which are the core of the concept. In simpler terms, animal and plant gods often become purely human-like. Once they've transformed this way, the animals and plants that were once the deities themselves keep a vague and poorly understood link to the anthropomorphic gods that emerged from them. Over time, the original connection between the deity and the animal or plant is forgotten, leading to the creation of various stories to explain it. These explanations typically follow one of two paths, depending on whether they are based on the usual or unusual treatment of the sacred animal or plant. The sacred animal was usually spared and only killed on rare occasions; therefore, the myth could explain either why it was spared or why it was killed. If created for the first purpose, the myth would describe a service the animal performed for the deity; if for the second purpose, it would explain some harm the animal caused to the god. An example of a myth of the second type is the reason given for sacrificing goats to Dionysus, which was said to be because they harmed the vine. Now, the goat, as we have observed, was originally a representation of the god himself. But once the god had shed his animal persona and become more human-like, the act of killing the goat in his worship was no longer seen as the death of the god but as a sacrifice to him. Since a justification was needed for why the goat specifically should be sacrificed, it was claimed that this was punishment for harming the vine, which the god particularly cared for. Thus, we see the strange situation of a god being sacrificed to himself under the notion that he is his own enemy. Moreover, since the god is believed to consume part of the offering made to him, when the victim is the god's former self, it implies that the god is essentially eating his own flesh. Hence, the goat-god Dionysus is depicted as consuming raw goat's blood, and the bull-god Dionysus is referred to as “eater of bulls.” By analogy, we can speculate that wherever a god is said to eat a specific animal, that animal was originally just the god himself.

[pg 329]

All this, however, does not explain why a deity of vegetation should appear in animal form. But the consideration of this point had better be deferred till we have discussed the character and attributes of Demeter. Meantime it remains to point out that in some places, instead of an animal, a human being was torn in pieces at the rites of Dionysus. This was the custom in Chios and Tenedos;1084 and at Potniae in Boeotia the tradition ran that it had been formerly the custom to sacrifice to the goat-smiting Dionysus a child, for whom a goat was afterwards substituted.1085 At Orchomenus the human victim was taken from the women of a certain family, called the Oleiae. At the annual festival the priest of Dionysus pursued these women with a drawn sword, and if he overtook one of them he had a right to slay her. This right was exercised as late as Plutarch's time.1086 As the slain bull or goat represented the slain god, so, we may suppose, the human victim also represented him. It is possible, however, that a tradition of human sacrifice may sometimes have been a mere misinterpretation of a sacrificial ritual in which an animal victim was treated as a human being. For example, at Tenedos the new-born calf sacrificed to Dionysus was shod in buskins, and the mother cow was tended like a woman in child-bed.1087

All of this, however, doesn’t explain why a fertility god would show up in animal form. But it's better to put off discussing this until we have covered the nature and attributes of Demeter. In the meantime, it's important to note that in some places, instead of an animal, a person was torn to pieces during the rites of Dionysus. This was the practice in Chios and Tenedos; and in Potniae, Boeotia, there was a tradition that it used to be customary to sacrifice a child to the goat-smiting Dionysus, who was later replaced by a goat. In Orchomenus, the human victim was chosen from the women of a particular family known as the Oleiae. During the annual festival, the priest of Dionysus chased these women with a drawn sword, and if he caught one, he had the right to kill her. This right was still being exercised as recently as Plutarch's time. Just as the slaughtered bull or goat symbolized the slain god, we can assume that the human victim did too. However, it’s also possible that the tradition of human sacrifice sometimes stemmed from a misunderstanding of a sacrificial ritual where an animal victim was treated like a human. For example, in Tenedos, the newborn calf that was sacrificed to Dionysus was shod in boots, and the mother cow was cared for as if she were a woman giving birth.

[pg 330]

Demeter and Persephone.

The Greek myth of Demeter and Proserpine is substantially identical with the Syrian myth of Aphrodite (Astarte) and Adonis, the Phrygian myth of Cybele and Attis, and the Egyptian myth of Isis and Osiris. In the Greek myth, as in its Asiatic and Egyptian counterparts, a goddess—Demeter—mourns the loss of a loved one—Proserpine—who personifies the vegetation, more especially the corn, which dies in summer1088 to revive in spring. But in the Greek myth the loved and lost one is the daughter instead of the husband or lover of the goddess; and the mother as well as the daughter is a goddess of the corn.1089 Thus, as modern scholars have recognised,1090 Demeter and Proserpine are merely a mythical reduplication of the same natural phenomenon. Proserpine, so ran the Greek myth,1091 was gathering flowers when the earth gaped, and Pluto, lord of the Dead, issuing from the abyss, carried her off on his golden car to be his bride in the gloomy subterranean world. Her sorrowing mother Demeter sought her over land and sea, and learning from the [pg 331] Sun her daughter's fate, she suffered not the seed to grow, but kept it hidden in the ground, so that the whole race of men would have died of hunger if Zeus had not sent and fetched Proserpine from the nether world. Finally it was agreed that Proserpine should spend a third, or according to others a half,1092 of each year with Pluto underground, but should come forth in spring to dwell with her mother and the gods in the upper world. Her annual death and resurrection, that is, her annual descent into the under world and her ascension from it, appear to have been represented in her rites.1093

The Greek myth of Demeter and Proserpine closely parallels the Syrian myth of Aphrodite (Astarte) and Adonis, the Phrygian myth of Cybele and Attis, and the Egyptian myth of Isis and Osiris. In the Greek myth, as in its Asian and Egyptian versions, a goddess—Demeter—grieves for a loved one—Proserpine—who symbolizes the crops, especially the grain, which dies in summer to come back to life in spring. However, in the Greek story, the lost loved one is the daughter rather than the goddess's husband or lover; both the mother and daughter are goddesses of the harvest. Therefore, as modern scholars have noted, Demeter and Proserpine are just different representations of the same natural cycle. According to the Greek myth, Proserpine was picking flowers when the earth opened up, and Pluto, the lord of the Underworld, emerged from the depths and took her away on his golden chariot to be his bride in the dark underground realm. Heartbroken, Demeter searched everywhere for her, and when she learned from the Sun what had happened to her daughter, she refused to let the crops grow, hiding the seeds in the ground. This resulted in a famine that would have wiped out humanity if Zeus hadn't intervened and brought Proserpine back from the Underworld. Eventually, it was agreed that Proserpine would spend a third, or according to some accounts, half, of each year with Pluto below ground, but would return in spring to be with her mother and the gods above. Her yearly death and rebirth, or her descent into the Underworld and subsequent return, were likely depicted in her rites.

With regard to the name Demeter, it has been plausibly argued by Mannhardt1094 that the first part of the word is derived from dēai, a Cretan word for “barley”;1095 and that thus Demeter means the Barley-mother or the Corn-mother; for the root of the word appears to have been applied to different kinds of grain by different branches of the Aryans, and even of the Greeks themselves.1096 As Crete appears to have been one of the most ancient seats of the worship of Demeter,1097 it is not surprising that her name should be of Cretan origin. This explanation of the name Demeter is supported by a host of analogies which the diligence of Mannhardt has collected [pg 332] from modern European folk-lore, and of which the following are specimens. In Germany the corn is very commonly personified under the name of the Corn-mother. Thus in spring, when the wind sets the corn in wave-like motion, the peasants say, “There comes the Corn-mother,” or “The Corn-mother is running over the field,” or “The Corn-mother is going through the corn.”1098 When children wish to go into the fields to pull the blue corn-flowers or the red poppies, they are told not to do so, because the Corn-mother is sitting in the corn and will catch them.1099 Or again she is called, according to the crop, the Rye-mother or the Pea-mother, and children are warned against straying in the rye or among the peas by threats of the Rye-mother or the Pea-mother. In Norway also the Pea-mother is said to sit among the peas.1100 Similar expressions are current among the Slavs. The Poles and Czechs warn children against the Corn-mother who sits in the corn. Or they call her the Old Corn-woman, and say that she sits in the corn and strangles the children who tread it down.1101 The Lithuanians say, “The Old Rye-woman sits in the corn.”1102 Again the Corn-mother is believed to make the crop grow. Thus in the neighbourhood of Magdeburg it is sometimes said, “It will be a good year for flax; the Flax-mother has been seen.” At Dinkelsbühl (Bavaria) down to fifteen or twenty years ago, people believed that when the crops on a particular farm compared unfavourably with those of the neighbourhood, the reason was that the Corn-mother had punished the farmer for his sins.1103 In a village of Styria it is said that the Corn-mother, in the shape of a female [pg 333] puppet made out of the last sheaf of corn and dressed in white, may be seen at midnight in the corn-fields, which she fertilises by passing through them; but if she is angry with a farmer, she withers up all his corn.1104

With respect to the name Demeter, Mannhardt has convincingly argued that the first part of the word comes from dēai, a Cretan word for barley;1095 suggesting that Demeter means the Barley-mother or the Corn-mother. The root of the word seems to have been applied to various types of grain by different branches of the Aryans, including the Greeks themselves.1096 Since Crete is thought to be one of the earliest places of worship for Demeter,1097 it isn't surprising that her name has Cretan origins. This interpretation of the name Demeter is backed by numerous analogies collected by Mannhardt from modern European folklore, of which the following are examples. In Germany, corn is often personified as the Corn-mother. In spring, when the wind creates a wave-like motion in the corn, farmers might say, “Here comes the Corn-mother,” or "The Corn-mother is running across the field," or “The Corn-mother is examining the corn.”1098 When children want to go into the fields to pick blue cornflowers or red poppies, they are warned not to, because the Corn-mother is sitting in the corn and will catch them.1099 Additionally, she is referred to, depending on the crop, as the Rye-mother or the Pea-mother, and children are threatened with the Rye-mother or the Pea-mother if they stray in the rye or among the peas. In Norway, it is also said that the Pea-mother is sitting among the peas.1100 Similar phrases are found among the Slavs. The Poles and Czechs warn children about the Corn-mother who is in the corn. Alternatively, they refer to her as the Old Corn-woman and say she sits in the corn and strangles any children who trample it.1101 The Lithuanians say, “The old rye woman sits in the corn.”1102 Furthermore, the Corn-mother is believed to help crops grow. For instance, in the Magdeburg area, people sometimes say, “It’s going to be a great year for flax; the Flax-mother has been spotted.” Up until fifteen or twenty years ago in Dinkelsbühl (Bavaria), people believed that if the crops on a specific farm were worse than those nearby, it was the Corn-mother punishing the farmer for his sins.1103 In a village in Styria, it is said that the Corn-mother, represented as a female [pg 333] puppet made from the last sheaf of corn and dressed in white, can be seen at midnight in the cornfields, which she fertilizes as she passes through; but if she is angry with a farmer, she will wither all his corn.1104

Further, the Corn-mother plays an important part in harvest customs. She is believed to be present in the handful of corn which is left standing last on the field; and with the cutting of this last handful she is caught, or driven away, or killed. In the first of these cases, the last sheaf is carried joyfully home and honoured as a divine being. It is placed in the barn, and at threshing the corn-spirit appears again.1105 In the district of Hadeln (Hanover) the reapers stand round the last sheaf and beat it with sticks in order to drive the Corn-mother out of it. They call to each other, “There she is! hit her! Take care she doesn't catch you!” The beating goes on till the grain is completely threshed out; then the Corn-mother is believed to be driven away.1106 In the neighbourhood of Danzig the person who cuts the last ears of corn makes them into a doll, which is called the Corn-mother or the Old Woman, and is brought home on the last waggon.1107 In some parts of Holstein the last sheaf is dressed in woman's clothes and called the Corn-mother. It is carried home on the last waggon, and then thoroughly drenched with water. The drenching with water is doubtless a rain-charm.1108 In the district of Bruck in Styria the last sheaf, called the Corn-mother, is made up into the shape of a woman by the oldest married woman in the village, of an age from fifty to fifty-five years. The finest ears are plucked out of it [pg 334] and made into a wreath, which, twined with flowers, is carried on her head by the prettiest girl of the village to the farmer or squire, while the Corn-mother is laid down in the barn to keep off the mice.1109 In other villages of the same district the Corn-mother, at the close of harvest, is carried by two lads at the top of a pole. They march behind the girl who wears the wreath to the squire's house, and while he receives the wreath and hangs it up in the hall, the Corn-mother is placed on the top of a pile of wood, where she is the centre of the harvest supper and dance. Afterwards she is hung up in the barn and remains there till the threshing is over. The man who gives the last stroke at threshing is called the son of the Corn-mother; he is tied up in the Corn-mother, beaten, and carried through the village. The wreath is dedicated in church on the following Sunday; and on Easter Eve the grain is rubbed out of it by a seven years' old girl and scattered amongst the young corn. At Christmas the straw of the wreath is placed in the manger to make the cattle thrive.1110 Here the fertilising power of the Corn-mother is plainly brought out by scattering the seed taken from her body (for the wreath is made out of the Corn-mother) among the new corn; and her influence over animal life is indicated by placing the straw in the manger. At Westerhüsen in Saxony the last corn cut is made in the shape of a woman decked with ribbons and cloth. It is fastened on a pole and brought home on the last waggon. One of the people on the waggon keeps waving the pole, so that the figure moves as if alive. It is placed on the threshing-floor, and stays there till the threshing is done.1111 Amongst the Slavs also the [pg 335] last sheaf is known as the Rye-mother, the Wheat-mother, the Oats-mother, the Barley-mother, etc., according to the crop. In the district of Tarnow, Galicia, the wreath made out of the last stalks is called the Wheat-mother, Rye-mother, or Pea-mother. It is placed on a girl's head and kept till spring, when some of the grain is mixed with the seed-corn.1112 Here again the fertilising power of the Corn-mother is indicated. In France, also, in the neighbourhood of Auxerre, the last sheaf goes by the name of the Mother of the Wheat, Mother of the Barley, Mother of the Rye, or Mother of the Oats. It is left standing in the field till the last waggon is about to wend homewards. Then a puppet is made out of it, dressed with clothes belonging to the farmer, and adorned with a crown and a blue or white scarf. A branch of a tree is stuck in the breast of the puppet, which is now called the Ceres. At the dance in the evening the Ceres is placed in the middle of the floor, and the reaper who reaped fastest dances round it with the prettiest girl for his partner. After the dance a pyre is made. All the girls, each wearing a wreath, strip the puppet, pull it to pieces, and place it on the pyre, along with the flowers with which it was adorned. Then the girl who was the first to finish reaping sets fire to the pile, and all pray that Ceres may give a fruitful year. Here, as Mannhardt observes, the old custom has remained intact, though the name Ceres is a bit of schoolmaster's learning.1113 In Upper Britanny the last sheaf is always made into human shape; but if the farmer is a married man, it is made double and consists of a little corn-puppet placed inside of a large one. This is called the Mother-sheaf. It is delivered to the [pg 336] farmer's wife, who unties it and gives drink-money in return.1114

Furthermore, the Corn-mother plays a key role in harvest traditions. She is thought to be embodied in the last handful of corn left standing in the field; when this handful is cut, she is either captured, driven away, or killed. In the first scenario, the last sheaf is taken home joyfully and honored as a divine figure. It is placed in the barn, and during threshing, the corn-spirit reappears. In the Hadeln region (Hanover), the reapers gather around the last sheaf and hit it with sticks to drive the Corn-mother out. They shout to each other, “There she is! Get her! Be careful she doesn't catch you!” The beating continues until all the grain is threshed out; then the Corn-mother is believed to be driven away. In the Danzig area, the person who cuts the last ears of corn makes them into a doll called the Corn-mother or the Old Woman, which is brought home on the last wagon. In some parts of Holstein, the last sheaf is dressed in women’s clothing and referred to as the Corn-mother. It is taken home on the last wagon and then soaked in water. This soaking is likely a rain charm. In the Bruck district of Styria, the last sheaf, known as the Corn-mother, is shaped like a woman by the oldest married woman in the village, typically aged between fifty and fifty-five. The best ears are plucked from it and made into a wreath, which is worn on the head of the prettiest girl in the village as she takes it to the farmer or squire, while the Corn-mother is set down in the barn to deter mice. In other villages in the same area, the Corn-mother is carried by two boys at the top of a pole at the end of the harvest. They follow the girl wearing the wreath to the squire's house, and while he receives the wreath and hangs it up in the hall, the Corn-mother is placed on a pile of wood, becoming the centerpiece of the harvest feast and dance. Afterward, she is hung up in the barn until threshing is complete. The last person to thresh is called the son of the Corn-mother; he is tied up in the Corn-mother, beaten, and paraded through the village. The wreath is dedicated in church the following Sunday, and on Easter Eve, a seven-year-old girl rubs the grain out of it and scatters it among the young corn. At Christmas, the straw from the wreath is placed in the manger for the cattle to thrive. Here, the fertilizing power of the Corn-mother is clearly represented by scattering the seeds from her body (since the wreath is made from the Corn-mother) among the new corn, and her influence on animal life is suggested by putting the straw in the manger. In Westerhüsen, Saxony, the last corn cut is shaped like a woman adorned with ribbons and fabric. It is fastened to a pole and brought home on the last wagon, where someone waves the pole, making the figure appear alive. It stays on the threshing floor until the threshing is finished. Among the Slavs, the last sheaf is referred to as the Rye-mother, Wheat-mother, Oats-mother, Barley-mother, etc., depending on the crop. In Tarnow, Galicia, the wreath made from the last stalks is called the Wheat-mother, Rye-mother, or Pea-mother. It is placed on a girl's head and kept until spring, when some of the grain is mixed with the seed corn. Once again, the fertilizing power of the Corn-mother is implied. In France, particularly near Auxerre, the last sheaf is termed the Mother of the Wheat, Mother of the Barley, Mother of the Rye, or Mother of the Oats. It is left standing in the field until the last wagon is about to head home. Then a puppet is made from it, dressed in the farmer's clothes, and adorned with a crown and a blue or white scarf. A branch is stuck in the puppet's chest, which is now called Ceres. In the evening dance, Ceres is placed in the middle of the floor, and the reaper who harvested the fastest dances around it with the prettiest girl as his partner. After the dance, a pyre is created. All the girls, each wearing a wreath, strip the puppet, pull it apart, and place it on the pyre along with the flowers that adorned it. Then the girl who finished reaping first lights the fire, and everyone prays for a fruitful year from Ceres. As Mannhardt notes, the old custom has remained intact, although the name Ceres may come from more scholarly sources. In Upper Brittany, the last sheaf is always fashioned into a human shape; however, if the farmer is married, it is made double, consisting of a small corn puppet inside a larger one. This is called the Mother-sheaf. It is delivered to the farmer's wife, who unties it and gives a tip in return.

Sometimes the last sheaf is called, not the Corn-mother, but the Harvest-mother or the Great Mother. In the province of Osnabrück (Hanover) it is called the Harvest-mother; it is made up in female form, and then the reapers dance about with it. In some parts of Westphalia the last sheaf at the rye harvest is made especially heavy by fastening stones in it. It is brought home on the last waggon and is called the Great Mother, though no special shape is given it. In the district of Erfurt a very heavy sheaf (not necessarily the last) is called the Great Mother, and is carried on the last waggon to the barn, where it is lifted down by all hands amid a fire of jokes.1115

Sometimes the last sheaf is called, not the Corn-mother, but the Harvest-mother or the Great Mother. In the Osnabrück province (Hanover), it’s referred to as the Harvest-mother; it is shaped like a woman, and then the reapers dance around with it. In some areas of Westphalia, the last sheaf during the rye harvest is made particularly heavy by adding stones to it. It is brought home on the final wagon and is called the Great Mother, though it’s not given any specific shape. In the Erfurt area, a very heavy sheaf (not necessarily the last one) is called the Great Mother and is carried on the last wagon to the barn, where everyone helps lift it down amid a lot of jokes.1115

Sometimes again the last sheaf is called the Grandmother, and is adorned with flowers, ribbons, and a woman's apron. In East Prussia, at the rye or wheat harvest, the reapers call out to the woman who binds the last sheaf, “You are getting the Old Grandmother.” In the neighbourhood of Magdeburg the men and women servants strive who shall get the last sheaf, called the Grandmother. Whoever gets it will be married in the next year, but his or her spouse will be old; if a girl gets it, she will marry a widower; if a man gets it, he will marry an old crone. In Silesia the Grandmother—a huge bundle made up of three or four sheaves by the person who tied the last sheaf—was formerly fashioned into a rude likeness of the human form.1116 In the neighbourhood of Belfast the last sheaf is sometimes called Granny. It is not cut in the usual way, but all the reapers throw [pg 337] their sickles at it and try to bring it down. It is plaited and kept till the (next?) autumn. Whoever gets it will marry in the course of the year.1117

Sometimes, the last sheaf is called the Grandmother and is decorated with flowers, ribbons, and a woman's apron. In East Prussia, during the rye or wheat harvest, the reapers shout to the woman who ties the last sheaf, “You're getting the Grandma.” Around Magdeburg, men and women workers compete to see who will get the last sheaf, called the Grandmother. Whoever gets it will marry in the following year, but their spouse will be older; if a girl gets it, she will marry a widower; if a guy gets it, he will marry an old woman. In Silesia, the Grandmother—a big bundle made up of three or four sheaves by the person who tied the last sheaf—used to be shaped into a rough likeness of a human form.1116 In the area near Belfast, the last sheaf is sometimes called Granny. It isn’t cut in the usual way; instead, all the reapers throw [pg 337] their sickles at it in an effort to bring it down. It is braided and kept until the next autumn. Whoever gets it will marry within the year.1117

Oftener the last sheaf is called the Old Woman or the Old Man. In Germany it is often shaped and dressed as a woman, and the person who cuts it or binds it is said to “get the Old Woman.”1118 At Altisheim in Swabia when all the corn of a farm has been cut except a single strip, all the reapers stand in a row before the strip; each cuts his share rapidly, and he who gives the last cut “has the Old Woman.”1119 When the sheaves are being set up in heaps, the person who gets hold of the Old Woman, which is the largest and thickest of all the sheaves, is jeered at by the rest, who sing out to him, “He has the Old Woman and must keep her.”1120 The woman who binds the last sheaf is sometimes herself called the Old Woman, and it is said that she will be married in the next year.1121 In Neusaass, West Prussia, both the last sheaf—which is dressed up in jacket, hat and ribbons—and the woman who binds it are called the Old Woman. Together they are brought home on the last waggon and are drenched with water.1122 At Hornkampe, near Tiegenhof (West Prussia), when a man or woman lags behind the rest in binding the corn, the other reapers dress up the last sheaf in the form of a man or woman, and this figure goes by the laggard's name, as “the old Michael,” “the idle Trine.” It is brought home on the last waggon, and, as it nears the house, the bystanders call out to the laggard, “You have got the Old Woman and must keep her.”1123

Often, the last sheaf is called the Old Woman or the Old Man. In Germany, it’s frequently shaped and dressed as a woman, and the person who cuts it or binds it is said to “get the elderly woman.”1118 At Altisheim in Swabia, when all the corn on a farm has been cut except for a single strip, all the reapers stand in a row before the strip; each cuts their share quickly, and the one who makes the last cut “has the Old Woman.”1119 When the sheaves are being stacked, the person who grabs the Old Woman, which is the biggest and thickest of all the sheaves, is teased by the others, who call out to them, "He has the Old Woman and has to keep her."1120 The woman who binds the last sheaf is sometimes also called the Old Woman, and it’s said that she will get married in the following year.1121 In Neusaass, West Prussia, both the last sheaf—which is dressed in a jacket, hat, and ribbons—and the woman who binds it are referred to as the Old Woman. Together, they are brought home on the last wagon and are drenched with water.1122 At Hornkampe, near Tiegenhof (West Prussia), when a man or woman falls behind the others in binding the corn, the other reapers dress up the last sheaf in the form of a man or woman, and this figure takes on the laggard’s name, like “old Mike,” “Idle Trine.” It is brought home on the last wagon, and as it approaches the house, the bystanders yell to the laggard, "You've got the Old Woman and you need to keep her."1123

[pg 338]

In these customs, as Mannhardt has remarked, the person who is called by the same name as the last sheaf and sits beside it on the last waggon is obviously identified with it; he or she represents the corn-spirit which has been caught in the last sheaf; in other words, the corn-spirit is represented in duplicate, by a human being and by a sheaf.1124 The identification of the person with the sheaf is made still clearer by the custom of wrapping up in the last sheaf the person who cuts or binds it. Thus at Hermsdorf in Silesia it used to be the regular custom to tie up in the last sheaf the woman who had bound it.1125 At Weiden in Bavaria it is the cutter, not the binder, of the last sheaf who is tied up in it.1126 Here the person wrapt up in the corn represents the corn-spirit, exactly as a person wrapt in branches or leaves represents the tree-spirit.1127

In these customs, as Mannhardt noted, the person who shares the same name as the last sheaf and sits next to it on the final wagon is clearly associated with it; he or she symbolizes the corn spirit captured in the last sheaf. In other words, the corn spirit is represented in two forms: by a human and by a sheaf. 1124 The connection between the person and the sheaf is made even clearer by the tradition of wrapping up the person who cuts or binds the last sheaf. For example, in Hermsdorf, Silesia, it was common practice to tie up the woman who had bound the last sheaf. 1125 In Weiden, Bavaria, it is the person who cuts the last sheaf, not the one who binds it, that is wrapped up in it. 1126 Here, the person wrapped in the corn represents the corn spirit, just as someone wrapped in branches or leaves represents the tree spirit. 1127

The last sheaf, designated as the Old Woman, is often distinguished from the other sheaves by its size and weight. Thus in some villages of West Prussia the Old Woman is made twice as long and thick as a common sheaf, and a stone is fastened in the middle of it. Sometimes it is made so heavy that a man can barely lift it.1128 Sometimes eight or nine sheaves are tied together to make the Old Woman, and the man who sets it up complains of its weight.1129 At Itzgrund, in Saxe-Coburg, the last sheaf, called the Old Woman, is made large with the express intention of thereby securing a good crop next year.1130 Thus the custom of making the last sheaf unusually large or heavy is a charm, working by sympathetic magic, to secure a large and heavy crop in the following year.

The last sheaf, known as the Old Woman, is often recognized for its size and weight. In some villages of West Prussia, the Old Woman is made twice as long and thick as a regular sheaf, with a stone tied in the middle. Sometimes it's made so heavy that a man can barely lift it. Sometimes, eight or nine sheaves are bundled together to create the Old Woman, and the man who sets it up complains about its weight. In Itzgrund, in Saxe-Coburg, the last sheaf, also called the Old Woman, is made large specifically to ensure a good crop the following year. So, the practice of making the last sheaf unusually large or heavy acts as a charm, using sympathetic magic to ensure a big and bountiful crop in the following year.

[pg 339]

In Denmark also the last sheaf is made larger than the others, and is called the Old Rye-woman or the Old Barley-woman. No one likes to bind it, because whoever does so will, it is believed, marry an old man or an old woman. Sometimes the last wheat-sheaf, called the Old Wheat-woman, is made up in human shape, with head, arms, and legs, is dressed in clothes and carried home on the last waggon, the harvesters sitting beside it, drinking and huzzaing.1131 Of the person who binds the last sheaf it is said, “She (or he) is the Old Rye-woman.”1132

In Denmark, the last sheaf is also made bigger than the others and is called the Old Rye-woman or the Old Barley-woman. No one wants to bind it because it's believed that whoever does will end up marrying an old man or an old woman. Sometimes, the last wheat-sheaf, known as the Old Wheat-woman, is shaped like a human, complete with head, arms, and legs, dressed in clothes and carried home on the last wagon, with the harvesters sitting beside it, drinking and cheering. Of the person who binds the last sheaf, it's said, "She (or he) is the Old Rye woman."

In Scotland, when the last corn was cut after Hallowmas, the female figure made out of it was sometimes called the Carlin or Carline, i.e. the Old Woman. But if cut before Hallowmas, it was called the Maiden; if cut after sunset, it was called the Witch, being supposed to bring bad luck.1133 We shall return to the Maiden presently. In County Antrim, down to a few years ago, when the sickle was finally expelled by the reaping machine, the few stalks of corn left standing last on the field were plaited together; then the reapers, blindfolded, threw their sickles at the plaited corn, and whoever happened to cut it through took it home with him and put it over his door. This bunch of corn was called the Carley1134—probably the same word as Carlin.

In Scotland, when the last corn was harvested after Hallowmas, the female figure made from it was sometimes called the Carlin or Carline, i.e. the Old Woman. But if it was cut before Hallowmas, it was called the Maiden; if cut after sunset, it was referred to as the Witch, as it was believed to bring bad luck.1133 We will return to the Maiden shortly. In County Antrim, until just a few years ago, when the sickle was finally replaced by the reaping machine, the few stalks of corn that remained standing in the field were braided together; then the reapers, blindfolded, threw their sickles at the braided corn, and whoever managed to cut it through took it home and hung it over their door. This bundle of corn was called the Carley1134—likely the same word as Carlin.

Similar customs are observed by Slavonic peoples. Thus in Poland the last sheaf is commonly called the Baba, that is, the Old Woman. “In the last sheaf,” it is said, “sits the Baba.” The sheaf itself is also called the Baba, and is sometimes composed of twelve [pg 340] smaller sheaves lashed together.1135 In some parts of Bohemia the Baba, made out of the last sheaf, has the figure of a woman with a great straw hat. It is carried home on the last harvest-waggon and delivered, along with a garland, to the farmer by two girls. In binding the sheaves the women strive not to be last, for she who binds the last sheaf will have a child next year.1136 The last sheaf is tied up with others into a large bundle, and a green branch is stuck on the top of it.1137 Sometimes the harvesters call out to the woman who binds the last sheaf, “She has the Baba,” or “She is the Baba.” She has then to make a puppet, sometimes in female, sometimes in male form, out of the corn; the puppet is occasionally dressed with clothes, often with flowers and ribbons only. The cutter of the last stalks, as well as the binder of the last sheaf, was also called Baba; and a doll, called the Harvest-woman, was made out of the last sheaf and adorned with ribbons. The oldest reaper had to dance, first with this doll, and then with the farmer's wife.1138 In the district of Cracow, when a man binds the last sheaf, they say, “The Grandfather is sitting in it;” when a woman binds it, they say, “The Baba is sitting in it,” and the woman herself is wrapt up in the sheaf, so that only her head projects out of it. Thus encased in the sheaf, she is carried on the last harvest-waggon to the house, where she is drenched with water by the whole family. She remains in the sheaf till the dance is over, and for a year she retains the name of Baba.1139

Similar traditions are followed by Slavic peoples. In Poland, the last sheaf is commonly called the Baba, which means the Old Woman. “In the last batch,” people say, “sits the Grandma.” The sheaf itself is also referred to as the Baba and is sometimes made up of twelve [pg 340] smaller sheaves tied together.1135 In some areas of Bohemia, the Baba, created from the last sheaf, features the figure of a woman wearing a large straw hat. It is brought home on the last harvest wagon and presented, along with a garland, to the farmer by two girls. When binding the sheaves, women try not to be the last, as the one who ties the last sheaf will have a child the following year.1136 The last sheaf is tied with others into a big bundle, and a green branch is placed on top.1137 Sometimes, the harvesters shout to the woman who ties the last sheaf, “She has the Baby,” or “She is the Boss.” She then has to create a puppet, sometimes in a female or male form, out of the corn; the puppet is occasionally dressed in clothes, often just with flowers and ribbons. The person who cuts the last stalks, as well as the one who binds the last sheaf, was also called Baba; and a doll, known as the Harvest-woman, was made from the last sheaf and decorated with ribbons. The oldest reaper had to dance, first with this doll, and then with the farmer's wife.1138 In the Cracow area, when a man binds the last sheaf, they say, "The Grandfather is sitting in it." when a woman binds it, they say, "The Baba is sitting in it." and the woman herself is wrapped up in the sheaf, with only her head sticking out. Encased in the sheaf, she is carried on the last harvest wagon back to the house, where the whole family soaks her with water. She stays in the sheaf until the dance is over and retains the name Baba for a year.1139

In Lithuania the name for the last sheaf is Boba (Old Woman), answering to the Polish name Baba. The Boba is said to sit in the corn which is left [pg 341] standing last.1140 The person who binds the last sheaf or digs the last potato is the subject of much banter, and receives and long retains the name of the Old Rye-woman or the Old Potato-woman.1141 The last sheaf—the Boba—is made into the form of a woman, carried solemnly through the village on the last harvest-waggon, and drenched with water at the farmer's house; then every one dances with it.1142

In Lithuania, the last sheaf is called Boba (Old Woman), similar to the Polish name Baba. It's said that the Boba sits in the corn that remains standing last. The person who ties the last sheaf or digs up the last potato becomes the target of playful teasing and is given the nickname of the Old Rye-woman or the Old Potato-woman for a long time. The last sheaf—the Boba—is shaped like a woman, solemnly carried through the village on the last harvest wagon, and then soaked with water at the farmer's house; after that, everyone dances with it.

In Russia also the last sheaf is often shaped and dressed as a woman, and carried with dance and song to the farmhouse. Out of the last sheaf the Bulgarians make a doll which they call the Corn-queen or Corn-mother; it is dressed in a woman's shirt, carried round the village, and then thrown into the river in order to secure plenty of rain and dew for the next year's crop. Or it is burned and the ashes strewn on the fields, doubtless to fertilise them.1143 The name Queen, as applied to the last sheaf, has its analogies in Northern Europe. Thus Brand quotes from Hutchinson's History of Northumberland the following: “I have seen, in some places, an image apparelled in great finery, crowned with flowers, a sheaf of corn placed under her arm, and a sycle in her hand, carried out of the village in the morning of the conclusive reaping day, with music and much clamour of the reapers, into the field, where it stands fixed on a pole all day, and when the reaping is done, is brought home in like manner. This they call the Harvest Queen, and it represents the Roman Ceres.”1144 From Cambridge also Dr. E. D. Clarke reported that “at the Hawkie [harvest-home], as it is called, I have seen a clown dressed in [pg 342] woman's clothes, having his face painted, his head decorated with ears of corn, and bearing about him other symbols of Ceres, carried in a waggon, with great pomp and loud shouts, through the streets, the horses being covered with white sheets; and when I inquired the meaning of the ceremony, was answered by the people, that they were drawing the Harvest Queen.”1145

In Russia, the last sheaf is often shaped and dressed like a woman, and it's brought to the farmhouse with dancing and singing. The Bulgarians transform the last sheaf into a doll called the Corn-queen or Corn-mother; it's dressed in a woman's shirt, paraded around the village, and then tossed into the river to ensure plenty of rain and dew for next year's crops. Alternatively, it may be burned with the ashes spread on the fields, likely to fertilize them.1143 The term Queen, when referring to the last sheaf, has parallels in Northern Europe. Brand quotes from Hutchinson's *History of Northumberland* the following: "I have seen, in some places, an image dressed in intricate clothing, wearing a crown of flowers, with a sheaf of corn tucked under her arm and a sickle in her hand, carried out of the village on the morning of the last harvest day, accompanied by music and the lively celebration of the reapers, into the field, where it stays fixed on a pole all day. Once the harvest is done, it is brought back in the same way. This is called the Harvest Queen, representing the Roman Ceres."1144 From Cambridge, Dr. E. D. Clarke also reported that "At the Hawkie [harvest-home], as it's called, I saw a clown dressed in women’s clothing, with a painted face, his head decorated with ears of corn, and carrying other symbols of Ceres, paraded in a wagon with a lot of noise and cheers through the streets, the horses covered in white sheets. When I asked about the meaning of the ceremony, the people told me they were bringing out the Harvest Queen."1145

Often the customs we have been examining are practised, not on the harvest field, but on the threshing-floor. The spirit of the corn, fleeing before the reapers as they cut down the corn, quits the cut corn and takes refuge in the barn, where it appears in the last sheaf threshed, either to perish under the blows of the flail or to flee thence to the still unthreshed corn of a neighbouring farm.1146 Thus the last corn to be threshed is called the Mother-corn or the Old Woman. Sometimes the person who gives the last stroke with the flail is called the Old Woman, and is wrapt in the straw of the last sheaf, or has a bundle of straw fastened on his back. Whether wrapt in the straw or carrying it on his back, he is carted through the village amid general laughter. In some districts of Bavaria, Thüringen, etc., the man who threshes the last sheaf is said to have the Old Woman or the Old Corn-woman; he is tied up in straw, carried or carted about the village, and set down at last on the dunghill, or taken to the threshing-floor of a neighbouring farmer who has not finished his threshing.1147 In Poland the man who gives the last stroke at threshing is called Baba (Old Woman); he is wrapt in corn and wheeled through the village.1148 Sometimes in Lithuania the last sheaf is not threshed, but is fashioned into female [pg 343] shape and carried to the barn of a neighbour who has not finished his threshing.1149 In some parts of Sweden, when a stranger woman appears on the threshing-floor, a flail is put round her body, stalks of corn are wound round her neck, a crown of ears is placed on her head, and the threshers call out, “Behold the Corn-woman.” Here the stranger woman, thus suddenly appearing, is taken to be the corn-spirit who has just been expelled by the flails from the corn-stalks.1150 In other cases the farmer's wife represents the corn-spirit. Thus in the Commune of Saligné, Canton de Poiret (Vendée), the farmer's wife, along with the last sheaf, is tied up in a sheet, placed on a litter, and carried to the threshing machine, under which she is shoved. Then the woman is drawn out and the sheaf is threshed by itself, but the woman is tossed in the sheet (in imitation of winnowing).1151 It would be impossible to express more clearly the identification of the woman with the corn than by this graphic imitation of threshing and winnowing her.

Often the customs we’ve been looking at are practiced, not in the fields during harvest, but on the threshing floor. The spirit of the corn, fleeing from the reapers as they cut it down, escapes the harvested corn and takes refuge in the barn, appearing in the last sheaf to be threshed, either to be crushed by the flail or to flee to the still unthreshed corn of a neighboring farm.1146 Hence, the last corn to be threshed is called the Mother-corn or the Old Woman. Sometimes, the person who delivers the final blow with the flail is called the Old Woman and is wrapped in the straw of the last sheaf or carries a bundle of straw on their back. Whether wrapped in straw or carrying it, they are paraded through the village amid laughter. In some regions of Bavaria, Thüringen, etc., the person who threshes the last sheaf is said to have the Old Woman or Old Corn-woman; they are tied up in straw, carried or paraded around the village, and eventually placed on the dung heap or taken to the threshing floor of a neighboring farmer who hasn’t completed his threshing.1147 In Poland, the person who gives the last stroke in threshing is called Baba (Old Woman); they are wrapped in corn and wheeled through the village.1148 Sometimes in Lithuania, the last sheaf is not threshed but made into a female shape and taken to the barn of a neighbor who hasn’t finished threshing.1149 In some areas of Sweden, when a stranger woman appears on the threshing floor, a flail is tied around her body, stalks of corn are wrapped around her neck, a crown of ears is placed on her head, and the threshers shout, “Check out the Corn-woman.” Here, the stranger woman, appearing suddenly, is thought to be the corn spirit just expelled from the corn stalks.1150 In other instances, the farmer's wife represents the corn spirit. For example, in the Commune of Saligné, Canton de Poiret (Vendée), the farmer's wife, along with the last sheaf, is wrapped in a sheet, placed on a litter, and carried to the threshing machine, where she is pushed underneath. Then, the woman is pulled out, and the sheaf is threshed separately, but the woman is tossed in the sheet (imitating winnowing).1151 This graphic imitation of threshing and winnowing her makes the identification of the woman with the corn unmistakably clear.

In these customs the spirit of the ripe corn is regarded as old, or at least as of mature age. Hence the names of Mother, Grandmother, Old Woman, etc. But in other cases the corn-spirit is conceived as young, sometimes as a child who is separated from its mother by the stroke of the sickle. This last view appears in the Polish custom of calling out to the man who cuts the last handful of corn, “You have cut the navel-string.”1152 In some districts of West Prussia the figure made out of the last sheaf is called the Bastard, and a boy is wrapt up in it. The woman who binds the last sheaf [pg 344] and represents the Corn-mother, is told that she is about to be brought to bed; she cries like a woman in travail, and an old woman in the character of grandmother acts as midwife. At last a cry is raised that the child is born; whereupon the boy who is tied up in the sheaf whimpers and squalls like an infant. The grandmother wraps a sack, in imitation of swaddling bands, round the pretended baby, and it is carried joyfully to the barn, lest it catch cold in the open air.1153 In other parts of North Germany, the last sheaf, or the puppet made out of it, is called the Child, the Harvest Child, etc. In the North of England the last handful of corn was cut by the prettiest girl and dressed up as the Corn Baby or Kern Baby; it was brought home to music, set up in a conspicuous place at the harvest supper, and generally kept in the parlour for the rest of the year. The girl who cut it was the Harvest Queen.1154 In Kent the Ivy Girl is (or was) “a figure composed of some of the best corn the field produces, and made as well as they can into a human shape; this is afterwards curiously dressed by the women, and adorned with paper trimmings, cut to resemble a cap, ruffles, handkerchief, etc., of the finest lace. It is brought home with the last load of corn from the field upon the waggon, and they suppose entitles them to a supper at the expense of the employer.”1155 In the neighbourhood of Balquhidder, Perthshire, the last handful of corn is cut by the youngest girl on the field, and is made into the rude form of a female doll, clad in a paper dress, and decked with ribbons. It is called the Maiden, and is kept in the farmhouse, generally above the chimney, [pg 345] for a good while, sometimes till the Maiden of the next year is brought in. The writer of this book witnessed the ceremony of cutting the Maiden at Balquhidder in September 1888.1156 On some farms on the Gareloch, Dumbartonshire, about sixty years ago the last handful of standing corn was called the Maiden. It was divided in two, plaited, and then cut with the sickle by a girl, who, it was thought, would be lucky and would soon be married. When it was cut the reapers gathered together and threw their sickles in the air. The Maiden was dressed with ribbons and hung in the kitchen near the roof, where it was kept for several years with the date attached. Sometimes five or six Maidens might be seen hanging at once on hooks. The harvest supper was called the Kirn.1157 In other farms on the Gareloch the last handful of corn was called the Maidenhead or the Head; it was neatly plaited, sometimes decked with ribbons, and hung in the kitchen for a year, when the grain was given to the poultry.1158 In the North of Scotland, the Maiden is kept till Christmas morning, and then divided among the cattle “to make them thrive all the year round.”1159 In Aberdeenshire also the last sheaf (called the clyack sheaf) was formerly cut, as it is still cut at Balquhidder, by the youngest girl on the field; then it was dressed in woman's clothes, carried home in triumph, and kept till Christmas or New Year's morning, when it was given to a mare in foal, or, failing such, to the oldest cow.1160 Lastly, a somewhat maturer, but still youthful age is assigned to the corn-spirit by [pg 346] the appellations of Bride, Oats-bride, and Wheat-bride, which in Germany and Scotland are sometimes bestowed both on the last sheaf and on the woman who binds it.1161 Sometimes the idea implied in these names is worked out more fully by representing the productive powers of vegetation as bride and bridegroom. Thus in some parts of Germany a man and woman dressed in straw and called the Oats-wife and the Oats-man, or the Oats-bride and the Oats-bridegroom dance at the harvest festival; then the corn-stalks are plucked from their bodies till they stand as bare as a stubble field. In Silesia, the woman who binds the last sheaf is called the Wheat-bride or the Oats-bride. With the harvest crown on her head, a bridegroom by her side, and attended by bridesmaids, she is brought to the farmhouse with all the solemnity of a wedding procession.1162

In these traditions, the spirit of the ripe corn is seen as old, or at least mature. Therefore, names like Mother, Grandmother, Old Woman, etc., are used. However, in other cases, the corn spirit is imagined as young, sometimes as a child who gets separated from its mother when the sickle strikes. This perspective shows up in the Polish custom of calling out to the person who cuts the last handful of corn, “You have cut the cord.”1152 In some regions of West Prussia, the figure made from the last sheaf is called the Bastard, and a boy is wrapped up in it. The woman who binds the last sheaf [pg 344] and represents the Corn Mother is told that she is about to give birth; she cries like a woman in labor, and an old woman acting as the grandmother serves as the midwife. Finally, there’s a shout that the child is born; then the boy tied up in the sheaf whimpers and cries like a baby. The grandmother wraps a sack, mimicking swaddling bands, around the pretend baby, and it is joyfully carried to the barn to prevent it from getting cold outside.1153 In other parts of North Germany, the last sheaf, or the puppet made from it, is referred to as the Child, the Harvest Child, etc. In the North of England, the last handful of corn was cut by the prettiest girl and dressed up as the Corn Baby or Kern Baby; it was brought home to music, displayed prominently at the harvest supper, and usually kept in the parlor for the rest of the year. The girl who cut it became the Harvest Queen.1154 In Kent, the Ivy Girl is (or was) "A figure made from the best corn in the field, shaped as closely to human form as possible; this is then carefully dressed by the women and decorated with paper trimmings, cut to look like a cap, ruffles, handkerchief, etc., made from the finest lace. It is brought home with the last load of corn from the field on the wagon, and it is believed that this grants them a supper at the employer's expense."1155 In the area around Balquhidder, Perthshire, the last handful of corn is cut by the youngest girl in the field and made into a rough version of a female doll, dressed in a paper outfit and decorated with ribbons. It’s called the Maiden and kept in the farmhouse, usually above the chimney, [pg 345] for a while, sometimes until the next year's Maiden is brought in. The author of this book saw the ceremony of cutting the Maiden at Balquhidder in September 1888.1156 About sixty years ago on some farms by the Gareloch, Dumbartonshire, the last handful of standing corn was called the Maiden. It was split in two, braided, and then cut with a sickle by a girl, who was thought to be lucky and would soon get married. When it was cut, the reapers would gather and throw their sickles in the air. The Maiden was dressed with ribbons and hung in the kitchen near the roof, where it was kept for several years with the date attached. Sometimes five or six Maidens could be seen hanging at once on hooks. The harvest supper was known as the Kirn.1157 On some other farms at the Gareloch, the last handful of corn was called the Maidenhead or the Head; it was neatly braided, sometimes adorned with ribbons, and hung in the kitchen for a year, after which the grain was given to the poultry.1158 In the North of Scotland, the Maiden is kept until Christmas morning, then divided among the cattle "to help them succeed throughout the year."1159 In Aberdeenshire, the last sheaf (called the clyack sheaf) was traditionally cut, as it is still done at Balquhidder, by the youngest girl in the field; then it was dressed in women’s clothes, carried home in celebration, and kept until Christmas or New Year's morning, when it was given to a mare in foal, or if not available, to the oldest cow.1160 Finally, a slightly older but still youthful age is associated with the corn spirit through the names Bride, Oats-bride, and Wheat-bride, which in Germany and Scotland are sometimes given to both the last sheaf and the woman who binds it.1161 Sometimes, the idea behind these names is elaborated by portraying the productive powers of vegetation as a bride and groom. In some areas of Germany, a man and woman dressed in straw and called the Oats-wife and Oats-man, or the Oats-bride and Oats-bridegroom, dance at the harvest festival; then the corn stalks are pulled from their bodies until they stand as bare as a stubble field. In Silesia, the woman who binds the last sheaf is referred to as the Wheat-bride or the Oats-bride. Wearing a harvest crown on her head, accompanied by a bridegroom and followed by bridesmaids, she is brought to the farmhouse with all the formality of a wedding procession.1162

The harvest customs just described are strikingly analogous to the spring customs which we reviewed in the first chapter. (1.) As in the spring customs the tree-spirit is represented both by a tree and by a person,1163 so in the harvest customs the corn-spirit is represented both by the last sheaf and by the person who cuts or binds or threshes it. The equivalence of the person to the sheaf is shown by giving him or her the same name as the sheaf, or vice versâ; by wrapping him or her in the sheaf; and by the rule observed in some places, that when the sheaf is called the Mother, it must be cut by the oldest married woman; but when it is called [pg 347] the Maiden, it must be cut by the youngest girl.1164 Here the age of the personal representative of the corn-spirit corresponds with that of the supposed age of the corn-spirit, just as the human victims offered by the Mexicans to promote the growth of the maize varied with the age of the maize.1165 For in the Mexican, as in the European, custom the human beings were probably representatives of the corn-spirit rather than victims offered to him. (2.) Again, the same fertilising influence which the tree-spirit is supposed to exert over vegetation, cattle, and even women1166 is ascribed to the corn-spirit. Thus, its supposed influence on vegetation is shown by the practice of taking some of the grain of the last sheaf (in which the corn-spirit is regularly supposed to be present), and scattering it among the young corn in spring.1167 Its influence on cattle is shown by giving the straw of the last sheaf to the cattle at Christmas with the express intention of making them thrive.1168 Lastly, its influence on women is indicated by the custom of delivering the Mother-sheaf, made into the likeness of a pregnant woman, to the farmer's wife;1169 by the belief that the woman who binds the last sheaf will have a child next year;1170 perhaps, too, by the idea that the person who gets it will marry next year.1171

The harvest customs just described are surprisingly similar to the spring customs we discussed in the first chapter. (1.) Just like in the spring customs, where the tree spirit is represented by both a tree and a person, the harvest customs represent the corn spirit through the last sheaf and the person who cuts, binds, or threshes it. The connection between the person and the sheaf is shown by giving them the same name or vice versa; by wrapping the person in the sheaf; and by a rule observed in some places that when the sheaf is called the Mother, it must be cut by the oldest married woman, while if it's called the Maiden, it must be cut by the youngest girl. Here, the age of the person representing the corn spirit matches the supposed age of the corn spirit, just like the human sacrifices offered by the Mexicans to encourage maize growth varied with the age of the maize. (2.) Similarly, the same fertilizing influence believed to be exerted by the tree spirit on plants, cattle, and even women is also attributed to the corn spirit. For example, its supposed effect on plants is shown by the practice of taking some of the grain from the last sheaf (in which the corn spirit is usually believed to be present) and scattering it among the young corn in spring. Its influence on cattle is evident in the tradition of giving the straw from the last sheaf to the cattle at Christmas with the intention of helping them thrive. Lastly, its influence on women is indicated by the custom of delivering the Mother sheaf, shaped like a pregnant woman, to the farmer's wife; by the belief that the woman who binds the last sheaf will have a child next year; and perhaps also by the idea that the person who gets it will marry next year.

Plainly, therefore, these spring and harvest customs are based on the same ancient modes of thought, and form parts of the same primitive heathendom, which was doubtless practised by our forefathers long before the dawn of history, as it is practised to this day by [pg 348] many of their descendants. Amongst the marks of a primitive religion, we may note the following:—

Clearly, these spring and harvest customs are rooted in the same ancient ways of thinking and are part of the same primitive paganism that our ancestors practiced long before recorded history, just as many of their descendants still do today. Among the characteristics of a primitive religion, we can note the following:—

(1.) No special class of persons is set apart for the performance of the rites; in other words, there are no priests. The rites may be performed by any one, as occasion demands.

(1.) No specific group of people is designated for carrying out the rituals; in other words, there are no priests. The rituals can be performed by anyone as needed.

(2.) No special places are set apart for the performance of the rites; in other words, there are no temples. The rites may be performed anywhere, as occasion demands.

(2.) No special places are designated for the performance of the rituals; in other words, there are no temples. The rituals can be performed anywhere, as needed.

(3.) Spirits, not gods, are recognised. (a.) As distinguished from gods, spirits are restricted in their operations to definite departments of nature. Their names are general, not proper. Their attributes are generic, rather than individual; in other words, there is an indefinite number of spirits of each class, and the individuals of a class are all much alike; they have no definitely marked individuality; no accepted traditions are current as to their origin, life, adventures, and character. (b.) On the other hand gods, as distinguished from spirits, are not exclusively restricted in their operations to definite departments of nature. It is true that there is generally some one department over which they preside as their special province; but they are not rigorously confined to it; they can exert their power for good or evil in many other spheres of nature and life. Again, they bear individual or proper names, such as Ceres, Proserpine, Bacchus; and their individual characters and histories are fixed by current myths and the representations of art.

(3.) Spirits, not gods, are recognized. (a.) Unlike gods, spirits are limited to specific areas of nature. Their names are general, not unique. Their traits are broad rather than specific; in other words, there are countless spirits in each category, and the individuals within a category are very similar; they lack distinct individuality; no established stories exist about their origin, lives, adventures, or characteristics. (b.) In contrast, gods, as different from spirits, are not strictly confined to specific areas of nature. While they typically oversee one particular area as their main domain, they are not strictly limited to it; they can use their power for good or evil in many other aspects of nature and life. Additionally, they have unique names, such as Ceres, Proserpine, Bacchus; and their individual personalities and stories are well-defined by popular myths and artistic depictions.

(4.) The rites are magical rather than propitiatory. In other words, the desired objects are attained, not by propitiating the favour of divine beings through sacrifice, prayer, and praise, but by ceremonies which, as has [pg 349] been explained,1172 are believed to influence the course of nature directly through a physical sympathy or resemblance between the rite and the effect which it is the intention of the rite to produce.

(4.) The rites are magical rather than just meant to gain favor. In other words, the desired outcomes are achieved, not by seeking the favor of divine beings through sacrifice, prayer, and praise, but through ceremonies which, as has [pg 349] been explained,1172 are believed to directly influence the course of nature through a physical connection or resemblance between the rite and the result that the rite aims to produce.

Judged by these tests, the spring and harvest customs of our European peasantry deserve to rank as primitive. For no special class of persons and no special places are set exclusively apart for their performance; they may be performed by any one, master or man, mistress or maid, boy or girl; they are practised, not in temples or churches, but in the woods and meadows, beside brooks, in barns, on harvest fields and cottage floors. The supernatural beings whose existence is taken for granted in them are spirits rather than deities; their functions are limited to certain well-defined departments of nature; their names are general, like the Barley-mother, the Old Woman, the Maiden, not proper names like Ceres, Proserpine, Bacchus. Their generic attributes are known, but their individual histories and characters are not the subject of myths. For they exist in classes rather than as individuals, and the members of each class are indistinguishable. For example, every farm has its Corn-mother, or its Old Woman, or its Maiden; but every Corn-mother is much like every other Corn-mother, and so with the Old Women and Maidens. Lastly, in these harvest, as in the spring, customs, the ritual is magical rather than propitiatory. This is shown by throwing the Corn-mother into the river in order to secure rain and dew for the crops;1173 by making the Old Woman heavy in order to get a heavy crop next year;1174 by strewing grain from the last sheaf amongst the young crops in [pg 350] spring;1175 and giving the last sheaf to the cattle to make them thrive.1176

Judged by these tests, the spring and harvest customs of our European farming communities deserve to be considered primitive. No specific class of people or special locations are designated solely for these activities; anyone—master or worker, mistress or maid, boy or girl—can participate. These rituals take place not in temples or churches, but in the woods, meadows, by streams, in barns, on fields, and in cottage living rooms. The supernatural beings that people believe in are considered spirits rather than gods; their roles are tied to specific aspects of nature. Their names are general, like the Barley-mother, the Old Woman, and the Maiden, rather than specific names like Ceres, Proserpine, or Bacchus. Their collective traits are recognized, but their unique stories and personalities aren’t part of legends. They exist as groups instead of as individuals, and all the members of a category are similar. For example, every farm has its own Corn-mother, Old Woman, or Maiden; however, every Corn-mother is quite similar to the others, as are the Old Women and Maidens. Lastly, in these harvest customs, just like in the spring ones, the rituals are magical rather than aimed at appeasing deities. This is evident when the Corn-mother is thrown into the river to ensure rain and dew for the crops;1173 when the Old Woman is weighed down to harvest a bountiful crop the following year;1174 when grain from the last sheaf is sprinkled among the new crops in [pg 350] spring;1175 and when the last sheaf is given to the cattle to help them flourish.1176

Further, the custom of keeping the puppet—the representative of the corn-spirit—till next harvest, is a charm to maintain the corn-spirit in life and activity throughout the year.1177 This is proved by a similar custom observed by the ancient Peruvians, and thus described by the historian Acosta. “They take a certain portion of the most fruitefull of the Mays [i.e. maize] that growes in their farmes, the which they put in a certaine granary which they doe call Pirua, with certaine ceremonies, watching three nightes; they put this Mays in the richest garments they have, and beeing thus wrapped and dressed, they worship this Pirua, and hold it in great veneration, saying it is the mother of the mays of their inheritances, and that by this means the mays augments and is preserved. In this moneth [the sixth month, answering to May] they make a particular sacrifice, and the witches demaund of this Pirua, if it hath strength sufficient to continue untill the next yeare; and if it answers no, then they carry this Mays to the farme to burne, whence they brought it, according to every man's power; then they make another Pirua, with the same ceremonies, saying that they renue it, to the end the seede of Mays may not perish, and if it answers that it hath force sufficient to last longer, they leave it untill the next yeare. This foolish vanity continueth to this day, and it is very common amongest the Indians to have these Piruas.”1178 There seems to [pg 351] be some error in this description of the custom. Probably it was the dressed-up bunch of maize, not the granary (Pirua), which was worshipped by the Peruvians and regarded as the Mother of the Maize. This is confirmed by what we know of the Peruvian custom from another source. The Peruvians, we are told, believed all useful plants to be animated by a divine being who causes their growth. According to the particular plant, these divine beings were called the Maize-mother (Zara-mama), the Quinoa-mother (Quinoa-mama), the Cocoa-mother (Coca-mama), and the Potato-mother (Axo-mama). Figures of these divine mothers were made respectively of ears of maize and leaves of the quinoa and cocoa plants; they were dressed in women's clothes and worshipped. Thus the Maize-mother was represented by a puppet made of stalks of maize, dressed in full female attire; and the Indians believed that “as mother, it had the power of producing and giving birth to much maize.”1179 Probably, therefore, Acosta misunderstood his informant, and the Mother of the Maize which he describes was not the granary (Pirua) but the bunch of maize dressed in rich vestments. The Peruvian Mother of the Maize, like the harvest Maiden at Balquhidder, was kept for a year in order that by her means the corn might grow and multiply. But lest her strength might not suffice to last out the year, she was asked in the course of the year how she felt, and if she answered that she felt weak, she was burned and a fresh Mother of the Maize made, “to the end the seede of Mays [pg 352] may not perish.” Here, it may be observed, we have a strong confirmation of the explanation already given of the custom of killing the god, both periodically and occasionally. The Mother of the Maize was allowed, as a rule, to live through a year, that being the period during which her strength might reasonably be supposed to last unimpaired; but on any symptom of her strength failing she was put to death and a fresh and vigorous Mother of the Maize took her place, lest the maize which depended on her for its existence should languish and decay.

Furthermore, the custom of keeping the puppet—representing the corn spirit—until the next harvest is a way to keep the corn spirit alive and active throughout the year.1177 This is supported by a similar practice seen among the ancient Peruvians, as described by the historian Acosta. “They take a portion of the best corn from their fields and store it in a special granary they call Pirua. They perform certain rituals and watch over it for three nights, dressing this corn in their finest clothes. Once it’s wrapped and dressed, they worship the Pirua, showing it great respect and referring to it as the mother of their corn harvests. They believe that this practice helps the corn grow and be preserved. During this month [the sixth month, corresponding to May], they perform a specific sacrifice, and the witches ask the Pirua if it has enough strength to last until the next year. If it answers no, they return the corn to the field to burn it, according to each person's means. Then they create another Pirua with the same ceremonies, claiming to renew it, so the corn seeds do not perish. If it replies that it has enough strength to last longer, they keep it until the following year. This mindless vanity continues even today, and it's quite common among the Indians to have these Piruas.”1178 There seems to [pg 351] be a mistake in this description of the custom. Likely, it was the dressed maize, not the granary (Pirua), that was worshipped by the Peruvians and regarded as the Mother of the Maize. This is confirmed by what we know from another source about the Peruvian tradition. The Peruvians believed that all useful plants were animated by a divine being responsible for their growth. Depending on the specific plant, these divine beings included the Maize-mother (Zara-mom), the Quinoa-mother (Quinoa mom), the Cocoa-mother (Coca-mama), and the Potato-mother (Axo-mom). Statues of these divine mothers were made from the respective plants; they were dressed in women's clothing and worshipped. The Maize-mother was represented by a puppet made of maize stalks, dressed in full female attire; and the Indians believed that "As a mother, it had the ability to produce and give birth to a lot of maize."1179 So, it’s likely that Acosta misunderstood what he was told, and the Mother of the Maize he describes was not the granary (Pirua) but rather the bunch of maize dressed in fine garments. The Peruvian Mother of the Maize, similar to the harvest Maiden at Balquhidder, was kept for a year to ensure the corn would grow and multiply. However, to ensure its strength would last the entire year, they asked her during the year how she was feeling, and if she indicated she was weak, she would be burned and a new Mother of the Maize created, “to make sure the maize seeds [pg 352] do not die.” It’s important to note that this provides strong support for the earlier explanation of the custom of periodically and occasionally killing the god. The Mother of the Maize was typically allowed to live for a year, as that was the time it was believed her strength could reasonably last; yet, if any signs of weakness appeared, she was killed and a new, vigorous Mother of the Maize was put in her place, to prevent the maize reliant on her from wilting and dying.

Hardly less clearly does the same train of thought come out in the harvest customs formerly observed by the Zapotecs of Mexico. At harvest the priests, attended by the nobles and people, went in procession to the maize fields, where they picked out the largest and finest sheaf. This they took with great ceremony to the town or village, and placed it in the temple upon an altar adorned with wild flowers. After sacrificing to the harvest god, the priests carefully wrapt up the sheaf in fine linen and kept it till seed-time. Then the priests and nobles met again at the temple, one of them bringing the skin of a wild beast, elaborately ornamented, in which the linen cloth containing the sheaf was enveloped. The sheaf was then carried once more in procession to the field from which it had been taken. Here a small cavity or subterranean chamber had been prepared, in which the precious sheaf was deposited, wrapt in its various envelopes. After sacrifice had been offered to the gods of the fields for an abundant crop, the chamber was closed and covered over with earth. Immediately thereafter the sowing began. Finally, when the time of harvest drew near, the buried sheaf was solemnly disinterred by the [pg 353] priests, who distributed the grain to all who asked for it. The packets of grain so distributed were carefully preserved as talismans till the harvest.1180 In these ceremonies, which continued to be annually celebrated long after the Spanish conquest, the intention of keeping the finest sheaf buried in the maize field from seed-time to harvest was undoubtedly to quicken the growth of the maize.

Hardly less clearly does the same train of thought emerge in the harvest customs previously practiced by the Zapotecs of Mexico. During harvest time, the priests, accompanied by the nobles and the community, would process to the maize fields, where they would select the largest and finest sheaf. They would carry this sheaf back to the town or village with great ceremony and place it on an altar in the temple, decorated with wildflowers. After offering sacrifices to the harvest god, the priests would carefully wrap the sheaf in fine linen and keep it until seed-time. Then, the priests and nobles would gather again at the temple, with one of them bringing the skin of an elaborately decorated wild beast, in which the linen-wrapped sheaf was enclosed. The sheaf would then be carried in procession back to the field from which it was taken. A small cavity or underground chamber had been prepared, in which the precious sheaf was placed, wrapped in its various coverings. After sacrifices were made to the gods of the fields for a plentiful crop, the chamber was closed and covered with earth. Sowing would begin immediately afterward. Finally, as the harvest approached, the buried sheaf was ceremoniously unearthed by the [pg 353] priests, who distributed the grain to everyone who requested it. The packets of grain that were distributed were carefully kept as talismans until the next harvest. In these ceremonies, which continued to be celebrated annually long after the Spanish conquest, the aim of keeping the finest sheaf buried in the maize field from seed-time to harvest was undoubtedly to encourage the growth of the maize.

In the Punjaub, to the east of the Jumna, when the cotton boles begin to burst, it is usual “to select the largest plant in the field, and having sprinkled it with butter-milk and rice-water, it is bound all over with pieces of cotton, taken from the other plants of the field. This selected plant is called Sirdar, or Bhogaldaí, i.e. mother-cotton, from bhogla, a name sometimes given to a large cotton-pod, and daí (for daiya) a mother, and after salutations are made to it, prayers are offered that the other plants may resemble it in the richness of their produce.”1181

In the Punjab, to the east of the Yamuna, when the cotton bolls start to burst, it’s common to “choose the largest plant in the field, and after sprinkling it with buttermilk and rice water, it is wrapped all around with pieces of cotton taken from the other plants in the field. This chosen plant is called Sirdar, or Bhogaldaí, meaning mother-cotton, from bhogla, a term sometimes used for a big cotton pod, and daí (for daiya) meaning mother. After making salutations to it, prayers are offered for the other plants to be as abundant in their yield as this one.”1181

If the reader still feels any doubts as to the original meaning of the harvest customs practised by our peasantry, these doubts may be dispelled by comparing the harvest customs of the Dyaks of Borneo. At harvest the Dyaks of Northern Borneo have a special feast, the object of which is “to secure the soul of the rice, which if not so detained, the produce of their farms would speedily rot and decay.” The mode of securing the soul of the rice varies in different tribes. Sometimes the priest catches it, in the form of a few grains of rice, in a white cloth. Sometimes a large shed is erected outside the village, and near it [pg 354] is reared a high and spacious altar. The corner-posts of the altar are lofty bamboos with leafy tops, from one of which there hangs a long narrow streamer of white cloth. Here gaily-dressed men and women dance with slow and solemn steps. Suddenly the elders and priests rush at the white streamer, seize the end of it, and begin dancing and swaying to and fro, amid a burst of wild music and the yells of the spectators. An elder leaps on the altar and shakes the bamboos violently, whereupon small stones, bunches of hair and grains of rice fall at the feet of the dancers and are carefully picked up by attendants. These grains of rice are the soul of the rice. At sowing-time some of this soul of the rice is planted with the other seeds, “and is thus propagated and communicated.”1182 The same need of securing the soul of the rice, if the crop is to thrive, is keenly felt by the Karens of Burma. When a rice-field does not flourish, they suppose that the soul (kelah) of the rice is in some way detained from the rice. If the soul cannot be called back, the crop will fail. The following formula is used in recalling the kelah (soul) of the rice: “O come, rice-kelah, come! Come to the field. Come to the rice. With seed of each gender, come. Come from the river Kho, come from the river Kaw; from the place where they meet, come. Come from the West, come from the East. From the throat of the bird, from the maw of the ape, from the throat of the elephant. Come from the sources of rivers and their mouths. Come from the country of the Shan and Burman. From the distant kingdoms come. From all granaries come. O rice-kelah, come to the [pg 355] rice.”1183 Again, the European custom of representing the corn-spirit in the double form of bride and bridegroom1184 is paralleled by a custom observed at the rice-harvest in Java. Before the reapers begin to cut the rice, the priest or sorcerer picks out a number of ears of rice, which are tied together, smeared with ointment, and adorned with flowers. Thus decked out, the ears are called the padi-pëngantèn, that is, the Rice-bride and the Rice-bridegroom; their wedding feast is celebrated, and the cutting of the rice begins immediately afterwards. Later on, when the rice is being got in, a bridal chamber is partitioned off in the barn, and furnished with a new mat, a lamp, and all kinds of toilet articles. Sheaves of rice, to represent the wedding guests, are placed beside the Rice-bride and the Rice-bridegroom. Not till this has been done may the whole harvest be housed in the barn. And for the first forty days after the rice has been housed, no one may enter the barn, for fear of disturbing the newly-wedded pair.1185

If the reader still has any doubts about the original meaning of the harvest customs practiced by our peasantry, those doubts can be resolved by comparing the harvest customs of the Dyaks of Borneo. At harvest time, the Dyaks of Northern Borneo hold a special feast aimed at “preserving the essence of the rice, which would spoil and deteriorate rapidly if left unprotected.” The method of securing the soul of the rice varies among different tribes. Sometimes a priest captures it in the form of a few grains of rice placed in a white cloth. Other times, a large shed is built outside the village, next to which [pg 354] a high and spacious altar is erected. The corner-posts of the altar are tall bamboos with leafy tops, from one of which a long narrow streamer of white cloth hangs. Here, men and women dressed in festive attire dance with slow and serious movements. Suddenly, the elders and priests rush toward the white streamer, grab its end, and begin to dance and sway amid a burst of lively music and the cheers of the crowd. An elder leaps onto the altar and shakes the bamboos vigorously, causing small stones, bunches of hair, and grains of rice to fall at the feet of the dancers, which are carefully collected by attendants. These grains of rice represent the soul of the rice. During planting season, some of this soul of the rice is planted along with the other seeds, "and is therefore spread and shared."1182 The same need to secure the rice's soul, in order for the crop to thrive, is strongly felt by the Karens of Burma. When a rice field isn't flourishing, they believe that the soul (kelah) of the rice is somehow being prevented from connecting with the rice. If the soul cannot be summoned back, the crop will fail. The following incantation is used to call back the kelah (soul) of the rice: “O come, rice-kelah, come! Come to the field. Come to the rice. With seeds of every type, come. Come from the Kho River, come from the Kaw River; from the place where they meet, come. Come from the West, come from the East. From the throat of the bird, from the mouth of the ape, from the throat of the elephant. Come from the sources of rivers and their mouths. Come from the land of the Shan and the Burman. Come from distant kingdoms. Come from all granaries. O rice-kelah, come to the [pg 355] rice.”1183 Additionally, the European tradition of depicting the corn-spirit as a bride and bridegroom1184 is mirrored by a custom observed during the rice harvest in Java. Before the reapers begin cutting the rice, the priest or sorcerer selects several ears of rice, ties them together, oils them, and decorates them with flowers. This ornately prepared bundle is referred to as the wedding ceremony, meaning the Rice-bride and the Rice-bridegroom; their wedding feast is celebrated, and the cutting of the rice commences immediately afterward. Later, when the rice is brought in, a bridal chamber is set up in the barn, furnished with a new mat, a lamp, and various personal items. Sheaves of rice, representing the wedding guests, are placed beside the Rice-bride and the Rice-bridegroom. Only after this has been done can the entire harvest be stored in the barn. For the first forty days after the rice is stored, no one is allowed to enter the barn, to avoid disturbing the newlyweds.1185

Compared with the Corn-mother of Germany and the harvest Maiden of Balquhidder, the Demeter and Proserpine of Greece are late products of religious growth. But, as Aryans, the Greeks must at one time or another have observed harvest customs like those which are still practised by Celts, Teutons, and Slavs, and which, far beyond the limits of the Aryan world, have been practised by the Incas of Peru, the Dyaks of Borneo, and the Malays of Java—a sufficient proof that the ideas on which these customs rest are not confined to any one race, but naturally suggest themselves [pg 356] to all untutored peoples engaged in agriculture. It is probable, therefore, that Demeter and Proserpine, those stately and beautiful figures of Greek mythology, grew out of the same simple beliefs and practices which still prevail among our modern peasantry, and that they were represented by rude dolls made out of the yellow sheaves on many a harvest-field long before their breathing images were wrought in bronze and marble by the master hands of Phidias and Praxiteles. A reminiscence of that olden time—a scent, so to say, of the harvest-field—lingered to the last in the title of the Maiden (Kore) by which Proserpine was commonly known. Thus if the prototype of Demeter is the Corn-mother of Germany, the prototype of Proserpine is the harvest Maiden, which, autumn after autumn, is still made from the last sheaf on the Braes of Balquhidder. Indeed if we knew more about the peasant-farmers of ancient Greece we should probably find that even in classical times they continued annually to fashion their Corn-mothers (Demeters) and Maidens (Proserpines) out of the ripe corn on the harvest fields. But unfortunately the Demeter and Proserpine whom we know are the denizens of towns, the majestic inhabitants of lordly temples; it was for such divinities alone that the refined writers of antiquity had eyes; the rude rites performed by rustics amongst the corn were beneath their notice. Even if they noticed them, they probably never dreamed of any connection between the puppet of corn-stalks on the sunny stubble-field and the marble divinity in the shady coolness of the temple. Still the writings even of these town-bred and cultured persons afford us an occasional glimpse of a Demeter as rude as the rudest that a remote German village [pg 357] can show. Thus the story that Iasion begat a child Plutus (“wealth,” “abundance”) by Demeter on a thrice-ploughed field,1186 may be compared with the West Prussian custom of the mock birth of a child on the harvest field.1187 In this Prussian custom the pretended mother represents the Corn-mother (Žytniamatka); the pretended child represents the Corn-baby, and the whole ceremony is a charm to ensure a crop next year.1188 There are other folk-customs, observed both in spring and at harvest, with which the legend of the begetting of the child Plutus is probably still more intimately connected. Their general purport is to impart fertility to the fields by performing, or at least mimicking, upon them the process of procreation.1189 Another glimpse of the savage under the civilised Demeter will be afforded farther on, when we come to deal with another aspect of these agricultural divinities.

Compared to the Corn-mother of Germany and the harvest Maiden of Balquhidder, Demeter and Proserpine from Greece are later developments in religious traditions. However, as Aryans, the Greeks must have at some point engaged in harvest customs similar to those still practiced by Celts, Teutons, and Slavs, and which have been observed far beyond the Aryan world by the Incas of Peru, the Dyaks of Borneo, and the Malays of Java. This provides strong evidence that the ideas behind these customs are not limited to one race but naturally arise for all untrained people involved in agriculture. It is likely that Demeter and Proserpine, those grand and beautiful figures in Greek mythology, originated from the same basic beliefs and practices that still exist among today’s rural populations, and that they were once represented by crude dolls made from yellow sheaves across many harvest fields long before their lifelike images were crafted in bronze and marble by the skilled hands of Phidias and Praxiteles. A reminder of that ancient time—a hint, if you will, of the harvest field—lingered in the name of the Maiden (Kore), which was commonly associated with Proserpine. Thus, if the prototype of Demeter is the Corn-mother of Germany, the prototype of Proserpine is the harvest Maiden, which, every autumn, is still created from the last sheaf in the Braes of Balquhidder. Indeed, if we knew more about the peasant farmers of ancient Greece, we would probably find that even in classical times they continued to annually make their Corn-mothers (Demeters) and Maidens (Proserpines) from the ripe corn in the fields. Unfortunately, the Demeter and Proserpine that we are familiar with are the inhabitants of cities, the majestic residents of grand temples; it was for such deities alone that the sophisticated writers of antiquity paid attention; the rustic rituals performed by locals among the corn fields were beneath their interest. Even if they acknowledged them, they likely never considered any link between the corn-stalk puppet in the sunny stubble field and the marble goddess in the cool shade of the temple. Still, the writings of these city-dwelling cultured individuals offer occasional glimpses of a Demeter as simple as the most basic one you might see in a remote German village. For instance, the tale that Iasion fathered a child named Plutus ("money," "plenty") by Demeter on a thrice-plowed field can be compared to the West Prussian custom of a mock birth of a child in the harvest field. In this Prussian tradition, the supposed mother represents the Corn-mother (Žytniamatka); the supposed child represents the Corn-baby, and the entire ceremony is a charm to ensure a good crop the following year. There are other folk customs, practiced both in spring and during harvest, that are probably even more closely linked to the legend of the birth of the child Plutus. Their general purpose is to bring fertility to the fields by performing, or at least mimicking, the process of procreation on them. Another glimpse of the primitive beneath the civilized Demeter will be shown later when we explore another aspect of these agricultural deities.

The reader may have observed that in modern folk-customs the corn-spirit is generally represented either by a Corn-mother (Old Woman, etc.) or by a Maiden (Corn-baby, etc.), not both by a Corn-mother [pg 358] and by a Maiden. Why then did the Greeks represent the corn both as a mother and a daughter? In the Breton custom the mother-sheaf—a large figure made out of the last sheaf with a small corn-doll inside of it—clearly represents both the Corn-mother and the Corn-daughter, the latter still unborn.1190 Again, in the Prussian custom just described, the woman who plays the part of Corn-mother represents the ripe corn; the child appears to represent next year's corn, which may be regarded, naturally enough, as the child of this year's corn, since it is from the seed of this year's harvest that next year's corn will spring. Demeter would thus be the ripe corn of this year; Proserpine the seed-corn taken from it and sown in autumn, to reappear in spring. The descent of Proserpine into the lower world1191 would thus be a mythical expression for the sowing of the seed; her reappearance in spring1192 would express the sprouting of the young corn. Thus the Proserpine of this year becomes the Demeter of the next, and this may very well have been the original form of the myth. But when with the advance of religious thought the corn came to be personified, no longer as a being that went through the whole cycle of birth, growth, reproduction, and death within a year, but as an immortal goddess, consistency requires that one of the two personifications, the mother or the daughter, should be sacrificed. But the double conception of the corn as mother and daughter was too old and too [pg 359] deeply rooted in the popular mind to be eradicated by logic, and so room had to be found in the reformed myth both for mother and daughter. This was done by assigning to Proserpine the rôle of the corn sown in autumn and sprouting in spring, while Demeter was left to play the somewhat vague and ill-defined part of mother of the corn, who laments its annual disappearance underground, and rejoices over its reappearance in spring. Thus instead of a regular succession of divine beings, each living a year and then giving birth to her successor, the reformed myth exhibits the conception of two divine and immortal beings, one of whom annually disappears into and reappears from the ground, while the other has little to do but to weep and rejoice at the appropriate times.

The reader may have noticed that in modern folk customs, the corn spirit is usually depicted either as a Corn-mother (Old Woman, etc.) or as a Maiden (Corn-baby, etc.), but not both as a Corn-mother and a Maiden. So why did the Greeks portray corn as both a mother and a daughter? In Brittany, the mother-sheaf—a large figure made from the last sheaf with a small corn-doll inside—clearly represents both the Corn-mother and the Corn-daughter, the latter still unborn. Again, in the Prussian custom just described, the woman who plays the role of Corn-mother represents the ripe corn; the child seems to symbolize next year's corn, which can naturally be seen as the child of this year's corn, since it's from the seeds of this year's harvest that next year's corn will grow. Demeter would be the ripe corn of this year; Proserpine the seed-corn taken from it and planted in the fall, to reappear in spring. The descent of Proserpine into the underworld would be a mythical representation of the seed being sown; her reappearance in spring would signify the sprouting of the young corn. Thus, this year's Proserpine becomes next year's Demeter, and this might very well have been the original form of the myth. However, as religious thought progressed, corn began to be personified, no longer as a being going through the entire cycle of birth, growth, reproduction, and death in a year, but as an immortal goddess. Consistency then required that one of the two personifications, either the mother or the daughter, should be removed. But the dual concept of corn as mother and daughter was too old and too ingrained in popular belief to be swept away by logic, so a place had to be made in the revised myth for both. This was accomplished by assigning Proserpine the role of the corn sown in autumn and sprouting in spring, while Demeter was left with the somewhat vague and indefinite role of the corn's mother, who mourns its annual disappearance underground and rejoices at its return in spring. Thus, instead of a straightforward succession of divine beings, each living for a year and then giving birth to her successor, the reformed myth presents the idea of two divine and immortal beings, one of whom disappears into and reappears from the ground each year, while the other mainly weeps and rejoices at the appropriate times.

This explanation of the double personification of the corn in Greek myth assumes that both personifications (Demeter and Proserpine) are original. But if we assume that the Greek myth started with a single personification, the after-growth of a second personification may perhaps be explained as follows. On looking over the peasant harvest customs which have been passed under review, it may be noticed that they involve two distinct conceptions of the corn-spirit. For whereas in some of the customs the corn-spirit is treated as immanent in the corn, in others it is regarded as external to it. Thus when a particular sheaf is called by the name of the corn-spirit, and is dressed in clothes and treated with reverence,1193 the corn-spirit is clearly regarded as immanent in the corn. But when the corn-spirit is said to make [pg 360] the corn grow by passing through it, or to blight the corn of those against whom she has a grudge,1194 she is clearly conceived as quite separate from, though exercising power over, the corn. Conceived in the latter way the corn-spirit is in a fair way to become a deity of the corn, if she has not become so already. Of these two conceptions, that of the corn-spirit as immanent in the corn is doubtless the older, since the view of nature as animated by indwelling spirits appears to have generally preceded the view of it as controlled by deities external to it; to put it shortly, animism precedes deism. In the harvest customs of our European peasantry the conception of the corn-spirit as immanent appears to be the prevalent one; the conception of it as external occurs rather as an exception. In Greek mythology, on the other hand, Demeter is distinctly conceived in the latter way; she is the deity of the corn rather than the spirit immanent in it.1195 The process of thought which seems to be chiefly instrumental in producing the transition from the one mode of conception to the other is anthropomorphism, or the gradual investment of the immanent spirits with more and more of the attributes of humanity. As men emerge from savagery the tendency to anthropomorphise or humanise their divinities gains strength; and the more anthropomorphic these become, the wider is the breach which severs them from those natural objects of which they were at first merely the animating spirits or souls. But in the progress upwards from savagery, men of the same generation do not march abreast; and though the anthropomorphic gods may satisfy the religious wants [pg 361] of more advanced individuals, the more backward members of the community will cling by preference to the older animistic notions. Now when the spirit of any natural object (as the corn) has been invested with human qualities, detached from the object, and converted into a deity controlling it, the object itself is, by the withdrawal of its spirit, left inanimate, it becomes, so to say, a spiritual vacuum. But the popular fancy, intolerant of such a vacuum, in other words, unable to conceive anything as inanimate, immediately creates a fresh mythical being, with which it peoples the vacant object. Thus the same natural object is now represented in mythology by two separate beings; first, by the old spirit now separated from it and raised to the rank of a deity; second, by the new spirit, freshly created by the popular fancy to supply the place vacated by the old spirit on its elevation to a higher sphere. The problem for mythology now is, having got two separate personifications of the same object, what to do with them? How are their relations to each other to be adjusted, and room found for both in the mythological system? When the old spirit or new deity is conceived as creating or producing the object in question, the problem is easily solved. Since the object is believed to be produced by the old spirit, and animated by the new one, the latter, as the soul of the object, must also owe its existence to the former; thus the old spirit will stand to the new one as producer to produced, that is (in mythology), as parent to child, and if both spirits are conceived as female, their relation will be that of mother and daughter. In this way, starting from a single personification of the corn as female, mythology might in time reach a double personification of it as mother and daughter. It would be very rash [pg 362] to affirm that this was the way in which the myth of Demeter and Proserpine actually took shape; but it seems a legitimate conjecture that the reduplication of deities, of which Demeter and Proserpine furnish an example, may sometimes have arisen in the way indicated. For example, among the pairs of deities whom we have been considering, it has been shown that there are grounds for regarding both Isis and her companion god Osiris as personifications of the corn.1196 On the hypothesis just suggested, Isis would be the old corn-spirit, and Osiris would be the newer one, whose relationship to the old spirit was variously explained as that of brother, husband, and son;1197 for of course mythology would always be free to account for the coexistence of the two divinities in more ways than one. Further, this hypothesis offers at least a possible explanation of the relation of Virbius to the Arician Diana. The latter, as we have seen,1198 was a tree-goddess; and if, as I have conjectured, the Flamen Virbialis was no other than the priest of Nemi himself, that is, the King of the Wood, Virbius must also have been a tree-spirit. On the present hypothesis he was the newer tree-spirit, whose relation to the old tree-spirit (Diana) was explained by representing him as her favourite or lover. It must not, however, be forgotten that this proposed explanation of such pairs of deities as Demeter and Proserpine, Isis and Osiris, Diana and Virbius, is purely conjectural, and is only given for what it is worth.

This explanation of the double personification of corn in Greek myth assumes that both personifications (Demeter and Proserpine) are original. However, if we assume that the Greek myth began with a single personification, we might explain the emergence of a second one as follows. Looking at the peasant harvest customs we've reviewed, we can see that they involve two distinct ideas of the corn-spirit. In some customs, the corn-spirit is seen as inherent in the corn, while in others, it is viewed as external to it. For instance, when a specific sheaf is named after the corn-spirit, dressed in clothing, and respected, 1193 the corn-spirit is clearly seen as inherent in the corn. But when people say that the corn-spirit makes the corn grow by passing through it, or curses the corn of those she dislikes, 1194 she is understood as separate from, yet still able to influence, the corn. In this latter conception, the corn-spirit is on track to becoming a deity of the corn, if she hasn't already. Among these two ideas, the view of the corn-spirit as inherent in the corn is likely the older one because the belief in nature being animated by spirits seems to have come before the view of nature as controlled by external deities; to put it simply, animism precedes deism. In the harvest customs of European peasantry, the idea of the corn-spirit as inherent is more common, while the external view is more of an exception. In contrast, in Greek mythology, Demeter is clearly seen in the latter way; she is the deity of the corn rather than the spirit that is inherent in it. 1195 The thought process that seems to primarily drive the shift from one way of understanding to another is anthropomorphism, which is the gradual imparting of human characteristics to spirits. As humans progress from primitive stages, the tendency to anthropomorphize their deities increases; the more these deities become humanlike, the more distant they get from the natural objects that they once merely animated or embodied. However, during this evolution from savagery, individuals from the same generation may not advance at the same pace, and while anthropomorphic gods may meet the spiritual needs of more developed individuals, those who are less advanced tend to hold on to older animistic beliefs. When the spirit of a natural object (like corn) has been given human qualities, separated from the object, and turned into a deity that controls it, that object is left inanimate by the absence of its spirit, creating what could be called a spiritual vacuum. The popular imagination, resistant to such a vacuum or unable to consider anything as inanimate, immediately generates a new mythical being to fill that void. Thus, the same natural object is now represented in mythology by two distinct beings: first, the old spirit now detached from it and elevated to a deity; second, the new spirit, created by the popular imagination to fill the space left by the old spirit's elevation. The challenge for mythology, then, is to find a way to reconcile these two separate personifications of the same object. How do we adjust their relationships and accommodate both in the mythological framework? When the old spirit or new deity is seen as creating or producing the object in question, the problem is easily solved. Because the object is thought to be produced by the old spirit and animated by the new, the latter, as the soul of the object, must also owe its existence to the former; therefore, the old spirit is considered the producer of the new one, that is (in mythology), as parent to child, and if both spirits are regarded as female, their relationship will be that of mother and daughter. In this way, starting from a single female personification of corn, mythology could evolve into a dual personification as mother and daughter. It would be quite bold __[pg 362]__ to claim that this is exactly how the myth of Demeter and Proserpine formed; however, it seems like a reasonable guess that the duplication of deities, such as Demeter and Proserpine, could have arisen in this manner. For example, among the pairs of deities we've examined, there is evidence suggesting that both Isis and her companion god Osiris can be seen as personifications of corn. 1196 According to the hypothesis just proposed, Isis would be the old corn-spirit, while Osiris would be the newer one, whose relationship to the old spirit was variously interpreted as that of brother, husband, or son; 1197 because mythology would always have room to explain the coexistence of the two deities in multiple ways. Furthermore, this hypothesis provides at least a potential explanation for the connection between Virbius and the Arician Diana. The latter, as we have observed, 1198 was a tree-goddess; and if, as I've suggested, the Flamen Virbialis was indeed the priest of Nemi himself, who is the King of the Wood, then Virbius must also have been a tree-spirit. Under this current hypothesis, he was the newer tree-spirit, whose relationship to the old tree-spirit (Diana) was illustrated by representing him as her favorite or lover. It should be noted, however, that this proposed explanation of pairs of deities like Demeter and Proserpine, Isis and Osiris, Diana and Virbius is purely speculative and is offered for its potential value.

[pg 363]

§ 9.—Lityerses.

In the preceding pages an attempt has been made to show that in the Corn-mother and harvest Maiden of Northern Europe we have the prototypes of Demeter and Proserpine. But an essential feature is still wanting to complete the resemblance. A leading incident in the Greek myth is the death and resurrection of Proserpine; it is this incident which, coupled with the nature of the goddess as a deity of vegetation, links the myth with the cults of Adonis, Attis, Osiris, and Dionysus; and it is in virtue of this incident that the myth is considered in this chapter. It remains, therefore, to see whether the conception of the annual death and resurrection of a god, which figures so prominently in these great Greek and Oriental worships, has not also its origin in the rustic rites observed by reapers and vine-dressers amongst the corn-shocks and the vines.

In the previous pages, we've tried to demonstrate that the Corn-mother and Harvest Maiden of Northern Europe serve as the prototypes of Demeter and Proserpine. However, a crucial element is still missing to complete the comparison. A key event in the Greek myth is the death and resurrection of Proserpine; this event, along with the goddess’s role as a deity of vegetation, connects the myth to the cults of Adonis, Attis, Osiris, and Dionysus. It's because of this event that we discuss the myth in this chapter. Therefore, we need to explore whether the idea of a god's annual death and resurrection, which plays a significant role in these major Greek and Eastern religions, also has its roots in the simple rituals performed by harvesters and vine-dressers among the corn-shocks and vines.

Our general ignorance of the popular superstitions and customs of the ancients has already been confessed. But the obscurity which thus hangs over the first beginnings of ancient religion is fortunately dissipated to some extent in the present case. The worships of Osiris, Adonis, and Attis had their respective seats, as we have seen, in Egypt, Syria, and Phrygia; and in each of these countries certain harvest and vintage customs are known to have been observed, the resemblance of which to each other and to the national rites struck the ancients themselves, and, compared with the harvest customs of modern peasants and barbarians, seem to throw some light on the origin of the rites in question.

Our general lack of knowledge about the popular superstitions and customs of ancient people has already been acknowledged. However, the confusion surrounding the early beginnings of ancient religion is, fortunately, somewhat clarified in this case. The worship of Osiris, Adonis, and Attis originated in Egypt, Syria, and Phrygia, respectively; and in each of these regions, specific harvest and vintage customs are known to have been practiced. The similarities among these customs and with local traditions were noticeable even to the ancients themselves, and when compared to the harvest customs of modern peasants and other groups, they offer some insight into the origins of these rituals.

[pg 364]

It has been already mentioned, on the authority of Diodorus, that in ancient Egypt the reapers were wont to lament over the first sheaf cut, invoking Isis as the goddess to whom they owed the discovery of corn.1199 To the plaintive song or cry sung or uttered by Egyptian reapers the Greeks gave the name of Maneros, and explained the name by a story that Maneros, the only son of the first Egyptian king, invented agriculture, and, dying an untimely death, was thus lamented by the people.1200 It appears, however, that the name Maneros is due to a misunderstanding of the formula mââ-ne-hra, “come thou back,” which has been discovered in various Egyptian writings, for example in the dirge of Isis in the Book of the Dead.1201 Hence we may suppose that the cry mââ-ne-hra was chanted by the reapers over the cut corn as a dirge for the death of the corn-spirit (Isis or Osiris) and a prayer for its return. As the cry was raised over the first ears reaped, it would seem that the corn-spirit was believed by the Egyptians to be present in the first corn cut and to die under the sickle. We have seen that in Java the first ears of rice are taken to represent the Corn-bride and the Corn-bridegroom.1202 In parts of Russia the first sheaf is treated much in the same way that the last sheaf is treated elsewhere. It is reaped by the mistress herself, taken home and set in the place of honour near the holy pictures; afterwards it is threshed separately, and some of its grain is mixed with the next year's seed-corn.1203

It has already been noted, based on Diodorus, that in ancient Egypt, the reapers used to mourn over the first sheaf cut, calling on Isis as the goddess to whom they owed the discovery of corn.1199 The Greeks named the sorrowful song or cry sung by Egyptian reapers as Maneros, explaining the name with the story that Maneros, the only son of the first Egyptian king, invented agriculture and was mourned by the people after dying an early death.1200 However, it seems that the name Maneros comes from a misunderstanding of the phrase mââ-ne-hra, "come back," which has been found in various Egyptian writings, such as in the dirge of Isis in the Book of the Dead.1201 Therefore, we can assume that the cry mââ-ne-hra was chanted by the reapers over the cut corn as a lament for the death of the corn-spirit (Isis or Osiris) and a prayer for its return. As this cry was raised over the first ears harvested, it seems that the Egyptians believed the corn-spirit was present in the first corn cut and died under the sickle. We have seen that in Java, the first ears of rice symbolize the Corn-bride and the Corn-bridegroom.1202 In parts of Russia, the first sheaf is treated similarly to how the last sheaf is treated elsewhere. It is cut by the mistress herself, taken home, and placed in a position of honor near the holy pictures; afterwards, it is threshed separately, and some of its grain is mixed with next year's seed-corn.1203

[pg 365]

In Phoenicia and Western Asia a plaintive song, like that chanted by the Egyptian corn-reapers, was sung at the vintage and probably (to judge by analogy) also at harvest. This Phoenician song was called by the Greeks Linus or Ailinus and explained, like Maneros, as a lament for the death of a youth named Linus.1204 According to one story Linus was brought up by a shepherd, but torn to pieces by his dogs.1205 But, like Maneros, the name Linus or Ailinus appears to have originated in a verbal misunderstanding, and to be nothing more than the cry ai lanu, that is “woe to us,” which the Phoenicians probably uttered in mourning for Adonis;1206 at least Sappho seems to have regarded Adonis and Linus as equivalent.1207

In Phoenicia and Western Asia, a mournful song, similar to the one sung by the Egyptian corn-reapers, was performed during the wine harvest and likely also during the grain harvest. The Greeks referred to this Phoenician song as Linus or Ailinus, interpreting it, like Maneros, as a lament for the death of a young man named Linus.1204 According to one version of the story, Linus was raised by a shepherd but was killed by his dogs.1205 However, like Maneros, the name Linus or Ailinus seems to have come from a verbal misunderstanding, simply being the cry ai lanu, meaning "woe to us," which the Phoenicians likely expressed while mourning for Adonis;1206 at least Sappho appears to have seen Adonis and Linus as the same.1207

In Bithynia a like mournful ditty, called Bormus or Borimus, was chanted by Mariandynian reapers. Bormus was said to have been a handsome youth, the son of King Upias or of a wealthy and distinguished man. One summer day, watching the reapers at work in his fields, he went to fetch them a drink of water and was never heard of more. So the reapers sought for him, calling him in plaintive strains, which they continued to use ever afterwards.1208

In Bithynia, a similar sad song, called Bormus or Borimus, was sung by the Mariandynian reapers. Bormus was said to be a handsome young man, the son of King Upias or a rich and respected individual. One summer day, while watching the reapers work in his fields, he went to get them a drink of water and was never seen again. The reapers then searched for him, calling out for him in sorrowful tones, which they continued to use from that point on.1208

In Phrygia the corresponding song, sung by harvesters both at reaping and at threshing, was called Lityerses. According to one story, Lityerses was a bastard son of Midas, King of Phrygia. He used to reap the corn, and had an enormous appetite. When a stranger happened to enter the corn-field or to pass [pg 366] by it, Lityerses gave him plenty to eat and drink, then took him to the corn-fields on the banks of the Maeander and compelled him to reap along with him. Lastly, he used to wrap the stranger in a sheaf, cut off his head with a sickle, and carry away his body, wrapt in the corn stalks. But at last he was himself slain by Hercules, who threw his body into the river.1209 As Hercules was probably reported to have slain Lityerses in the same way that Lityerses slew others (as Theseus treated Sinis and Sciron), we may infer that Lityerses used to throw the bodies of his victims into the river. According to another version of the story, Lityerses, a son of Midas, used to challenge people to a reaping match with him, and if he vanquished them he used to thrash them; but one day he met with a stronger reaper, who slew him.1210

In Phrygia, the song sung by harvesters during the reaping and threshing was called Lityerses. According to one story, Lityerses was an illegitimate son of Midas, the King of Phrygia. He would reap the grain and had a huge appetite. Whenever a stranger entered the field or passed by it, Lityerses would offer them plenty to eat and drink, then take them to the fields along the banks of the Maeander and force them to reap alongside him. Eventually, he would wrap the stranger in a sheaf, decapitate him with a sickle, and carry away the body wrapped in corn stalks. But in the end, he was killed by Hercules, who threw his body into the river. It’s likely that Hercules killed Lityerses in the same manner Lityerses killed others (similar to how Theseus dealt with Sinis and Sciron), suggesting that Lityerses used to dispose of his victims' bodies in the river. In another version of the story, Lityerses, son of Midas, would challenge others to a reaping contest, and if he won, he would beat them; but one day he faced a stronger reaper who killed him.

There are some grounds for supposing that in these stories of Lityerses we have the description of a Phrygian harvest custom in accordance with which certain persons, especially strangers passing the harvest field, were regularly regarded as embodiments of the corn-spirit and as such were seized by the reapers, wrapt in sheaves, and beheaded, their bodies, bound up in the corn-stalks, being afterwards thrown into water as a rain-charm. The grounds for this supposition are, first, the resemblance of the Lityerses story to the harvest customs of European peasantry, and, second, the fact that human beings have been commonly killed by savage races to promote the fertility of the fields. We [pg 367] will examine these grounds successively, beginning with the former.

There are some reasons to believe that in these stories of Lityerses, we have a depiction of a Phrygian harvest ritual in which certain individuals, particularly outsiders passing through the harvest field, were seen as representations of the corn spirit. As a result, they were captured by the reapers, wrapped in sheaves, and beheaded, with their bodies tied up in the corn stalks and later thrown into water as a rain charm. The reasons for this belief are, first, the similarity of the Lityerses story to the harvest traditions of European peasants, and second, the fact that primitive cultures have often sacrificed humans to enhance the fertility of their fields. We [pg 367] will explore these reasons one by one, starting with the first.

In comparing the story with the harvest customs of Europe,1211 three points deserve special attention, namely: I. the reaping match and the binding of persons in the sheaves; II. the killing of the corn-spirit or his representatives; III. the treatment of visitors to the harvest-field or of strangers passing it.

In comparing the story with the harvest customs of Europe,1211 three points deserve special attention: I. the reaping contest and the tying together of people in the sheaves; II. the killing of the corn spirit or his representatives; III. the treatment of visitors to the harvest field or of outsiders passing by.

I. In regard to the first head, we have seen that in modern Europe the person who cuts or binds or threshes the last sheaf is often exposed to rough treatment at the hands of his fellow-labourers. For example, he is bound up in the last sheaf, and, thus encased, is carried or carted about, beaten, drenched with water, thrown on a dunghill, etc. Or, if he is spared this horseplay, he is at least the subject of ridicule or is believed destined to suffer some misfortune in the course of the year. Hence the harvesters are naturally reluctant to give the last cut at reaping or the last stroke at threshing or to bind the last sheaf, and towards the close of the work this reluctance produces an emulation among the labourers, each striving to finish his task as fast as possible, in order that he may escape the invidious distinction of being last.1212 For example, in the neighbourhood of Danzig, when the winter corn is cut and mostly bound up in sheaves, the portion which still remains to be bound is divided amongst the women binders, each of whom [pg 368] receives a swath of equal length to bind. A crowd of reapers, children, and idlers gathers round to witness the contest, and at the word, “Seize the Old Man,” the women fall to work, all binding their allotted swaths as hard as they can. The spectators watch them narrowly, and the woman who cannot keep pace with the rest and consequently binds the last sheaf has to carry the Old Man (that is, the last sheaf made up in the form of a man) to the farmhouse and deliver it to the farmer with the words, “Here I bring you the Old Man.” At the supper which follows, the Old Man is placed at the table and receives an abundant portion of food which, as he cannot eat it, falls to the share of the woman who carried him. Afterwards the Old Man is placed in the yard and all the people dance round him. Or the woman who bound the last sheaf dances for a good while with the Old Man, while the rest form a ring round them; afterwards they all, one after the other, dance a single round with him. Further, the woman who bound the last sheaf goes herself by the name of the Old Man till the next harvest, and is often mocked with the cry, “Here comes the Old Man.”1213 At Aschbach, Bavaria, when the reaping is nearly finished, the reapers say, “Now we will drive out the Old Man.” Each of them sets himself to reap a patch of corn and reaps as fast as he can; he who cuts the last handful or the last stalk is greeted by the rest with an exulting cry, “You have the Old Man.” Sometimes a black mask is fastened on the reaper's face and he is dressed in woman's clothes; or if the reaper is a woman, she is dressed in man's clothes; a dance follows. At the supper the Old Man gets twice as large a portion of food as the others. At threshing, the proceedings are the same; [pg 369] the person who gives the last stroke is said to have the Old Man.1214

I. Regarding the first point, we've observed that in modern Europe, the person who makes the last cut, ties, or threshes the final sheaf often faces rough treatment from their fellow workers. For example, they might be tied up in the last sheaf and carried around, beaten, drenched with water, or tossed onto a dung heap. If they avoid this roughhousing, they still become the target of ridicule or are thought to be doomed to suffer some misfortune that year. As a result, harvesters are naturally hesitant to make the final cut or bind the last sheaf, and this reluctance creates competition among the workers as they all rush to finish their tasks quickly to avoid being the last one. For instance, in the area around Danzig, when winter corn is cut and mostly bundled, the remaining portion to be tied up is divided among women binders, each of whom receives an equal length of swath to bind. A crowd of reapers, children, and onlookers gathers to watch the competition, and at the signal, “Seize the Old Man,” the women get to work, binding their assigned swaths as quickly as they can. The spectators closely observe them, and the woman who falls behind and binds the last sheaf has to carry the Old Man (which means the last sheaf formed into a man) to the farmhouse and present it to the farmer with the words, “Here I bring you the Old Man.” At the following supper, the Old Man is seated at the table and is served a generous portion of food, which, since he can't eat it, is given to the woman who carried him. Later, the Old Man is placed in the yard, and everyone dances around him. Alternatively, the woman who tied the last sheaf dances for a while with the Old Man, while the others form a circle around them; afterward, each one takes a turn dancing with him. Additionally, the woman who tied the last sheaf is referred to as the Old Man until the next harvest and is often teased with the cry, “Here comes the Old Man.” In Aschbach, Bavaria, when the reaping is nearly done, the reapers say, “Now we will drive out the Old Man.” Each reaper picks a patch of corn and harvests as quickly as they can; whoever cuts the last handful or stalk is greeted by cheers from the others, “You have the Old Man.” Sometimes, a black mask is put on the reaper's face, and they are dressed in women's clothing; if the reaper is a woman, she is dressed in men's clothes, followed by a dance. At supper, the Old Man receives double the portion of food compared to the others. The same practices occur during threshing; the person who takes the last stroke is said to have the Old Man.

These examples illustrate the contests in reaping, threshing, and binding which take place amongst the harvesters, on account of their unwillingness to suffer the ridicule and personal inconvenience attaching to the individual who happens to finish his work last. It will be remembered that the person who is last at reaping, binding, or threshing, is regarded as the representative of the corn-spirit,1215 and this idea is more fully expressed by binding him or her in corn-stalks. The latter custom has been already illustrated, but a few more instances may be added. At Kloxin, near Stettin, the harvesters call out to the woman who binds the last sheaf, “You have the Old Man, and must keep him.” The Old Man is a great bundle of corn decked with flowers and ribbons, and fashioned into a rude semblance of the human form. It is fastened on a rake or strapped on a horse, and brought with music to the village. In delivering the Old Man to the farmer, the woman says—

These examples illustrate the competitions in reaping, threshing, and binding that occur among the harvesters due to their reluctance to face mockery and personal discomfort associated with being the last to finish their work. It is important to note that the person who finishes last in reaping, binding, or threshing is seen as the representative of the corn spirit, 1215, and this belief is further emphasized by binding that individual in corn stalks. This custom has been previously discussed, but a few more examples can be added. At Kloxin, near Stettin, the harvesters shout to the woman who binds the last sheaf, "You have the Old Man, and you need to keep him." The Old Man is a large bundle of corn adorned with flowers and ribbons, shaped into a rough likeness of a person. It is secured to a rake or strapped onto a horse and brought back to the village with music. Upon delivering the Old Man to the farmer, the woman says—

Here, my dear Sir, is the Old Man.
He can't stay on the field any longer,
He can no longer hide himself,
He has to enter the village.
Ladies and gentlemen, please be so kind.
To give the Old Man a gift.

Forty or fifty years ago the custom was to tie up the woman herself in pease-straw, and bring her with music to the farmhouse, where the harvesters danced with her till the pease-straw fell off.1216 In other villages round Stettin, when the last harvest-waggon is being loaded, there is a regular race amongst the women, [pg 370] each striving not to be last. For she who places the last sheaf on the waggon is called the Old Man, and is completely swathed in corn-stalks; she is also decked with flowers, and flowers and a helmet of straw are placed on her head. In solemn procession she carries the harvest-crown to the squire, over whose head she holds it while she utters a string of good wishes. At the dance which follows, the Old Man has the right to choose his (or rather her) partner; it is an honour to dance with him.1217 At Blankenfelde, in the district of Potsdam, the woman who binds the last sheaf at the rye-harvest is saluted with the cry, “You have the Old Man.” A woman is then tied up in the last sheaf in such a way that only her head is left free; her hair also is covered with a cap made of rye-stalks, adorned with ribbons and flowers. She is called the Harvest-man, and must keep dancing in front of the last harvest-waggon till it reaches the squire's house, where she receives a present, and is released from her envelope of corn.1218 At Gommern, near Magdeburg, the reaper who cuts the last ears of corn is often wrapt up in corn-stalks so completely that it is hard to see whether there is a man in the bundle or not. Thus wrapt up he is taken by another stalwart reaper on his back, and carried round the field amid the joyous cries of the harvesters.1219 At Neuhausen, near Merseburg, the person who binds the last sheaf is wrapt in ears of oats and saluted as the Oats-man, whereupon the others dance round him.1220 At Brie, Isle de France, the farmer himself is tied up in the first sheaf.1221 At the harvest-home at Udvarhely, Transylvania, a person is encased in [pg 371] corn-stalks, and wears on his head a crown made out of the last ears cut. On reaching the village he is soused with water over and over.1222 At Dingelstedt, in the district of Erfurt, about fifty years ago it was the custom to tie up a man in the last sheaf. He was called the Old Man, and was brought home on the last waggon, amid huzzas and music. On reaching the farmyard he was rolled round the barn and drenched with water.1223 At Nördlingen, Bavaria, the man who gives the last stroke at threshing is wrapt in straw and rolled on the threshing-floor.1224 In some parts of Oberpfalz, Bavaria, he is said to “get the Old Man,” is wrapt in straw, and carried to a neighbour who has not yet finished his threshing.1225 In Thüringen a sausage is stuck in the last sheaf at threshing, and thrown, with the sheaf, on the threshing-floor. It is called the Barrenwurst or Banzenwurst, and is eaten by all the threshers. After they have eaten it a man is encased in pease-straw, and thus attired is led through the village.1226

Forty or fifty years ago, the tradition was to wrap the woman herself in pea-straw and bring her to the farmhouse with music, where the harvesters would dance with her until the pea-straw fell off. In other villages around Stettin, when the last harvest wagon is being loaded, there's a race among the women, each trying not to be last. The woman who places the last sheaf on the wagon is called the Old Man and is totally wrapped in corn stalks; she's also adorned with flowers, and a crown of flowers and straw is placed on her head. In a formal procession, she carries the harvest crown to the squire, holding it over his head while offering a series of good wishes. During the dance that follows, the Old Man has the privilege of choosing their partner; it's considered an honor to dance with them. At Blankenfelde, in the Potsdam district, the woman who binds the last sheaf at the rye harvest is greeted with the cry, “You have the Old Man.” A woman is then wrapped in the last sheaf in such a way that only her head is visible; her hair is also covered with a cap made of rye stalks, adorned with ribbons and flowers. She is called the Harvest Man and must keep dancing in front of the last harvest wagon until it reaches the squire's house, where she receives a gift and is released from her corn wrapping. In Gommern, near Magdeburg, the reaper who cuts the last ears of corn is often wrapped up in corn stalks so completely that it's difficult to tell if there's a person in the bundle. Wrapped up like this, he is carried by another strong reaper on his back, paraded around the field amid the cheerful shouts of the harvesters. In Neuhausen, near Merseburg, the person who binds the last sheaf is wrapped in ears of oats and celebrated as the Oats Man, while the others dance around him. In Brie, Isle de France, the farmer himself is wrapped in the first sheaf. At the harvest home in Udvarhely, Transylvania, a person is encased in corn stalks, with a crown made of the last ears cut placed on their head. Upon reaching the village, they are repeatedly soaked with water. In Dingelstedt, Erfurt district, about fifty years ago, it was customary to wrap a man in the last sheaf. He was called the Old Man and was brought home on the last wagon, amid cheers and music. Upon reaching the farmyard, he was rolled around the barn and drenched with water. In Nördlingen, Bavaria, the man who makes the last stroke during threshing is wrapped in straw and rolled on the threshing floor. In some areas of Oberpfalz, Bavaria, it's said that he “gets the Old Man,” is wrapped in straw, and taken to a neighbor who hasn't finished threshing yet. In Thüringen, a sausage is placed in the last sheaf during threshing and thrown onto the threshing floor with the sheaf. It's referred to as the Barrenwurst or Banzenwurst, and is eaten by all the threshers. After eating it, a man is encased in pea-straw, and while dressed this way, he is led through the village.

“In all these cases the idea is that the spirit of the corn—the Old Man of vegetation—is driven out of the corn last cut or last threshed, and lives in the barn during the winter. At sowing-time he goes out again to the fields to resume his activity as animating force among the sprouting corn.”1227

“In all these situations, the idea is that the essence of the corn—the Old Man of vegetation—is released from the last harvest or the last threshing and stays in the barn all winter. When it’s time to plant, he goes back to the fields to resume his role as the energizing force among the growing corn.”1227

Much the same ideas are attached to the last corn in India; for we are told that in the Central Provinces, “when the reaping is nearly done, about a bisvá, say a rood of land, of corn is left standing in the cultivator's [pg 372] last field, and the reapers rest a little. Then they rush at this bisvá, tear it up, and cast it into the air, shouting victory to Omkár Maháráj or Jhámájí, or Rámjí Dás, etc., according to their respective possessions. A sheaf is made up of this corn, tied to a bamboo, and stuck up in the last harvest cart, and carried home in triumph. It is fastened up in the threshing-floor to a tree, or to the cattle-shed, where its services are essential in averting the evil-eye.”1228

Much the same ideas are attached to the last corn in India; for we are told that in the Central Provinces, "When the reaping is almost complete, about a bisvá—roughly a rood of land—of corn remains in the farmer's [pg 372] last field, and the harvesters take a short break. They then rush at this bisvá, pull it up, and toss it into the air, shouting victory to Omkár Maháráj, Jhámájí, or Rámjí Dás, depending on their beliefs. A sheaf is made from this corn, tied with bamboo, and placed in the last harvest cart, which is taken home in celebration. It is then attached to a tree in the threshing floor or the cattle shed, where it plays a vital role in warding off the evil eye."1228

II. Passing to the second point of comparison between the Lityerses story and European harvest customs, we have now to see that in the latter the corn-spirit is often believed to be killed at reaping or threshing. In the Romsdal and other parts of Norway, when the haymaking is over, the people say that “the Old Hay-man has been killed.” In some parts of Bavaria the man who gives the last stroke at threshing is said to have killed the Corn-man, the Oats-man, or the Wheat-man, according to the crop.1229 In the Canton of Tillot, in Lothringen, at threshing the last corn the men keep time with their flails, calling out as they thresh, “We are killing the Old Woman! We are killing the Old Woman!” If there is an old woman in the house she is warned to save herself, or she will be struck dead.1230 In Lithuania, near Ragnit, the last handful of corn is left standing by itself, with the words, “The Old Woman (Boba) is sitting in there.” Then a young reaper whets his scythe, and, with a strong sweep, cuts down the handful. It is now said of him that “He has cut off the Boba's head;” and he receives a gratuity from the farmer and a jugful of [pg 373] water over his head from the farmer's wife.1231 According to another account, every Lithuanian reaper makes haste to finish his task; for the Old Rye-woman lives in the last stalks, and whoever cuts the last stalks kills the Old Rye-woman, and by killing her he brings trouble on himself.1232 In Wilkischken (district of Tilsit) the man who cuts the last corn goes by the name of “The killer of the Rye-woman.”1233 In Lithuania, again, the corn-spirit is believed to be killed at threshing as well as at reaping. When only a single pile of corn remains to be threshed, all the threshers suddenly step back a few paces, as if at the word of command. Then they fall to work plying their flails with the utmost rapidity and vehemence, till they come to the last bundle. Upon this they fling themselves with almost frantic fury, straining every nerve, and raining blows on it till the word “Halt!” rings out sharply from the leader. The man whose flail is the last to fall after the command to stop has been given is immediately surrounded by all the rest, crying out that “He has struck the Old Rye-woman dead.” He has to expiate the deed by treating them to brandy; and, like the man who cuts the last corn, he is known as “The killer of the Old Rye-woman.”1234 Sometimes in Lithuania the slain corn-spirit was represented by a puppet. Thus a female figure was made out of corn-stalks, dressed in clothes, and placed on the threshing-floor, under the heap of corn which was to be threshed last. Whoever thereafter gave the last stroke at threshing “struck the Old Woman dead.”1235 We have already had examples of burning the figure which represents the corn-spirit.1236 Sometimes, [pg 374] again, the corn-spirit is represented by a man, who lies down under the last corn; it is threshed upon his body, and the people say that “the Old Man is being beaten to death.”1237 We have already seen that sometimes the farmer's wife is thrust, together with the last sheaf, under the threshing-machine, as if to thresh her, and that afterwards a pretence is made of winnowing her.1238 At Volders, in the Tyrol, husks of corn are stuck behind the neck of the man who gives the last stroke at threshing, and he is throttled with a straw garland. If he is tall, it is believed that the corn will be tall next year. Then he is tied on a bundle and flung into the river.1239 In Carinthia, the thresher who gave the last stroke, and the person who untied the last sheaf on the threshing-floor, are bound hand and foot with straw bands, and crowns of straw are placed on their heads. Then they are tied, face to face, on a sledge, dragged through the village, and flung into a brook.1240 The custom of throwing the representative of the corn-spirit into a stream, like that of drenching him with water, is, as usual, a rain-charm.1241

II. Moving on to the second point of comparison between the Lityerses story and European harvest customs, we see that in the latter, people often believe the corn-spirit is killed during reaping or threshing. In Romsdal and other areas of Norway, once the haymaking is done, people say that “The Old Hay-man has been killed.” In parts of Bavaria, the person who makes the last stroke during threshing is said to have killed the Corn-man, Oats-man, or Wheat-man, depending on the crop.1229 In the Canton of Tillot, in Lothringen, while threshing the last of the corn, the men keep rhythm with their flails, shouting as they work, "We're killing the Old Woman! We're killing the Old Woman!" If an old woman is present, she is warned to protect herself, or she may be struck dead.1230 In Lithuania, near Ragnit, the last handful of corn is left standing by itself, accompanied by the words, "The Old Woman (Boba) is sitting in there." Then a young reaper sharpens his scythe and, with a strong swing, cuts down the handful. It is then claimed that “He cut off the Boba's head;” and he receives a tip from the farmer and a jug of [pg 373] water poured over his head by the farmer's wife.1231 According to another account, every Lithuanian reaper hurries to finish his job because the Old Rye-woman lives in the last stalks, and whoever cuts the last stalks kills her, bringing trouble upon themselves.1232 In Wilkischken (district of Tilsit), the man who cuts the last corn is known as “The murderer of the Rye woman.”1233 Again in Lithuania, it's believed that the corn-spirit is killed during both threshing and reaping. When only one pile of corn is left to be threshed, all the threshers suddenly step back as if on cue. Then they start working with their flails as quickly and forcefully as possible until they reach the final bundle. They attack it with almost frenzied energy, striking it until the word "Stop!" is shouted by the leader. The person whose flail strikes last after the command has been given is immediately surrounded by everyone else, shouting that "He has killed the Old Rye-woman." He must atone for the act by buying everyone brandy, and like the person who cuts the last corn, he is called "The murderer of the Old Rye woman."1234 Sometimes in Lithuania, the killed corn-spirit is represented by a puppet. A female figure made of corn-stalks is dressed in clothing and placed on the threshing floor under the last heap of corn to be threshed. Whoever makes the last strike during threshing “killed the Old Woman.”1235 We have previously seen examples of burning the figure that represents the corn-spirit.1236 At times, [pg 374] the corn-spirit is represented by a man who lies down under the last corn; it is threshed upon his body, and people say that "The old man is being beaten to death."1237 We have also noted that sometimes the farmer's wife is placed, along with the last sheaf, under the threshing machine, as if to thresh her, and afterwards a pretense is made of winnowing her.1238 In Volders, in the Tyrol, corn husks are stuck behind the neck of the person who makes the last strike at threshing, and they are choked with a straw garland. If that person is tall, it is believed that the corn will be tall the following year. Then they are tied to a bundle and thrown into the river.1239 In Carinthia, the thresher who made the last strike, along with the person who untied the last sheaf on the threshing floor, are bound hand and foot with straw bands, and straw crowns are placed on their heads. They are then tied face to face on a sled, dragged through the village, and thrown into a stream.1240 The custom of tossing the representative of the corn-spirit into a stream, as well as drenching them with water, is typically a rain charm.1241

III. Thus far the representatives of the corn-spirit have generally been the man or woman who cuts, binds, or threshes the last corn. We now come to the cases in which the corn-spirit is represented either by a stranger passing the harvest-field (as in the Lityerses tale), or by a visitor entering it for the first time. All over Germany it is customary for the reapers or threshers to lay hold of passing strangers and bind them with a rope made of corn-stalks, till [pg 375] they pay a forfeit; and when the farmer himself or one of his guests enters the field or the threshing-floor for the first time, he is treated in the same way. Sometimes the rope is only tied round his arm or his feet or his neck.1242 But sometimes he is regularly swathed in corn. Thus at Solör in Norway, whoever enters the field, be he the master or a stranger, is tied up in a sheaf and must pay a ransom. In the neighbourhood of Soest, when the farmer visits the flax-pullers for the first time, he is completely enveloped in flax. Passers-by are also surrounded by the women, tied up in flax, and compelled to stand brandy.1243 At Nördlingen strangers are caught with straw ropes and tied up in a sheaf till they pay a forfeit. At Brie, Isle de France, when any one who does not belong to the farm passes by the harvest-field, the reapers give chase. If they catch him, they bind him in a sheaf and bite him, one after the other, in the forehead, crying “You shall carry the key of the field.”1244 “To have the key” is an expression used by harvesters elsewhere in the sense of to cut or bind or thresh the last sheaf;1245 hence, it is equivalent to the phrases “You have the Old Man,” “You are the [pg 376] Old Man,” which are addressed to the cutter, binder, or thresher of the last sheaf. Therefore, when a stranger, as at Brie, is tied up in a sheaf and told that he will “carry the key of the field,” it is as much as to say that he is the Old Man, that is, an embodiment of the corn-spirit.

III. So far, the representatives of the corn spirit have usually been the person who cuts, binds, or threshes the last of the corn. Now, we’ll discuss instances where the corn spirit is represented either by a stranger passing through the harvest field (like in the Lityerses tale) or by a visitor who is entering for the first time. Throughout Germany, it’s common for reapers or threshers to grab passing strangers and tie them up with a rope made of corn stalks until they pay a fine; similarly, when the farmer or one of his guests enters the field or the threshing floor for the first time, they undergo the same treatment. Sometimes the rope is only tied around their arm, feet, or neck. But sometimes, they are fully wrapped in corn. For example, in Solör, Norway, anyone who enters the field, whether it’s the owner or a stranger, is tied up in a sheaf and must pay a ransom. In the area around Soest, when the farmer visits the flax pullers for the first time, he is completely covered in flax. Passersby are also surrounded by women, tied up in flax, and forced to stand brandy. In Nördlingen, strangers are caught with straw ropes and bound in a sheaf until they pay a fine. In Brie, Isle de France, when someone who doesn’t belong to the farm walks by the harvest field, the reapers chase after them. If they catch that person, they tie them up in a sheaf and take turns biting them on the forehead while shouting, “You will hold the key to the field.” The phrase “To have the key” is used by harvesters in other places to mean cutting or binding or threshing the last sheaf; thus, it’s similar to the expressions "You have the old guy," “You're the Old Man,” which are directed at the cutter, binder, or thresher of the last sheaf. Therefore, when a stranger, as in Brie, is tied up in a sheaf and told that they’ll "hold the key to the field," it means that they are the Old Man, signifying an embodiment of the corn spirit.

Thus, like Lityerses, modern reapers lay hold of a passing stranger and tie him up in a sheaf. It is not to be expected that they should complete the parallel by cutting off his head; but if they do not take such a strong step, their language and gestures are at least indicative of a desire to do so. For instance, in Mecklenburg on the first clay of reaping, if the master or mistress or a stranger enters the field, or merely passes by it, all the mowers face towards him and sharpen their scythes, clashing their whet-stones against them in unison, as if they were making ready to mow. Then the woman who leads the mowers steps up to him and ties a band round his left arm. He must ransom himself by payment of a forfeit.1246 Near Ratzeburg when the master or other person of mark enters the field or passes by it, all the harvesters stop work and march towards him in a body, the men with their scythes in front. On meeting him they form up in line, men and women. The men stick the poles of their scythes in the ground, as they do in whetting them; then they take off their caps and hang them on the scythes, while their leader stands forward and makes a speech. When he has done, they all whet their scythes in measured time very loudly, after which they put on their caps. Two of the women binders then come forward; one of them ties the master or stranger (as the case may be) with corn-ears [pg 377] or with a silken band; the other delivers a rhyming address. The following are specimens of the speeches made by the reaper on these occasions. In some parts of Pomerania every passer-by is stopped, his way being barred with a corn-rope. The reapers form a circle round him and sharpen their scythes, while their leader says—

Thus, like Lityerses, modern harvesters grab a passing stranger and tie him up in a sheaf. It's not expected that they will go as far as cutting off his head; however, if they don't take that extreme action, their language and gestures clearly show a wish to do so. For example, in Mecklenburg on the first day of harvest, if the master or mistress or a stranger enters the field, or just walks by, all the mowers turn to face him and sharpen their scythes, clashing their whetstones against them in unison as if getting ready to mow. Then, the woman leading the mowers approaches him and ties a band around his left arm. He must pay a fee to secure his release. Near Ratzeburg, when the master or another notable person enters the field or passes by, all the harvesters stop working and march towards him together, the men holding their scythes in front. Upon meeting him, they line up, men and women alike. The men stick the poles of their scythes into the ground, just like when sharpening them; then they remove their caps and hang them on their scythes, while their leader steps forward to give a speech. Once he's finished, they all sharpen their scythes loudly in sync, after which they put their caps back on. Two of the women binders then step forward; one ties the master or stranger (whichever applies) with ears of corn or a silk band, while the other delivers a rhyming address. Here are some examples of the speeches made by the reaper on these occasions. In some areas of Pomerania, every passerby is stopped, their path blocked with a corn rope. The reapers form a circle around him and sharpen their scythes, while their leader says—

“The guys are ready,”
The scythes are crooked,
The corn is both large and small,
The guy needs to be mowed.

Then the process of whetting the scythes is repeated.1247 At Ramin, in the district of Stettin, the stranger, standing encircled by the reapers, is thus addressed—

Then the process of sharpening the scythes is repeated.1247 At Ramin, in the district of Stettin, the stranger, standing surrounded by the reapers, is addressed in this way—

“We'll impress the gentleman”
With our bare sword,
With which we cut meadows and fields.
We shave princes and lords.
Workers are often thirsty;
If the gentleman will buy beer and brandy
The joke will be over soon.
But if he doesn't like our prayer,
The sword has the right to attack.1248

That in these customs the whetting of the scythes is really meant as a preliminary to mowing appears from the following variation of the preceding customs. In the district of Lüneburg when any one enters the harvest-field, he is asked whether he will engage a good fellow. If he says yes, the harvesters mow some swaths, yelling and screaming, and then ask him for drink-money.1249

That in these customs sharpening the scythes is really seen as a preparation for mowing is clear from a different version of the earlier customs. In the Lüneburg area, when someone enters the harvest field, they're asked if they want to hire a good worker. If they say yes, the harvesters cut some strips, yelling and shouting, and then ask for drink money.1249

On the threshing-floor strangers are also regarded as embodiments of the corn-spirit, and are treated [pg 378] accordingly. At Wiedingharde in Schleswig when a stranger comes to the threshing-floor he is asked “Shall I teach you the flail-dance?” If he says yes, they put the arms of the threshing-flail round his neck (as if he were a sheaf of corn), and press them together so tightly that he is nearly choked.1250 In some parishes of Wermland (Sweden) when a stranger enters the threshing-floor where the threshers are at work, they say that “they will teach him the threshing-song.” Then they put a flail round his neck and a straw rope about his body. Also, as we have seen, if a stranger woman enters the threshing-floor, the threshers put a flail round her body and a wreath of corn-stalks round her neck, and call out, “See the Corn-woman! See! that is how the Corn-maiden looks!”1251

On the threshing floor, strangers are seen as representations of the corn spirit and are treated [pg 378] accordingly. In Wiedingharde, Schleswig, when a stranger arrives at the threshing floor, they ask "Do you want to learn the flail dance?" If he agrees, they wrap the arms of the threshing flail around his neck (as if he were a sheaf of corn) and squeeze them tightly, almost choking him.1250 In some parishes of Wermland (Sweden), when a stranger comes onto the threshing floor where the workers are busy, they say that "they will teach him the threshing song." They then place a flail around his neck and a straw rope around his waist. Additionally, as we've seen, if a strange woman steps onto the threshing floor, the workers put a flail around her body and a garland of corn stalks around her neck, exclaiming, “Check out the Corn-woman! Look! That’s what the Corn-maiden looks like!”1251

In these customs, observed both on the harvest-field and on the threshing-floor, a passing stranger is regarded as a personification of the corn, in other words, as the corn-spirit; and a show is made of treating him like the corn by mowing, binding, and threshing him. If the reader still doubts whether European peasants can really regard a passing stranger in this light, the following custom should set their doubts at rest. During the madder-harvest in the Dutch province of Zealand a stranger passing by a field where the people are digging the madder-roots will sometimes call out to them Koortspillers (a term of reproach). Upon this, two of the fleetest runners [pg 379] make after him, and, if they catch him, they bring him back to the madder-field and bury him in the earth up to his middle at least, jeering at him the while; then they ease nature before his face.1252 This last act is to be explained as follows. The spirit of the corn and of other cultivated plants is sometimes conceived, not as immanent in the plant, but as its owner; hence the cutting of the corn at harvest, the digging of the roots, and the gathering of fruit from the fruit-trees are each and all of them acts of spoliation, which strip him of his property and reduce him to poverty. Hence he is often known as “the Poor Man” or “the Poor Woman.” Thus in the neighbourhood of Eisenach a small sheaf is sometimes left standing on the field for “the Poor Old Woman.”1253 At Marksuhl, near Eisenach, the puppet formed out of the last sheaf is itself called “the Poor Woman.” At [pg 380] Alt Lest in Silesia the man who binds the last sheaf is called the Beggar-man.1254 In a village near Roeskilde, in Zealand (Denmark), old-fashioned peasants sometimes make up the last sheaf into a rude puppet, which is called the Rye-beggar.1255 In Southern Schonen the sheaf which is bound last is called the Beggar; it is made bigger than the rest and is sometimes dressed in clothes. In the district of Olmütz the last sheaf is called the Beggar; it is given to an old woman, who must carry it home, limping on one foot.1256 Thus when the corn-spirit is conceived as a being who is robbed of his store and impoverished by the harvesters, it is natural that his representative—the passing stranger—should upbraid them; and it is equally natural that they should seek to disable him from pursuing them and recapturing the stolen property. Now, it is an old superstition that by easing nature on the spot where a robbery is committed, the robbers secure themselves, for a certain time, against interruption.1257 The fact, therefore, that the madder-diggers resort to this proceeding in presence of the stranger proves that they consider themselves robbers and him as the person robbed. Regarded as such, he must be the natural owner of the madder-roots; that is, their spirit or demon; and this conception is carried out by burying him, like the madder-roots, in the ground.1258 The Greeks, it may be observed, were quite familiar with the idea that a passing stranger may be a god. Homer says that the gods in the likeness of foreigners roam up and down cities.1259

In these customs, seen both in the fields during harvest and on the threshing floor, a passing stranger is viewed as a representation of the corn, or in other words, as the corn spirit; and there’s a performance of treating him like the corn by mowing, binding, and threshing him. If you're still unsure whether European peasants can really see a passing stranger this way, the following custom should clear up any doubts. During the madder harvest in the Dutch province of Zeeland, a stranger walking by a field where people are digging madder roots might sometimes shout Heartbreakers (a derogatory term). In response, two of the fastest runners will chase after him, and if they catch him, they bring him back to the madder field and bury him up to his waist at least, mocking him the whole time; then they relieve themselves in front of him.1252 This last act can be explained as follows. The spirit of the corn and other cultivated plants is sometimes seen not as part of the plant itself, but as its owner; hence the cutting of the corn at harvest, the digging of the roots, and the picking of fruit from fruit trees are all acts of theft, which strip him of his property and leave him impoverished. Because of this, he is often referred to as "the Poor Man" or “the Struggling Woman.” For example, in the area near Eisenach, a small sheaf is sometimes left standing in the field for “the Poor Old Woman.”1253 In Marksuhl, near Eisenach, the puppet made from the last sheaf is called "the Poor Woman." In Alt Lest in Silesia, the person who binds the last sheaf is known as the Beggar-man.1254 In a village near Roeskilde, in Zealand (Denmark), traditional peasants sometimes fashion the last sheaf into a rough puppet known as the Rye-beggar.1255 In Southern Schonen, the last sheaf that is bound is called the Beggar; it is made larger than the others and is sometimes dressed in clothes. In the Olmütz area, the last sheaf is called the Beggar and is given to an old woman, who must carry it home while limping on one foot.1256 Thus, when the corn spirit is seen as a being who is robbed of his stash and made poor by the harvesters, it makes sense that his representative—the passing stranger—would scold them; and it’s just as understandable that they would try to prevent him from following them and reclaiming what was taken. There’s an old superstition that by relieving oneself at the spot of a theft, the thieves protect themselves from interruption for a certain time.1257 Therefore, the fact that the madder diggers do this in front of the stranger shows that they see themselves as thieves and him as the one who has been robbed. Viewed in this light, he must be the rightful owner of the madder roots; that is, their spirit or demon; and this idea is expressed by burying him, similar to how the madder roots are buried in the earth.1258 It is worth noting that the Greeks were well aware of the idea that a passing stranger might be a god. Homer mentions that the gods wander through cities disguised as foreigners.1259

[pg 381]

Thus in these harvest-customs of modern Europe the person who cuts, binds, or threshes the last corn is treated as an embodiment of the corn-spirit by being wrapt up in sheaves, killed in mimicry by agricultural implements, and thrown into the water.1260 These coincidences with the Lityerses story seem to prove that the latter is a genuine description of an old Phrygian harvest-custom. But since in the modern parallels the killing of the personal representative of the corn-spirit is necessarily omitted or at most enacted only in mimicry, it is necessary to show that in rude society human beings have been commonly killed as an agricultural ceremony to promote the fertility of the fields. The following examples will make this plain.

Thus in the harvest traditions of modern Europe, the person who cuts, binds, or threshes the last of the corn is seen as a representation of the corn spirit. They are wrapped in sheaves, symbolically killed with farming tools, and then tossed into the water. 1260 These similarities with the Lityerses story seem to confirm that it accurately describes an old Phrygian harvest tradition. However, since in modern practices the killing of the person representing the corn spirit is usually omitted or only acted out symbolically, it's important to demonstrate that in early societies, people were often killed as part of agricultural rituals to encourage the fertility of the fields. The following examples will clarify this.

The Indians of Guayaquil (Ecuador) used to sacrifice human blood and the hearts of men when they sowed their fields.1261 At a Mexican harvest-festival, when the first-fruits of the season were offered to the sun, a criminal was placed between two immense stones, balanced opposite each other, and was crushed by them as they fell together. His remains were buried, and a feast and dance followed. This sacrifice was known as “the meeting of the stones.”1262 Another series of human sacrifices offered in Mexico to make the maize thrive has been already referred to.1263 The Pawnees annually sacrificed a human victim in spring when they sowed their fields. The sacrifice was believed to have been enjoined on them by the Morning Star, or by a certain bird which the Morning [pg 382] Star had sent to them as its messenger. The bird was stuffed and preserved as a powerful “medicine.” They thought that an omission of this sacrifice would be followed by the total failure of the crops of maize, beans, and pumpkins. The victim was a captive of either sex. He was clad in the gayest and most costly attire, was fattened on the choicest food, and carefully kept in ignorance of his doom. When he was fat enough, they bound him to a cross in the presence of the multitude, danced a solemn dance, then cleft his head with a tomahawk and shot him with arrows. According to one trader, the squaws then cut pieces of flesh from the victim's body, with which they greased their hoes; but this was denied by another trader who had been present at the ceremony. Immediately after the sacrifice the people proceeded to plant their fields. A particular account has been preserved of the sacrifice of a Sioux girl by the Pawnees in April 1837 or 1838. The girl had been kept for six months and well treated. Two days before the sacrifice she was led from wigwam to wigwam, accompanied by the whole council of chiefs and warriors. At each lodge she received a small billet of wood and a little paint, which she handed to the warrior next to her. In this way she called at every wigwam, receiving at each the same present of wood and paint. On the 22d of April she was taken out to be sacrificed, attended by the warriors, each of whom carried two pieces of wood which he had received from her hands. She was burned for some time over a slow fire, and then shot to death with arrows. The chief sacrificer next tore out her heart and devoured it. While her flesh was still warm it was cut in small pieces from the bones, put in little baskets, and taken to a neighbouring cornfield. [pg 383] Here the head chief took a piece of the flesh from a basket and squeezed a drop of blood upon the newly-deposited grains of corn. His example was followed by the rest, till all the seed had been sprinkled with the blood; it was then covered up with earth.1264

The Indigenous people of Guayaquil (Ecuador) used to sacrifice humans and the hearts of men when they planted their fields.1261 At a Mexican harvest festival, when the first fruits of the season were offered to the sun, a criminal was placed between two massive stones that balanced against each other, and was crushed as they fell together. His remains were buried, and then a feast and dance followed. This sacrifice was known as “the gathering of the stones.”1262 Another series of human sacrifices offered in Mexico to ensure the maize thrived has already been mentioned.1263 The Pawnees sacrificed a human victim every spring when they planted their fields. They believed this sacrifice was commanded by the Morning Star or by a specific bird that the Morning [pg 382] Star had sent as its messenger. The bird was stuffed and preserved as a powerful “healthcare.” They thought that missing this sacrifice would lead to the complete failure of their maize, beans, and pumpkins. The victim was a captive of either gender, dressed in the most colorful and finest clothing, fed the best food, and kept unaware of what was coming. When he was fat enough, they bound him to a cross in front of the crowd, performed a solemn dance, then struck him in the head with a tomahawk and shot him with arrows. One trader claimed that the women then cut pieces of flesh from the victim's body to grease their hoes, but another trader who was present at the ceremony denied this. Right after the sacrifice, the people began to plant their fields. A particular account details the sacrifice of a Sioux girl by the Pawnees in April 1837 or 1838. The girl had been held for six months and treated well. Two days before the sacrifice, she was led from wigwam to wigwam, accompanied by all the chiefs and warriors. At each lodge, she received a small piece of wood and a little paint, which she passed to the warrior next to her. In this manner, she visited every wigwam, receiving the same gifts of wood and paint from each. On April 22nd, she was taken out for the sacrifice, followed by the warriors, each carrying two pieces of wood that they had received from her. She was held over a slow fire for some time and then shot to death with arrows. The chief sacrificer then tore out her heart and ate it. While her flesh was still warm, it was cut into small pieces, put into little baskets, and taken to a nearby cornfield. [pg 383] The head chief took a piece of flesh from a basket and squeezed a drop of blood onto the freshly planted corn seeds. The others followed his example until all the seeds had been sprinkled with blood, after which they were covered with soil.1264

A West African queen used to sacrifice a man and woman in the month of March. They were killed with spades and hoes, and their bodies buried in the middle of a field which had just been tilled.1265 At Lagos in Guinea it was the custom annually to impale a young girl alive soon after the spring equinox in order to secure good crops. Along with her were sacrificed sheep and goats, which, with yams, heads of maize, and plantains, were hung on stakes on each side of her. The victims were bred up for the purpose in the king's seraglio, and their minds had been so powerfully wrought upon by the fetish men that they went cheerfully to their fate.1266 A similar sacrifice is still annually offered at Benin, Guinea.1267 The Marimos, a Bechuana tribe, sacrifice a human being for the crops. The victim chosen is generally a short, stout man. He is seized by violence or intoxicated and taken to the fields, where he is killed amongst the wheat to serve as “seed” (so they phrase it). After his blood has coagulated in the sun it is burned along with the frontal bone, the flesh attached to it, and the brain; [pg 384] the ashes are then scattered over the ground to fertilise it. The rest of the body is eaten.1268

A West African queen used to sacrifice a man and a woman every March. They were killed with spades and hoes, and their bodies were buried in the center of a freshly plowed field.1265 In Lagos, Guinea, it was customary to impale a young girl alive shortly after the spring equinox to ensure good crops. Alongside her, sheep and goats were sacrificed, and with yams, corn, and plantains, they were hung on stakes on either side of her. The victims were raised specifically for this purpose in the king's harem, and their minds had been so influenced by the fetish men that they walked willingly to their deaths.1266 A similar sacrifice is still made annually in Benin, Guinea.1267 The Marimos, a Bechuana tribe, also sacrifice a human for the crops. The chosen victim is usually a short, stout man. He is violently seized or intoxicated and taken to the fields, where he is killed among the wheat to serve as “seed” (as they put it). Once his blood has dried in the sun, it is burned along with the frontal bone, the flesh connected to it, and the brain; [pg 384] the ashes are then spread over the ground to fertilize it. The rest of the body is eaten.1268

The Gonds of India, a Dravidian race, kidnapped Brahman boys, and kept them as victims to be sacrificed on various occasions. At sowing and reaping, after a triumphal procession, one of the lads was slain by being punctured with a poisoned arrow. His blood was then sprinkled over the ploughed field or the ripe crop, and his flesh was devoured.1269

The Gonds of India, a Dravidian group, would abduct Brahman boys and hold them as sacrifices on different occasions. During planting and harvest times, following a celebratory parade, one of the boys was killed with a poisoned arrow. His blood was then smeared over the tilled soil or the ready crop, and his flesh was eaten. 1269

But the best known case of human sacrifices, systematically offered to ensure good crops, is supplied by the Khonds or Kandhs, another Dravidian race in Bengal. Our knowledge of them is derived from the accounts written by British officers who, forty or fifty years ago, were engaged in putting them down.1270 The sacrifices were offered to the Earth Goddess, Tari Pennu or Bera Pennu, and were believed to ensure good crops and immunity from all disease and accidents. In particular, they were considered necessary in the cultivation of turmeric, the Khonds arguing that the turmeric could not have a deep red colour without the shedding of blood.1271 The victim or Meriah was acceptable to the goddess only if he had been purchased, or had been born a victim—that is, the son of a victim father—or had been devoted as a child by his father or guardian. Khonds in distress often sold their children for victims, “considering the beatification of their souls certain, and their death, for the benefit of mankind, the most honourable possible.” [pg 385] A man of the Panua tribe was once seen to load a Khond with curses, and finally to spit in his face, because the Khond had sold for a victim his own child, whom the Panua had wished to marry. A party of Khonds, who saw this, immediately pressed forward to comfort the seller of his child, saying, “Your child has died that all the world may live, and the Earth Goddess herself will wipe that spittle from your face.”1272 The victims were often kept for years before they were sacrificed. Being regarded as consecrated beings, they were treated with extreme affection, mingled with deference, and were welcomed wherever they went. A Meriah youth, on attaining maturity, was generally given a wife, who was herself usually a Meriah or victim; and with her he received a portion of land and farm-stock. Their offspring were also victims. Human sacrifices were offered to the Earth Goddess by tribes, branches of tribes, or villages, both at periodical festivals and on extraordinary occasions. The periodical sacrifices were generally so arranged by tribes and divisions of tribes that each head of a family was enabled, at least once a year, to procure a shred of flesh for his fields, generally about the time when his chief crop was laid down.1273

But the best-known case of human sacrifices, regularly offered to ensure good crops, comes from the Khonds or Kandhs, another Dravidian group in Bengal. Our understanding of them comes from accounts written by British officers who, forty or fifty years ago, were tasked with suppressing them.1270 The sacrifices were made to the Earth Goddess, Tari Pennu or Bera Pennu, and it was believed that these offerings ensured good harvests and protection from diseases and accidents. They were especially important for turmeric cultivation, with the Khonds claiming that turmeric couldn't achieve a deep red color without the shedding of blood.1271 A victim, or Meriah, was acceptable to the goddess only if he had been bought, or born as a victim—that is, the son of a victim father—or had been dedicated as a child by his father or guardian. Khonds in desperate situations often sold their children for sacrifices, “believing that their souls would definitely be beatified, and that their death, for the benefit of humanity, was the most honorable thing possible.” [pg 385] A man from the Panua tribe once witnessed a Khond being berated and spit on for having sold his own child for sacrifice, a child the Panua wished to marry. A group of Khonds watching this quickly stepped in to comfort the child’s seller, saying, "Your child has died so that everyone else can live, and the Earth Goddess herself will wipe that spit from your face."1272 The victims were often kept for years before being sacrificed. Regarded as sacred beings, they were treated with great affection and respect, and welcomed wherever they went. A Meriah youth, upon reaching adulthood, was typically given a wife, who was usually also a Meriah; with her, he received a piece of land and livestock. Their children also became victims. Human sacrifices were offered to the Earth Goddess by tribes, branches of tribes, or villages, both during regular festivals and on special occasions. The regular sacrifices were typically organized by tribes and their divisions so that each family head could, at least once a year, obtain a piece of flesh for their land, generally around the time their main crop was planted.1273

The mode of performing these tribal sacrifices was as follows. Ten or twelve days before the sacrifice, the victim was devoted by cutting off his hair, which, until then, was kept unshorn. Crowds of men and women assembled to witness the sacrifice; none might be excluded, since the sacrifice was declared to be “for all mankind.” It was preceded by several days of wild revelry and gross [pg 386] debauchery.1274 On the day before the sacrifice the victim, dressed in a new garment, was led forth from the village in solemn procession, with music and dancing, to the Meriah grove, which was a clump of high forest trees standing a little way from the village and untouched by the axe. In this grove the victim was tied to a post, which was sometimes placed between two plants of the sankissar shrub. He was then anointed with oil, ghee, and turmeric, and adorned with flowers; and “a species of reverence, which it is not easy to distinguish from adoration,” was paid to him throughout the day.1275 A great struggle now arose to obtain the smallest relic from his person; a particle of the turmeric paste with which he was smeared, or a drop of his spittle, was esteemed of sovereign virtue, especially by the women. The crowd danced round the post to music, and, addressing the earth, said, “O God, we offer this sacrifice to you; give us good crops, seasons, and health.”1276

The way these tribal sacrifices were carried out was as follows. Ten to twelve days before the sacrifice, the victim's hair was cut off, which had been left unshorn until that point. Large crowds of men and women gathered to watch the sacrifice; no one could be excluded because it was said to be "for everyone." It was preceded by several days of wild partying and heavy [pg 386] debauchery.1274 On the day before the sacrifice, the victim, dressed in a new outfit, was led out of the village in a solemn procession, accompanied by music and dancing, to the Meriah grove, a cluster of tall trees located some distance from the village that had never been cut down. In this grove, the victim was tied to a post, sometimes placed between two sankissar plants. He was then anointed with oil, ghee, and turmeric, and decorated with flowers; throughout the day, "a kind of respect that's difficult to distinguish from love," was shown to him.1275 A fierce competition arose to collect the smallest relic from his body; even a bit of the turmeric paste he was smeared with or a drop of his spittle was considered extremely valuable, especially by women. The crowd danced around the post to music and, addressing the earth, said, “God, we bring this sacrifice to you; bless us with good crops, favorable seasons, and health.”1276

On the last morning the orgies, which had been scarcely interrupted during the night, were resumed, and continued till noon, when they ceased, and the assembly proceeded to consummate the sacrifice. The victim was again anointed with oil, and each person touched the anointed part, and wiped the oil on his own head. In some places the victim was then taken in procession round the village, from door to door, where some plucked hair from his head, and others begged for a drop of his spittle, with which they anointed their heads.1277 As the victim might not be bound nor make any show of resistance, the [pg 387] bones of his arms and, if necessary, his legs were broken; but often this precaution was rendered unnecessary by stupefying him with opium.1278 The mode of putting him to death varied in different places. One of the commonest modes seems to have been strangulation, or squeezing to death. The branch of a green tree was cleft several feet down the middle; the victim's neck (in other places, his chest) was inserted in the cleft, which the priest, aided by his assistants, strove with all his force to close.1279 Then he wounded the victim slightly with his axe, whereupon the crowd rushed at the victim and cut the flesh from the bones, leaving the head and bowels untouched. Sometimes he was cut up alive.1280 In Chinna Kimedy he was dragged along the fields, surrounded by the crowd, who, avoiding his head and intestines, hacked the flesh from his body with their knives till he died.1281 Another very common mode of sacrifice in the same district was to fasten the victim to the proboscis of a wooden elephant, which revolved on a stout post, and, as it whirled round, the crowd cut the flesh from the victim while life remained. In some villages Major Campbell found as many as fourteen of these wooden elephants, which had been used at sacrifices.1282 In one district the victim was put to death slowly by fire. A low stage was formed, sloping on either side like a roof; upon it [pg 388] the victim was placed, his limbs wound round with cords to confine his struggles. Fires were then lighted and hot brands applied, to make him roll up and down the slopes of the stage as long as possible; for the more tears he shed the more abundant would be the supply of rain. Next day the body was cut to pieces.1283

On the last morning, the wild parties that had barely stopped during the night started up again and went on until noon, when they finally stopped, and everyone gathered to complete the sacrifice. The victim was anointed with oil again, and everyone touched the oiled area and wiped the oil on their own heads. In some areas, the victim was taken in a procession around the village, going from door to door, where some people would pull hair from his head while others asked for a drop of his spit to anoint their own heads. As the victim wasn't allowed to be tied up or resist, bones in his arms and, if needed, his legs were broken; however, this was often unnecessary as he was made dazed with opium. The method of execution varied in different locations. One of the most common methods seemed to be strangulation, or squeezing him to death. A branch from a green tree was split several feet down the middle; the victim's neck (or in some places, his chest) was placed in the split, which the priest, with help from his assistants, would try to close with all his strength. Then he would make a small cut on the victim with his axe, causing the crowd to rush at him and cut the flesh from his bones, leaving the head and intestines untouched. Sometimes, he was cut up while still alive. In Chinna Kimedy, the victim was dragged through the fields, surrounded by the crowd, who, avoiding his head and guts, hacked the flesh from his body with their knives until he died. Another very common method of sacrifice in the same area involved tying the victim to the trunk of a wooden elephant that revolved around a sturdy post, while the crowd cut the flesh from the victim as long as he was alive. In some villages, Major Campbell found as many as fourteen of these wooden elephants used for sacrifices. In one area, the victim was slowly burned alive. A low platform was constructed with sloped sides like a roof; the victim was placed on it, and his limbs were bound with ropes to prevent him from struggling. Fires were then lit, and hot brands were applied to make him roll up and down the sloped platform for as long as possible, as the more tears he shed, the more rain they believed would come. The next day, the body was cut into pieces.

The flesh cut from the victim was instantly taken home by the persons who had been deputed by each village to bring it. To secure its rapid arrival, it was sometimes forwarded by relays of men, and conveyed with postal fleetness fifty or sixty miles.1284 In each village all who stayed at home fasted rigidly until the flesh arrived. The bearer deposited it in the place of public assembly, where it was received by the priest and the heads of families. The priest divided it into two portions, one of which he offered to the Earth Goddess by burying it in a hole in the ground with his back turned, and without looking. Then each man added a little earth to bury it, and the priest poured water on the spot from a hill gourd. The other portion of flesh he divided into as many shares as there were heads of houses present. Each head of a house rolled his shred of flesh in leaves, and buried it in his favourite field, placing it in the earth behind his back without looking.1285 In some places each man carried his portion of flesh to the stream which watered his fields, and there hung it on a pole.1286 For three days thereafter no house was swept; and, in one district, strict silence was observed, no fire might be given out, no wood cut, and no strangers received. [pg 389] The remains of the human victim (namely, the head, bowels, and bones) were watched by strong parties the night after the sacrifice; and next morning they were burned, along with a whole sheep, on a funeral pile. The ashes were scattered over the fields, laid as paste over the houses and granaries, or mixed with the new corn to preserve it from insects.1287 Sometimes, however, the head and bones were buried, not burnt.1288 After the suppression of the human sacrifices, inferior victims were substituted in some places; for instance, in the capital of Chinna Kimedy a goat took the place of a human victim.1289

The flesh taken from the victim was quickly brought home by the people chosen from each village to transport it. To ensure it arrived swiftly, it was sometimes sent by relays of men and delivered quickly over fifty or sixty miles. In each village, everyone who stayed behind fasted strictly until the flesh arrived. The messenger placed it in the public gathering space, where it was received by the priest and the heads of families. The priest divided it into two parts; one he offered to the Earth Goddess by burying it in a hole in the ground while turning his back and without looking. Then, each person added a little dirt to cover it, and the priest poured water on the spot from a gourd. The other part of the flesh was divided into as many shares as there were heads of households present. Each head of a household wrapped his share of flesh in leaves and buried it in his preferred field, placing it in the ground behind his back without looking. In some areas, each person took his share of flesh to the stream that irrigated his fields and hung it on a pole. For three days after this, no house was cleaned; in one area, strict silence was maintained, no fire could be lit, no wood could be cut, and no guests were allowed. The remains of the human victim (the head, guts, and bones) were guarded by strong groups the night after the sacrifice, and the next morning they were burned along with a whole sheep on a funeral pyre. The ashes were spread over the fields, used as paste on houses and granaries, or mixed with the new corn to protect it from insects. However, in some cases, the head and bones were buried instead of burned. After human sacrifices were banned, lesser victims replaced them in some areas; for example, in the capital of Chinna Kimedy, a goat was used instead of a human.

In these Khond sacrifices the Meriahs are represented by our authorities as victims offered to propitiate the Earth Goddess. But from the treatment of the victims both before and after death it appears that the custom cannot be explained as merely a propitiatory sacrifice. A part of the flesh certainly was offered to the Earth Goddess, but the rest of the flesh was buried by each householder in his fields, and the ashes of the other parts of the body were scattered over the fields, laid as paste on the granaries, or mixed with the new corn. These latter customs imply that to the body of the Meriah there was ascribed a direct or intrinsic power of making the crops to grow, quite independent of the indirect efficacy which it might have as an offering to secure the good-will of the deity. In other words, the flesh and ashes of the victim were believed to be endowed with a magical or physical power of fertilising the land. The same intrinsic power was ascribed to the blood and tears of the Meriah, his blood causing the redness of the turmeric and his tears [pg 390] producing rain; for it can hardly be doubted that, originally at least, the tears were supposed to produce rain, not merely to prognosticate it. Similarly the custom of pouring water on the buried flesh of the Meriah was no doubt a rain-charm. Again, intrinsic supernatural power as an attribute of the Meriah appears in the sovereign virtue believed to reside in anything that came from his person, as his hair or spittle. The ascription of such power to the Meriah indicates that he was much more than a mere man sacrificed to propitiate a deity. Once more, the extreme reverence paid him points to the same conclusion. Major Campbell speaks of the Meriah as “being regarded as something more than mortal,”1290 and Major Macpherson says, “A species of reverence, which it is not easy to distinguish from adoration, is paid to him.”1291 In short, the Meriah appears to have been regarded as divine. As such, he may originally have represented the Earth deity or perhaps a deity of vegetation; though in later times he came to be regarded rather as a victim offered to a deity than as himself an incarnate deity. This later view of the Meriah as a victim rather than a god may perhaps have received undue emphasis from the European writers who have described the Khond religion. Habituated to the later idea of sacrifice as an offering made to a god for the purpose of conciliating his favour, European observers are apt to interpret all religious slaughter in this sense, and to suppose that wherever such slaughter takes place, there must necessarily be a deity to whom the slaughter is believed by the slayers to be acceptable. Thus their preconceived ideas unconsciously colour and warp their descriptions of savage rites.

In these Khond sacrifices, the Meriahs are presented by our authorities as victims offered to please the Earth Goddess. However, the treatment of the victims both before and after death suggests that the custom cannot be seen as just a propitiatory sacrifice. A portion of the flesh was certainly offered to the Earth Goddess, but the rest was buried by each homeowner in their fields, and the ashes of other body parts were scattered over the fields, used as paste on the granaries, or mixed with the new corn. These practices imply that the body of the Meriah was believed to have a direct or intrinsic power to make the crops grow, independent of its role as an offering to gain the deity's favor. In other words, the flesh and ashes of the victim were thought to possess magical or physical power to fertilize the land. The same intrinsic power was attributed to the blood and tears of the Meriah, with his blood causing the turmeric to be red and his tears believed to produce rain; it seems clear that, at least initially, the tears were thought to create rain rather than just predict it. Likewise, the act of pouring water on the buried flesh of the Meriah was likely a rain-charm. Furthermore, the supernatural power associated with the Meriah is evident in the strong belief in the virtues of anything from his body, like his hair or saliva. This attribution of power to the Meriah shows he was seen as much more than just a man sacrificed to appease a deity. Additionally, the profound respect shown to him supports this conclusion. Major Campbell refers to the Meriah as “being regarded as something more than mortal,” and Major Macpherson notes, “A species of reverence, which it is not easy to distinguish from adoration, is paid to him.” In short, the Meriah seems to have been viewed as divine. Originally, he may have represented the Earth deity or perhaps a deity of vegetation; though over time he came to be seen more as a victim offered to a deity rather than as an incarnate deity himself. This later perception of the Meriah as a victim rather than a god may have been overstated by European writers describing the Khond religion. Accustomed to the later idea of sacrifice as an offering made to a god to win his favor, European observers tend to interpret all religious slaughters in this way, believing that whenever such slaughters occur, there must be a deity to whom the killers think their actions are acceptable. Consequently, their preconceived notions subtly influence and distort their accounts of savage rituals.

[pg 391]

The same custom of killing the representative of a god, of which strong traces appear in the Khond sacrifices, may perhaps be detected in some of the other human sacrifices described above. Thus the ashes of the slaughtered Marimo were scattered over the fields; the blood of the Brahman lad was put on the crop and field; and the blood of the Sioux girl was allowed to trickle on the seed.1292 Again, the identification of the victim with the corn, in other words, the view that he is an embodiment or spirit of the corn, is brought out in the pains which seem to be taken to secure a physical correspondence between him and the natural object which he embodies or represents. Thus the Mexicans killed young victims for the young corn and old ones for the ripe corn; the Marimos sacrifice, as “seed,” a short, fat man, the shortness of his stature corresponding to that of the young corn, his fatness to the condition which it is desired that the crops may attain; and the Pawnees fattened their victims probably with the same view. Again, the identification of the victim with the corn comes out in the African custom of killing him with spades and hoes, and the Mexican custom of grinding him, like corn, between two stones.

The same tradition of killing a representative of a god, which is strongly evident in the Khond sacrifices, might also be found in some of the other human sacrifices mentioned earlier. For example, the ashes of the sacrificed Marimo were spread over the fields; the blood of the Brahman boy was placed on the crop and land; and the blood of the Sioux girl was allowed to drip onto the seeds.1292 Furthermore, the victim’s identification with corn, meaning that they are seen as an embodiment or spirit of corn, is highlighted by the efforts made to ensure a physical connection between them and the natural object they represent. For instance, the Mexicans sacrificed young victims for young corn and older ones for ripe corn; the Marimos sacrificed a short, plump man as “seed,” where his short height matched that of the young corn and his robustness signified the condition desired for the crops; and the Pawnees likely fattened their victims with the same intention. Moreover, the link between the victim and corn is also seen in the African practice of killing them with spades and hoes, as well as in the Mexican tradition of grinding them, like corn, between two stones.

One more point in these savage customs deserves to be noted. The Pawnee chief devoured the heart of the Sioux girl, and the Marimos and Gonds ate the victim's flesh. If, as we suppose, the victim was regarded as divine, it follows that in eating his flesh his worshippers were partaking of the body of their god. To this point we shall return later on.

One more point about these brutal customs deserves to be mentioned. The Pawnee chief consumed the heart of the Sioux girl, and the Marimos and Gonds ate the victim's flesh. If, as we think, the victim was seen as divine, it follows that by eating his flesh, his worshippers were partaking in the body of their god. We will revisit this point later.

The savage rites just described offer analogies to the harvest customs of Europe. Thus the fertilising [pg 392] virtue ascribed to the corn-spirit is shown equally in the savage custom of mixing the victim's blood or ashes with the seed-corn and the European custom of mixing the grain from the last sheaf with the young corn in spring.1293 Again, the identification of the person with the corn appears alike in the savage custom of adapting the age and stature of the victim to the age and stature (actual or expected) of the crop; in the Scotch and Styrian rules that when the corn-spirit is conceived as the Maiden the last corn shall be cut by a young maiden, but when it is conceived as the Corn-mother it shall be cut by an old woman;1294 in the Lothringian warning given to old women to save themselves when the Old Woman is being killed, that is, when the last corn is being threshed;1295 and in the Tyrolese expectation that if the man who gives the last stroke at threshing is tall, the next year's corn will be tall also.1296 Further, the same identification is implied in the savage custom of killing the representative of the corn-spirit with hoes or spades or by grinding him between stones, and in the European custom of pretending to kill him with the scythe or the flail. Once more the Khond custom of pouring water on the buried flesh of the victim is parallel to the European customs of pouring water on the personal representative of the corn-spirit or plunging him into a stream.1297 Both the Khond and the European customs are rain-charms.

The savage rituals described earlier have similarities to the harvest traditions in Europe. The life-giving power attributed to the corn spirit is mirrored in the savage practice of mixing the victim’s blood or ashes with the seed corn and the European tradition of mixing grain from the last sheaf with the new corn in spring.[pg 392] Similarly, the link between the person and the corn is evident in the savage practice of choosing a victim’s age and size based on the actual or expected growth of the crop; in Scottish and Styrian customs where, if the corn spirit is seen as the Maiden, the last corn should be cut by a young girl, but if seen as the Corn Mother, it should be harvested by an older woman; in the Lothringian warning to older women to protect themselves when the Old Woman is being killed, meaning when the last corn is threshed; and in the Tyrolese belief that if the person who gives the final cut during threshing is tall, the next year's corn will also be tall. Moreover, the same connection is suggested in the savage practice of killing the representative of the corn spirit with hoes or spades or by crushing him between stones, and in the European practice of pretending to kill him with a scythe or flail. The Khond custom of pouring water on the buried flesh of the victim parallels European customs of pouring water on the personal representative of the corn spirit or immersing him in a stream. Both Khond and European practices function as rain charms.

To return now to the Lityerses story. It has been shown that in rude society human beings have been commonly killed to promote the growth of the crops. There is therefore no improbability in the supposition that they may once have been killed for a like purpose [pg 393] in Phrygia and Europe; and when Phrygian legend and European folk-custom, closely agreeing with each other, point to the conclusion that men were so slain, we are bound, provisionally at least, to accept the conclusion. Further, both the Lityerses story and European harvest customs agree in indicating that the person slain was slain as a representative of the corn-spirit, and this indication is in harmony with the view which savages appear to take of the victim slain to make the crops flourish. On the whole, then, we may fairly suppose that both in Phrygia and in Europe the representative of the corn-spirit was annually killed upon the harvest-field. Grounds have been already shown for believing that similarly in Europe the representative of the tree-spirit was annually slain. The proofs of these two remarkable and closely analogous customs are entirely independent of each other. Their coincidence seems to furnish fresh presumption in favour of both.

Now, let's go back to the Lityerses story. It's been demonstrated that in primitive societies, people were often killed to help crops grow. So, it's not impossible to think that they might have been killed for the same reason in Phrygia and Europe. When Phrygian legends and European folk customs align, suggesting that men were sacrificed, we have to tentatively accept this idea. Moreover, both the Lityerses story and European harvest traditions suggest that the person killed was seen as a representative of the corn spirit, which aligns with how some cultures view the victim chosen to ensure a good harvest. Overall, we can reasonably assume that in both Phrygia and Europe, a representative of the corn spirit was killed every year in the fields. It's already been shown that in Europe, a similar representative of the tree spirit was also sacrificed annually. The evidence for these two remarkable and similar customs stands completely independent from one another, and their similarity seems to provide further support for both.

To the question, how was the representative of the corn-spirit chosen? one answer has been already given. Both the Lityerses story and European folk-custom show that passing strangers were regarded as manifestations of the corn-spirit escaping from the cut or threshed corn, and as such were seized and slain. But this is not the only answer which the evidence suggests. According to one version of the Phrygian legend the victims of Lityerses were not passing strangers but persons whom he had vanquished in a reaping contest; and though it is not said that he killed, but only that he thrashed them, we can hardly avoid supposing that in one version of the story the vanquished reapers, like the strangers in the other version, were said to have been wrapt up by Lityerses in corn-sheaves and so beheaded. The [pg 394] supposition is countenanced by European harvest-customs. We have seen that in Europe there is sometimes a contest amongst the reapers to avoid being last, and that the person who is vanquished in this competition, that is, who cuts the last corn, is often roughly handled. It is true we have not found that a pretence is made of killing him; but on the other hand we have found that a pretence is made of killing the man who gives the last stroke at threshing, that is, who is vanquished in the threshing contest.1298 Now, since it is in the character of representative of the corn-spirit that the thresher of the last corn is slain in mimicry, and since the same representative character attaches (as we have seen) to the cutter and binder as well as to the thresher of the last corn, and since the same repugnance is evinced by harvesters to be last in any one of these labours, we may conjecture that a pretence has been commonly made of killing the reaper and binder as well as the thresher of the last corn, and that in ancient times this killing was actually carried out. This conjecture is corroborated by the common superstition that whoever cuts the last corn must die soon.1299 Sometimes it is thought that the person who binds the last sheaf on the field will die in the course of next year.1300 The reason for fixing on the reaper, binder, or thresher of the last corn as the representative of the corn-spirit may be this. The corn-spirit is supposed to lurk as long as he can in the corn, retreating before the reapers, the binders, and the threshers at their work. But when he is forcibly expelled from his ultimate refuge in the last corn cut or the last sheaf bound or the last grain threshed, he necessarily assumes some other form than [pg 395] that of the corn-stalks which had hitherto been his garments or body. And what form can the expelled corn-spirit assume more naturally than that of the person who stands nearest to the corn from which he (the corn-spirit) has just been expelled? But the person in question is necessarily the reaper, binder, or thresher of the last corn. He or she, therefore, is seized and treated as the corn-spirit himself.

To address the question, how was the representative of the corn spirit chosen? one answer has already been provided. Both the Lityerses story and European folk customs indicate that passing strangers were seen as manifestations of the corn spirit escaping from the cut or threshed corn, and as such were captured and killed. However, this isn’t the only answer that the evidence suggests. In one version of the Phrygian legend, the victims of Lityerses were not strangers but individuals he had defeated in a reaping contest; and although it doesn’t state he killed them, only that he beat them, we can’t help but think that in one version of the story, the defeated reapers, like the strangers in the other version, were said to have been wrapped up by Lityerses in corn sheaves and then beheaded. The [pg 394] assumption is supported by European harvest customs. We’ve seen that in Europe, there are sometimes contests among reapers to avoid being last, and the person who loses this competition, meaning who cuts the last corn, is often treated roughly. It’s true we haven’t found that there’s any pretense of killing him; however, we have found that there’s a pretense of killing the person who makes the last cut during threshing, in other words, who loses the threshing contest.1298 Now, since it’s characteristic for the representative of the corn spirit to be slain in mimicry when the last corn is threshed, and since the same representative role applies (as we have seen) to the cutter and binder as well as the thresher of the last corn, and given the same reluctance shown by harvesters to be last at any of these tasks, we might guess that there has commonly been a pretense of killing the reaper and binder as well as the thresher of the last corn, and that in ancient times, this killing was actually carried out. This guess is backed by the widespread superstition that whoever cuts the last corn must die soon.1299 Sometimes, it is believed that the person who binds the last sheaf in the field will die in the coming year.1300 The reason for selecting the reaper, binder, or thresher of the last corn as the representative of the corn spirit might be this: The corn spirit is thought to hide as long as possible in the corn, retreating before the reapers, binders, and threshers doing their work. But when he is forcefully expelled from his last refuge in the last corn cut, the last sheaf bound, or the last grain threshed, he must take on a different form than [pg 395] that of the corn stalks that had previously been his clothes or body. And what form could the expelled corn spirit take on more naturally than that of the person who is closest to the corn from which he (the corn spirit) has just been removed? But the person in question is inevitably the reaper, binder, or thresher of the last corn. He or she, therefore, is captured and treated as if they were the corn spirit themselves.

Thus the person who was killed on the harvest-field as the representative of the corn-spirit may have been either a passing stranger or the harvester who was last at reaping, binding, or threshing. But there is a third possibility, to which ancient legend and modern folk-custom alike point. Lityerses not only put strangers to death; he was himself slain, and probably in the same way as he had slain others, namely, by being wrapt in a corn-sheaf, beheaded, and cast into the river; and it is implied that this happened to Lityerses on his own land. Similarly in modern harvest-customs the pretence of killing appears to be carried out quite as often on the person of the master (farmer or squire) as on that of strangers.1301 Now when we remember that Lityerses was said to have been the son of the King of Phrygia, and combine with this the tradition that he was put to death, apparently as a representative of the corn-spirit, we are led to conjecture that we have here another trace of the custom of annually slaying one of those divine or priestly kings who are known to have held ghostly sway in many parts of Western Asia and particularly in Phrygia. The custom appears, as we have seen,1302 to have been so far modified in places that the king's son was slain in the king's stead. Of the custom thus [pg 396] modified the story of Lityerses would therefore be a reminiscence.

So, the person who was killed in the harvest field as a representative of the corn spirit might have been either a passing stranger or the last harvester to finish reaping, binding, or threshing. However, there’s a third option that ancient legend and modern folk customs suggest. Lityerses not only killed strangers; he was also killed, likely in the same way he killed others—wrapped in a corn sheaf, beheaded, and thrown into the river. It seems this happened to Lityerses on his own land. Likewise, in modern harvest customs, the act of killing often targets the master (whether a farmer or squire) as much as it does strangers. Now, when we remember that Lityerses was said to be the son of the King of Phrygia and combine that with the tradition that he was executed, supposedly as a representative of the corn spirit, we can speculate that this may be another indication of the custom of annually sacrificing a divine or priestly king, who were known to have held spiritual authority in many parts of Western Asia, especially in Phrygia. As we’ve seen, the custom seems to have evolved in some places so that the king's son was sacrificed in place of the king. Therefore, the story of Lityerses reflects the modified version of this custom.

Turning now to the relation of the Phrygian Lityerses to the Phrygian Attis, it may be remembered that at Pessinus—the seat of a priestly kingship—the high-priest appears to have been annually slain in the character of Attis, a god of vegetation, and that Attis was described by an ancient authority as “a reaped ear of corn.”1303 Thus Attis, as an embodiment of the corn-spirit, annually slain in the person of his representative, might be thought to be ultimately identical with Lityerses, the latter being simply the rustic prototype out of which the state religion of Attis was developed. It may have been so; but, on the other hand, the analogy of European folk-custom warns us that amongst the same people two distinct deities of vegetation may have their separate personal representatives, both of whom are slain in the character of gods at different times of the year. For in Europe, as we have seen, it appears that one man was commonly slain in the character of the tree-spirit in spring, and another in the character of the corn-spirit in autumn. It may have been so in Phrygia also. Attis was especially a tree-god, and his connection with corn may have been only such an extension of the power of a tree-spirit as is indicated in customs like the Harvest-May.1304 Again, the representative of Attis appears to have been slain in spring; whereas Lityerses must have been slain in summer or autumn, according to the time of the harvest in Phrygia.1305 On the whole, then, while we are not justified in regarding [pg 397] Lityerses as the prototype of Attis, the two may be regarded as parallel products of the same religious idea, and may have stood to each other as in Europe the Old Man of harvest stands to the Wild Man, the Leaf Man, etc., of spring. Both were spirits or deities of vegetation, and the personal representatives of both were annually slain. But whereas the Attis worship became elevated into the dignity of a state religion and spread to Italy, the rites of Lityerses seem never to have passed the limits of their native Phrygia, and always retained their character of rustic ceremonies performed by peasants on the harvest-field. At most a few villages may have clubbed together, as amongst the Khonds, to procure a human victim to be slain as representative of the corn-spirit for their common benefit. Such victims may have been drawn from the families of priestly kings or kinglets, which would account for the legendary character of Lityerses as the son of a Phrygian king. When villages did not so club together, each village or farm may have procured its own representative of the corn-spirit by dooming to death either a passing stranger or the harvester who cut, bound, or threshed the last sheaf. It is hardly necessary to add that in Phrygia, as in Europe, the old barbarous custom of killing a man on the harvest-field or the threshing-floor had doubtless passed into a mere pretence long before the classical era, and was probably regarded by the reapers and threshers themselves as no more than a rough jest which the license of a harvest-home permitted them to play off on a passing stranger, a comrade, or even on their master himself.

Turning now to the relationship between the Phrygian Lityerses and the Phrygian Attis, it can be recalled that at Pessinus—the center of a priestly kingship—the high priest seems to have been killed annually in the guise of Attis, a god of vegetation, and that Attis was described by an ancient source as “a harvested ear of corn.”1303 Thus, Attis, representing the corn spirit, was annually killed through his representative, which might suggest he was basically the same as Lityerses, who was just the rural prototype out of which the state religion of Attis developed. This could be the case; however, the parallels found in European folk customs remind us that the same people might have two distinct vegetation deities, each with their own personal representatives, both of whom were killed in their divine role at different times of the year. In Europe, we observed that typically one man was killed as the tree spirit in spring, and another as the corn spirit in autumn. This might have also been the case in Phrygia. Attis was particularly a tree god, and his association with corn could have just been an extension of the tree spirit's power, as seen in customs like the Harvest-May.1304 Again, it appears the representative of Attis was killed in spring, while Lityerses must have been killed in summer or autumn, depending on when the harvest occurred in Phrygia.1305 Overall, while we cannot confidently say that Lityerses was the original version of Attis, they can be viewed as parallel expressions of the same religious concept, standing in a relationship similar to the way the Old Man of harvest relates to the Wild Man, Leaf Man, etc., of spring in Europe. Both were spirits or deities of vegetation, and both had personal representatives that were killed each year. However, while the worship of Attis developed into a state religion and spread to Italy, the rituals of Lityerses seem to have remained confined to their native Phrygia and continued to be characterized as rustic ceremonies carried out by peasants in the fields during harvest. At most, a few villages may have pooled resources, like the Khonds, to secure a human sacrifice to represent the corn spirit for their collective benefit. These victims may have been chosen from the families of priestly kings or minor rulers, which explains the legendary status of Lityerses as the son of a Phrygian king. When villages did not unite for this purpose, each village or farm might have selected its own representative of the corn spirit by condemning to death either a passing stranger or the harvester who cut, bound, or threshed the last sheaf. It is probably unnecessary to mention that in Phrygia, as in Europe, the ancient brutal custom of killing a person in the harvest field or on the threshing floor had likely become just a pretense long before the classical era and was probably seen by the reapers and threshers as no more than a rough joke that the festive atmosphere of harvest home allowed them to play on a passing stranger, a fellow worker, or even their master.

I have dwelt on the Lityerses song at length because it affords so many points of comparison with [pg 398] European and savage folk-custom. The other harvest songs of Western Asia and Egypt, to which attention has been called above,1306 may now be dismissed much more briefly. The similarity of the Bithynian Bormus1307 to the Phrygian Lityerses helps to bear out the interpretation which has been given of the latter. Bormus, whose death or rather disappearance was annually mourned by the reapers in a plaintive song, was, like Lityerses, a king's son or at least the son of a wealthy and distinguished man. The reapers whom he watched were at work on his own fields, and he disappeared in going to fetch water for them; according to one version of the story he was carried off by the (water) nymphs.1308 Viewed in the light of the Lityerses story and of European folk-custom, this disappearance of Bormus is probably a reminiscence of the custom of binding the farmer himself in a corn-sheaf and throwing him into the water. The mournful strain which the reapers sang was probably a lamentation over the death of the corn-spirit, slain either in the cut corn or in the person of a human representative; and the call which they addressed to him may have been a prayer that the corn-spirit might return in fresh vigour next year.

I have spent a lot of time discussing the Lityerses song because it offers numerous points of comparison with [pg 398] European and primitive folk traditions. The other harvest songs from Western Asia and Egypt, which I mentioned earlier, can now be summarized more briefly. The similarities between the Bithynian Bormus and the Phrygian Lityerses support the interpretation of the latter. Bormus, whose death or more accurately his disappearance was mourned each year by the harvesters in a sad song, was, like Lityerses, a king's son or at the very least the son of a rich and prominent man. The harvesters he watched over worked in his own fields, and he vanished while going to fetch water for them; according to one version of the tale, he was taken by the (water) nymphs. When we look at the story of Lityerses and European folk traditions, Bormus's disappearance likely recalls the custom of binding the farmer himself in a sheaf of corn and tossing him into the water. The mournful song sung by the harvesters was probably a lament for the death of the corn spirit, who was either killed in the harvested corn or in the guise of a human representative; their call to him may have been a prayer for the corn spirit to return with renewed strength in the following year.

The Phoenician Linus song was sung at the vintage, at least in the west of Asia Minor, as we learn from Homer; and this, combined with the legend of Syleus, suggests that in ancient times passing strangers were handled by vintagers and vine-diggers in much the same way as they are said to have been handled by the reaper Lityerses. The Lydian Syleus, so ran the legend, compelled passers-by to dig for him in his vineyard, till Hercules came and killed him and dug [pg 399] up his vines by the roots.1309 This seems to be the outline of a legend like that of Lityerses; but neither ancient writers nor modern folk-custom enable us to fill in the details.1310 But, further, the Linus song was probably sung also by Phoenician reapers, for Herodotus compares it to the Maneros song, which, as we have seen, was a lament raised by Egyptian reapers over the cut corn. Further, Linus was identified with Adonis, and Adonis has some claims to be regarded as especially a corn-deity.1311 Thus the Linus lament, as sung at harvest, would be identical with the Adonis lament; each would be the lamentation raised by reapers over the dead corn-spirit. But whereas Adonis, like Attis, grew into a stately figure of mythology, adored and mourned in splendid cities far beyond the limits of his Phoenician home, Linus appears to have remained a simple ditty sung by reapers and vintagers among the corn-sheaves and the vines. The analogy of Lityerses and of folk-custom, both European and savage, suggests that in Phoenicia the slain corn-spirit—the dead Adonis—may formerly have been represented by a human victim; and this suggestion is possibly supported by the Harrân legend that Thammuz (Adonis) was slain by his cruel lord, who ground his bones in a mill and scattered them to the wind.1312 For in Mexico, as we have seen, the human victim at harvest was crushed between two stones; and both in India and Africa the ashes of the victim were scattered over the fields.1313 But the Harrân legend may be only a mythical way of expressing the [pg 400] grinding of corn in the mill and the scattering of the seed. It seems worth suggesting that the mock king who was annually killed at the Babylonian festival of the Sacaea on the 16th of the month Lous may have represented Thammuz himself. For the historian Berosus, who records the festival and its date, probably used the Macedonian calendar, since he dedicated his history to Antiochus Soter; and in his day the Macedonian month Lous appears to have corresponded to the Babylonian month Thammuz.1314 If this conjecture is right, the view that the mock king at the Sacaea was slain in the character of a god would be established.

The Phoenician Linus song was sung during the grape harvest, at least in western Asia Minor, as Homer tells us. This, along with the tale of Syleus, suggests that in ancient times, harvest workers treated passing travelers similarly to how they were treated by the reaper Lityerses. According to legend, the Lydian Syleus forced travelers to work in his vineyard until Hercules showed up, killed him, and uprooted his vines. This appears to be a basic outline of a legend like that of Lityerses; however, neither ancient sources nor modern folklore give us the details to expand on it. Furthermore, the Linus song was likely also sung by Phoenician harvesters, as Herodotus compares it to the Maneros song, which, as we have noted, was a mourning song sung by Egyptian reapers over the harvested grain. Additionally, Linus was identified with Adonis, who has some recognition as a deity associated with crops. Thus, the Linus lament sung during harvest would be the same as the Adonis lament; both would express the grief of harvesters over the dead spirit of the grain. Yet, while Adonis, similar to Attis, evolved into a majestic figure of mythology, revered and mourned in grand cities far beyond his Phoenician origins, Linus seems to have remained a simple song sung by harvesters and grape workers among the sheaves of grain and the vines. The parallels with Lityerses and various folk customs, both European and more primitive, suggest that in Phoenicia, the slain spirit of the grain—the deceased Adonis—may have once been symbolized by a human sacrifice. This idea might be supported by the Harrân legend that Thammuz (Adonis) was killed by his harsh lord, who ground his bones in a mill and scattered them to the winds. For in Mexico, as we have seen, the harvest human sacrifice was crushed between two stones; and in both India and Africa, the ashes of the victim were spread over the fields. However, the Harrân legend might simply be a mythical way of describing the grinding of grain in the mill and the sowing of seeds. It's worth considering that the mock king who was ceremonially killed at the Babylonian festival of the Sacaea on the 16th of the month Lous may have represented Thammuz himself. The historian Berosus, who documented the festival and its date, likely used the Macedonian calendar since he dedicated his history to Antiochus Soter; and in his time, the Macedonian month Lous seems to have corresponded to the Babylonian month Thammuz. If this speculation is accurate, it would suggest that the mock king at the Sacaea was indeed killed in the guise of a god.

There is a good deal more evidence that in Egypt the slain corn-spirit—the dead Osiris—was represented by a human victim, whom the reapers slew on the harvest-field, mourning his death in a dirge, to which the Greeks, through a verbal misunderstanding, gave the name of Maneros.1315 For the legend of Busiris seems to preserve a reminiscence of human sacrifices once offered by the Egyptians in connection with the worship of Osiris. Busiris was said to have been an Egyptian king who sacrificed all strangers on the altar of Zeus. The origin of the custom was traced to a barrenness which afflicted the land of Egypt for nine years. A Cyprian seer informed Busiris that the barrenness would cease if a man were annually sacrificed [pg 401] to Zeus. So Busiris instituted the sacrifice. But when Hercules came to Egypt, and was being dragged to the altar to be sacrificed, he burst his bonds and slew Busiris and his son.1316 Here then is a legend that in Egypt a human victim was annually sacrificed to prevent the failure of the crops, and a belief is implied that an omission of the sacrifice would have entailed a recurrence of that infertility which it was the object of the sacrifice to prevent. So the Pawnees, as we have seen, believed that an omission of the human sacrifice at planting would have been followed by a total failure of their crops. The name Busiris was in reality the name of a city, pe-Asar, “the house of Osiris”1317 the city being so called because it contained the grave of Osiris. The human sacrifices were said to have been offered at his grave, and the victims were red-haired men, whose ashes were scattered abroad by means of winnowing-fans.1318 In the light of the foregoing discussion, this Egyptian tradition admits of a consistent and fairly probable explanation. Osiris, the corn-spirit, was annually represented at harvest by a stranger, whose red hair made him a suitable representative of the ripe corn. This man, in his representative character, was slain on the harvest-field, and mourned by the reapers, who prayed at the same time that the corn-spirit might revive and return (mââ-ne-rha, Maneros) with renewed vigour in the following year. Finally, the victim, or some part of him, was burned, and the ashes scattered by winnowing-fans [pg 402] over the fields to fertilise them. Here the choice of the representative on the ground of his resemblance to the corn which he was to represent agrees with the Mexican and African customs already described.1319 Similarly the Romans sacrificed red-haired puppies in spring, in the belief that the crops would thus grow ripe and ruddy;1320 and to this day in sowing wheat a Bavarian sower will sometimes wear a golden ring, that the corn may grow yellow.1321 Again, the scattering of the Egyptian victim's ashes is identical with the Marimo and Khond custom.1322 His identification with the corn comes out again in the fact that his ashes were winnowed; just as in Vendée a pretence is made of threshing and winnowing the farmer's wife, regarded as an embodiment of the corn-spirit; or as in Mexico the victim was ground between stones; or as in Africa he was slain with spades and hoes.1323 The story that the fragments of Osiris's body were scattered up and down the land, and buried by Isis on the spots where they lay,1324 may very well be a reminiscence of a custom, like that observed by the Khonds, of dividing the human victim in pieces and burying the pieces, often at intervals of many miles from each other, in the fields. However, it is possible that the story of the dismemberment of Osiris, like the similar story told of Thammuz, may have been simply a mythical expression for the scattering of the seed. Once more, the story that the body of Osiris enclosed in a coffer was thrown by Typhon into the [pg 403] Nile perhaps points to a custom of throwing the body of the victim, or at least a portion of it, into the Nile as a rain-charm, or rather to make the Nile rise. For a similar purpose Phrygian reapers seem to have thrown the headless bodies of their victims, wrapt in corn-sheaves, into a river, and the Khonds poured water on the buried flesh of the human victim. Probably when Osiris ceased to be represented by a human victim, an effigy of him was annually thrown into the Nile, just as the effigy of his Syrian counterpart, Adonis, used to be thrown into the sea at Alexandria. Or water may have been simply poured over it, as on the monument already mentioned a priest is seen pouring water over the body of Osiris, from which corn stalks are sprouting. The accompanying inscription, “This is Osiris of the mysteries, who springs from the returning waters,” bears out the view that at the mysteries of Osiris a water-charm or irrigation-charm was regularly performed by pouring water on his effigy, or by throwing it into the Nile.

There’s a lot more evidence that in Egypt the slain corn spirit—the dead Osiris—was represented by a human sacrifice, whom the reapers killed in the harvest field, mourning his death with a dirge, which the Greeks mistakenly called Maneros. For the legend of Busiris seems to hold a memory of human sacrifices once made by the Egyptians in connection with the worship of Osiris. Busiris was said to be an Egyptian king who sacrificed all strangers on the altar of Zeus. The origin of this custom was linked to a drought that affected Egypt for nine years. A Cyprian seer told Busiris that the drought would end if a man was sacrificed to Zeus each year. So Busiris started the sacrifice. But when Hercules arrived in Egypt and was being led to the altar to be sacrificed, he broke free and killed Busiris and his son. Here is a legend indicating that in Egypt, a human victim was sacrificed yearly to prevent crop failure, suggesting that failing to make this sacrifice would bring back the infertility it was meant to avoid. The Pawnees, as we’ve seen, believed that skipping the human sacrifice at planting would result in total crop failure. The name Busiris actually referred to a city, pe-Asar, “the house of Osiris,” because it housed Osiris's grave. Human sacrifices were said to have been made at his grave, with the victims being red-haired men, whose ashes were scattered using winnowing fans. Based on this discussion, the Egyptian tradition can be explained in a consistent and likely way. Osiris, the corn spirit, was represented each year at harvest by a stranger whose red hair symbolized ripe corn. This man was killed in the harvest field and mourned by the reapers, who prayed simultaneously for the corn spirit to come back with renewed strength the following year. Eventually, the victim, or part of him, was burned, and the ashes were scattered using winnowing fans over the fields to fertilize them. Here, the choice of the representative based on his resemblance to the corn he represented aligns with the Mexican and African customs previously described. Similarly, the Romans sacrificed red-haired puppies in spring, believing it would help the crops grow healthy and red; and even today, in Bavarian wheat sowing, a sower might wear a gold ring to ensure the corn grows yellow. Furthermore, scattering the Egyptian victim's ashes is identical to the Marimo and Khond custom. His connection to the corn is highlighted again by the fact that his ashes were winnowed, similar to how in Vendée there's a pretense of threshing and winnowing the farmer’s wife, thought to embody the corn spirit; or how in Mexico the victim was ground between stones; or how in Africa he was killed with spades and hoes. The tale that fragments of Osiris's body were scattered throughout the land, buried by Isis where they fell, may well be a reminder of a practice, like that of the Khonds, of dividing the human victim into pieces and burying them, often spread apart in the fields. However, it's possible that the story of Osiris's dismemberment, like the similar tales about Thammuz, might simply be a mythical way of expressing the scattering of seed. Additionally, the story that Osiris's body, confined in a coffer, was thrown by Typhon into the Nile may indicate a custom of tossing the body or at least a part of it into the Nile as a rain charm or to make the Nile rise. Similarly, Phrygian reapers seem to have thrown their victim’s headless bodies, wrapped in corn sheaves, into a river, and the Khonds poured water on the buried flesh of the human victim. It’s likely that when Osiris stopped being represented by a human victim, an effigy of him was thrown into the Nile every year, just as Adonis’s effigy was tossed into the sea at Alexandria. Alternatively, water may have simply been poured over it, as seen on a monument where a priest is depicted pouring water over Osiris's body, from which corn stalks are growing. The accompanying inscription, “This is Osiris of the mysteries, who springs from the returning waters,” supports the idea that during the Osiris mysteries, a water or irrigation charm was regularly carried out by pouring water on his effigy or throwing it into the Nile.

It may be objected that the red-haired victims were slain as representatives not of Osiris, but of his enemy Typhon; for the victims were called Typhonian, and red was the colour of Typhon, black the colour of Osiris.1325 The answer to this objection must be reserved for the present. Meantime it may be pointed out that if Osiris is often represented on the monuments as black, he is still more commonly depicted as green,1326 appropriately enough for a corn-god, who may be conceived as black while the seed is under ground, but as green after it has sprouted. So the Greeks recognised [pg 404] both a green and a black Demeter,1327 and sacrificed to the green Demeter in spring with mirth and gladness.1328

It might be argued that the red-haired victims were killed as symbols not of Osiris, but of his adversary Typhon; since the victims were referred to as Typhonian, and red was Typhon's color, while black symbolized Osiris. 1325 The response to this argument must wait for now. In the meantime, it's worth noting that while Osiris is frequently shown on monuments as black, he is even more commonly illustrated as green, 1326 which is fitting for a god of grain who could be viewed as black while the seed is underground, but as green once it has sprouted. Similarly, the Greeks recognized [pg 404] both a green and a black Demeter, 1327 and they sacrificed to the green Demeter in spring with joy and happiness. 1328

Thus, if I am right, the key to the mysteries of Osiris is furnished by the melancholy cry of the Egyptian reapers, which down to Roman times could be heard year after year sounding across the fields, announcing the death of the corn-spirit, the rustic prototype of Osiris. Similar cries, as we have seen, were also heard on all the harvest-fields of Western Asia. By the ancients they are spoken of as songs; but to judge from the analysis of the names Linus and Maneros, they probably consisted only of a few words uttered in a prolonged musical note which could be heard for a great distance. Such sonorous and long-drawn cries, raised by a number of strong voices in concert, must have had a striking effect, and could hardly fail to arrest the attention of any traveller who happened to be within hearing. The sounds, repeated again and again, could probably be distinguished with tolerable ease even at a distance; but to a Greek traveller in Asia or Egypt the foreign words would commonly convey no meaning, and he might take them, not unnaturally, for the name of some one (Maneros, Linos, Lityerses, Bormus), upon whom the reapers were calling. And if his journey led him through more countries than one, as Bithynia and Phrygia, or Phoenicia and Egypt, while the corn was being reaped, he would have an opportunity of comparing the various harvest cries of the different peoples. Thus we can readily account for the fact that these harvest cries were so often noted and compared with each other by the Greeks. Whereas, if they had been [pg 405] regular songs, they could not have been heard at such distances, and therefore could not have attracted the attention of so many travellers; and, moreover, even if the traveller were within hearing of them, he could not so easily have picked out the words. To this day Devonshire reapers utter cries of the same sort, and perform on the field a ceremony exactly analogous to that in which, if I am not mistaken, the rites of Osiris originated. The cry and the ceremony are thus described by an observer who wrote in the first half of this century. “After the wheat is all cut, on most farms in the north of Devon, the harvest people have a custom of ‘crying the neck.’ I believe that this practice is seldom omitted on any large farm in that part of the country. It is done in this way. An old man, or some one else well acquainted with the ceremonies used on the occasion (when the labourers are reaping the last field of wheat), goes round to the shocks and sheaves, and picks out a little bundle of all the best ears he can find; this bundle he ties up very neat and trim, and plats and arranges the straws very tastefully. This is called ‘the neck’ of wheat, or wheaten-ears. After the field is cut out, and the pitcher once more circulated, the reapers, binders, and the women, stand round in a circle. The person with ‘the neck’ stands in the centre, grasping it with both his hands. He first stoops and holds it near the ground, and all the men forming the ring take off their hats, stooping and holding them with both hands towards the ground. They then all begin at once in a very prolonged and harmonious tone to cry ‘the neck!’ at the same time slowly raising themselves upright, and elevating their arms and hats above their heads; the person with ‘the neck’ also raising it on high. This is done three times. [pg 406] They then change their cry to ‘wee yen!’‘way yen!’—which they sound in the same prolonged and slow manner as before, with singular harmony and effect, three times. This last cry is accompanied by the same movements of the body and arms as in crying ‘the neck.’... After having thus repeated ‘the neck’ three times, and ‘wee yen,’ or ‘way yen,’ as often, they all burst out into a kind of loud and joyous laugh, flinging up their hats and caps into the air, capering about and perhaps kissing the girls. One of them then gets ‘the neck’ and runs as hard as he can down to the farmhouse, where the dairymaid or one of the young female domestics stands at the door prepared with a pail of water. If he who holds ‘the neck’ can manage to get into the house, in any way unseen, or openly, by any other way than the door at which the girl stands with the pail of water, then he may lawfully kiss her; but, if otherwise, he is regularly soused with the contents of the bucket. On a fine still autumn evening, the ‘crying of the neck’ has a wonderful effect at a distance, far finer than that of the Turkish muezzin, which Lord Byron eulogises so much, and which he says is preferable to all the bells in Christendom. I have once or twice heard upwards of twenty men cry it, and sometimes joined by an equal number of female voices. About three years back, on some high grounds, where our people were harvesting, I heard six or seven ‘necks’ cried in one night, although I know that some of them were four miles off. They are heard through the quiet evening air, at a considerable distance sometimes.”1329 Again, Mrs. Bray tells how, travelling in Devonshire, “she saw a party of reapers standing in a circle on a rising ground, holding [pg 407] their sickles aloft. One in the middle held up some ears of corn tied together with flowers, and the party shouted three times (what she writes as) ‘Arnack, arnack, arnack, we haven, we haven, we haven.’ They went home, accompanied by women and children carrying boughs of flowers, shouting and singing. The man-servant who attended Mrs. Bray, said, ‘it was only the people making their games, as they always did, to the spirit of harvest.’ ”1330 Here, as Miss Burne remarks, “ ‘arnack, we haven!’ is obviously in the Devon dialect, ‘a neck (or nack)! we have un!’ ” “The neck” is generally hung up in the farmhouse, where it sometimes remains for two or three years.1331 A similar custom is still observed in some parts of Cornwall, as I am informed by my friend Professor J. H. Middleton. “The last sheaf is decked with ribbons. Two strong-voiced men are chosen and placed (one with the sheaf) on opposite sides of a valley. One shouts, ‘I've gotten it.’ The other shouts, ‘What hast gotten?’ The first answers, ‘I'se gotten the neck.’ ”

Thus, if I’m right, the key to understanding the mysteries of Osiris comes from the mournful cries of the Egyptian reapers, which could be heard year after year across the fields even into Roman times, signaling the death of the corn spirit, the rural counterpart of Osiris. Similar cries, as we’ve seen, were also heard in the harvest fields of Western Asia. The ancients referred to these as songs; but based on the analysis of the names Linus and Maneros, they likely consisted of just a few words sung in a prolonged musical note that could be heard from a great distance. Such resonant and drawn-out cries, raised by strong voices in unison, must have had a powerful impact and would certainly catch the attention of any traveler within earshot. The repeated sounds could probably be recognized with relative ease even at a distance; however, for a Greek traveler in Asia or Egypt, the foreign words would usually make no sense, and he might understandably think they were the name of someone (Maneros, Linos, Lityerses, Bormus) the reapers were calling for. If his journey took him through multiple countries like Bithynia and Phrygia, or Phoenicia and Egypt, during the harvest, he would get the chance to compare the different harvest cries of the various peoples. That explains why these harvest cries were frequently noted and compared by the Greeks. If they had been regular songs, they wouldn’t have been audible from such distances and wouldn’t have attracted the attention of so many travelers; moreover, even if the traveler were close enough to hear them, he wouldn’t have easily been able to make out the words. To this day, Devonshire reapers make similar cries and perform a ceremony that is quite similar to the rites from which Osiris rituals likely originated. An observer writing in the first half of this century described the cry and the ceremony like this: “After the wheat is all cut, in most farms in the north of Devon, the harvest crew has a custom of ‘crying the neck.’ I believe this practice is rarely missed on any large farm in that area. It’s done like this: an old man or someone else familiar with the rituals involved (when the workers are finishing the last field of wheat) goes around to the shocks and sheaves and picks out a small bundle of the best ears he can find; he ties this bundle up neatly and arranges the straws attractively. This is called ‘the neck’ of wheat, or wheaten ears. Once the field is cleared, and the pitcher is passed around again, the reapers, binders, and women stand in a circle. The person with ‘the neck’ stands in the center, holding it with both hands. He first stoops down and holds it near the ground, while all the men in the circle take off their hats, bending and holding them with both hands towards the ground. Together, they all begin to cry ‘the neck!’ in a long, harmonious tone, slowly raising themselves upright and lifting their arms and hats above their heads; the person with ‘the neck’ also raises it high. They do this three times. They then change their cry to ‘wee yen!’—‘way yen!’—sounding it in the same drawn-out and slow manner as before, with unique harmony and effect, three times. This last cry is accompanied by the same body and arm movements as in the cry ‘the neck.’... After repeating ‘the neck’ three times, and ‘wee yen’ or ‘way yen’ as often, they all burst into loud, joyful laughter, throwing their hats and caps into the air, dancing around and possibly kissing the girls. One of them then grabs ‘the neck’ and runs as fast as he can to the farmhouse, where the dairymaid or one of the young female staff is standing at the door with a bucket of water. If the person holding ‘the neck’ can get into the house in a way that avoids being seen, or through any route other than the door where the girl is waiting with the water, he can legally kiss her; otherwise, he gets drenched with the contents of the bucket. On a fine, still autumn evening, the ‘crying of the neck’ resonates wonderfully at a distance, far surpassing that of the Turkish muezzin, which Lord Byron praises highly, saying it’s better than all the bells of Christendom. I have heard up to twenty men cry it, sometimes joined by an equal number of female voices. About three years ago, on some higher ground where we were harvesting, I heard six or seven ‘necks’ cried in one night, some of which were four miles away. They can be heard through the calm evening air at quite a distance sometimes.” Again, Mrs. Bray recounts her travels in Devonshire, “she saw a group of reapers standing in a circle on a hill, holding their sickles high. One in the middle held up some ears of corn tied together with flowers, and the group shouted three times (what she writes as) ‘Arnack, arnack, arnack, we haven, we haven, we haven.’” They went home accompanied by women and children carrying branches of flowers, shouting and singing. The servant attending Mrs. Bray said, “it was just the people celebrating, as they always did, to the spirit of harvest.” Here, as Miss Burne notes, “‘arnack, we haven!’ is clearly in the Devon dialect, ‘a neck (or nack)! we have un!’” “The neck” is usually hung up in the farmhouse, where it sometimes stays for two or three years. A similar custom is still observed in some parts of Cornwall, as my friend Professor J. H. Middleton informs me. “The last sheaf is decorated with ribbons. Two strong-voiced men are chosen and placed (one with the sheaf) on opposite sides of a valley. One shouts, ‘I've gotten it.’ The other responds, ‘What hast gotten?’ The first replies, ‘I'se gotten the neck.’”

In these Devonshire and Cornish customs a particular bunch of ears, generally the last left standing,1332 is conceived as the neck of the corn-spirit, who is consequently beheaded when the bunch is cut down. Similarly in Shropshire the name “neck,” or “the gander's neck,” used to be commonly given to the last handful of ears left standing in the middle of the field, when all the rest of the corn was cut. It was plaited together, and the reapers, standing ten or twenty paces off, threw their sickles at it. Whoever cut it through was said to have cut off the gander's neck. [pg 408] The “neck” was taken to the farmer's wife, who was supposed to keep it in the house “for good luck” till the next harvest came round.1333 Near Trèves, the man who reaps the last standing corn “cuts the goat's neck off.”1334 At Faslane, on the Gareloch (Dumbartonshire), the last handful of standing corn was sometimes called the “head.”1335 At Aurich, in East Friesland, the man who reaps the last corn “cuts the hare's tail off.”1336 In mowing down the last corner of a field French reapers sometimes call out, “We have the cat by the tail.”1337 In Bresse (Bourgogne) the last sheaf represented the fox. Beside it a score of ears were left standing to form the tail, and each reaper, going back some paces, threw his sickle at it. He who succeeded in severing it “cut off the fox's tail,” and a cry of You cou cou! was raised in his honour.1338 These examples leave no room to doubt the meaning of the Devonshire and Cornish expression “the neck,” as applied to the last sheaf. The corn-spirit is conceived in human or animal form, and the last standing corn is part of its body—its neck, its head, or its tail. Sometimes, as we have seen, it is regarded as the navel-string.1339 Lastly, the Devonshire custom of drenching with water the person who brings in “the neck” is a rain-charm, such as we have had many examples of. Its parallel in the mysteries of Osiris was the custom of pouring water on the image of Osiris or on the person who represented him.

In these Devonshire and Cornish customs, a specific bunch of ears, usually the last ones standing, is seen as the neck of the corn-spirit, who is then beheaded when the bunch is cut down. Similarly, in Shropshire, the last handful of ears left in the middle of the field, when all the rest of the corn has been harvested, used to be called “neck” or “the gander's neck.” It was braided together, and the reapers, standing ten or twenty paces away, threw their sickles at it. Whoever cut it through was said to have severed the gander's neck. The “neck” was taken to the farmer's wife, who was believed to keep it in the house “for good luck” until the next harvest came around. Near Trèves, the person who reaps the last standing corn “cuts the goat's neck off.” At Faslane, on the Gareloch (Dumbartonshire), the last handful of standing corn was sometimes called the “head.” In Aurich, East Friesland, the reaper of the last corn “cuts the hare's tail off.” When mowing down the last corner of a field, French reapers sometimes shout, “We have the cat by the tail.” In Bresse (Bourgogne), the last sheaf represented the fox. Beside it, a number of ears were left standing to form the tail, and each reaper, stepping back a bit, threw his sickle at it. The one who succeeded in cutting it off “cut the fox's tail,” and a cheer of “You cou cou!” was raised in his honor. These examples leave no doubt about the meaning of the Devonshire and Cornish expression “the neck,” relating to the last sheaf. The corn-spirit is thought of in human or animal form, and the last standing corn represents part of its body—its neck, its head, or its tail. Sometimes, as we’ve seen, it’s regarded as the navel-string. Lastly, the Devonshire custom of soaking with water the person who brings in “the neck” is a rain-charm, similar to other examples we've seen. Its parallel in the mysteries of Osiris was the practice of pouring water on the image of Osiris or on the person representing him.

In Germany cries of Waul! or Wol! or Wôld! are sometimes raised by the reapers at cutting the last corn. Thus in some places the last patch of standing [pg 409] corn was called the Waul-rye; a stick decked with flowers was inserted in it, and the ears were fastened to the stick. Then all the reapers took off their hats and cried thrice, Waul! Waul! Waul! Sometimes they accompany the cry by clashing with their whetstones on their scythes.1340

In Germany, shouts of Scream!, Wool!, or World! are sometimes raised by the harvesters as they cut the last bit of corn. In some areas, the final patch of standing [pg 409] corn is known as the Waul-rye; a stick decorated with flowers is placed in it, and the ears of corn are tied to the stick. Then all the harvesters remove their hats and shout three times, Wail! Wail! Wail!. Sometimes they accompany their shouts by clashing their whetstones against their scythes.


References

1.
For the sake of brevity I have sometimes, in the notes, referred to Mannhardt's works respectively as Roggenwolf (the references are to the pages of the first edition), Corn Demon, B. K., A. W. F., and M. F.
2.
The site was excavated in 1885 by Sir John Savile Lumley, English ambassador at Rome. For a general description of the site and excavations, see the Library, 10th October 1885. For details of the finds see Bulletin of the Archaeological Correspondence Institute, 1885, pp. 149 sqq., 225 sqq.
3.
Ovid, Fasti, vi. 756; Cato quoted by Priscian, see Peter's Historic. Roman. Fragments, p. 52 (lat. ed.); Statius, Sylv. iii. 1, 56.
4.
ξιφήρης οὖν ἐστιν ἀεί, περισκοπῶν τὰς ἐπιθέσεις, ἕτοιμος ἀμύνεσθαι, is Strabo's description (v. 3, 12), who may have seen him "waiting there alone."
5.

Virgil, Aen. vi. 136 sqq.; Servius, ad l.; Strabo, v. 3, 12; Pausanias, ii. 27; Solinus, ii. 11; Suetonius, Caligula, 35. For the title “King of the Wood,” see Suetonius, l.c.; and compare Statius, Sylv. iii. 1, 55 sq.

Virgil, Aen. vi. 136 sqq.; Servius, ad l.; Strabo, v. 3, 12; Pausanias, ii. 27; Solinus, ii. 11; Suetonius, Caligula, 35. For the title "King of the Woods," see Suetonius, l.c.; and compare Statius, Sylv. iii. 1, 55 sq.

Jamque dies aderat, profugis cum regibus aptum
Fumat Aricinum Triviae nemus;

“Now the day has arrived, when the refugees with kings are ready. The grove of Trivia at Aricia is smoking.”

Ovid, Fasti, iii. 271, Regna tenent fortesque manu, pedibusque fugaces;” id. Ars am. i. 259 sq.

Ovid, Fasti, iii. 271, "A fortress built on strength and quick to escape;" id. Art is. i. 259 etc.

Ecce suburbanae templum nemorale Dianae,
Partaque per gladios regna nocente manu.

Visit the suburban temple in the woods where Diana lives,
And the territories shaped by the powers of destruction.

6.
Institute Bulletin, 1885, p. 153 square; Library, 10th October 1885; Preller, Roman Mythology,3 i. 317. Of these votive offerings some represent women with children in their arms; one represents a delivery, etc.
7.

Statius, Sylv. iii. 1, 52 sqq. From Martial, xii. 67, it has been inferred that the Arician festival fell on the 13th of August. The inference, however, does not seem conclusive. Statius's expression is:—

Statius, Sylv. iii. 1, 52 sqq. From Martial, xii. 67, it's been suggested that the Arician festival took place on August 13th. However, this conclusion doesn't seem definitive. Statius's phrasing is:—

Tempus erat, caeli cum ardentissimus axis
Incumbit terris, ictusque Hyperione multo
Acer anhelantes incendit Sirius agros.

"It was the season when the scorching sun
Was bearing down on the earth, and intense
Sirius was setting the fields on fire, gasping.
"

8.
Ovid, , iii. 269; Propertius, iii. 24 (30), 9 square ed. Paley.
9.
Engraved. Latin. ed. Orelli, No. 1455.
10.
Statius, l.c.; Gratius Faliscus, v. 483 sqq.
11.
Library, 10th October 1885. The water was diverted a few years ago to supply Albano. For Egeria, compare Strabo, v. 3, 12; Ovid, Annual Calendar, iii. 273 ; id. Met. xv. 487 sqq.
12.
Festus, p. 145, ed. Müller; Schol. on Persius, vi. 56 ap. Jahn on Macrobius, i. 7, 35.
13.
Virgil, Aen. vii. 761 sqq.; Servius, ad l.; Ovid, Fasti, iii. 265 sq.; id. Met. xv. 497 sqq.; Pausanias, ii. 27.
14.
Servius on Virgil, Aen. vii. 776.
15.
Inscript. Lat. ed. Orelli, Nos. 2212, 4022. The inscription No. 1457 (Orelli) is said to be spurious.
16.
See above, p. 4, note 1.
17.
Marquardt, Roman Government Administration, iii.2 321 sqq.
18.
G. Gilbert, Handbook of Greek Antiquities, i. 241 sq.
19.
Gilbert, op. cit. ii. 323 sq.
20.
Livy, ii. 2, 1; Dionysius Halic. iv. 74, 4.
21.
Demosthenes, against Neacr. § 74, p. 1370. Plutarch, Quaest. Rom. 63.
22.
Xenophon, Rep. Lac. c. 15, cp. id. 13; Aristotle, Pol. iii. 14, 3.
23.
Strabo, xii. 3, 37. 5, 3; cp. xi. 4, 7. xii. 2, 3. 2, 6. 3, 31 sq. 3, 34. 8, 9. 8, 14. But see Encyclopedia Britannica, art. "Cleric," xix. 729.
24.
Grimm, German Legal Antiquities, p. 243.
25.
See the Lî-Kî (Legge's translation), passim.
26.
A. Leared, Morocco and the Moors, p. 272.
27.
J. W. Thomas, "The hunt on the island of Nias," in Journal of Indian Language, Geography, and Ethnography, xxvi. 277.
28.
E. Aymonier, "Notes on the Customs and Superstitious Beliefs of the Cambodians," in French Cochinchina, Excursions and Reconnaissances, No. 16, p. 157.
29.
Witzschel, Legends, customs, and traditions from Thüringen, p. 218, No. 36.
30.
Van Hasselt, People's Description of Central Sumatra, p. 323.
31.
J. C. E. Tromp, “De Rambai and Sebroeang Dajaks,” Journal of Indian Language, Geography, and Anthropology, xxv. 118.
32.
E. Aymonier, Notes about Laos, p. 25 sq.
33.
J. Campbell, Traveling in South Africa (second journey), ii. 206; Barnabas Shaw, Memorials of South Africa, p. 66.
34.
Casalis, The Basotho, p. 271 sq.
35.
Casalis, The Basotho, p. 272.
36.
W. Mannhardt, Ancient forest and field cults, p. 342, note.
37.
C. F. H. Campen “Religious Concepts of the Halmahera Alfoeren,” in Journal of Indonesian Language, Geography, and Ethnology, xxvii. 447.
38.
Riedel, The curly-haired and mixed races between Celebes and Papua, p. 114.
39.
R. Parkinson, In the Bismarck Archipelago, p. 143.
40.
J. Owen Dorsey, “Omaha Sociology,” in Third Annual Report of the Bureau of Ethnology (Washington), p. 347. Cp. Charlevoix, Journey through North America, ii. 187.
41.
Journal of the Anthropological Institute, xvi. 35. Cp. Dawson, Australian Aboriginal people, p. 98.
42.
Labat, Historical relationship of Western Ethiopia, ii. 180.
43.
Turner, Samoa, p. 145.
44.
Journal of the Anthropological Institute xiv. 362.
45.
Journal of the Anthropological Institute l.c. Cp. Curr, *The Australian Race*, ii. 377.
46.
Rhys, Celtic Paganism, p. 184; Grimm, German Mythology4 i. 494. Cp. San-Marte, The Arthur Sage, pp. 105 sq., 153 sqq.
47.
The American Antiquarian, viii. 339.
48.
Rhys, Celtic Paganism, p. 185 sq.
49.
Ib. p. 187. So at the fountain of Sainte Anne, near Gevezé, in Brittany. Sébillot, Traditions and Superstitions of Upper Brittany, i. 72.
50.
Lamberti, "Account of Colchis or Mingrelia," *Voyages to the North*, vii. 174 (Amsterdam, 1725).
51.
Le Brun, < span style="font-style: italic">Critical History of Superstitious Practices (Amsterdam, 1733), i. 245 sq.
52.
Turner, Samoa, p. 345 sq.
53.
Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 329 sqq.; Grimm, D. M.4 i. 493 sq.; W. Schmidt, The Year and Its Days in the Opinions and Customs of the Romanians of Transylvania, p. 17; E. Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, ii. 13.
54.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 331.
55.
J. G. F. Riedel, “Minahasa in 1825,” Journal of Indian Language, Geography, and Ethnology, xviii. 524.
56.
J. Reinegg, Description of the Caucasus, ii. 114.
57.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 553; Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, ii. 40.
58.
Punjab Notes and Questions, iii. Nos. 173, 513.
59.
Acosta, *History of the Indies*, bk. v. ch. 28.
60.
A. L. van Hasselt, People's Description of Central Sumatra, p. 320 sq.
61.
South African Folklore Journal, i. 34.
62.
J. S. G. Gramberg, “A month in the interior of Timor,” in Transactions of the Batavian Society for Arts and Sciences, xxxvi. 209.
63.
Dalton, *Bengal Ethnology*, p. 88.
64.
Huc, The Chinese Empire, i. 241.
65.
Bérenger-Féraud, The peoples of Senegambia, p. 291.
66.
Colombia: A Geographical Overview of the Country, i. 642 sq.; A. Bastian, The cultural lands of old America, ii. 216.
67.
A. Kuhn, Legends, customs, and fairy tales from Westphalia, ii. p. 80; Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, ii. 13.
68.
Bancroft, Indigenous Peoples of the Pacific States, i. 520.
69.
Brien, "Overview of the Battambang Province," in French Cochinchina, Excursions and Explorations, No. 25, p. 6 sq.
70.
Biddulph, Tribes of the Hindu Kush, p. 95.
71.
Gervasius von Tilburg, ed. Liebrecht, p. 41 sq.
72.
Giraldus Cambrensis, *Geography of Ireland*, ch. 7. Cp. Mannhardt, A. W. F. p. 341 note.
73.
Callaway, Amazulu Religious System, p. 407 sq.
74.
Reclus, New Universal Geography, xii. 100.
75.
Rasmussen, Supplementary Information on the History of the Arabs Before Islam, p. 67 sq.
76.
Remnants of Arab paganism, p. 157.
77.
Labat, Historical relationship of Western Ethiopia, ii. 180.
78.
S. Gason, “The Dieyerie tribe,” in Indigenous Tribes of South Australia, p. 276
79.
W. Stanbridge, “On Victoria's Aboriginal People,” in Trans. Ethnol. Soc. of London, i. 300.
80.
Marcus Antoninus, v. 7; Petronius, 44; Tertullian, Apologize. 40; cp. same. 22 and 23.
81.
Pausanias, viii. 38, 4.
82.
Antigonus, Histor. Mirab. 15 (Script. mirab. Graeci, ed. Westermann, p. 65).
83.
Apollodorus, Bibl. i. 9, 7; Virgil, Aen. vi. 585 sqq.; Servius on Virgil, l.c.
84.
Festus, svv. aquaelicium and manalem lapidem, pp. 2, 128, ed. Müller; Nonius Marcellus, sv. trullum, p. 637, ed. Quicherat; Servius on Virgil, Aen. iii. 175; Fulgentius, Expos. sermons ancient., sv. manales stones, Mythogr. Lat. ed. Staveren, p. 769 sq.
85.
Nonius Marcellus, sv. aquilex, p. 69, ed. Quicherat. In favour of taking Aquilex as rain-maker is the use of in the sense of rain-making. Cp. K. O. Müller, The Etruscans, ed. W. Deecke, ii. 318 sq.
86.
Diodorus, v. 55.
87.
Peter Jones, History of the Ojibwe Indians, p. 84.
88.
Gumilla, History of the Orinoco, iii. 243 s.q.
89.
Glaumont, "Practices, habits, and customs of the New Caledonians," in Ethnography Review, vi. 116.
90.
Arbousset et Daumas, Exploration trip to the Northeast of the Cape of Good Hope Colony, p. 350 sq. For the kinship with the sacred object (tchem) from which the clan takes its name, see ibid. pp. 350, 422, 424. Other people have claimed kindred with the sun, as the Natchez of North America (Trips to the North, v. 24) and the Incas of Peru.
91.
Codrington, in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. x. 278.
92.
Above, p. 18.
93.
Turner, Samoa, p. 346. See above, p. 16.
94.
Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, iv. 174. The name of the place is Andahuayllas.
95.
Th. Williams, Fiji and the Fijians, i. 250.
96.
Schoolcraft, Native Americans, p. 97 sqq.; Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 61 sq.; Turner, Samoa, p. 200 sq.
97.
Aeneas Sylvius, Opera (Bâle, 1571), p. 418.
98.
Brough Smyth, Victorian Aboriginal people, ii. 334; Curr, *The Australian Race*, i. 50.
99.
Fancourt, *Yucatan History*, p. 118.
100.
South African Folklore Journal, i. 34.
101.
E. J. Eyre, Journals of Expeditions Exploring Central Australia, ii. 365.
102.
Curr, The Australian Race, iii. 145.
103.
Gmelin, Trip through Siberia, ii. 510.
104.
Third Annual Report of the Bureau of Ethnology (Washington), p. 241.
105.
G. M. Dawson, "About the Haida Indians of the Queen Charlotte Islands," Geological Survey of Canada, Progress Report for 1878-1879, p. 124 B.
106.
W. Powell, *Wanderings in a Wild Country*, p. 169.
107.
Miss C. F. Gordon Cumming, In the Hebrides, p. 166 sq.; Martin, "Description of the Western Islands of Scotland," in Pinkerton's Trips and Adventures, iii. 627.
108.
Olaus Magnus, Gentium Septentr. Hist. iii. 15.
109.
Scheffer, Lapland, p. 144; Gordon Cumming, In the Hebrides, p. 254 sq.; Train, Account of the Isle of Man, ii. 166.
110.
C. Leemius, *De Lapponibus Finmarchiae etc. commentatio*, p. 454.
111.
Journey, x. 19 sqq.
112.
E. Veckenstedt, The myths, tales, and legends of the Zamaitians (Lithuanians), i. 153.
113.
J. Chalmers, *Leading the way in New Guinea*, p. 177.
114.
Rogers, Social Life in Scotland, iii. 220; Sir W. Scott, Pirate, note to ch. vii.; Shaks. Macbeth, Act i. Sc. 3, l. 11.
115.
Dapper, Description of Africa (Amsterdam, 1686), p. 389.
116.
A. Peter, Folk Culture from Austrian Silesia, ii. 259.
117.
Arctic Papers for the 1875 Expedition (R. Geogr. Soc.), p. 274.
118.
Azara, Travels in South America, ii. 137.
119.
Charlevoix, History of Paraguay, i. 74.
120.
W. A. Henry, "Contribution to the Knowledge of the Batak Lands," in Journal of Indian Language, Geography, and Anthropology, xvii. 23 sq.
121.
Herodotus, iv. 173; Aulus Gellius, xvi. 11.
122.
Harris, Ethiopian Highlands, i. 352.
123.
Brough Smyth, Victorian Aboriginal people, i. 457 sq.; cp. id. ii. 270; Journ. Anthrop. Inst. xiii. p. 194 note.
124.
Denzil C. J. Ibbetson, Settlement Report of the Panipat Tahsil and Karnal Parganah in the Karnal District, p. 154.
125.
Stephen Powers, *California Tribes*, p. 328.
126.
Sébillot, Folk customs of Upper Brittany, p. 302 sq.
127.
Mannhardt, A. W. F. p. 85.
128.
Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 35.
129.
See for examples E. B. Tylor, Traditional Culture,2 ii. 131 sqq.
130.
Pausanias, ii. 24, 1. κάτοχος ἐκ τοῦ θεοῦ γίνεται is the expression.
131.
Pliny, Nat. Hist. xxviii. 147. Pausanias (vii. 25, 13) mentions the draught of bull's blood as an ordeal to test the chastity of the priestess. Doubtless it was thought to serve both purposes.
132.
Caldwell, “On demon worship in Southern India,” Journal of the Anthropological Society of Bombay, i. 101 sq.
133.
J. G. F. Riedel, "De Minahasa in 1825," Journal of Indian Language, Land, and Anthropology, xviii. 517 sq. Cp. N. Graafland, De Minahassa, i. 122; Dumont D'Urville, Journey Around the World and in Search of La Perouse, v. 443.
134.
F. J. Mone, History of Paganism in Northern Europe, i. 188.
135.
Biddulph, Tribes of the Hindu Kush, p. 96. For other instances of priests or representatives of the deity drinking the warm blood of the victim, cp. Journal of the Dutch East Indies, 1849, p. 395; Oldfield, Drawings from Nepal, ii. 296 sq.; Asian Researches, iv. 40, 41, 50, 52 (8vo. ed.); Paul Soleillet, West Africa, p. 123 sq. To snuff up the savour of the sacrifice was similarly supposed to produce inspiration. Tertullian, Apologist. 23.
136.
Biddulph, Hindu Kush Tribes, p. 97.
137.
Lucian, Bis accus., I; Tzetzes, Schol. ad Lycophr., 6.
138.
Vambery, The Turkish people, p. 158.
139.
Plutarch, De defect. oracul. 46, 49.
140.
D. Chwolsohn, The Sabians and Sabianism, ii. 37; Enlightening and Curious Letters, xvi. 230 sq.; Punjab Notes and Queries, iii. No. 721; Journal of the Anthropological Society of Bombay, i. 103; S. Mateer, *The Land of Giving*, 216; id., *Indigenous Life in Travancore*, p. 94; A. C. Lyall, Asiatic Studies, p. 14; Biddulph, Tribes of the Hindu Kush, p. 131; Pallas, Traveling in various provinces of the Russian Empire, i. 91; Vambery, The Turkish people, p. 485; Erman, Archive for Scientific Knowledge of Russia, i. 377. When the Rao of Kachh sacrifices a buffalo, water is sprinkled between its horns; if it shakes its head, it is unsuitable; if it nods its head, it is sacrificed. Panjab Notes and Questions, i. No. 911. This is probably a modern misinterpretation of the old custom.
141.
Moura, Kingdom of Cambodia, i. 177 sq.
142.
Pausanias, x. 32, 6.
143.
Vincendon-Dumoulin et Desgraz, Marquesas Islands, pp. 226, 240 sq.
144.
Moerenhout, Journeys to the Islands of the Great Ocean, i. 479; Ellis, *Polynesian Studies*, iii. 94.
145.
Tyerman and Bennet, Journal of Travels and Adventures in the South Sea Islands, China, India, etc., i. 524; cp. p. 529 sq.
146.
Tyerman and Bennet, op. cit. i. 529 squared
147.
Ellis, Polynesian Research, iii. 108.
148.
Turner, Samoa, pp. 37, 48, 57, 58, 59, 73.
149.
Hazlewood in Erskine's Sail through the Islands of the Western Pacific, p. 246 sq. Cp. Wilkes's Narrative of the U.S. Exploring Expedition, iii. 87.
150.
Kubary, “Die Religion der Pelauer,” in Bastian's Various aspects of folklore and anthropology, i. 30
151.
F. Valentyn, Old and New East Indies, iii. 7 sq.
152.
Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, iv. 383.
153.
Monier Williams, Religious Life and Thought in India, p. 259.
154.
The Laws of Manu, vii. 8, trans. by G. Bühler.
155.
Monier Williams, op. cit. p. 259 sq.
156.
Marshall, Traveling with the Todas, pp. 136, 137; cp. pp. 141, 142; Metz, Communities of the Nilgiri Hills, p. 19 sqq.
157.
Allen and Thomson, Account of the Expedition to the River Niger in 1841, i. 288.
158.
G. Massaja, My thirty-five years of mission in northern Ethiopia (Rome and Milan, 1888), v. 53 sq.
159.
E. Aymonier, Notes on Laos, p. 141 sq.
160.
Robinson, *Descriptive Account of Assam*, p. 342 sq.; Asiatic Researches, xv. 146.
161.
Huc, Souvenirs of a Journey through Tartary and Tibet, i. 279 sqq. ed. 12mo.
162.
Huc, op. cit. ii. 279, 347 sq.; Meiners, History of Religions, i. 335 sq.; Georgi, Description of all Nations of the Russian Empire, p. 415; A. Erman, Traveling in Siberia, ii. 303 sqq.; Journal of the Royal Geographical Society, xxxviii. (1868), 168, 169; Proceedings of the Royal Geographic Society N.S. vii. (1885) 67. In the Journal of the Royal Geographical Society, l.c., the Lama in question is called the Lama Gûrû; but the context shows that he is the great Lama of Lhasa.
163.
Alex. von. Humboldt, Studies about the Institutions and Monuments of the Ancient Inhabitants of America, ii. 106 sqq.; Waitz, Anthropology of Indigenous Peoples, iv. 352 sqq.; J. G. Müller, History of American Indigenous Religions, p. 430 sq.; Martius, On the Ethnography of America, p. 455; Bastian, The cultural lands of ancient America, ii. 204 sq.
164.
R. W. Felkin, “Notes on the Waganda Tribe of Central Africa,” in Proceedings of the Royal Society of Edinburgh, xiii. 762; C. T. Wilson and R. W. Felkin, Uganda and Egypt, i. 206.
165.
"The Strange Adventures of Andrew Battel," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, xvi. 330; Proyart, "History of Loango, Kakongo, and Other Kingdoms in Africa," in Pinkerton, xvi. 577; Dapper, Description of Africa, p. 335.
166.
Ogilby, Africa, p. 615; Dapper, op. cit. p. 400.
167.
Dos Santos, “Eastern Ethiopia History,” in Pinkerton, Travel Adventures, xvi. 682, 687 sq.
168.
F. S. Arnot, Garenganze; or, Seven Years of Pioneer Mission Work in Central Africa, London, N.D. (preface dated March 1889), p. 78.
169.
MS. notes by E. Beardmore.
170.
Waitz, Anthropology of Indigenous Peoples, ii. 439.
171.
Labat, Historical Relation of Western Ethiopia, ii. 172-176.
172.
Schol. on Apollonius Rhod. ii. 1248. καὶ Ἡρόδωρος ξένως περὶ τῶν δεσμῶν τοῦ Προμηθέως ταῦτα. Εἴναι γὰρ αὐτὸν Σκυθῶν βασιλέα φησί; καὶ μὴ δυνάμενον παρέχειν τοῖς ὑπηκόοις τὰ ἐπιτήδεια, διὰ τὸν καλούμενον Ἀετὸν ποταμὸν ἐπικλύζειν τὰ πεδία, δεθῆναι ὑπὸ τῶν Σκυθῶν.
173.
H. Hecquard, Journey along the coast and into the interior of West Africa, p. 78.
174.
Bastian, The German Expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 354, ii. 230.
175.
J. Leighton Wilson, West Africa, p. 93 (German translation).
176.
Ammianus Marcellinus, xxviii. 5, 14.
177.
Snorro Starleson, Chronicle of the Kings of Norway (trans, by S. Laing), saga i. chs. 18, 47. Cp. Liebrecht, Cultural Folklore, p. 7; Scheffer, Upsalia, p. 137.
178.
C. Russwurm, “Superstition in Russia,” in Journal of German Mythology and Customs, iv. 162; Liebrecht, op. cit., p. 15.
179.
Turner, Samoa, p. 304 sq.
180.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 73.
181.
Garcilasso de la Vega, First Part of the Royal Commentaries of the Incas, bk. ii. chs. 8 and 15 (vol. i. pp. 131, 155, Markham's Trans.)
182.
Bancroft, Indigenous Peoples of the Pacific States, ii. 146.
183.
Dennys, Chinese Folklore, p. 125.
184.
Ammianus Marcellinus, xxiii. 6, § 5 and 6.
185.
C. P. Tiele, *History of Egyptian Religion*, p. 103 sq. On the worship of the kings see also E. Meyer, History of Antiquity, i. § 52; A. Erman, Egypt and Egyptian Life in Ancient Times, p. 91 sqq.; V. von Strauss und Carnen, The ancient Egyptian gods and myths, p. 467 sqq.
186.
Ammianus Marcellinus, xxviii. 5, 14; Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 73.
187.
V. von Strauss und Carnen, op. cit. p. 470.
188.
Tiele, History of Egyptian Religion, p. 105. The Babylonian and Assyrian kings seem also to have been regarded as gods; at least the oldest names of the kings on the monuments are preceded by a star, the mark for "God." But there is no trace in Babylon and Assyria of temples and priests for the worship of the kings. See Tiele, Babylonian-Assyrian History, p. 492 sq.
189.
Bastian, The German Expedition on the Loango Coast, ii. 230.
190.
"Excursion by M. Brun-Rollet in the Upper Nile region," Bulletin of the Geography Society, Paris, 1852, pt. ii. p. 421 sqq.
191.
W. Munzinger, East African Studies, p. 474 (Schaffhausen, 1864).
192.
J. Moura, Kingdom of Cambodia, i. 432-436; Aymonier, "Notes on the Customs and Superstitious Beliefs of the Cambodians," in Cochinchina, French Excursions and Reconnaissances, No. 16, p. 172 sq.; id., *Notes on Laos*, p. 60.
193.
Caesar, Bell. Gall. vi. 25.
194.
Elton, History of English Origins, pp. 3, 106 sq., 224.
195.
W. Helbig, The Italics in the Po Valley, p. 25 sq.
196.
H. Nissen, Italian Studies, p. 431 sqq.
197.
Neumann und Partsch, *Physical Geography of Greece*, p. 357
198.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 i. 53 sqq.
199.
The classic source is Pliny, Nat. Hist. xvi. § 249 sqq.
200.
Grimm, D. M. i. 56 sqq.
201.
Adam of Bremen, Description of the Island. Eagle. p. 27.
202.
"Priestly traditions of ancient Prussians," in Commonwealth or The State of the Kingdom of Poland, Lithuania, Prussia, Livonia, etc. (Elzevir, 1627), p. 321 sq.; Dusburg, Chronicle of Prussia, ed. Hartknoch, p. 79; Hartknoch, Old and New Prussia, p. 116 sqq.
203.
Mathias Michov, “From Asian and European Sarmatia,” in New World of regions and islands previously unknown to ancients (Paris, 1532), pp. 455 sq. 456 [wrongly numbered 445, 446]; Martin Cromer, On the Origin and Deeds of the Poles (Basel, 1568), p. 241.
204.
See Bötticher, The tree worship of the Greeks.
205.
Pliny, Nat. Hist. xv. § 77; Tacitus, Ann. xiii. 58.
206.
Plutarch, Romulus, 20.
207.
J. L. Krapf, Travel, Research, and Missionary Work during Eighteen Years in Eastern Africa, p. 198.
208.
Loubere, Historical Relation of the Kingdom of Siam, p. 126.
209.
Hupe "About the religion, customs, etc. of the Dajakker's" in Journal of the Netherlands Indies, 1846, dl. iii. 158.
210.
Merolla, "Congo Journey," in Pinkerton's Trips and Adventures, xvi. 236.
211.
Monier Williams, Religious Life and Thought in India, p. 334 sq.
212.
Sir Henry M. Elliot and J. Beames, Memoirs about the History and Other Aspects of the Races of the North Western Provinces of India, i. 233.
213.
The groomed fiber philosophy (Chemnitz, 1759), p. 239 sq.; U. Jahn, German sacrificial customs in agriculture and animal husbandry, p. 214 sqq.
214.
Van Schmid, "Notes on the customs, habits, and practices, etc., of the population of the islands of Saparua, etc." in Journal of the Dutch East Indies, 1843, dl. ii. 605; Bastian, Indonesia, i. 156.
215.
Van Hoëvell, Ambon and specifically the Oeliasers, p. 62.
216.
*The Indian Antiquary*, i. 170.
217.
J. Aubrey, Remains of Gentilism, p. 247.
218.
Peter Jones's History of the Ojibwe, p. 104.
219.
A. Peter, Folklore from Austrian Silesia, ii. 30.
220.
Bastian, Indonesia, i. 154; cp. id., The Peoples of East Asia, ii. 457 sq., iii. 251 sq., iv. 42 sq.
221.
Loubere, Thailand, p. 126.
222.
Turner, Samoa, p. 63.
223.
Mannhardt, Tree Worship, p. 35 sq.
224.
Indigenous Tribes of South Australia, p. 280.
225.
Blumentritt, “The ancestor cult and the religious beliefs of the Malays of the Philippine Archipelago,” in Messages from the Vienna Geographical Society, 1882, p. 165 sq.
226.
Landes, “Vietnamese Tales and Legends,” No. 9, in French Cochinchina, Excursions and Surveys, No. 20, p. 310.
227.
Kubary in Bastian's Various aspects of anthropology and folklore, i. 52.
228.
Dalton, *Ethnology of Bengal*, p. 25; Bastian, Volker tribes on the Brahmaputra, p. 37.
229.
Journal of the Asiatic Society, vii. (1843) 29.
230.
Bastian, Indonesia, i. 17.
231.
Dalton, Bengal Ethnology, pp. 186, 188; cp. Bastian, Volkerstämme on the Brahmaputra, p. 9.
232.
Dalton, op. cit. p. 33; Bastian, op. cit. p. 16. Cp. W. Robertson Smith, Semitic Religion, i. 125.
233.
Van Hasselt, People's Description of Central Sumatra, p. 156.
234.
Folklores Handbook, p. 19 (proof).
235.
Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 83.
236.
Erasmus Stella, "On the Antiquities of Borussia" in New World of regions and islands unknown to the ancients, p. 510; Lasiczki (Lasicius), “On the gods of the Samagites and other Sarmatians,” in The Republic or the State of the Kingdoms of Poland, Lithuania, Prussia, and Livonia, etc. (Elzevir, 1627), p. 299 sq. There is a good and cheap reprint of Lasiczki's work by W. Mannhardt in Magazine published by the Latvian Literary Society, xiv. 82 sqq. (Mitau, 1868).
237.
Simon Grünau, Prussian Chronicle, ed. Perlbach (Leipzig 1876), p. 89; “Old Prussian religion,” in Republic or Status of the Kingdom of Poland etc., p. 321.
238.
B. Hagen, "Contributions to the Understanding of Bat Religion," in Journal for Indian Language, Geography, and Anthropology, xxviii. 530 note.
239.
Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, i. 134.
240.
Matthias Michov, in New World of regions and islands unknown to the ancients, p. 457.
241.
Grimm, German Mythology,4, i. 497; cp. ii. 540, 541.
242.
Max Buch, The Wotjaken, p. 124.
243.
Biddulph, Tribes of the Hindu Kush, p. 116.
244.
Cato, Agriculture, 139.
245.
Henzen, Acta fratrum arvalium (Berlin, 1874), p. 138.
246.
On the representations of Silvanus, the Roman wood-god, see Jordan in Preller's Roman Mythology,3 i. 393 note; Baumeister, Monuments of Classical Antiquity, iii. 1665 sq. A good representation of Silvanus bearing a pine branch is given in the Sale Catalogue of H. Hoffmann, Paris, 1888, pt. ii.
247.
Aeneas Sylvius, Opera (Bâle, 1571), p. 418 [wrongly numbered 420]; cp. Erasmus Stella, “About the ancient Borussia,” in New World of regions and islands previously unknown, p. 510.
248.
Dalton, *Ethnology of Bengal*, p. 186.
249.
Aymonier in Excursions and Discoveries, No. 16, p. 175 sq.
250.
See above, pp. 13, 21.
251.
Above, p. 16.
252.
Mannhardt, B. K. pp. 158, 159, 170, 197, 214, 351, 514.
253.
Dalton, Bengal Ethnology, p. 188.
254.
Labat, Journey of the Knight des Marchais to Guinea, nearby Islands, and Cayenne (Paris, 1730), i. 338.
255.
L. Lloyd, Life of Farmers in Sweden, p. 266.
256.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 190 sqq.
257.
Mannhardt, A. W. F. p. 212 sqq.
258.
H. Low, Sarawak, p. 274.
259.
T. H. Lewin, Wild Races of Southeast India, p. 270.
260.
J. Mackenzie, Ten years north of the Orange River, p. 385.
261.
Rev. J. Macdonald, MS. notes.
262.
Biddulph, Tribes of the Hindu Kush, p. 103 sq.
263.
Biddulph, op. cit. p. 106 sq.
264.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 161; E. Meier, German Legends, Customs, and Traditions from Swabia, p. 397.; A. Peter, Folk Culture from Austrian Silesia, ii. 286; Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 210.
265.
Quoted by Brand, Famous Artifacts, i. 227, Bohn's ed.
266.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 174.
267.
Holzmayer, “Osiliana,” Negotiations of the Estonian Society in Tartu, vii. 10 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 407 sq.
268.
Potocki, Journey through the steps of Astrakhan and the Caucasus (Paris, 1829), i. 309.
269.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 163 sqq. To his authorities add, for Sardinia, R. Tennant, *Sardinia and its Resources* (Rome and London, 1885), p. 185 sq.
270.
Radloff, Samples of the folk literature of the northern Turkish tribes, v. 2.
271.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 51 sq.
272.
Merolla, “Trip to Congo,” in Pinkerton's Travel and Journeys, xvi. 236 sq.
273.
Bötticher, The Tree Cult of the Greeks, p. 30 sq.
274.
Quoted by Brand, Trending Artifacts, i. 246 (ed. Bohn).
275.
Dyer, British Popular Traditions, p. 254.
276.
Borlase, cited by Brand, op. cit. i. 222.
277.
Brand, op. cit. i. 212 sq.
278.
Dyer, Popular UK Customs, p. 233.
279.
Chambers, *Book of Days*, i. 578; Dyer, op. cit. p. 237 sq.
280.
Dyer, op. cit. p. 243.
281.
E. Cortet, Religious holidays, p. 167 sqq.
282.
Review of Popular Traditions, ii. 200.
283.
Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 234 sq.
284.
A. Kuhn, Märkische Legends and Tales, p. 315.
285.
Mannhardt, B.K. p. 162.
286.
L. Lloyd, Life of Peasants in Sweden, p. 235.
287.
L. Lloyd, op. cit. p. 257 sqq.
288.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 308 sq.
289.
Hone, Everyday Book, i. 547 sqq.; Chambers, Book of Days, i. 571.
290.
Quoted by Brand, same work i. 237.
291.
Id., op. cit. i. 235.
292.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 169 sq. note.
293.
Hone, Daily Book, ii. 597 sq.
294.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 217; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 566.
295.
Birlinger, Folk Culture from Swabia, ii. 74 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 566.
296.
Aristophanes, Plutus, 1054; Mannhardt, A. W. F. p. 222 sq.
297.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 86 sqq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 156.
298.
Chambers, *Book of Days*, i. 573.
299.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 312.
300.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 313.
301.
Ib. p. 314.
302.
Bavaria, Regional and Folk Studies of the Kingdom of Bavaria, iii. 357; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 312 sq.
303.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 313 sq.
304.
Dalton, *Bengal Ethnology*, p. 261.
305.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 315 sq.
306.
Ralston, Songs of the Russian People, p. 234.
307.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 318.
308.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 318; Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 657.
309.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 320; Witzschel, Legends, customs, and traditions from Thüringen, p. 211.
310.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 322; Hone, Everyday Book, i. 583 ; Dyer, UK Popular Traditions, p. 230 sq.
311.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 323.
312.
Ib.
313.
Birlinger, Folklore from Swabia, ii. 114 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 325.
314.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 341 sq.
315.
Kuhn und Schwartz, North German Legends, Tales, and Customs, p. 380.
316.
Kuhn und Schwartz, op. cit. p. 384; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 342.
317.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 260 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 342 sq.
318.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 347 sq.; Witzschel, Legends, customs, and traditions from Thuringia, p. 203.
319.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 253 sqq.
320.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 262; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 353 sq.
321.
B. K. p. 355.
322.
Above, p. 18.
323.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 93; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 344.
324.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 343 sq.
325.
Dyer, UK Pop Culture, p. 270 sq.
326.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 344 sq.; Cortet, Religious holidays, p. 160 sqq.; Monnier, Comparative folk traditions, p. 282 sqq.; Bérenger-Féraud, Popular Memories of Provence, p. 1 sqq.
327.
Above, p. 60.
328.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 265 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 422.
329.
Monnier, Comparative popular traditions, p. 304; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 423.
330.
Brand, Famous Antiques, i. 233 sq. Bohn's ed.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 424.
331.
E. Sommer, Tales, legends, and customs from Saxony and Thuringia, p. 151 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 431 sq.
332.
This custom was told to Mannhardt by a French prisoner in the war of 1870-71, B. K. p. 434.
333.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 434 sq.
334.
Ib. p. 435.
335.
Martin, "Description of the Western Islands of Scotland," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Adventures, iii. 613; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 436.
336.
Scotland and Scotsmen in the 18th Century, from the MSS. of John Ramsay of Ochtertyre. Edited by Alex. Allardyce (Edinburgh, 1888), ii. 447.
337.
Kuhn, Märkische Myths and Folktales, p. 318 sqq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 437.
338.
Mannhardt, B. K. p. 438.
339.
Monnier, Comparative folk traditions, p. 283 sq.; Cortet, Religious holidays, p. 162 sq.; Mannhardt, B. K. p. 439 sq.
340.
Above, pp. 69 sqq., 85.
341.
See especially his Ancient forest and field cults.
342.
Pausanias, ix. 3; Plutarch, ap. Eusebius, Prep. Evangel. iii. 1 suite
343.
Above, p. 76 sq.
344.
Above, p. 79.
345.
B. K. p. 177.
346.
B. K. p. 177 sq.
347.
Brand, Famous Artifacts, i. 318, Bohn's ed.; B. K. p. 178.
348.
Hone, Everyday Book, ii. 595 sq.; B.K. p. 178.
349.
Pausanias, viii. 42.
350.
Once upon a time the Wotjaks of Russia, being distressed by a series of bad harvests, ascribed the calamity to the wrath of one of their gods, Keremet, at being unmarried. So they went in procession to the sacred grove, riding on gaily-decked waggons, as they do when they are fetching home a bride. At the sacred grove they feasted all night, and next morning they cut in the grove a square piece of turf which they took home with them. "What they intended by this marriage ceremony," says the writer who reports it, "It's hard to picture. Maybe, as Bechterew suggests, they intended to marry Keremet to the gentle and abundant mukyl'c in, the earth-wife, so she could have a positive influence on him."—Max Buch, The Wotjákens, an ethnological study (Stuttgart, 1882), p. 137.
351.
At Cnossus in Crete, Diodorus, v. 72; at Samos, Lactantius, Instit. i. 17; at Athens, Photius, sv. ἱερὸν γάμον; Etymology. Magn. vs. ἱερομνήμονες, p. 468. 52.
352.
Iliad, xiv. 347 sqq.
353.
Demosthenes, Near. § 73 sqq. p. 1369 sq.; Hesychius, svv. Διονύσου γάμος and γεραραί; Etymology. Magnitude. sv. γεραῖραι; Pollux, viii. 108; Aug. Mommsen, Heortologie, p. 357 sqq.; Hermann, Religious Antiquities,2 § 32. 15, § 58. 11 sqq.
354.
Above, p. 7.
355.
Above, p. 94.
356.
Above, p. 95 sq.
357.
Preller, Greek Mythology3 i. 559.
358.
Hyginus, Astronomica, i. 5.
359.
Servius on Virgil, Georg. iii. 332, As we mentioned, every oak is sacred to Jupiter, and every grove is dedicated to Diana..
360.
Roscher's Dictionary of Greek and Roman Mythology, c. 1005.
361.
See above, p. 4. For Diana in this character, see Roscher, op. cit. c. 1007.
362.
Roscher, c. 1006 sq.
363.
Castren, Finnish Mythology, p. 97.
364.
Mathias Michov, “From Asian and European Sarmatia,” in New World of regions and islands previously unknown, p. 457.
365.
Livy, i. 45; Plutarch, Quaest. Rom. 4.
366.
Virgil, Aen. viii. 600 sq., with Servius's note.
367.
Castren, op. cit. p. 97 sq.
368.
Above, p. 4 sq.
369.
Above, p. 66 sq.
370.
Above, p. 6.
371.
Above, p. 71.
372.
Castren, Finnish Mythology, pp. 92, 95.
373.
Historic. Roman. Fragments. ed. Peter, p. 52 (first ed.)
374.
Manners and Customs of the Japanese in the Nineteenth Century. From Recent Dutch Visitors to Japan, and the German work of Dr. Ph. Fr. von Siebold (London, 1841), p. 141 sqq.
375.
Kaempfer, "Japan History," in Pinkerton's Travel Adventures, vii. 716 sq.
376.
Caron, "Japan Report," in Pinkerton's Trips and Adventures, vii. 613. Compare Varenius, Description of the kingdom of Japan, p. 11, They never touched (just as is observed today) the ground with their feet: the rays of the Sun never illuminated their head: they did not step into the open air., etc.
377.
A. Bastian, The German expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 287 sq.; cp. id., p. 353 sq.
378.
Labat, Historical Relationship of Western Ethiopia, i. 254 sqq.
379.
Above, pp. 44, 49.
380.
Brasseur de Bourbourg, History of the Civilized Nations of Mexico and Central America, iii. 29 sq.; Bancroft, Indigenous Peoples of the Pacific States, ii. 142 sq.
381.
Bastian, The German expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 355.
382.
Dapper, Description of Africa, p. 336.
383.
P. 49 sq.
384.
Bibl. Hist. i. 70.
385.
P. 6.
386.
Aulus Gellius, x. 15; Plutarch, Quaest. Rom. 109-112; Pliny, Nat. Hist. xxviii. 146; Servius on Virgil, Aen. i. vv. 179, 448, iv. 518; Macrobius, Saturn. i. 16, 8 sq.; Festus, p. 161 A, ed. Müller. For more details see Marquardt, Roman Government, iii.2 326 sqq.
387.
P. 54.
388.
P. 48.
389.
Bastian, The German expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 354 sq.; ii. 9, 11.
390.
Manners and Customs of the Japanese, pp. 199 sqq. 355 sqq.
391.
Richard, "History of Tonquin," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, ix. 744 sqq.
392.
Ellis, Polynesian Studies, iii. 99 sqq. ed. 1836.
393.
Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 293 sqq.
394.
Pp. 44, 113.
395.
Anthropological Institute Journal, vii. 282.
396.
Jesuit Relations, 1634, p. 17; id., 1636, p. 104; same, 1639, p. 43 (Canadian reprint).
397.
H. Rink, Stories and Traditions of the Eskimo, p. 36.
398.
Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 171.
399.
H. Sundermann, "The island of Nias and the mission there," in General Mission Magazine, bd. xi. October 1884, p. 453.
400.
B. F. Matthes, About the Bissoes of pagan priests and priestesses of the Boeginezen, p. 24.
401.
G. M. Dawson, "About the Haida Indians of the Queen Charlotte Islands," in Geological Survey of Canada, Progress Report for 1878-1879, pp. 123 b, 139 .
402.
Waitz, Anthropology of Indigenous Peoples, vi. 397 sq.
403.
Panjab Notes & Queries, ii. No. 665.
404.
D'Orbigny, The American Man, ii. 241; *Transact. Ethnol. Soc. of London*, iii. 322 sq.; Bastian, Cultural regions of ancient America, i. 476.
405.
B. F. Matthes, Contributions to the Ethnology of South Sulawesi, p. 54.
406.
Zimmermann, The Islands of the Indian and Pacific Oceans, ii. 386 sq.
407.
Cp. the Greek ποτάομαι, ἀναπτερόω, etc.
408.
G. A. Wilken, "Animism among the peoples of the Indonesian Archipelago," in The Indian Guide, June 1884, p. 944.
409.
Wilken, l.c.
410.
B. F. Matthes, Contributions to the Ethnology of South Celebes, p. 33; id., About the Bissoes of pagan priests and priestesses of the Boeginezen, p. 9 sq.; id., Makassarese-Dutch Dictionary, svv. Koêrróe and soemāñgá, pp. 41, 569. Of these two words, the former means the sound made in calling fowls, and the latter means the soul. The expression for the ceremonies described in the text is ápakoêrróe soemāñgá.
411.
Shway Yoe, The Burman: His Life and Ideas, ii. 100.
412.
J. L. Wilson, West Africa, p. 162 sq. (German translation).
413.
J. G. F. Riedel, The curly-haired and non-curly-haired races between Sulawesi and Papua, p. 267. For detention of sleeper's soul by spirits and consequent illness, see also Mason, quoted in Bastian's The peoples of East Asia, ii. 387 note.
414.
*Indian Antiquary*, 1878, vii. 273; Bastian, Peoples along the Brahmaputra, p. 127. Similar story (lizard form of soul not mentioned) told by Hindus, Panjab Notes & Queries, iii. No. 679.
415.
E. Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, ii. 27 sq. A similar story is told in Holland, J. W. Wolf, Dutch Legends, No. 251, p. 344 sq. The stories of Hermotimus and King Gunthram belong to the same class. In the latter the king's soul comes out of his mouth as a small reptile. The soul of Aristeas issued from his mouth in the form of a raven. Pliny, Nat. Hist. vii. § 174; Lucian, Inspiration. Praise. 7; Paulus, History of the Lombards, iii. 34. In an East Indian story of the same type the sleeper's soul issues from his nose in the form of a cricket. Wilken in The Indian Guide, June 1884, p. 940. In a Swabian story a girl's soul creeps out of her mouth in the form of a white mouse. Birlinger, Folk Traditions from Swabia, i. 303.
416.
Shway Yoe, The Burman, ii. 103; Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, ii. 389; Blumentritt, "The ancestor cult and the religious beliefs of the Malays of the Philippine Archipelago," in Bulletins of the Vienna Geographical Society, 1882, p. 209; Riedel, The curly and frizzy-haired races between Celebes and Papua, p. 440; id., "Die Landschaft Dawan oder Westtimor," in German Geographical Journals, x. 280.
417.
Panjab Notes and Questions, iii. No. 530.
418.
Ralston, Songs of the Russian People, p. 117 sq.
419.
Bastian, The soul and its manifestations in ethnography, p. 36.
420.
Panchatantra, Benfey, p. 124 sqq.
421.
Ocean of the Streams of Stories, trans. Tawney, i. 21 sq.
422.
E. B. Cross, "About the Karens," in Journal of the American Oriental Society, iv. 311.
423.
A. R. M'Mahon, The Karens of the Golden Chersonese, p. 318.
424.
F. Mason, "Physical Traits of the Karens," in Journal of the Asiatic Society of Bengal, 1866, pt. ii. p. 28 sq.
425.
C. J. S. F. Forbes, Myanmar, p. 99 sq.; Shway Yoe, The Burman, ii. 102; Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, ii. 389.
426.
Riedel, The curly and frizzy-haired races between Sulawesi and Papua, p. 414.
427.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 221 sq.
428.
N. Ph. Wilken en J. A. Schwarz, "Paganism and Islam in Bolaang Mongondow," in Communications from the Dutch Missionary Society, 1867, xi. 263 sq.
429.
James Dawson, Australian Indigenous Peoples, p. 57 sq.
430.
W. W. Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 171 sq.
431.
G. A. Wilken, "Animism," in The Indian Guide, June 1884, p. 937.
432.
Landes, “Vietnamese Tales and Legends,” No. 76 in French Cochinchina, Excursions and Explorations, No. 23, p. 80.
433.
Perelaer, Ethnographic Description of the Dajak, p. 26 sq.
434.
Fr. Valentyn, Old and New East India, iii. 13 sq.
435.
Van Schmidt, "Notes on the customs, habits, and practices, along with the prejudices and superstitions of the people from the islands of Saparoea, Haroekoe, Noessa Laut, and part of the south coast of Ceram," in Journal of Netherlands Indies, 1843, dl. ii. 511 sqq.
436.
Bastian, The Soul, p. 36 sq.; J. G. Gmelin, Travel through Siberia, ii. 359 sq.
437.
P. N. Wilken, "Contributions to the knowledge of the customs and habits of the Alfooren in Minahassa," in Announcements from the Dutch Missionary Society, 1863, vii. 146 sq. Why the priest, after restoring the soul, tells it to go away again, is not clear.
438.
Riedel, “Minahassa in 1825,” in Journal of Indian Language, Geography, and Ethnology, xviii. 523.
439.
N. Graafland, Minahassa, i. 327 squared
440.
G. Turner, Samoa, p. 142 sq.
441.
J. B. Neumann, "The Pane and Bila river basin on the island of Sumatra," in Journal of the Dutch Geographic Society, ii. de Serie, dl. iii., Afdeeling: meer uitgebreide artikelen, No. 2 (1886), p. 302.
442.
Codrington, "Religious Beliefs and Practices in Melanesia," in *Journal of the Anthropological Institute*, x. 281.
443.
Horatio Hale, U.S. Exploring Expedition, Ethnography and Philology, p. 208 sq. Cp. Wilkes, Story of the U.S. Exploring Expedition (London, 1845), iv. 448 sq.
444.
Riedel, The curly-haired and non-curly-haired races between Celebes and Papua, p. 77 sq.
445.
Ib. p. 356 sq.
446.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 376.
447.
Spenser St. John, Life in the Forests of the Far East, i. 189. Sometimes the souls resemble cotton seeds (ibid.) Cp. same i. 183.
448.
Nieuwenhuisen en Rosenberg, "Report on Nias Island," in Transactions of the Batavian Society of Arts and Sciences, xxx. 116; Rosenberg, The Malay Archipelago, p. 174.
449.
Williams, Fiji and the Fijians, i. 250.
450.
Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 171; same, Life in the South, p. 181 sqq.
451.
L. J. B. Bérenger-Féraud, The Peoples of Senegambia (Paris, 1879), p. 277.
452.
W. H. Bentley, *Living in the Congo* (London, 1887), p. 71.
453.
Bastian, Various topics in folklore and anthropology (Berlin, 1888), i. 119.
454.
Jesuit Relations, 1637, p. 50.
455.
Riedel, The curly-haired and kinky-haired races between Sulawesi and Papua, p. 78 sq.
456.
E. B. Cross, "About the Karens," in Journal of the American Oriental Society, iv. 307.
457.
J. B. McCullagh in The Church Missionary Gleaner, xiv. No. 164 (August 1887), p. 91. The same account is copied from the "North Star" (Sitka, Alaska, December 1888), in Journal of American Folklore, ii. 74 sq. Mr. McCullagh's account (which is closely followed in the text) of the latter part of the custom is not quite clear. It would seem that failing to find the soul in the head-doctor's box it occurs to them that he may have swallowed it, as the other doctors were at first supposed to have done. With a view of testing this hypothesis they hold him up by the heels to empty out the soul; and as the water with which his head is washed may possibly contain the missing soul, it is poured on the patient's head to restore the soul to him. We have already seen that the recovered soul is often conveyed into the sick person's head.
458.
Riedel, The Topantunuasu of the original tribes of Central Sulawesi (overgedrukt uit de Contributions to the Language, Geography, and Anthropology of the Dutch East Indies, 5e volgr. i.), p. 17; Neumann, “Het Pane and Bila watershed,” in Journal of the Dutch Geographical Society, ii. de Serie, dl. iii., Afdeeling: meer uitgebreide artikelen, No. 2 (1886), p. 300 sq.; Priklonski, “The Yakuts,” in Bastian's Various topics from folklore and anthropology, ii. 218 sq.; Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, ii. 388, iii. 236; id., Ethnic groups on the Brahmaputra, p. 23; id., “Hügelstämme Assam's,” in Negotiations of the Berlin Society for Anthropology, Ethnology, and Prehistory, 1881, p. 156; Shway Yoe, The Burmese, i. 283 sq., ii. 101 sq.; Sproat, Scenes and Studies of Wild Life, p. 214; Doolittle, *Social Life of the Chinese*, p. 110 sq. (ed. Paxton Hood); T. Williams, Fiji and its people, i. 242; E. B. Cross, “About the Karens,” in Journal of the American Oriental Society, iv. 309 sq.; A. W. Howitt, “On Certain Australian Beliefs,” in Journ. Anthrop. Instit. xiii. 187 sq.; id., "On Australian Medicine Professionals," in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. xvi. 41; E. P. Houghton, "Regarding the Land Dayaks of Upper Sarawak," in Memoirs of the Anthropological Society of London, iii. 196 sq.; L. Dahle, "Sikidy and Vintana," in Antananarivo Annual and Madagascar Annual, xi. (1887) p. 320 sq.; C. Leemius, On the Lapps of Finmark and Their Language, Life, and Ancient Religion (Copenhagen, 1767), p. 416 sq. Some time ago my friend Professor W. Robertson Smith suggested to me that the practice of hunting souls, which is denounced in Ezekiel xiii. 17 must have been akin to those described in the text.
459.
Riedel, The curly-haired and kinky-haired races between Celebes and Papua, p. 440.
460.
Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, v. 455.
461.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 340.
462.
Codrington, "Religious Beliefs and Practices in Melanesia," in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. x. 281.
463.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 61.
464.
Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 284 sqq.
465.
Bernard Schmidt, The Popular Life of Modern Greeks, pp. 94 sqq., 119 sq.; Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 972; Rochholz, German Faith and Customs, i. 62 sqq.; E. Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, i. 331.
466.
Schol. on Aristophanes, Ran. 293.
467.
[Aristotle] Mirab. Listen. 145 (157); Geoponica, xv. 1. In the latter passage, for κατάγει ἑαυτήν we must read κ. αὐτόν, an emendation necessitated by the context, and confirmed by the passage of Damīrī quoted and translated by Bochart, Hierozoicon, i. c. 833, "when the dog steps on the shadow of the moon, which is above the roof, the dog falls upon it [that is, the hyena] and devours it." Cp. W. Robertson Smith, The Religion of the Semites, i. 122.
468.
Pausanias, viii. 38, 6; Polybius, xvi. 12, 7; Plutarch, Q. Greek. 39.
469.
B. Schmidt, The folk life of modern Greeks, p. 196 sq.
470.
Ralston, *Songs of the Russian People*, p. 127.
471.
W. Schmidt, The Year and Its Days in the Opinions and Customs of the Romanians of Transylvania, p. 27; E. Gerard, The Land Beyond the Forest, ii. 17 sq.
472.
E. H. Mann, Indigenous People of the Andaman Islands, p. 94.
473.
Williams, Fiji, i. 241.
474.
James Chalmers, *Leading the way in New Guinea* (London, 1887), p. 170.
475.
Sahagun, General History of the Things of New Spain (Paris, 1880), p. 314. The Chinese hang brass mirrors over the idols in their houses, because it is thought that evil spirits entering the house and seeing themselves in the mirrors will be scared away (*China Review*, ii. 164).
476.
Callaway, Nursery Tales, Traditions, and Histories of the Zulus, p. 342.
477.
Arbousset et Daumas, Exploration trip to the Northeast of the Cape of Good Hope Colony, p. 12.
478.
Codrington, "Religious Beliefs and Practices in Melanesia," in Journal of the Anthropological Institute x. 313.
479.
Fragmenta Philosoph. Graec. ed. Mullach, i. 510; Artemidorus, Onirocr. ii. 7; Manu Smriti, iv. 38.
480.
See above, p. 125 sq.
481.
Wattke, German folklore,2 § 726.
482.
Ib.
483.
Folklores Journal, iii. 281; Dyer, English Folklore, p. 109; J. Napier, Folklore, or Superstitious Beliefs in Western Scotland, p. 60; Ellis, Madagascar's History, i. 238; Ethnography Review, v. 215.
484.
Punjab Notes and Questions, ii. 906.
485.
Folklore Journal, vi. 145 sq.; *Panjab Notes and Questions*, ii., No. 378.
486.
Journal of the Anthropological Institute xv. 82 sqq.
487.
Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 117. The objection, however, may be merely Puritanical. Professor W. Robertson Smith informs me that the peculiarities of the Raskolniks are largely due to exaggerated Puritanism.
488.
A. Simson, “Notes on the Jivaros and Canelos Indians,” in Journal of the Anthropological Institute ix. 392.
489.
J. Thomson, Across Masai Land, p. 86.
490.
Maximilian Prinz zu Wied, Journey into the Heart of North America, i. 417.
491.
Ib. ii. 166.
492.
"A distant Greek island," Blackwood's Magazine, February 1886, p. 235.
493.
Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 117.
494.
James Napier, Folklore: or, Superstitious Beliefs in Western Scotland, p. 142. For more examples of the same sort, see R. Andree, Ethnographic parallels and comparisons, Neue Folge (Leipzig, 1889), p. 18 sqq.
495.
Turner, Samoa, p. 291 sq.
496.
Charles New, Life, Travels, and Work in Eastern Africa, p. 432. Cp. ib. pp. 400, 402. For the demons on Mt. Kilimanjaro, see also Krapf, Travel, Research, etc. in Eastern Africa, p. 192.
497.
Pierre Bouche, The Slave Coast and Dahomey, p. 133.
498.
C. A. L. M. Schwaner, Borneo, ii. 77.
499.
Ib. ii. 167.
500.
E. Aymonier, Notes on Laos, p. 196.
501.
Rosenberg, The Malay Archipelago, p. 198.
502.
Capt. John Moresby, Findings and Research in New Guinea, p. 102 sq.
503.
R. I. Dodge, Our Native Americans (Hartford, Conn.; 1886), p. 119.
504.
J. Crevaux, Travel in South America, p. 300.
505.
Riedel, The curly-haired and frizzy-haired races between Celebes and Papua, p. 78.
506.
Perelaer, Ethnographic Description of the Dayaks, pp. 44, 54, 252; Matthes, Contributions to the Ethnology of South Sulawesi, p. 49.
507.
H. Grützner, "About the Customs of the Basutho," in Proceedings of the Berlin Society for Anthropology, etc. 1877, p. 84 sq.
508.
Nieuwenhuisen en Rosenberg, "Report on Nias Island," in Transactions of the Batavian Society of Arts and Sciences, xxx. 26.
509.
Journal of the Anthropological Society of Bombay, i. 35.
510.
E. O'Donovan, The Merv Oasis (London, 1882), ii. 58.
511.
Emin Pasha in Central Africa: A Collection of His Letters and Journals (London, 1888), p. 107.
512.
Story of the Second Arctic Expedition led by Charles F. Hall. Edited by Prof. J. G. Nourse, U.S.N. (Washington, 1879), p. 269 note.
513.
J. A. Grant, A Walk Across Africa, p. 104 sq.
514.
E. Shortland, Traditions and Superstitions of the New Zealanders, p. 103.
515.
N. von Miklucho-Maclay, "Ethnological Observations on the Papuans of the Maclay Coast in New Guinea," in Physical Journal for the Dutch East Indies, xxxvi. 317 sq.
516.
Brough Smyth, Aboriginal people of Victoria, i. 134.
517.
Scholiast on Euripides, Phoeniss. 1377. These men were sacred to the war-god (Ares), and were always spared in battle.
518.
John Campbell, Travels in South Africa: A Narrative of a Second Journey into the Interior of the Country, ii. 205.
519.
Ladislaus Magyar, Traveling in South Africa, p. 203.
520.
Asian Researches, vi. 535 sq. ed. 4to (p. 537 sq. ed. 8vo).
521.
C. J. Andersson, Lake Ngami, p. 223.
522.
François Valentyn, Old and new East Indies, iii. 16.
523.
Turner, Samoa, p. 305 sq.
524.
De Plano Carpini, History of the Mongols whom we call Tartars, ed. D'Avezac (Paris, 1838), cap. iii. § iii. p. 627, cap. ult. § i. x. p. 744, and Appendix, p. 775; "Travels of William de Rubriquis in Tartary and China," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, vii. 82 sq.
525.
Paul Pogge, "Report on Mukenge Station," in Communications of the African Society in Germany, iv. (1883-1885) 182 sq.
526.
J. L. Krapf, Travel, Research, and Missionary Work during an Eighteen-Year Stay in Eastern Africa, p. 252 sq.
527.
Dapper, Description of Africa, p. 391.
528.
Proyart, "History of Loango, Kakongo," etc., in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, xvi. 583; Dapper, op. cit. p. 340; J. Ogilby, Africa (London, 1670), p. 521. Cp. Bastian, The German Expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 288.
529.
Bastian, op. cit. i. 268 sq.
530.
J. B. Neumann, “The Pane and Bila River Basin on the island of Sumatra.” in Journal of the Dutch Geographical Society, ii. de Serie, dl. iii., Afdeeling: meer uitgebreide artikelen, No. 2, p. 300.
531.
Th. Williams, Fiji and the Fijians, i. 249.
532.
J. Richardson, “Tanala Customs, Superstitions, and Beliefs,” in The Antananarivo Annual and Madagascar Magazine, No. ii. p. 219.
533.
Lieut. Cameron, Throughout Africa, ii. 71 (ed. 1877); id., in Journal of the Anthropological Institute vi. 173.
534.
"Adventures of Andrew Battel" in Pinkerton's Journeys and Adventures, xvi. 330; Dapper, Description of Africa, p. 330; Bastian, The German expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 262 sq.; R. F. Burton, Abeokuta and the Cameroon Mountains, i. 147.
535.
Proyart's Loango and Kakongo History, etc., in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, xvi. 584.
536.
J. L. Wilson, West Africa, p. 148 (German trans.); John Duncan, Traveling in West Africa, i. 222. Cp. W. W. Reade, Wild Africa, p. 543.
537.
Paul Pogge, In the realm of Muato Jamwo (Berlin, 1880), p. 231.
538.
Capt. James Cook, Journeys, v. 374 (ed. 1809).
539.
Heraclides Cumanus in Athenaeus, iv. 145 -d.
540.
Mohammed Ibn-Omar el Tounsy, Trip to Darfur (Paris, 1845), p. 203; Journeys of an Arab Merchant [Mohammed Ibn-Omar el Tounsy] in Sudan, abridged from the French (of Perron) by Bayle St. John, p. 91 sq.
541.
Mohammed Ibn-Omar el Tounsy, Journey to Ouadây (Paris, 1851), p. 375.
542.
H. Duveyrier, Exploring the Sahara. The Northern Tuareg, p. 391 sq.; Reclus, New Universal Geography, xi. 838 sq.; James Richardson, Journeying through the Great Desert of Sahara, ii. 208. Amongst the Arabs men sometimes veiled their faces. Wellhausen, Remnants of Arab Paganism, p. 146.
543.
Turner, Samoa, p. 67 squared
544.
Riedel, "Landscape of Dawan or West Timor," in German Geographic Papers, x. 230.
545.
A. W. Howitt, "About Certain Australian Initiation Ceremonies," in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. xiii. 456.
546.
Compare μόνον οὐκ ἐπὶ τοῖς χείλεσι τὰς ψυχὰς ἔχοντας Dio Chrysostomus, Orat. xxxii. i. 417, ed. Dindorf; my soul feels like it's in my nose, I stood there as if dead, Petronius, Sat. 62; in primary lips to have breath, Seneca, Nature Quest. iii. praef. 16.
547.
See above, p. 112.
548.
Bastian, The Loango Coast, i. 263. However, a case is recorded in which he marched out to war (ibid. i. 268 sq.)
549.
S. Crowther and J. C. Taylor, The Gospel on the Banks of the Niger, p. 433. On p. 379 mention is made of the king's “annual public appearance,” but this may have taken place within "the areas of his property."
550.
Strabo, xvii. 2, 2, σέβονται δ᾽ ὠς θεούς τοὺς βασιλέας, κατακλείστους ὄντας καὶ οἰκουροὺς τὸ πλέον.
551.
Strabo, xvi. 4, 19; Diodorus Siculus, iii. 47.
552.
Heraclides Cumanus in Athenaeus, 517 b.c.
553.
Ch. Dallet, Korean Church History (Paris, 1874), i. xxiv-xxvi. The king sometimes, though rarely, leaves his palace. When he does so, notice is given beforehand to the people. All doors must be shut and each householder must kneel before his threshold with a broom and a dust-pan in his hand. All windows, especially the upper ones, must be sealed with slips of paper, lest some one should look down upon the king. W. E. Griffis, Korea, the Hermit Nation, p. 222.
554.
Richard, "History of Tonquin," in Pinkerton's Travel Adventures, ix. 746.
555.
Shway Yoe, The Burmese, i. 308 sq.
556.
Indigenous Peoples of South Australia, p. 63; Taplin, “Notes on the mixed ethnicities of Australia,” in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. iv. 53.
557.
Turner, Samoa, p. 320 sq.
558.
Dapper, Description of Africa, p. 330.
559.
Bosman's "Guinea," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Adventures, xvi. 487.
560.
P. N. Wilken, "Contributions to the knowledge of the customs and habits of the Alfoors in Minahassa," in Bulletins from the Dutch Missionary Society, xi. (1863) 126.
561.
Kaempfer's "Japan History," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Adventures, vii. 717.
562.
Aotearoa, by a Pakeha Maori (London, 1884), p. 96 sq.
563.
W. Brown, New Zealand and its Māori (London, 1845), p. 76. For more examples of the same kind see ibid. p. 77 sq.
564.
E. Tregear, “The Māori of New Zealand,” in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. xix. 100.
565.
R. Taylor, The Fish of Maui: or, New Zealand and its People,2 p. 164.
566.
A. S. Thomson, The Story of New Zealand, i. 101 ; Aotearoa, by a Pakeha Maori, pp. 94, 104 sqq.
567.
Journal of the Anthropological Institute ix. 458.
568.
W. Ridley, "Report on Australian Languages and Traditions," in Journal of the Anthropological Institute ii. 268.
569.
Alexander Mackenzie, Travels from Montreal across North America, cxxiii.
570.
Report of the International Polar Expedition to Point Barrow, Alaska (Washington, 1885), p. 46.
571.
"Traditions of the New Caledonian Women," in Journ. Anthrop. Inst. vii. 206.
572.
S. Hearne, A Journey from Prince of Wales's Fort in Hudson's Bay to the Northern Ocean, p. 204 sqq.
573.
L. Alberti, The Kaffers (Amsterdam, 1810), p. 76 sq.; H. Lichtenstein, Traveling in Southern Africa, i. 427.
574.
Narrative of the Captivity and Adventures of John Tanner (London, 1830), p. 122.
575.
On the nature of taboo, see especially W. Robertson Smith, Semitic religion, i. 142 sqq. 427 sqq.
576.
Ellis, *Polynesian Research*, iii. 102.
577.
J. Moura, Kingdom of Cambodia, i. 226.
578.
Ch. Dallet, History of the Church in Korea, i. xxiv. square; Griffis, Korea, the Hermit Nation, p. 219.
579.
Macrobius, Sat. v. 19, 13; Servius on Virgil, Aen. i. 448; Joannes Lydus, The mens. i. 31.
580.
Arval Brothers' Acts, ed. Henzen, pp. 128-135; Marquardt, Roman Government Administration, iii.2 (The Sacred Being), p. 459 sq.
581.
Callimachus, referred to by the Old Scholiast on Ovid, Ibis. See Callimachus, ed. Blomfield, p. 216; Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 686.
582.
Plutarch, Aristides, 21. This passage I owe to Mr. W. Wyse.
583.
Theophilus Hahn, *Tsuni-Goam, the Supreme Being of the Khoi-Khoi*, p. 22.
584.
J. G. Bourke, The Snake Dance of the Moquis in Arizona, p. 178 sq.
585.
C. F. Gordon Cumming, In the Hebrides (ed. 1883), p. 195.
586.
James Logan, The Scottish Gael (ed. Alex. Stewart), ii. 68 sq.
587.
C. F. Gordon Cumming, In the Hebrides, p. 226; E. J. Guthrie, Traditional Scottish Customs, p. 223.
588.
1 Kings vi. 7; Exodus xx. 25.
589.
Dionysius Halicarn. Ancient. Roman, iii. 45, v. 24; Plutarch, Numa, 9; Pliny, Nat. Hist. xxxvi. § 100.
590.
Arval Brothers' Records, ed. Henzen, p. 132; Corpus of Latin Inscriptions, i. No. 603.
591.
Pliny, l.c.
592.
Indian Antiquary, x. (1881) 364.
593.
Frank Hatton, North Borneo (1886), p. 233.
594.
Alexand. Guagninus, “On the Duchy of Samogitia,” in Republic or Status of the Kingdoms of Poland, Lithuania, Prussia, Livonia etc. (Elzevir, 1627), p. 276; Johan. Lasicius, "On the gods of the Samogitians and other Sarmatians," in Republic, etc. (see above), p. 294 (p. 84 ed. Mannhardt, in Magazine published by the Latvian Literary Society. bd. xiv.)
595.
E. J. Guthrie, Old Scottish Traditions, p. 149; Ch. Rogers, Social Life in Scotland (London, 1886), iii. 218.
596.
A. Leared, Morocco and the Moors, p. 273.
597.
The reader may observe how closely the taboos laid upon mourners resemble those laid upon kings. From what has gone before the reason of the resemblance is obvious.
598.
Panjab Notes & Questions, iii. No. 282.
599.
Walter Gregor, The Folklore of North-East Scotland, p. 206.
600.
This is expressly said in Panjab Notes and Questions, iii. No. 846. On iron as a protective charm see also Liebrecht, Gervasius von Tilbury, p. 99 sqq.; id., For Folklore, p. 311; L. Strackerjan, Superstitions and Legends from the Duchy of Oldenburg, § 233; Wattke, German folk superstition2, § 414 sq.; Tylor, Early Culture, i. 140; Mannhardt, Tree worship, 132 note.
601.
Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, i. 136.
602.
E. Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, i. 312; W. Schmidt, The Year and Its Days in the Opinions and Customs of the Romanians in Transylvania, p. 40.
603.
J. H. Gray, China, i. 288.
604.
W. H. Dall, *Alaska and Its Resources*, p. 146; same in American Naturalist, xii. 7.
605.
Jo. Meletius, “On the Religion and Sacrifices of the Ancient Prussians” in On the religion, sacrifices, weddings, and funeral rites of the Russians, Muscovites, and Tartars (Spires, 1582), p. 263; Hartknoch, Old and new Prussia (Frankfort and Leipzig, 1684), p. 187 sq.
606.
B. F. Matthes, Contributions to the Ethnology of South Sulawesi, p. 136.
607.
Tettau und Temme, The Folk Tales of East Prussia, Lithuania, and West Prussia, p. 285; Grimm, German Mythology,4 iii. 454; cp. same. pp. 441, 469; Grohmann, Superstitions and Customs from Bohemia and Moravia, p. 198.
608.
Plutarch, Quaest. Rom. 110; Aulus Gellius, x. 15, 12.
609.
J. Kubary, The social services of Pelauer (Berlin, 1885), p. 126 sq.
610.
F. J. Wiedemann, From the inner and outer lives of the Honorable (St. Petersburg, 1876), pp. 448, 478.
611.
James Adair, *History of Native Americans*, pp. 134, 117.
612.
E. Petitot, Monograph of Dènè-Dindjié, p. 76.
613.
Leviticus xvii. 10-14. The Hebrew word translated "life" in the English version of verse 11 means also "spirit" (marginal note in the Revised Version). Cp. Deuteronomy xii. 23-25.
614.
Servius on Virgil, Aen. v. 79; cp. id. on Aen. iii. 67.
615.
J. Wellhausen, Remnants of Arabic Paganism, p. 217.
616.
A. Goudswaard, De Papoewa's from Geelvinksbaai (Schiedam, 1863), p. 77.
617.
Hamilton's "Account of the East Indies" in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, viii. 469. Cp. W. Robertson Smith, Semitic Religions, i. 349, note 2.
618.
De la Loubere, A New Historical Account of the Kingdom of Siam (London, 1693), p. 104 sq.
619.
Pallegoix, Description of the Thai or Siam Kingdom, i. 271, 365 sq.
620.
Marco Polo, trans. by Col. H. Yule (2d ed. 1875), i. 335.
621.
Col. H. Yule on Marco Polo, l.c.
622.
Baron's "Description of the Kingdom of Tonqueen," in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, ix. 691.
623.
T. E. Bowdich, Mission from Cape Coast Castle to Ashantee (London, 1873), p. 207.
624.
Sibree, *Madagascar and Its People*, p. 430.
625.
C. T. Wilson and R. W. Felkin, Uganda and Sudan, i. 200.
626.
Marco Polo, i. 399, Yule's translation, 2d ed.
627.
Sir Walter Scott, note 2 to Peveril of the Peak, ch. v.
628.
Indigenous Tribes of South Australia, p. 230; E. J. Eyre, Journals of Expeditions Discovering Central Australia, ii. 335; Brough Smyth, Victorian Aborigines, i. 75 note.
629.
Collins, Report on the English Colony of New South Wales (London, 1798), p. 580.
630.
Indigenous Nations of South Australia, p. 224 sq.; Angas, Savage Life and Scenes in Australia and New Zealand, i. 110 sq.
631.
Above, p. 20.
632.
B. F. Matthes, Contributions to the Ethnology of South Sulawesi, p. 53.
633.
Lieut. Emery, in Journal of the R. Geogr. Soc. iii. 282.
634.
Ch. Andersson, Lake Ngami, p. 224.
635.
Ch. New, Life, Travels, and Work in Eastern Africa, p. 124; Francis Galton, "Animal Domestication," in Transactions of the Ethnological Society of London, iii. 135. On the original sanctity of domestic animals, see above all W. Robertson Smith, The Religion of the Semites, i. 263 sqq., 277 sqq.
636.
L. Linton Palmer, "Easter Island Trip," in Journal of the Royal Geography Society xl. (1870) 171.
637.
R. Taylor, The Fish of Maui; or, New Zealand and its People,2 p. 164 sq.
638.
Plutarch, Quaest. Rom. 112; Aulus Gellius, x. 15, 13.
639.
Above, p. 61 square
640.
Cp. W. Robertson Smith, op. cit. p. 213 sq.
641.
Dialis takes a day off daily, Aulus Gellius, x. 15, 16.
642.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, c. 6. A myth apparently akin to this has been preserved in some native Egyptian writings. See Ad. Erman, Egypt and Egyptian Life in Ancient Times, p. 364.
643.
Bernardino de Sahagun, General History of Things in New Spain, traduite par Jourdanet et Siméon (Paris, 1880), p. 46 sq.
644.
See above, p. 34 sq.
645.
P. 35.
646.
E. M. Curr, The Australian Race (Melbourne and London, 1887), iii. 179.
647.
H. B. Guppy, The Solomon Islands and their Indigenous People (London, 1887), p. 41.
648.
E. B. Cross, "About the Karens," in Journal of the American Oriental Society, iv. (1854) 312.
649.
Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, iii. 230.
650.
For the reason see Shortland, Traditions and Superstitions of the New Zealanders, pp. 112 sq., 292.
651.
*Indigenous Tribes of South Australia*, p. 186.
652.
Mrs. James Smith, The Booandik Tribe, p. 5.
653.
Riedel, The curly-haired and frizzy races between Sulawesi and Papua, p. 450.
654.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 139; cp. same p. 209.
655.
E. Dannert, "Traditions of the Ovaherero at the Birth of a Child." in (South African) Folklore Journal, ii. 63.
656.
F. J. Wiedemann, From the inner and outer life of the honest, p. 475.
657.
E. B. Cross, "About the Karens," in Journal of the American Oriental Society, iv. 311 sq.
658.
Bastian, The Peoples of East Asia, ii. 256, iii. 71, 230, 235 sq.
659.
Bastian, op. cit. ii. 150; Sangermano, Overview of the Burmese Empire (Rangoon, 1885), p. 131; C. F. S. Forbes, Myanmar, p. 334; Shway Yoe, The Burman, i. 91.
660.
J. Moura, Kingdom of Cambodia, i. 178, 388.
661.
Duarte Barbosa, A Description of the Coasts of East Africa and Malabar in the Early Sixteenth Century (Hakluyt Society, 1866), p. 197.
662.
David Porter, Journal of a Cruise to the Pacific Ocean on the U.S. Frigate Essex (New York, 1822), ii. 65.
663.
Vincendon-Dumoulin et Desgraz, Marquesas Islands, p. 262.
664.
Langsdorff, World tour, i. 115 sq.
665.
Capt. James Cook, Journeys, v. 427 (ed. 1809).
666.
Jules Remy, The Story of Hawaii, History of the Hawaiian Archipelago (Paris and Leipzig, 1862), p. 159.
667.
Ellis, Polynesian Studies, iii. 102.
668.
James Wilson, A Missionary Voyage to the South Pacific Ocean (London, 1799). p. 354 sq.
669.
R. Taylor, The Fish of Maui: or, New Zealand and its People, p. 165.
670.
"Traditions of the New Caledonian Women," in Journal of Anthropology Institute vii. 206; B. Hawkins, "Sketch of the Creek Area," in *Collections of the Georgia Historical Society*, iii. pt. i. (Savannah, 1848), p. 78; A. S. Gatschet, Migration Legend of the Creek Indians, i. 185; The Story of the Captivity and Adventures of John Tanner (London, 1830), p. 122; Kohl, Kitschi-Gami, ii. 168.
671.
R. Taylor, l.c.
672.
E. Shortland, The Southern Districts of New Zealand, p. 293; ibid., Traditions and Superstitions of the New Zealanders, p. 107, sq.
673.
J. Dumont D'Urville, Voyage Around the World and in Search of La Pérouse, carried out under his command on the corvette Astrolabe. History of the Voyage, ii. 534.
674.
R. A. Cruise, Journal of a Ten-Month Stay in New Zealand (London, 1823), p. 187; Dumont D'Urville, same source ii. 533; E. Shortland, The Southern Districts of New Zealand (London, 1851), p. 30.
675.
Agathias i. 3; Grimm, German Legal Antiquities, p. 239 sqq.
676.
G. M. Dawson, "About the Haida Indians of the Queen Charlotte Islands," in Geological Survey of Canada, Progress Report for 1878-79, p. 123 b.
677.
P. N. Wilken, "Contributions to the knowledge of the customs and habits of the Alfoeren in Minahassa," in Announcements from the Dutch Missionary Society, vii. (1863) p. 126.
678.
Riedel, The curly-haired and non-curly-haired races between Celebes and Papua, p. 137.
679.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 292 sq.
680.
Diodorus Siculus, i. 18.
681.
W. Robertson Smith, Family and Marriage in Early Arabia, p. 152 sq.
682.

Valerius Flaccus, Argonaut, i. 378 sq.:—

Valerius Flaccus, *Argonaut*, i. 378 sq.:—

Tectus et Eurytion servato colla capillo,
Quem pater Aonias reducem tondebit ad aras.

Tectus and Eurytion, keeping their necks covered with hair,
Whom their father Aonia will shave upon their return to the altars.

683.
Homer, The Iliad, xxiii. 141 sqq.
684.
D. Porter, Journal of a Cruise to the Pacific Ocean, ii. 120.
685.
Paulus Diaconus, History. Lombard. iii. 7.
686.
Ellis, *Polynesian Studies*, iv. 387.
687.
Numbers vi. 5.
688.
J. A. E. Köhler, Folk custom, etc. im Voigtlande, p. 424; W. Henderson, Folklore of the Northern Counties, p. 16 sq.; F. Panzer, Contribution to German mythology, i. 258; Zingerle, Customs, Traditions, and Opinions of the People of Tyrol,2 Nos. 46, 72; J. W. Wolf, Contributions to German Mythology, i. 208 (No. 45), 209 (No. 53); Knoop, Folktales, stories, etc. from Eastern Pomerania, p. 157 (No. 23); E. Veckenstedt, Wendish Legends, Tales, and Superstitious Customs, p. 445; J. Haltrieh, On the Folklore of the Transylvanian Saxons, p. 313; E. Krause, “Superstitious cures and other superstitions in Berlin,” Journal of Ethnology, xv. 84.
689.
Panjab Notes and Questions, ii. No. 1092.
690.
G. Gibbs, “Notes on the Tinneh or Chepewyan Indians of British and Russian America,” in Smithsonian Institution Annual Report, 1866, p. 305; W. Dall, Alaska and Its Resources, p. 202. The reason alleged by the Indians (that if the girls' nails were cut sooner the girls would be lazy and unable to embroider in porcupine quill-work) is probably a late invention, like the reasons assigned in Europe for the similar custom (the commonest being that the child would become a thief).
691.
Knoop, l.c.
692.
Wolf, Contributions to German Mythology, i. 209 (No. 57).
693.
R. Taylor, *New Zealand and its People*, p. 206 sqq.
694.
Richard A. Cruise, Journal of a Ten-Month Stay in New Zealand, p. 283 sq. Cp. Dumont D'Urville, Voyage Around the World and in Search of La Pérouse. History of the Voyage (Paris, 1832), ii. 533.
695.
E. Shortland, Traditions and Superstitions of the New Zealanders, p. 108 sqq.; Taylor, l.c.
696.
J. Moura, The Kingdom of Cambodia, i. 226 sq.
697.
See above, p. 111.
698.
Brough Smyth, Aboriginal people of Victoria, i. 468 sq.
699.
D. Porter, Journal of a Cruise to the Pacific Ocean, ii. 188.
700.
J. Dawson, Australian Indigenous Peoples, p. 36.
701.
A. W. Howitt, “On Australian Healers,” in Journal of Anthropology Institute xvi. 27. Cp. E. Palmer, “Notes on Australian Tribes,” in Journal of the Anthropological Institute xiii. 293; James Bonwick, Daily Life of Tasmanians, p. 178; James Chalmers, Pioneering in Papua New Guinea, p. 187; J. S. Polack, Manners and Customs of the New Zealanders, i. 282; Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, iii. 270; Langsdorff, World tour, i. 134 sq. A. S. Thomson, *The Story of New Zealand*, i. 79, 116 sq.; Ellis, Polynesian Studies, i. 364; Zingerle, Customs, Traditions, and Opinions of the People of Tyrol,2 No. 178.
702.
Meier, German Legends, Customs, and Traditions from Swabia, p. 509; Panzer, Contribution to German mythology, i. 258; J. A. E. Köhler, Folk tradition etc. im Voigtlande, p. 425; A. Witzschel, Sayings, Customs, and Traditions from Thuringia, p. 282; Zingerle, op. cit. No. 180; Wolf, Contributions to German Mythology, i. 224 (No. 273).
703.
Zingerle, op. cit. No. 181.
704.
Zingerle, op. cit. Nos. 176, 179.
705.
A. Krause, The Tlinkit Indians. (Jena, 1885), p. 300.
706.
Petronius, Sat. 104.
707.
Bastian, The German expedition at the Loango Coast, i. 231 sq.; id., A visit to San Salvador, p. 117.
708.
W. Stanbridge, “On Victoria's Aborigines,” in Transact. Ethnolog. Soc. of London, i. 300.
709.
François Pyrard, Trips to the East Indies, the Maldives, the Moluccas, and Brazil. Translated by Albert Gray (Hakluyt Society, 1887), i. 110 sq.
710.
Shortland, Traditions and Superstitions of the New Zealanders, p. 110.
711.
Polack, Manners and Customs of the New Zealanders, i. 38 sq.
712.
James Wilson, A Missionary Voyage to the South Pacific Ocean, p. 355.
713.
Aulus Gellius, x. 15, 15.
714.
Pliny, Nat. Hist. xvi. 235; Festus, s.v. hairy or bristly tree.
715.
Wuttke, German folk beliefs,2 § 464.
716.
W. Mannhardt, Germanic Myths, p. 630.
717.
W. Henderson, Folklore of the Northern Counties, p. 17.
718.
Riedel, The curly-haired and sneaky races between Celebes and Papua, p. 74.
719.
Riedel, op. cit. p. 265.
720.
G. Heijmering "Customs and habits on the island of Rottie," in Journal of the Netherlands Indies (1843), download. ii. 634-637.
721.
W. Dall, *Alaska and Its Resources*, p. 54; F. Whymper, "The Indigenous People of the Yukon River," in Transact. Ethnological Society of London, vii. 174.
722.
E. Meier, German Tales, Traditions, and Customs from Swabia, p. 509.
723.
W. Mannhardt, Germanic Myths, p. 630.
724.
H. B. Guppy, The Solomon Islands and their Indigenous People, p. 54.
725.
Fargaard, xvii.
726.
Household Codes, translated by H. Oldenberg (Oxford, 1886), vol. i. p. 57.
727.
R. W. Felkin, "Notes on the Madi or Moru tribe of Central Africa," in Proceedings of the Royal Society of Edinburgh, xii. (1882-84) p. 332.
728.
A. Steedman, Explorations and Adventures in the Heart of Southern Africa (London, 1835), i. 266.
729.
Emin Pasha in Central Africa: A Collection of His Letters and Journals (London, 1888), p. 74.
730.
J. L. Wilson, West Africa, p. 159 (German trans.)
731.
N. P. Wilken en J. A. Schwarz, “Everything about the land and people of Bolaang Mongondou,” in Announcements from the Dutch Mission Society, xi. (1867) p. 322.
732.
Garcilasso de la Vega, First part of the Royal Commentaries of the Incas, bk. ii. ch. 7 (vol. i. p. 127, Markham's translation).
733.
Mélusine, 1878, c. 583 sq.
734.
The People of Turkey, by a Consul's daughter and wife, ii. 250.
735.
Boecler-Kreutzwald, Superstitious customs, practices, and habits of the people, p. 139; F. J. Wiedemann, From the inner and outer life of the Ehsten, p. 491.
736.
R. W. Felkin, "Notes on the For tribe of Central Africa," in Proceedings of the Royal Society of Edinburgh, xiii. (1884-86) p. 230.
737.
Zingerle, Customs, Traditions, and Opinions of the Tyrolean People,2 Nos. 176, 580; Mélusine, 1878, c. 79.
738.
Musters, “On the Races of Patagonia,” in Journal of Anthropology Institute i. 197; J. Dawson, Aboriginal Australians, p. 36.
739.
David Livingstone, Account of the Expedition to the Zambezi, p. 46 sq.
740.
Zingerle, op. cit. Nos. 177, 179, 180.
741.
M. Jahn, Witchcraft and Magic in Pomerania, p. 15; Mélusine, 1878, c. 79.
742.
E. H. Meyer, Indo-European Myths, ii. Achilleis (Berlin, 1887), p. 523.
743.
Above, p. 201.
744.
Above, pp. 167, 169 sqq.
745.
W. Ridley, “Report on Australian Languages and Traditions,” in Journal of the Anthropological Institute ii. 268.
746.
See G. A. Wilken, On Hair Offerings and Some Other Mourning Customs Among the Peoples of Indonesia, p. 94 sqq.; H. Ploss, Das Kind in Branch und Sitte der Völker2 i. 289 sqq.
747.
Above, p. 194.
748.
Above, p. 157 sq.
749.
Monier Williams, Religion and Life in India, p. 375.
750.
Above, p. 117.
751.
Bastian, The German expedition on the Loango coast, ii. 170. The blood may be drunk by them as a medium of inspiration. See above, p. 34 sq.
752.
Dapper, Description of Africa, p. 336.
753.
T. J. Hutchinson, Thoughts on Western Africa (London, 1858), p. 198.
754.
G. Watt (quoting Col. W. J. M'Culloch), “The Indigenous Tribes of Manipur,” in Journal of the Anthropological Institute xvi. 360.
755.
Meiners, History of Religions, i. 48.
756.
R. I. Dodge, *Our Wild Indians*, p. 112.
757.
Blumentritt, "The ancestor cult and the religious beliefs of the Malays of the Philippine Archipelago," in Communications of the Vienna Geographical Society, 1882, p. 198.
758.
Theophilus Hahn, Tsuni-Goam, the Supreme Being of the Khoi-Khoi, pp. 56, 69.
759.
Diodorus, iii. 61; Pomponius Mela, ii. 7, 112; Minucius Felix, Octavius, 21.
760.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35; Philochorus, Fragm. 22, in Müller's Fragm. Hist. Graec. i. p. 387.
761.
Porphyry, Vit. Pythag. 16.
762.
Philochorus, Fr. 184, in Fragm. Hist. Graec. ii. p. 414.
763.
Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 574 sq.
764.
See above, p. 121 sqq.
765.
Gill, Myths and Songs of the South Pacific, p. 163.
766.
Ch. Wilkes, Narrative of the U.S. Exploring Expedition (London, 1845), iii. 96.
767.
U.S. Exploring Expedition, Ethnicity and Language, by H. Hale (Philadelphia, 1846), p. 65. Cp. Th. Williams, , i. 183; J. E. Erskine, Journal of a Voyage through the Islands of the Western Pacific, p. 248.
768.
Turner, Samoa, p. 335.
769.
Martin Flad, A Brief Overview of the Falasha and Kamants in Abyssinia, p. 19.
770.
J. B. Labat, Historical relationship of Western Ethiopia, i. 260 sq.; W. Winwood Reade, Wild Africa, p. 362.
771.
Diodorus Siculus, iii. 6; Strabo, xvii. 2, 3.
772.
Emin Pasha in Central Africa: A Collection of His Letters and Journals (London, 1888), p. 91.
773.
P. Guillemé, "Religious beliefs of the Black people of Kibanga in Upper Congo," in Archive for the Study of Folk Traditions, vii. (1888) p. 231.
774.
Nathaniel Isaacs, Traveling and Adventures in Eastern Africa, i. p. 295 sq., cp. pp. 232, 290 sq.
775.
Above, p. 45 sq.
776.
Dos Santos, “History of Eastern Ethiopia” (published at Paris in 1684), in Pinkerton's Trips and Adventures, xvi. 684.
777.
Plutarch, Agesilaus, 3.
778.
Herodotus, iii. 20; Aristotle, Politics, iv. 4, 4; Athenaeus, xiii. p. 566. According to Nicolaus Damascenus (Fr. 142, in Fragm. Historic. Graecor. ed. C. Müller, iii. p. 463), the handsomest and bravest man was only raised to the throne when the king had no heirs, the heirs being the sons of his sisters. But this limitation is not mentioned by the other authorities. Among the Gordioi the fattest man was chosen king; among the Syrakoi, the tallest, or the man with the longest head. Zenobius, v. 25.
779.
G. Nachtigal, Sahara and Sudan (Leipzig, 1889), iii. 225; Bastian, The German expedition on the Loango Coast, i. 220.
780.
Strabo, xvii. 2, 3; Diodorus, iii. 7.
781.
Mohammed Ebn-Omar El-Tounsy, Trip to Darfur (Paris, 1845), p. 162 sq.; Journeys of an Arab Trader in Sudan, abridged from the French by Bayle St. John (London, 1854), p. 78; Bulletin of the Geography Society (Paris) IVme Série, iv. (1852) p. 539 sq.
782.
R. W. Felkin, "Notes on the Waganda Tribe of Central Africa," in Proceedings of the Royal Society of Edinburgh, xiii. (1884-1886) p. 711.
783.
Account of events in Borneo and Celebes, from the Journals of James Brooke, Esq., Rajah of Sarawak. By Captain R. Mundy, i. 134.
784.
Simon Grunau, Prussian Chronicle, herausgegeben von Dr. M. Perlbach (Leipzig, 1876), i. p. 97.
785.
Barbosa, A Description of the Coasts of East Africa and Malabar in the Early Sixteenth Century (Hakluyt Society, 1866), p. 172 sq.
786.
Alex. Hamilton, “A new account of the East Indies,” in Pinkerton's Journeys and Travels, viii. 374.
787.
Athenaeus, xiv. p. 639 c; Dio Chrysostom, Orat. iv. p. 69 sq. (vol. i. p. 76, ed. Dindorf). Dio Chrysostom does not mention his authority, but it was probably either Berosus or Ctesias. Though the execution of the mock king is not mentioned in the passage of Berosus cited by Athenaeus, the omission is probably due to the fact that the mention of it was not germane to Athenaeus's purpose, which was simply to give a list of festivals at which masters waited on their servants. That the ζωγάνης was put to death is further shown by Macrobius, Sat. iii. 7, 6, They truly valued the souls of the holy men, whom the Greeks call † zanas, as owed to the gods,” where for zanas we should probably read ζωγάνας with Liebrecht, in Philologus, xxii. 710, and Bachofen, The Legend of Tanaquil, p. 52, note 16. The custom, so far as appears from our authorities, does not date from before the Persian domination in Babylon; but probably it was much older. In the passage of Dio Chrysostom ἐκρέμασαν should be translated "crucified" (or “stabbed”), not “hung up.” It is strange that this, the regular, sense of κρεμάννυμι, as applied to executions, should not be noticed even in the latest edition of Liddell and Scott's Greek Dictionary. Hanging, though a mode of suicide, was not a mode of execution in antiquity either in the east or west. In one of the passages cited by L. and S. for the sense “to chill” (Plutarch, Caes. 2), the context proves that the meaning is "to execute."
788.
E. Aymonier, Notice on Cambodia, p. 61; J. Moura, Kingdom of Cambodia, i. 327 sq. For the connection of the temporary king's family with the royal house, see Aymonier, op. cit. p. 36 sq.
789.
Pallegoix, Description of the Thai Kingdom or Siam, i. 250; Bastian, The peoples of Eastern Asia, iii. 305-309, 526-528; Turpin, *History of Siam*, in Pinkerton's Journeys and Adventures, ix. 581 sq. Bowring (Thailand, i. 158 sq.) copies, as usual, from Pallegoix.
790.
Lieut. Col. James Low, "Regarding the Laws of Muung Thai or Siam," in Journal of the Indian Archipelago, i. (Singapore, 1847) p. 339; Bastian, The peoples of East Asia, iii. 98, 314, 526 sq.
791.
C. B. Klunzinger, Images from Upper Egypt, the desert, and the Red Sea, p. 180 sq.
792.
J. W. Boers, "Old folk customs in the Kingdom of Jambi," in Journal of the Netherlands Indies, iii. (1840), dl. i. 372 sqq.
793.
Punjab Notes and Queries, i. 674.
794.
Aeneas Sylvius, Opera (Bâle, 1571), p. 409 sq.; Grimm, German Legal Antiquities, p. 253. According to Grimm (who does not refer to Aeneas Sylvius) the cow and mare stood beside the prince, not the peasant.
795.
Lasicius, “Of the gods of the Samagitae and other Sarmatians,” in Commonwealth or Status of the Kingdom of Poland, Lithuania, Prussia, Livonia, etc. (Elzevir, 1627), p. 306 sq.; ibid. edited by W. Mannhardt in Magazine published by the Latvian Literary Society, xiv. 91 sq.
796.
Macrobius, Saturn. v. 19, 13.
797.
See above, p. 172 sqq.
798.
Philo of Byblus, quoted by Eusebius, Prepar. Evangel. i. 10, 29 sq.
799.
2 Kings iii. 27.
800.
Porphyry, De abstin. ii. 56.
801.
Diodorus, xx. 14.
802.
Porphyry, Of abstinence. ii. 54.
803.
Brough Smyth, Aboriginal people of Victoria, ii. 311.
804.
Strachey, History of work in Virginia Britannia (Hakluyt Society), p. 84.
805.
J. L. Krapf, Travels, Research, and Missionary Work during Eighteen Years of Living in Eastern Africa, p. 69 sq. Dr. Krapf, who reports the custom at second hand, thinks that the existence of the pillar may be doubted, but that the rest of the story harmonises well enough with African superstition.
806.
F. J. Mone, History of Paganism in Northern Europe, i. 119.
807.
Above, p. 42
808.
Nieuwenhuisen en Rosenberg, "Report on Nias Island," in Transactions of the Batavian Society of Arts and Sciences, xxx. 85; Rosenberg, The Malay Archipelago, p. 160; Chatelin, "Religion and superstition of the Niassers," in Journal of Indian Language, Geography, and Ethnology, xxvi. 142 sq.; Sundermann, "The island of Nias and the mission there," in General Mission Magazine, xi. 445.
809.
Ch. Wilkes, Story of the U. S. Exploring Expedition (London, 1845), iv. 453; U.S. Exploring Expedition, Ethnography and Philology, by H. Hale, p. 203.
810.
D. G. Brinton, New World Myths, p. 270 sq.
811.
Servius on Virgil, Aen. iv. 685; Cicero, In Verr. ii. 5, 45; K. F. Hermann, Greek Private Antiquities, ed. Blumner, p. 362 note 1.
812.
Harland and Wilkinson, Lancashire Folklore, p. 7 sq.
813.
Fr. Panzer, Contribution to German mythology, i. 235 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 320 sq.
814.
E. Meier, German Legends, Customs and Traditions from Swabia, pp. 409-419; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 349 sq.
815.
E. Sommer, Stories, fairy tales, and customs from Saxony and Thuringia, p. 154 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 335 sq.
816.
W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 336.
817.
Reinsberg—Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 61; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 336 sq.
818.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 263; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 343.
819.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 269 sq.
820.
See above, p. 92 sq.
821.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 264 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 353 sq.
822.
See pp. 243, 246.
823.
See p. 15 sqq.
824.
See p. 243.
825.
Above, p. 4.
826.
Marquardt, Roman Government Administration, iii.2 323 sq.
827.
See above, p. 6.
828.
Caesar, Bell. Gall. vi. 16; Adam of Bremen, Descript. Insul. Aquil. c. 27; Olaus Magnus, iii. 6; Grimm, German Mythology,4 i. 35 sqq.; Mone, History of Northern Paganism, i. 69, 119, 120, 149, 187 sq.
829.
J. G. Bourke, Snake Dance of the Moquis in Arizona, p. 196 sq.
830.
Euripides, Iphigenia in Tauris 1458 sqq.
831.
Nieuwenhuisen en Rosenberg, "Report on the island Nias," in Transactions of the Batavian Society of Arts and Sciences, xxx. 43.
832.
J. A. Dubois, Moeurs, Institutions and Ceremonies of the Peoples of India, i. 151 sq.
833.
“The Rudhirádhyáyă, or blood chapter,” translated from the Calica Puran by W. C. Blaquiere, in Asian Researches, v. 376 (8vo. ed. London, 1807).
834.
Dalton, Bengal Ethnology, p. 281.
835.
Dalton, Bengal Ethnology, p. 258 sq.
836.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 645; K. Haupt, Book of Legends of Lusatia, ii. 58; Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 86 sq.; id., The festive year, p. 77 sq. The Fourth Sunday in Lent is also known as Mid-Lent, because it falls in the middle of Lent, or as Laetare from the first word of the liturgy for the day. In the Roman Calendar it is the Sunday of the Rose, Pink Sunday.
837.
See p. 244.
838.
E. Meier, German Legends, Customs, and Traditions from Swabia, p. 371.
839.
J. Haltrich, On the Folklore of Transylvanian Saxons (Wien, 1885), p. 284 sq.
840.
Leoprechting, From the Lechrain, p. 162 sqq.; Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 411.
841.
E. Meier, German Legends, Customs, and Traditions from Swabia p. 374; cp. Birlinger, Popular traditions from Swabia, ii. 55.
842.
E. Meier, op. cit. p. 372.
843.
E. Meier, op. cit. p. 373.
844.
E. Meier, op. cit. pp. 373, 374.
845.
A. Kuhn, Legends, customs, and fairy tales from Westphalia, ii. 130.
846.
F. J. Wiedemann, From the inner and outer life of the Ehsten, p. 353.
847.
E. Meier, op. cit. p. 374.
848.
H. Pröhle, Harzbilder, p. 54.
849.
Aug. Witzschel, Legends, customs, and traditions from Thuringia, p. 193.
850.
Witzschel, op. cit. p. 199.
851.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 642.
852.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 90 sq.
853.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, op. cit. p. 91.
854.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 639 sq.; Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 412.
855.
Grimm, op. cit. ii. 644; K. Haupt, Book of Legends of Lausitz, ii. 55.
856.
Grimm, op. cit. ii. 640, 643.
857.
Vernalecken, Myths and Traditions of the People in Austria, p. 294 sq.; Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 90.
858.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 640.
859.
J. A. E. Köhler, Folk customs, superstitions, legends, and other old traditions in the Voigtland, p. 171.
860.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, The festive year, p. 80.
861.
Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 211.
862.
Ib. p. 210.
863.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 652; H. Usener, "Italian Myths," in Rhineland Museum, N. F. xxx. (1875) p. 191 sq.
864.
G. Pitrè, Sicilian folklore shows and festivals (Palermo, 1881), p. 207 sq.
865.
Archive for the Study of Folk Traditions, iv. (1885) p. 294 sq.
866.
H. Usener, op. cit. p. 193.
867.
Vincenzo Dorsa, The Greco-Latin tradition in the customs and beliefs of Calabria citeriore (Cosenza, 1884), p. 43 sq.
868.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 652; H. Usener, "Italian Myths," in Rhineland Museum, N. F. xxx. 1875, p. 191 sq.
869.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 89 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 156. This custom has been already referred to. See p. 82.
870.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, The festive year, p. 82; Philo vom Walde, Silesia in Legend and Tradition (N.D. preface dated 1883), p. 122.
871.
Witzschel, Tales, customs, and traditions from Thuringia, p. 192 sq.
872.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 643 square; K. Haupt, Legends of Lusatia, ii. 54 sq.; Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 412 sq.; Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 211.
873.
Grimm, op. cit. ii. 644; K. Haupt, op. cit. ii. 55.
874.
E. Gerard, *The Land Beyond the Forest*, ii. 47-49.
875.
This is also the view taken of the custom by Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 419.
876.
Vernalecken, Myths and Traditions of the People in Austria, p. 293 sq.
877.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, The festive year, p. 82.
878.
Philo vom Walde, Silesia in Legend and Tradition, p. 122.
879.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 640 sq.
880.
See above, p. 260.
881.
K. Schwenk, Slavic Mythology, p. 217 sq.
882.
Above, p. 263.
883.
See above, pp. 83, 263.
884.
Above, p. 263, and Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 644; Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival Calendar from Bohemia, p. 87 sq.
885.
Above, p. 263.
886.
See above, p. 266 sqq.
887.
Above, pp. 257, 259, 265; and Grimm, D. M.4 ii. 643.
888.
Reinsberg-Düringsfeld, Festival calendar from Bohemia, p. 88. Sometimes the effigy of Death (without a tree) is carried round by boys who collect gratuities. Grimm, D. M.4 ii. 644.
889.
Above, p. 243.
890.
Wiedemann, From the inner and outer life of the Ehsten, p. 353; Holzmayer, “Osiliana,” in Proceedings of the Learned Estonian Society in Dorpat, vii. Heft 2, p. 10 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Tree Worship, p. 407 sq.
891.
W. Mannhardt, Tree Worship, pp. 417-421.
892.
Ralston, Songs of the Russian People, p. 221.
893.
Ralston, op. cit. p. 241.
894.
Ralston, op. cit. p. 243 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 414.
895.
W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 414 sq.; Ralston, op. cit. p. 244.
896.
Ralston, op. cit. p. 245; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 416.
897.
W. Mannhardt, l.c.; Ralston, l.c.
898.
Grimm, German Mythology,4 ii. 644.
899.
J. G. von Hahn, Albanian Studies, i. 160.
900.
Captain R. C. Temple, in Indian Antiquarian, xi. (1882) p. 297 sq.
901.
See above, p. 94 sqq.
902.
Above, p. 70 sqq.
903.
Baudissin, Studies on Semitic Religious History, i. 299; W. Mannhardt, Ancient forest and field cults, p. 274.
904.
Plutarch, Alcibiades, 18; Zenobius, Century. i. 49; Theocritus, xv. 132 sq.; Eustathius on Homer, Od. xi. 590.
905.
Besides Lucian (cited below) see Jerome, Commentary on Ezekiel. viii. 14, in which (ceremony) he is mourned as if dead, and afterwards, rising again, he is sung and praised ... following the death and resurrection of Adonis with lamentation and joy.
906.
Theocritus, xv.
907.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 277.
908.
Lucian, Of the goddess Syria, 6. The words ἐς τὸν ἠέρα πέμπουσι imply that the ascension was supposed to take place in the presence, if not before the eyes, of the worshipping crowds.
909.
Lucian, op. cit. 8. The discoloration of the river and the sea was observed by Maundrell on 17/27th March 1696/1697. See his “Trip from Aleppo to Jerusalem,” in Bohn's Travels in Palestine, edited by Thomas Wright, p. 411. Renan observed the discoloration at the beginning of February; Baudissin, Studies, i. 298 (referring to Renan, Phoenician Mission, p. 283). Milton's lines will occur to most readers.
910.
Ovid, Metam. x. 735, compared with Bion i. 66. The latter, however, makes the anemone spring from the tears, as the rose from the blood of Adonis.
911.
W. Robertson Smith, “Ctesias and the Semíramis story,” in English History Review, April 1887, following Lagarde.
912.
In the Alexandrian ceremony, however, it appears to have been the image of Adonis only which was thrown into the sea.
913.
Apollodorus, Library. iii. 14, 4; Schol. on Theocritus, i. 109; Antoninus Liberalis, 34; Tzetzes on Lycophron, 829; Ovid, Metam. x. 489 sqq.; Servius on Virgil, Aen. v. 72, and on Bucolic. x. 18; Hyginus, Awesome. 58, 164; Fulgentius, iii. 8. The word Myrrha or Smyrna is borrowed from the Phoenician (Liddell and Scott, Greek Dictionary, s.v. σμύρνα). Hence the mother's name, as well as the son's, was taken directly from the Semites.
914.
Schol. on Theocritus, iii. 48; Hyginus, Astronomy ii. 7; Lucian, Dialogue. poetry. xi. 1; Cornutus, On the Nature of the Gods, 28, p. 163 sq. ed. Osannus; Apollodorus, iii. 14, 4.
915.
Thus, after the autumnal equinox the Egyptians celebrated the "birth of the sun's walking-sticks," because, as the sun declined daily in the sky, and his heat and light diminished, he was supposed to need a staff with which to support his steps. Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 52.
916.
Schol. on Theocritus, iii. 48, ὁ Ἄδωνις, ἤγουν ὁ σῖτος ὁ σπειρόμενος, ἒξ μῆνας ἐν τῇ γῇ ποιεῖ ἀπὸ τῆς σπορᾶς, καὶ ἒξ μῆνας ἔχει αὐτὸν ἡ Ἀφροδίτη, τουτέστιν ἡ εὐκρασία τοῦ ἀέρος. καὶ ἐκτότε λαμβάνουσιν αὐτὸν οἱ ἄνθρωποι. Jerome on Ezech. c. viii. 14. The same gentility interprets such tales of poets, which contain repulsiveness, as subtly exploring the death and resurrection of Adonis, following them with lamentation and joy: one represents the seeds that die in the ground, the other the grains in which the dead seeds come back to life. Ammianus Marcellinus, xix. 1, 11, in the solemn rites of Adonis, which teach that some statue represents the mystical religions of mature crops. Id. xxii. 9, 15, the beloved of Venus, as the stories say, after being struck by the lethal tusk of a wild boar, is a sign of the harvest in the prime of growth. Clemens Alexandr. Hom. 6, 11 (quoted by W. Mannhardt, Ancient forest and field cults, p. 281), λάμβανουσι δὲ καὶ Ἄδωνιν εἰς ὡραίους καρπούς. Etymolog. Magn. Ἄδωνις κύριον; δύναται καὶ ὁ καρπὸς εἶναι ἄδωνις; οἷον ἀδώνειος καρπός, ἀρέσκων. Eusebius, Preparation for the Gospel iii. 11, 9, Ἄδωνις τῆς τῶν τελείων καρπῶν ἐκτομῆς σύμβολον.
917.
D. Chwolsohn, Die Ssabier und der Ssabismus, ii. 27; id., About Tammûz and the Worship of Humans Among the Ancient Babylonians, p. 38.
918.
The comparison is due to Felix Liebrecht (On Folklore, p. 259).
919.
For the authorities see W. Mannhardt, Ancient forest and field cults, p. 279, note 2, and p. 280, note 2; to which add Diogenianus, i. 14; Plutarch, De sera num. vind. 17. Women only are mentioned as planting the gardens of Adonis by Plutarch, l.c.; Julian, Gathering, p. 329 ed. Spanheim (p. 423 ed. Hertlein); Eustathius on Homer, Od. xi. 590. On the other hand Diogenianus, l.c. says φυτεύοντες ἢ φυτεύουσαι.
920.
Plutarch, Alcibiades, 18; id., Nicias, 13. The date of the sailing of the fleet is given by Thucydides, vi. 30, θέρους μεσοῦντος ἤδη.
921.
In hot southern countries like Egypt and the Semitic regions of Western Asia, where vegetation depends chiefly or entirely upon irrigation, the purpose of the charm is doubtless to secure a plentiful flow of water in the streams. But as the ultimate object and the charms for securing it are the same in both cases, it has not been thought necessary always to point out the distinction.
922.
See above, p. 16.
923.
W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 214; W. Schmidt, The Year and Its Days in the Opinions and Customs of the Romanians of Transylvania, p. 18 sq.
924.
G. A. Heinrich, Agricultural customs and traditions among the Saxons of Transylvania (Hermanstadt, 1880), p. 24; Wsissocki, Customs and Traditions of the Transylvanian Saxons (Hamburg, 1888), p. 32.
925.
Matthäus Praetorius, Prussian Delicacies, 55; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 214 sq. note.
926.
Praetorius, op. cit., 60; W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 215, note.
927.
A. H. Sayce, Religion of the ancient Babylonians (Hibbert Lectures, 1887), p. 221 sqq.; W. Mannhardt, Ancient forest and field cults, p. 275.
928.
According to Jerome (on Ezechiel, viii. 14), Thammuz was June; but according to modern scholars the month corresponded rather to July, or to part of June and part of July. Movers, The Phoenicians, i. 210; Mannhardt, A. W. F. p. 275. My friend, Prof. W. Robertson Smith, informs me that owing to the variations of the local Syrian calendars the month Thammuz fell in different places at different times, from midsummer to autumn, or from June to September.
929.
A. H. Sayce, op. cit. p. 238.
930.
Dalton, *Ethnology of Bengal*, p. 259.
931.
Above, p. 67.
932.
Antonio Bresciani, The customs of the island of Sardinia compared to the ancient Eastern peoples (Rome and Turin, 1866), p. 427 sq.; R. Tennant, *Sardinia and Its Resources* (Rome and London, 1885), p. 187; S. Gabriele, “Using Sardinian farmers,” Archive for the Study of Folk Traditions, vii. (1888) p. 469 squared Tennant says that the pots are kept in a dark warm place, and that the children leap across the fire.
933.
See ch. i. p. 78 sq.
934.
P. 272.
935.
L. Lloyd, Rural Life in Sweden, p. 257.
936.
W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, p. 464; Leoprechting, From Lechrain, p. 183.
937.
G. Pitrè, Sicilian festivals and shows, p. 296 sq.
938.
G. Pitrè, op. cit. p. 302 sq.; Antonio de Nino, Abruzzo people, i. 55 sq.; Gubernatis, Wedding Use, p. 39 sq. Cp. Archive for the Study of Folk Traditions, i. 135. At Smyrna a blossom of the chaste tree is used on St. John's Day for a similar purpose, but the mode in which the omens are drawn is somewhat different, Archive for the Study of Folk Traditions, vii. (1888) p. 128 sq.
939.
Matthäus Praetorius, Prussian Delicacies, herausgegeben von Dr. W. Pierson (Berlin, 1871), p. 56.
940.
See p. 274 sq.
941.
G. Pitrè, Sicilian popular shows and festivals, p. 211. A similar custom is observed at Cosenza in Calabria. Vincenzo Dorsa, Greek-Latin tradition, etc., p. 50. For the Easter ceremonies in the Greek Church, see R. A. Arnold, From the Middle East (London, 1868), i. 251
942.
κήπους ὡσίουν ἐπιταφίους Ἀδώνιδι, Eustathius on Homer, Od. xi. 590.
943.
Hippolytus, Refut. omn. haeres. v. 9, p. 168, ed. Duncker and Schneidewin; Socrates, Hist. Eccles. iii. 23, §§ 51 *sqq.* p. 204.
944.
That Attis was killed by a boar was stated by Hermesianax, an elegiac poet of the fourth century b.c. (Pausanias, vii. 17); cp. Schol. on Nicander, Alex. 8. The other story is told by Arnobius (Against nations, v. 5 sqq.) on the authority of Timotheus, an otherwise unknown writer, who professed to derive it from hidden ancient texts and from deep mysteries. It is obviously identical with the account which Pausanias mentions (l.c.) as the story current in Pessinus.
945.
Pausanias, vii. 17; Julian, Orat. v. 177 B.
946.
Ovid, Metam. x. 103 sqq.
947.
On the festival see especially Marquardt, Roman Government Administration, iii.2 370 ; Daremberg et Saglio, Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities, i. p. 1685 sq. (article “Cybele”); W. Mannhardt, Ancient forest and field cults, p. 291 sqq.; id., Tree worship, p. 572 sqq.
948.
Julian, Orat. v. 168 c; Joannes Lydus, De mensibus, iv. 41; Arnobius, Advers. nations, v. cc. 7, 16 sq.; Firmicus Maternus, On the error of profane religion. 27.
949.
Julian, l.c. and 169 C.
950.
Trebellius Pollio, Claudius, 4; Tertullian, Apologist. 25. For other references, see Marquardt, l.c.
951.
Diodorus, iii. 59; Firmicus Maternus, On the errors of profane religion. 3; Arnobius, Advers. nat. v. 16; Schol. on Nicander, Alex. 8; Servius on Virgil, Aen. ix. 116; Arrian, Tactics, 33. The ceremony described in Firmicus Maternus, c. 22 (One night, a figure is placed on a couch lying down and is mourned through a series of arranged tears.... You bury the idol. You mourn the idol., etc.), may very well be the mourning and funeral rites of Attis, to which he had more briefly referred in c. 3.
952.

On the Hilaria see Macrobius, Saturn. i. 21, 10; Julian, Orat. v. 168 D, 169 D; Damascius, Vita Isidori, in Photius, p. 345 A 5 sqq. ed. Bekker. On the resurrection, see Firmicus Maternus, 3, reginae suae amorem [Phryges] cum luctibus annuis consecrarunt, et ut satis iratae mulieri facerent aut ut paenitenti solacium quaererent, quem paulo ante sepelierant revixisse jactarunt.... Mortem ipsius [i.e. of Attis] dicunt, quod semina collecta conduntur, vitam rursus quod jacta semina annuis vicibus † reconduntur [renascuntur, C. Halm]. Again cp. id. 22, Idolum sepelis. Idolum plangis, idolum de sepultura proferis, et miser cum haec feceris gaudes; and Damascius, l.c. τὴν τῶν ἱλαρίων καλουμένην ἐορτήν; ὅπερ ἑδήλου τὴν ἑξ ἄδου γεγονυῖαν ἡμῶν σωτερίαν. This last passage, compared with the formula in Firmicus Maternus, c. 22

On the Hilaria see Macrobius, Saturn. i. 21, 10; Julian, Orat. v. 168 D, 169 D; Damascius, Isidore's Life, in Photius, p. 345 A 5 sqq. ed. Bekker. On the resurrection, see Firmicus Maternus, 3, The Phrygians dedicated the love of their queen with annual sorrows, and to either appease an angry woman or seek comfort for the one in regret, they claimed that the man they had buried not long before had come back to life.... His death [i.e. of Attis] They say that seeds gathered are stored away, and that life is once again brought forth as the seeds are hidden away year after year. [renascuntur, C. Halm]. Again cp. id. 22, Idol of the tomb. You mourn the idol, you bring forth the idol from the grave, and you rejoice, poor soul, when you do these things.; and Damascius, l.c. τὴν τῶν ἱλαρίων καλουμένην ἐορτήν; ὅπερ ἑδήλου τὴν ἑξ ἄδου γεγονυῖαν ἡμῶν σωτερίαν. This last passage, compared with the formula in Firmicus Maternus, c. 22

θαρρεῖτε μύσται τοῦ θεοῦ σεσωμένου;
ἔσται γὰρ ἠμῖν ἐκ πόνων σωτηρία,

θαρρεῖτε μύσται τοῦ θεοῦ σεσωμένου;
ἔσται γὰρ ἠμῖν ἐκ πόνων σωτηρία,

makes it probable that the ceremony described by Firmicus, c. 22, is the resurrection of Attis.

makes it likely that the ceremony described by Firmicus, c. 22, is the resurrection of Attis.

953.
Ovid, Quick. iv. 337 sqq.; Ammianus Marcellinus, xxiii. 3. For other references see Marquardt and Mannhardt, ll. cc.
954.
Pausanias, vii. 17; Arnobius, Adv. nations, v. 6.; cp. Hippolytus, Refute all heirs. v. 9, pp. 166, 168.
955.
See above, p. 264 sq.
956.
Firmicus Maternus, 27.
957.
Above, p. 81.
958.
Hippolytus, Ref. omn. haeres. v. cc. 8, 9, pp. 162, 168; Firmicus Maternus, On Religious Error 3.
959.
Julian, Orat. v. 174 a b.
960.
Duncker, History of Antiquity,5 i. 456, note 4; Roscher, Detailed Encyclopedia of Greek and Roman Mythology, i. c. 724. Cp. Polybius, xxii. 20 (18).
961.
The conjecture is that of Henzen in Annal. d. Inst. 1856, p. 110, referred to in Roscher, l.c.
962.
See pp. 84, 231.
963.
Article "Phrygia," in Encyclopedia Britannica, ninth ed. xviii. 853.
964.
xii. 5, 3.
965.
The myth, in a connected form, is only known from Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, cc. 13-19. Some additional details, recovered from Egyptian sources, will be found in the work of Adolf Erman, Egypt and Egyptian Life in Ancient Times, p. 365 sqq.
966.
Le Page Renouf, Hibbert Lectures, 1879, p. 110; Brugsch, Religion and mythology of the ancient Egyptians, p. 614; Ad. Erman, l.c.; Ed. Meyer, History of Antiquity, i. § 56 sq.
967.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 13; Diodorus, i. 14; Tibullus, i. 7, 29 sqq.
968.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 8.
969.
So Brugsch, op. cit. p. 617. Plutarch, op. cit. 39, says four days, beginning with the 17th of the month Athyr.
970.
In the Alexandrian year the month Athyr corresponded to November. But as the old Egyptian year was vague, that is, made no use of intercalation, the astronomical date of each festival varied from year to year, till it had passed through the whole cycle of the astronomical year. From the fact, therefore, that, when the calendar became fixed, Athyr fell in November, no inference can be drawn as to the date at which the death of Osiris was originally celebrated. It is thus perfectly possible that it may have been originally a harvest festival, though the Egyptian harvest falls, not in November, but in April; cp. Selden, On the Syrian Gods, p. 335 sq.; Parthey on Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, c. 39.
971.
Brugsch, l.c. For a specimen of these lamentations see Brugsch, op. cit. p. 631 sq.; *Records of the Past*, ii. 119 sqq. For the annual ceremonies of finding and burying Osiris, see also Firmicus Maternus, On the error of profane religions, 2 § 3; Servius on Virgil, Aen. iv. 609.
972.
Brugsch, op. cit. p. 617 sq.; Erman, Egypt and Egyptian Life in Ancient Times, p. 377 sq.
973.
Erman, l.c.; Wilkinson, Manners and Customs of the Ancient Egyptians (London, 1878), iii. 68, 82; Tiele, *History of the Egyptian Religion*, p. 46.
974.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35. ὁμολογεῖ δὲ καὶ τὰ τιτανικὰ καὶ νὺξ τελεία τοῖς λεγομένοις Ὀσίριδος διασπασμοῖς καὶ ταῖς ἀναβιώσεσι καὶ παλιγγενεσίαις, ὁμοίως δὲ καὶ τὰ περὶ τὰς ταφάς.
975.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 39.
976.
Tibullus, i. 7, 33
977.
Brugsch, op. cit. p. 621.
978.
Servius on Virgil, Georg. i. 166.
979.
Above, p. 267.
980.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 73, cp. 33; Diodorus, i. 88.
981.
Plutarch, op. cit. 31; Herodotus, ii. 38.
982.
Herrera, quoted by Bastian, Cultural nations of ancient America, ii. 639.
983.
Lefébure, The Osirian myth (Paris, 1874-75), p. 188.
984.
Firmicus Maternus, On the error of profane religions, 2, § 6, The defenders want to add a physical explanation, saying that the seeds of crops are what Osiris represents; Isis represents the earth, and Typhon represents heat. Because ripe crops are gathered due to heat for human life and are separated from the bonds of the earth, then planted again as winter approaches, they see this as the death of Osiris when the crops are buried, and as his rebirth when the crops, conceived from the fertile earth, start to grow again each year.; Eusebius, Prep. Evang. iii. 11, 31, ὁ δὲ Ὄσιρις παρ᾽ Αἰγυπτίος τὴν κάρπιμον παρίστησι δύναμιν, ἤν θρήνοις ἀπομειλίσσονται εἰς γῆν ἀφανιζομένην ἐν τῷ σπόρῳ. καὶ ὑφ᾽ ἡμῶν καταναλισκομένην εὶς τὰς τροφάς.
985.
Same source. 27, § 1.
986.
Isis and Osiris, 21, αινῶ δὲ τομὴν ξύλου καὶ σχίσιν λίνου καὶ χοὰς χεομένας. διὰ τὸ πολλὰ τῶν μυστικῶν ἀναμεμῖχθαι τούτοις. Again, c. 42, τὸ δὲ ξύλον ἐν ταῖς λεγομέναις; Ὀσίριδος ταφαῖς τέμνοντες κατασκευάζουσι λάρνακα μηνοειδὴ.
987.
See above, p. 304.
988.
Lefébure, The Osiris Myth, pp. 194, 198, referring to Mariette, Denderah, iv. 66 and 72.
989.
Lefébure, same work pp. 195, 197.
990.
Birch, in Wilkinson's Manners and Customs of the Ancient Egyptians (London, 1878), iii. 84.
991.
Wilkinson, op. cit. iii. 63 sq.; Ed. Meyer, History of Antiquity, i. §§ 56, 60.
992.
Wilkinson, op. cit. iii. 349 sq.; Brugsch, Religion and Mythology of the Ancient Egyptians, p. 621; Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 20. In Plutarch l.c. Parthey proposes to read μυρίκης for μηθίδης, and this conjecture appears to be accepted by Wilkinson, l.c.
993.
Lefébure, The Osirian myth, p. 191.
994.
Lefébure, op. cit. p. 188.
995.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35. One of the points in which the myths of Isis and Demeter agree, is that both goddesses in their search for the loved and lost one are said to have sat down, sad at heart and weary, on the edge of a well. Hence those who had been initiated at Eleusis were forbidden to sit on a well. Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 15; Homer, Song for Demeter, 98 sq.; Pausanias, i. 39, 1; Apollodorus, i. 5, 1; Nicander, Theriaca, 486; Clemens Alex., Protrept. ii. 20.
996.
Brugsch, Religion and mythology of the ancient Egyptians, p. 645.
997.
C. P. Tiele, *History of Egyptian Religion*, p. 57.
998.
Hibbert Lectures, 1879, p. 111.
999.
Diodorus, i. 14. Eusebius (Preparing. Gospel. iii. 3) quotes from Diodorus (i. 11-13) a long passage on the early religion of Egypt, prefacing the quotation (c. 2) with the remark γράφει δὲ καὶ τὰ περὶ τούτων πλατύτερον μὲν ὁ Μανέθως, ἐπετετμημένως δὲ ὁ Διόδωρος, which seems to imply that Diodorus epitomised Manetho.
1000.
Brugsch, op. cit. p. 647.
1001.
Brugsch, op. cit. p. 649.
1002.
Brugsch,l.c.
1003.
Herodotus, ii. 59, 156; Diodorus, i. 13, 25, 96; Apollodorus, ii. 1, 3; Tzetzes, Schol. in Lycophron. 212.
1004.
Antholog. Planud. 264, 1.
1005.
Orphica, ed. Abel, p. 295 sqq.
1006.
Jablonski, Egyptian Pantheon (Frankfurt, 1750), i. 125 square
1007.
i. 11.
1008.
See p. 310, note.
1009.
See the Saturnalia, bk. i.
1010.
Saturn. i. 21, 11.
1011.
Maspero, Ancient History of the Peoples of the East4 (Paris, 1886), p. 35.
1012.
Wilkinson, Manners and Customs of the Ancient Egyptians (London, 1878), iii. 353.
1013.
Isis and Osiris, 52.
1014.
De errore profan. religionum, 8.
1015.
Lepsius, "About the first circle of Egyptian gods and its historical-mythological origins," in Transactions of the Royal Academy of Sciences in Berlin, 1851, p. 194 sq.
1016.
The view here taken of the history of Egyptian religion is based on the sketch in Erman's Egypt and Egyptian Life in Ancient Times, p. 351 sqq.
1017.
On this attempted revolution in religion see Lepsius in Proceedings of the Royal Academy of Sciences in Berlin, 1851, pp. 196-201; Erman, op. cit. p. 355
1018.
Tiele, Egyptian Religion History, p. 44.
1019.
Tiele, op. cit. p. 46.
1020.
Ib. p. 45.
1021.
Le Page Renouf, Hibbert Talks, 1879, p. 111 sqq.
1022.
Hibbert Lectures, 1879, p. 113. Cp. Maspero, Ancient history,4 p. 35; Ed. Meyer, History of Antiquity, i. §§ 55, 57.
1023.

There are far more plausible grounds for identifying Osiris with the moon than with the sun—1. He was said to have lived or reigned twenty-eight years; Plutarch, Isis et Osiris, cc. 13, 42. This might be taken as a mythical expression for a lunar month. 2. His body was rent into fourteen pieces (ib. cc. 18, 42). This might be interpreted of the moon on the wane, losing a piece of itself on each of the fourteen days which make up the second half of a lunation. It is expressly mentioned that Typhon found the body of Osiris at the full moon (ib. 8); thus the dismemberment of the god would begin with the waning of the moon. 3. In a hymn supposed to be addressed by Isis to Osiris, it is said that Thoth

There are much more believable reasons to link Osiris with the moon rather than the sun—1. He was said to have lived or ruled for twenty-eight years; Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, cc. 13, 42. This could be seen as a mythical reference to a lunar month. 2. His body was torn into fourteen pieces (ib. cc. 18, 42). This might represent the moon during its waning phase, losing a part of itself over the fourteen days that make up the second half of a lunar cycle. It's specifically noted that Typhon found Osiris's body at the full moon (ibid. 8); thus, the god's dismemberment would start with the moon's decline. 3. In a hymn that is believed to be addressed by Isis to Osiris, it is said that Thoth

“Placeth thy soul in the bark Ma-at,
In that name which is thine, of God Moon.”

"Place your spirit in the vessel of Ma-at,
In that name that belongs to you, of God Moon."

And again,

And once more,

“Thou who comest to us as a child each month,
We do not cease to contemplate thee,
Thine emanation heightens the brilliancy
Of the stars of Orion in the firmament,”
etc.

“You who comes to us as a child each month,
We constantly think about you,
Your presence makes the brightness
Of the stars of Orion in the sky even more stunning,”
etc.

Records of the Past, i. 121 sq.; Brugsch, Religion und Mythologie der alten Aegypter, p. 629 sq. Here then Osiris is identified with the moon in set terms. If in the same hymn he is said to “illuminate us like Ra” (the sun), this, as we have already seen, is no reason for identifying him with the sun, but quite the contrary. 4. At the new moon of the month Phanemoth, being the beginning of spring, the Egyptians celebrated what they called “the entry of Osiris into the moon.” Plutarch, Is. et Os. 43. 5. The bull Apis, which was regarded as an image of the soul of Osiris (Is. et Os. cc. 20, 29), was born of a cow which was believed to have been impregnated by the moon (ib. 43). 6. Once a year, at the full moon, pigs were sacrificed simultaneously to the moon and Osiris. Herodotus, ii. 47; Plutarch, Is. et Os. 8. The relation of the pig to Osiris will be examined later on.

History Archives, i. 121 sq.; Brugsch, Religion and Mythology of the Ancient Egyptians, p. 629 sq. Here, Osiris is clearly associated with the moon. When the hymn states he will “shine on us like Ra” (the sun), it doesn’t mean he is being identified with the sun; in fact, it suggests the opposite. 4. During the new moon in the month of Phanemoth, marking the start of spring, the Egyptians celebrated the event they referred to as “Osiris's entry into the moon.” Plutarch, Is. and Os. 43. 5. The bull Apis, viewed as a representation of the soul of Osiris (Is. et Os. cc. 20, 29), was born from a cow that was thought to have been impregnated by the moon (ibid. 43). 6. Once a year, during the full moon, pigs were sacrificed to both the moon and Osiris at the same time. Herodotus, ii. 47; Plutarch, Is. and Os. 8. The connection between the pig and Osiris will be discussed later.

Without attempting to explain in detail why a god of vegetation, as I take Osiris to have been, should have been brought into such close connection with the moon, I may refer to the intimate relation which is vulgarly believed to subsist between the growth of vegetation and the phases of the moon. See e.g. Pliny, Nat. Hist. ii. 221, xvi. 190, xvii. 108, 215, xviii. 200, 228, 308, 314; Plutarch, Quaest. Conviv. iii. 10, 3; Aulus Gellius, xx. 8, 7; Macrobius, Saturn. vii. 16, 29 sq. Many examples are furnished by the ancient writers on agriculture, e.g. Cato, 37, 4; Varro, i. 37; Geoponica, i. 6.

Without trying to explain in detail why a god of vegetation, as I believe Osiris was, should be linked so closely with the moon, I can mention the widely held belief in the close relationship between plant growth and the phases of the moon. See *for example* Pliny, Nat. Hist. ii. 221, xvi. 190, xvii. 108, 215, xviii. 200, 228, 308, 314; Plutarch, Questions. Feast. iii. 10, 3; Aulus Gellius, xx. 8, 7; Macrobius, Saturn. vii. 16, 29 sq. Many examples are provided by ancient writers on agriculture, e.g. Cato, 37, 4; Varro, i. 37; Geoponica, i. 6.

1024.
Herodotus, ii. 42, 49, 59, 144, 156; Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 13, 35; id., Questions. Banquet. iv. 5, 3; Diodorus, i. 13, 25, 96, iv. 1; Orphica, Hymn 42; Eusebius, Prep. Evang. iii. 11, 31; Servius on Virgil, Aen. xi. 287; id., on George. i. 166; Hippolytus, Refut. omn. haeres. v. 9, p. 168; Socrates, Ecclesiastical History iii. 23, p. 204; Tzetzes, Scholar in Lycophron, 212; Διηγήματα, xxii. 2, in Greek Mythography, ed. Westermann, p. 368; Nonnus, Dionysus. iv. 269 sq.; Cornutus, On the Nature of the Gods, c. 28; Clemens Alexandr. Protrept. ii. 19; Firmicus Maternus, De errore profan. relig. 7.
1025.
Lucian, *Goddess of Syria*, 7.
1026.
Herodotus, ii. 49.
1027.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35.
1028.
Osiris, Attis, Adonis, and Dionysus were all explained by him as the sun; but he stopped short at Demeter (Ceres), whom, however, he interpreted as the moon. See the Saturnalia, bk. i.
1029.
On Dionysus in general see Preller, Greek Mythology,3 i. 544 sqq.; Fr. Lenormant, article “Bacchus” in Daremberg et Saglio, Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities, i. 591 sqq.; Voigt and Thraemer's article “Dionysus,” in Roscher's Comprehensive Dictionary of Greek and Roman Mythology, i. c. 1029 sqq.
1030.
Plutarch, Quest. Feast. v. 3, Διονύσῳ δὲ δενδρίτῃ πάντες, ὡς ἔθος εἰπεῖν, Ἕλληνες θύουσιν.
1031.
Hesychius, s.v. Ἔνδενδρος.
1032.
See the pictures of his images, taken from ancient vases, in Bötticher, Tree worship of the Greeks, plates 42, 43, 43a, 43b, 44; Daremberg et Saglio, op. cit. i. 361, 626.
1033.
Daremberg et Saglio, op. cit. i. 626.
1034.
Cornutus, On the Nature of the Gods, 30.
1035.
Pindar, quoted by Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35.
1036.
Maximus Tyrius, Dissertation. viii. 1.
1037.
Athenaeus, iii. pp. 78 c, 82 d.
1038.
Himerius, Orat. i. 10, Διόνυσος γεωργεῖ.
1039.
Orphica, Hymn l. 4, liii. 8.
1040.
Aelian, Var. Hist. iii. 41; Hesychius, s.v. Φλέω[ς]. Cp. Plutarch, Quest. Banquet. v. 8, 3.
1041.
Pausanias, i. 31, 4; id. vii. 21, 6 (2).
1042.
Plutarch, Query. Feast. v. 3.
1043.
Pausanias, ii. 2, 6 (5) sq. Pausanias does not mention the kind of tree; but from Euripides, Bacchae, 1064 sqq., and Philostratus, Imag. i. 17 (18), we may infer that it was a pine; though Theocritus (xxvi. 11) speaks of it as a mastich-tree.
1044.
Müller-Wieseler, Monuments of ancient art, ii. pl. xxxii. sqq.; Baumeister, Monuments of classical antiquity, i. figures 489, 491, 492, 495. Cp. Lenormant in Daremberg et Saglio, i. 623; Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 700.
1045.
Pausanias, i. 31, 6 (3).
1046.
Athenaeus, iii. p. 78 c.
1047.
Firmicus Maternus, On the Error of Profane Religions, 6.
1048.
Clemens Alexandr., Protrept. ii. 17. Cp. Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 1111 sqq.
1049.
Clemens Alexandr., Protrept. ii. 19.
1050.
Clemens Alexandr., Protrept. ii. 18; Proclus on Plato's Timaeus, iii. 200 D, quoted by Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 562, and by Abel, Orphica, p. 234. Others said that the mangled body was pieced together, not by Apollo but by Rhea. Cornutus, *On the Nature of the Gods*, 30.
1051.
Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 572 For a conjectural restoration of the temple, based on ancient authorities and an examination of the scanty remains, see an article by Professor J. H. Middleton, in *Journal of Hellenic Studies*, vol. ix. p. 282 sqq.
1052.
Diodorus, iii. 62.
1053.
Macrobius, Comment. in Somn. Scip. i. 12, 12; Three Latin writers of mythological things recently discovered in Rome (commonly referred to as Vatican Mythography), ed. G. H. Bode (Cellis, 1834), iii. 12, 5, p. 246; Origen, c. Cels. iv. 171, quoted by Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 713.
1054.
Himerius, Orat. ix. 4.
1055.
Proclus, Song for Minerva, in Lobeck, Aglaophamus, p. 561; Orphica, ed. Abel, p. 235.
1056.
Hyginus, Fabulous. 167.
1057.
The festivals of Dionysus were biennial in many places. See Schömann, Greek Antiquities,3 ii. 500 sqq. (The terms for the festival were τριετηρίς, τριετηρικός both terms of the series being included in the numeration, in accordance with the ancient mode of reckoning.) Probably the festivals were formerly annual and the period was afterwards lengthened, as has happened with other festivals. See W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, pp. 172, 175; 491, 533 sq., 598. Some of the festivals of Dionysus, however, were annual.
1058.
Firmicus Maternus, Of errors in religion. 6.
1059.
Mythogr. Vatic. ed. Bode, l.c.
1060.
Plutarch, Consol. ad uxor. 10. Cp. id., Isis and Osiris, 35; id., The Delphic Oracle, 9; id., De esu carnium, i. 7.
1061.
Pausanias, ii. 31, 2, and 37, 5; Apollodorus, iii. 5, 3.
1062.
Pausanias, ii. 37, 5 sq.; Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35; id., Quaest. Conviv. iv. 6, 2.
1063.
Himerius, Speaker. iii. 6, xiv. 7.
1064.
For Dionysus, see Lenormant in Daremberg et Saglio, i. 632. For Osiris, see Wilkinson, Manners and Customs of the Ancient Egyptians (London, 1878), iii. 65.
1065.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35; id., Questions. Greek. 36; Athenaeus, xi. 476 a; Clemens Alexandr., Protrept. ii. 16; Orphica, Hymn xxx. vv. 3, 4, xlv. 1, lii. 2, liii. 8; Euripides, Bacchae, 99; Schol. on Aristophanes, Frogs, 357; Nicander, Alexipharmaca, 31; Lucian, Dionysus, 2.
1066.
Euripides, Bacchae, 920 sqq., 1017.
1067.
Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 35; Athenaeus, l.c.
1068.
Diodorus, iii. 64, 2, iv. 4, 2; Cornutus, De natura deorum, 30.
1069.
Diodorus, l.c.; Tzetzes, Schol. in Lycophr. 209; Philostratus, Imagines, i. 14 (15).
1070.
Müller-Wieseler, Monuments of ancient art, ii. pl. xxxiii.; Daremberg et Saglio, i. 619 sq., 631; Roscher, Detailed Dictionary, i. c. 1149
1071.
Welcker, Old Monuments, v. taf. 2.
1072.
Plutarch, Question. Greek. 36; id., Isis and Osiris, 35.
1073.
Nonnus, Dionysus. vi. 205.
1074.
Firmicus Maternus, On the Error of Profane Religions, 6.
1075.
Euripides, Bacchae, 735 ; Schol. on Aristophanes, Frogs, 357.
1076.
Hesychius, s.v. Ἔριφος ὁ Διόνυσος, on which there is a marginal gloss ὁ μικρὸς αἴξ, ὁ ἐν τῷ ἔαρι φαινόμενος, ἤγουν ὁ πρώϊμος; Stephanus Byzant. s.v. Ἀκρώρεια. The title Εἰραφιώτης is probably to be explained in the same way. [Homer], Song xxxiv. 2; Porphyry, De abstin. iii. 17; Dionysius, Perieg. 576; Etymological Dictionary, p. 371, 57.
1077.
Apollodorus, iii. 4, 3.
1078.
Ovid, Metam. v. 329; Antoninus Liberalis, 28; Mythography. Prophecy. ed. Bode, i. 86, p. 29.
1079.
Arnobius, Adv. nations, v. 19. Cp. Suidas, s.v. αἰγίζειν. As fawns appear to have been also torn in pieces at the rites of Dionysus (Photius, s.v. νεβρίζειν; Harpocration, s.v. νεβρίζων), it is probable that the fawn was another of the god's embodiments. But of this there seems no direct evidence. Fawn-skins were worn both by the god and his worshippers (Cornutus, On the Nature of the Gods, c. 30). Similarly the female Bacchanals wore goat-skins (Hesychius, s.v. τραγηφόροι).
1080.
Varro, De re rustica i. 2, 19; Virgil, George. ii. 380, and Servius, ad I., and on Aen. iii. 118; Ovid, Fasti, i. 353 sqq.; id., Metam. xv. 114 sq.; Cornutus, On the Nature of the Gods, 30.
1081.
Euripides, Bacchae, 138 sq. ἀγρεύων αἷμα τραγοκτόνον, ὡμοφάγον χάριν.
1082.
Schol. on Aristophanes, Frogs, 357.
1083.
Hera αἱγοφάγος at Sparta, Pausanias, iii. 15, 9 (cp. the representation of Hera clad in a goat's skin, with the animal's head and horns over her head, Müller-Wieseler, Monuments of ancient art, i. No. 299 b); Apollo ὁψοφάγος at Elis, Athenaeus, 346 b; Artemis καπροφάγος in Samos, Hesychius, s.v. καπροφάγος; cp. id., s.v. κριοφάγος. Divine titles derived from murder animals are probably to be similarly explained, as Dionysus αἱγόβολος, Pausanias ix. 8, 2; Rhea or Hecate κυνοσφαγής, Tzetzes, Schol. in Lycophr. 77; Apollo λυκοκτόνος, Sophocles, Electra, 6; Apollo σαυροκτόνος, Pliny, Nat. Hist. xxxiv. 70.
1084.
Porphyry, De abstin. ii. 55.
1085.
Pausanias, ix. 8, 2.
1086.
Plutarch, Question. Greek. 38.
1087.
Aelian, Nat. An. xii. 34. Cp. W. Robertson Smith, Semitic Religion, i. 286 sqq.
1088.
It is to be remembered that on the Mediterranean coasts the harvest never falls so late as autumn.
1089.
On Demeter as a corn-goddess see Mannhardt, , p. 224 sqq.; on Proserpine in the same character see Cornutus, De nat. deor. c. 28; Varro in Augustine, Civitas Dei, vii. 20; Hesychius, s.v. Φερσεφόνεια; Firmicus Maternus, On the error of prof. relig. 17. In his careful account of Demeter as a corn-goddess Mannhardt appears to have overlooked the very important statement of Hippolytus (Refute all heresies. v. 8, p. 162, ed. Duncker and Schneidewin) that at the initiation into the Eleusinian mysteries (the most famous of all the rites of Demeter) the central mystery revealed to the initiated was a reaped ear of corn.
1090.
Welcker, Greek mythology, ii. 532; Preller, in Pauly's Real Encyclopedia for classical. Antiquities. vi. 107; Lenormant, in Daremberg et Saglio, Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities, i. pt. ii. 1047 sqq.
1091.
Homer, Song to Demeter; Apollodorus, i. 5; Ovid, Fasti, iv. 425 sqq.; id., Metam. v. 385 sqq.
1092.
A third, according to Homer, H. to Demeter, 399, and Apollodorus, i. 5, 3; a half, according to Ovid, Calendar, iv. 614; id., Metam. v. 567; Hyginus, Awesome. 146.
1093.
Schömann, Greek Antiquities,3 ii. 393; Preller, Greek Mythology,3 i. 628 sq., 644 sq., 650 sq. The evidence of the ancients on this head, though not full and definite, seems sufficient. See Diodorus, v. 4; Firmicus Maternus, cc. 7, 27; Plutarch, Isis and Osiris, 69; Apuleius, Met. vi. 2; Clemens Alex., Protrept. ii. §§ 12, 17.
1094.
Mythology Research, p. 292 sqq.
1095.
Etymology. Major, p. 264, 12 sec.
1096.
O. Schrader, Language Comparison and Prehistory2 (Jena, 1890), pp. 409, 422; V. Hehn, Crops and domestic animals in their transition from Asia,4 p. 54. Δηαί is doubtless equivalent etymologically to ζειαί, which is often taken to be spelt, but this seems uncertain.
1097.
Hesiod, Theog. 971; Lenormant, in Daremberg et Saglio, i. pt. ii. p. 1029.
1098.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 296.
1099.
Ib. p. 297.
1100.
Ib. p. 297 sq.
1101.
Id. p. 299.
1102.
Ib. p. 300.
1103.
Ib. p. 310.
1104.
W. Mannhardt, Myth Research. p. 310 sq.
1105.
Ib. p. 316.
1106.
Ib. p. 316.
1107.
Ib. p. 316 sq.
1108.
See above, pp. 16 squared, 286 sq.
1109.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 317.
1110.
Ib. p. 317 sq.
1111.
Ib. p. 318.
1112.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 318.
1113.
Ib. p. 318 sq.
1114.
Sébillot, Folk customs of Upper Brittany, p. 306.
1115.
W. Mannhardt, M. F. p. 319.
1116.
Ib. p. 320.
1117.
Mannhardt, Mythology Research. p. 321.
1118.
Ib. pp. 321, 323, 325 sq.
1119.
Ib. p. 323; Panzer, Contribution to German mythology, ii. p. 219, No. 403.
1120.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 325.
1121.
Ib. p. 323.
1122.
Ib.
1123.
Ib. p. 323 sq.
1124.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 324.
1125.
Ib. p. 320.
1126.
Ib. p. 325.
1127.
See abbove, p. 83 sqq.
1128.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 324.
1129.
Ib. p. 324 sq.
1130.
Ib. p. 325.
1131.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 327.
1132.
Ib. p. 328.
1133.
Jamieson, Scottish Language Dictionary, s.v. "Girl"; W. Mannhardt, Mythology. Research, p. 326.
1134.
Communicated by my friend Prof. W. Ridgeway, of Queen's College, Cork.
1135.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 328.
1136.
Ib.
1137.
Ib. p. 328 sq.
1138.
Ib. p. 329.
1139.
Ib. p. 330.
1140.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 330.
1141.
Ib. p. 331.
1142.
Ib. p. 331.
1143.
Ib. p. 332.
1144.
Hutchinson, *History of Northumberland*, ii. to the end, 17, quoted by Brand, Trending Antiques, ii. 20, Bohn's ed.
1145.
Quoted by Brand, op. cit. ii. 22.
1146.
W. Mannhardt, Myth research. p. 333 squ.
1147.
Ib. p. 334.
1148.
Ib. p. 334.
1149.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 336.
1150.
Ib. p. 336.
1151.
Ib. p. 336; Tree worship, p. 612.
1152.
W. Mannhardt, The Corn Demons, p. 28.
1153.
W. Mannhardt, l.c.
1154.
Ib.; Henderson, Folklore of the Northern Counties, p. 87; Brand, Famous Artifacts, ii. 20, Bohn's ed.; Chambers's Book of Days, ii. 377 sq. Cp. Folklore Journal, vii. 50.
1155.
Brand, op. cit. ii. 21 sq.
1156.
Folklore Journal, vi. 268 sq.
1157.
From information supplied by Archie Leitch, gardener, Rowmore, Garelochhead.
1158.
Communicated by Mr. Macfarlane of Faslane, Gareloch.
1159.
Jamieson, *Dictionary of the Scottish Language*, s.v. “Maiden.”
1160.
W. Gregor, in Review of Folk Traditions, iii. 533 (485 B); ibid., Folklore of North-East Scotland, p. 182. An old Scottish name for the Maiden (autumnalis nymphula) was Rapegyrne. See Fordun, Scotichron. ii. 418, quoted in Jamieson's Scottish Language Dictionary, s.v. “Rapegyrne.”
1161.
W. Mannhardt, The Grain Demons, p. 30; Folklore Journal, vii. 50.
1162.
W. Mannhardt, l.c.; Sommer, Tales, legends, and customs from Saxony and Thuringia, p. 160 sq.
1163.
See above, p. 83 sqq.
1164.
Above, pp. 333, 344.
1165.
Above, p. 307.
1166.
Above, p. 67 sqq.
1167.
Above, pp. 334, 335.
1168.
Above, pp. 334, 345.
1169.
See above, p. 335 sq.
1170.
Above, p. 340; cp. Kuhn, Westphalian Legends, Customs, and Tales, ii. No. 516.
1171.
Above, pp. 336, 337, 345.
1172.
See above, p. 9 sqq.
1173.
Above, p. 341.
1174.
Above, p. 338.
1175.
Above, p. 334, cp. 335.
1176.
Above, pp. 334, 345.
1177.
Above, p. 344 sq.; W. Mannhardt, Corn Demon, pp. 7, 26. Amongst the Wends the last sheaf, made into a puppet and called the Old Man, is hung in the hall till next year's Old Man is brought in. Schulenburg, Wendish Folk Culture, p. 147. In Inverness and Sutherland the Maiden is kept till the next harvest. Folklore Journal, vii. 50, 53 sq. Cp. Kuhn, Westphalian Legends, Customs, and Tales, ii. Nos. 501, 517.
1178.
Acosta, History of the Indies, v. c. 28, vol. ii. p. 374 (Hakluyt Society, 1880).
1179.
W. Mannhardt, Mythology Research. p. 342 sq. Mannhardt's authority is a Spanish tract (Pastoral letter of exhortation and instruction against the idolatries of the Indigenous people of the Archdiocese of Lima) by Pedro de Villagomez, Archbishop of Lima, published at Lima in 1649, and communicated to Mannhardt by J. J. v. Tschudi.
1180.
Brasseur de Bourbourg, History of the Civilized Nations of Mexico, iii. 40 sqq.
1181.
H. M. Elliot, Additional Glossary of Terms Used in the North Western Provinces, edited by J. Beames, i. 254.
1182.
Spenser St. John, Life in the Forests of the Far East,2 i. 187, 192 sqq.
1183.
E. B. Cross, "About the Karens," in Journal of the American Oriental Society, iv. 309.
1184.
See above, p. 346.
1185.
Veth, Java, i. 524-526.
1186.
Homer, Od. v. 125 sqq.; Hesiod, Theog. 969 sqq.
1187.
See above, p. 343 sq.
1188.
It is possible that a ceremony performed in a Cyprian worship of Ariadne may have been of this nature. Plutarch, Theseus, 20, ἐν δὴ τῇ θυσίᾳ τοῦ Γορπιαίου μηνὸς ἱσταμένου δευτέρα κατακλινόμενον τινα τῶν νεανίσκων φθέγγεσθαι καὶ ποιεῖν ἄπερ ὠδινοῦσαι γυναῖκες. We have already seen grounds for regarding Ariadne as a goddess or spirit of vegetation (above, p. 104). If, however, the reference is to the Syro-Macedonian calendar, in which Gorpiaeus corresponds to September (Daremberg et Saglio, i. 831), the ceremony could not have been a harvest celebration, but may have been a vintage one. Amongst the Minnitarees in North America, the Prince of Neuwied saw a tall strong woman pretend to bring up a stalk of maize out of her stomach; the object of the ceremony was to secure a good crop of maize in the following year. Maximilian, Prinz zu Wied, Journey into the heart of North America, ii. 269.
1189.
W. Mannhardt, Tree worship, pp. 468 sq., 480 sqq.; id., Ancient forest and field cults, p. 288 sq.; same., Mythological Research, pp. 146 sqq., 340 ; Van Hoëvell, Ambon and the Oeliasers, p. 62 sq.; Wilken, in Indian Guide, June 1884, pp. 958, 963 sq. Cp. Marco Polo, trans. Yule,2 i. 212 sq.
1190.
See above, p. 335 sq.
1191.
Cp. Preller, Greek Mythology3 i. 628, note 3. In Greece the annual descent of Proserpine appears to have taken place at the Great Eleusinian Mysteries and at the Thesmophoria, that is, about the time of the autumn sowing. But in Sicily her descent seems to have been celebrated when the corn was fully ripe (Diodorus, v. 4), that is, in summer.
1192.
Homer, Song to Demeter, 401 sqq.; Preller, l.c.
1193.
In some places it was customary to kneel down before the last sheaf, in others to kiss it. W. Mannhardt, Corn Demon, 26; same, Mythology Research, p. 339; Folklore Journal, vi. 270.
1194.
Above, p. 332 sq.
1195.
In the Homeric Hymn to Demeter, she is represented as controlling the growth of the corn. See above, p. 331.
1196.
See above, pp. 305 sqq., 309
1197.
Pauly, Real Encyclopedia of class. Alterthumswiss. v. 1011.
1198.
Above, p. 105 sq.
1199.
Diodorus, i. 14, ἔτι γὰρ καὶ νῦν κατὰ τὸν θερισμόν τούς πρώτους ἀμηθέντας στάχυς θέντας τοὺς ἀνθρώπους κόπτεσθαι πλησίον τοῦ δράγματοσ κ.τ.λ. For θέντας we should perhaps read σύνθεντας, which is supported by the following δράγματος.
1200.
Herodotus, ii. 79; Pollux, iv. 54; Pausanias, ix. 29; Athenaeus, 620 A.
1201.
Brugsch, Adonis lament and Linus song, p. 24.
1202.
Above, p. 355.
1203.
Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 249 sq.
1204.
Homer, Il. xviii. 570; Herodotus, ii. 79; Pausanias, ix. 29; Conon, Narrate. 19. For the form Ailinus see Suidas, s.v.; Euripides, Orestes, 1395; Sophocles, Ajax, 627. Cp. Moschus, Idyl. iii. 1; Callimachus, Song to Apollo, 20.
1205.
Conon, l.c.
1206.
W. Mannhardt, A. W. F. p. 281.
1207.
Pausanias, l.c.
1208.
Pollux, iv. 54; Athenaeus, 619 f, 620 a; Hesychius, svv. Βῶρμον and Μαριανδυνὸς θρῆνος.
1209.
The story was told by Sositheus in his play of Daphnis. His verses have been preserved in the tract of an anonymous writer. See Writers of amazing things, ed. Westermann, p. 220; also Athenaeus, 415 b; Schol. on Theocritus, x. 41; Photius, Suidas, and Hesychius, s.v. Lityerses; Apostolius, x. 74. Photius mentions the sickle. Lityerses is the subject of a special study by Mannhardt (Mythological Studies, p. 1 sqq.), whom I follow.
1210.
Pollux, iv. 54.
1211.
In this comparison I closely follow Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 18 sqq.
1212.
Cp. above, p. 340. On the other hand, the last sheaf is sometimes an object of desire and emulation. See p. 336. It is so at Balquhidder also, Folklore Journal, vi. 269; and it was formerly so on the Gareloch, Dumbartonshire, where there was a competition for the honour of cutting it, several handfuls of standing corn being concealed under sheaves.—(From the information of Archie Leitch. See note on p. 345).
1213.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 19 sq.
1214.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 20; Panzer, Contribution to German mythology, ii. 217.
1215.
Above, p. 346 sq.
1216.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 22.
1217.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 22.
1218.
Ib. p. 22 square
1219.
Ib. p. 23.
1220.
Ib. p. 23 sq.
1221.
Ib. p. 24.
1222.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 24.
1223.
Ib. p. 24.
1224.
Ib. p. 24 sq.
1225.
Ib. p. 25.
1226.
Witzschel, Legends, customs, and traditions from Thuringia, p. 223.
1227.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 25 sq.
1228.
C. A. Elliot, Hoshangabad Settlement Report, p. 178, quoted in Panjab Notes & Queries, iii. Nos. 8, 168.
1229.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 31.
1230.
Ib. p. 334.
1231.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 330.
1232.
Ib.
1233.
Ib. p. 331.
1234.
Ib. p. 335.
1235.
Ib. p. 335.
1236.
Above, pp. 335, 341, 350.
1237.
W. Mannhardt, Korndäm., p. 26.
1238.
Above, p. 343.
1239.
W. Mannhardt, M. F. p. 50.
1240.
Ib. p. 50 sq.
1241.
See above, pp. 286 sq., 333, 337, 340, 341.
1242.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 32 sqq. Cp. Review of Popular Traditions, iii. 598.
1243.
W. Mannhardt, Mythology Research. p. 35 sq.
1244.
Ib. p. 36.
1245.
For the evidence, see id. p. 36, note 2. The idea which lies at the bottom of the phrase seems to be explained by the following Cingalese custom. There's an interesting custom at the threshing-floor called ‘Goigote’—the tying of the cultivator's knot. After a sheaf of corn has been threshed, before it's taken away, the grain is piled up and the threshers, usually six of them, sit around it. They take a few stalks, still with the ears of corn attached, and collectively tie a knot and bury it in the pile. It stays there until all the sheaves have been threshed and the corn has been winnowed and measured. The purpose of this ritual is to keep the devils from reducing the amount of corn in the pile. C. J. R. Le Mesurier, "Customs and Superstitions Related to Rice Farming in the Southern Province of Ceylon," in Journal of the Royal Asiatic Society, N.S., xvii. (1885) 371. The “key” in the European custom is probably intended to serve the same purpose as the “knot” in the Cingalese custom.
1246.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 39.
1247.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 39 sq.
1248.
Ib. p. 40. For the speeches made by the woman who binds the stranger or the master, see ib. p. 41; Lemke, Folk Culture in East Prussia, i. 23 sec.
1249.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 41 sq.
1250.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 42.
1251.
Ib. p. 42. See above, p. 343. In Thüringen a being called the Rush-cutter used to be much dreaded. On the morning of St. John's Day he was wont to walk through the fields with sickles tied to his ankles cutting avenues in the corn as he walked. To detect him, seven bundles of brushwood were silently threshed with the flail on the threshing-floor, and the stranger who appeared at the door of the barn during the threshing was the Rush-cutter. Witzschel, Tales, traditions, and customs from Thuringia, p. 221. With the Reed cutter compare the Bilschneider. Panzer, Contribution to German Mythology, ii. 210 sq.
1252.
W. Mannhardt, op. cit. p. 47 sq.
1253.

Ib. p. 48. To prevent a rationalistic explanation of this custom, which, like most rationalistic explanations of folk-custom, would be wrong, it may be pointed out that a little of the crop is sometimes left on the field for the spirit under other names than “the Poor Old Woman.” Thus in a village of the Tilsit district, the last sheaf was left standing on the field “for the Old Rye-woman.” M. F. p. 337. In Neftenbach (Canton of Zürich) the first three ears of corn reaped are thrown away on the field “to satisfy the Corn-mother and to make the next year's crop abundant.” Ib. In Thüringen when the after-grass (Grummet) is being got in, a little heap is left lying on the field; it belongs to “the Little Wood-woman” in return for the blessing she has bestowed. Witzschel, Sagen, Sitten und Gebräuche aus Thüringen, p. 224. At Kupferberg, Bavaria, some corn is left standing on the field when the rest has been cut. Of this corn left standing, they say that “it belongs to the Old Woman,” to whom it is dedicated in the following words—

Ib. p. 48. To avoid a rationalistic interpretation of this tradition, which, like many rationalistic views of folk customs, would be incorrect, it's worth noting that a small portion of the crop is sometimes left in the field for the spirit, referred to by names other than "the Poor Old Woman." For example, in a village in the Tilsit area, the last sheaf was left standing in the field “for the Old Rye woman.” M. F. p. 337. In Neftenbach (Canton of Zürich), the first three ears of corn harvested are discarded on the field "to please the Corn-mother and make sure there’s a plentiful harvest next year." Ib. In Thüringen, when the after-grass (Grummet) is being harvested, a small pile is left on the field; it is dedicated to “the Little Wood Woman” as thanks for her blessings. Witzschel, Legends, customs, and traditions from Thuringia, p. 224. At Kupferberg, Bavaria, some corn is left standing in the field after the rest has been cut. The corn left standing is said to “belong to the Elderly Woman,” and it is dedicated in the following words—

“We give it to the Old Woman;
She shall keep it.
Next year may she be to us
As kind as this time she has been.”

"We'll give it to the Old Woman;
She'll take care of it.
Next year, may she be as generous to us
As she has been this time."

M. F. p. 337 sq. These last expressions are quite conclusive. See also Mannhardt, Korndämonen, p. 7 sq. In Russia a patch of unreaped corn is left in the field and the ears are knotted together; this is called “the plaiting of the beard of Volos.” “The unreaped patch is looked upon as tabooed; and it is believed that if any one meddles with it he will shrivel up, and become twisted like the interwoven ears.” Ralston, Songs of the Russian People, p. 251. In the North-east of Scotland a few stalks were sometimes left unreaped for the benefit of “the aul' man.” W. Gregor, Folk-lore of the North-East of Scotland, p. 182. Here “the aul' man” is probably the equivalent of the Old Man (der Alte) of Germany.

M. F. p. 337 sq. These final expressions are very definitive. See also Mannhardt, Corn Demon, p. 7 sq. In Russia, a section of unharvested wheat is left in the field and the ears are tied together; this is referred to as "the braiding of Volos's beard." "The unharvested area is seen as sacred, and it's believed that anyone who disrupts it will perish and become twisted like the intertwined ears." Ralston, Russian Folk Songs, p. 251. In the North-east of Scotland, a few stalks were sometimes left unharvested for the sake of “the elderly man.” W. Gregor, Folklore of the North-East of Scotland, p. 182. Here “the elderly man” is likely the equivalent of the Old Man (the Old Man) in Germany.

1254.
M. F. p. 48.
1255.
Ib. p. 48 squared
1256.
Ib. p. 49.
1257.
Ib. p. 49 sq.; Wuttke, German folk beliefs,2 § 400; Töppen, Superstitions from Masuria,2 p. 57.
1258.
The explanation of the custom is Mannhardt's. M. F. p. 49.
1259.
Odyssey, xvii. 485 sqq. Cp. Plato, Sophist, 216 a.
1260.
For throwing him into the water, see p. 374.
1261.
Cieza de Leon, Travel, translated by Markham, p. 203 (Hakluyt Society, 1864).
1262.
Brasseur de Bourbourg, History of the Civilized Nations of Mexico, i. 274; Bancroft, Indigenous Peoples of the Pacific States, ii. 340.
1263.
Bastian, The cultural countries of old America, ii. 639 (quoting Herrara). See above, p. 307.
1264.
E. James, Report on a Trip from Pittsburgh to the Rocky Mountains, ii. 80 sq.; Schoolcraft, *Indian Tribes*, v. 77 sqq.; De Smet, Trips to the Rocky Mountains, nouvelle ed. 1873, p. 121 sqq. The accounts by Schoolcraft and De Smet of the sacrifice of the Sioux girl are independent and supplement each other.
1265.
Labat, Historical relationship of Western Ethiopia, i. 380.
1266.
John Adams, Sketches made during Ten Voyages in Africa between 1786 and 1800, p. 25.
1267.
P. Bouche, The Coast of Slaves, p. 132.
1268.
Arbousset et Daumas, Exploration Journey to the Northeast of the Cape of Good Hope Colony, p. 117 sq.
1269.
Punjab Notes and Queries, ii. No. 721.
1270.
Major S. C. Macpherson, Memorials of Service in India, p. 113 sq.; Major-General John Campbell, *Wild Tribes of Khondistan*, pp. 52-58, etc.
1271.
J. Campbell, op. cit. p. 56.
1272.
S. C. Macpherson, op. cit. p. 115 sq.
1273.
Ib. p. 113.
1274.
S. C. Macpherson, op. cit. p. 117 sq.; J. Campbell, p. 112.
1275.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 118.
1276.
J. Campbell, p. 54.
1277.
Ib. pp. 55, 112.
1278.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 119; J. Campbell, p. 113.
1279.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 127. Instead of the branch of a green tree, Campbell mentions two strong planks or bamboos (p. 57) or a slit bamboo (p. 182).
1280.
J. Campbell, pp. 56, 58, 120.
1281.
Dalton, *Bengal Ethnology*, p. 288, quoting Colonel Campbell's Report.
1282.
J. Campbell, p. 126. The elephant represented the Earth Goddess herself, who was here conceived in elephant-form; Campbell, pp. 51, 126. In the hill tracts of Goomsur she was represented in peacock-form, and the post to which the victim was bound bore the effigy of a peacock, Campbell, p. 54.
1283.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 130.
1284.
Dalton, *Bengal Ethnology*, p. 288, referring to Colonel Campbell's Report.
1285.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 129. Cp. J. Campbell, pp. 55, 58, 113, 121, 187.
1286.
J. Campbell, p. 182.
1287.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 128; Dalton, l.c.
1288.
J. Campbell, pp. 55, 182.
1289.
J. Campbell, p. 187.
1290.
J. Campbell, p. 112.
1291.
S. C. Macpherson, p. 118.
1292.
Above, pp. 383, 384.
1293.
Above, pp. 334, 335.
1294.
Above, pp. 333, 344, 345.
1295.
Above, p. 372.
1296.
Above, p. 374.
1297.
Above, pp. 286 sq., 337, 340, 374.
1298.
Above, p. 374.
1299.
W. Mannhardt, Corn Demon, p. 5.
1300.
Pfannenschmid, Germanic Harvest Festivals, p. 98.
1301.
Above, p. 376 sq.
1302.
Above, p. 235.
1303.
Above, p. 299.
1304.
Above, p. 68.
1305.
I do not know when the corn is reaped in Phrygia; but considering the high upland character of the country, harvest is probably later there than on the coasts of the Mediterranean.
1306.
Above, p. 364 sq.
1307.
Above, p. 365.
1308.
Hesychius, s.v. Βῶρμον.
1309.
Apollodorus, ii. 6, 3.
1310.
The scurrilities exchanged in both ancient and modern times between vine-dressers, vintagers, and passers-by seem to belong to a different category. See W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 53 sq.
1311.
Above, p. 282 sqq.
1312.
Above, p. 283 sq.
1313.
Above, pp. 381, 384, 389.
1314.
For this fact of the probable correspondence of the months, which supplies so welcome a confirmation of the conjecture in the text, I am indebted to my friend Professor W. Robertson Smith, who furnishes me with the following note: "In the Syro-Macedonian calendar, Lous represents Ab, not Tammuz. Was it different in Babylon? I believe it was, and at least one month different, especially during the early days of the Greek monarchy in Asia. We know from a Babylonian observation in the Almagest (Ideler, I. 396) that in 229 b.c., Xanthicus started on February 26. So, it was the month before the equinoctial moon, making it Adar instead of Nisan, and therefore, Lous corresponded to the lunar month Tammuz."
1315.
Above, p. 364.
1316.
Apollodorus, ii. 5, 11; Schol. on Apollonius Rhodius, iv. 1396; Plutarch, Parall. 38. Herodotus (ii. 45) discredits the idea that the Egyptians ever offered human sacrifices. But his authority is not to be weighed against that of Manetho (Plutarch, Is. et Os. 73), who affirms that they did.
1317.
E. Meyer, History of Antiquity, i. § 57.
1318.
Diodorus, i. 88; Plutarch, Is. et Os. 73; cp. same., 30, 33.
1319.
Above, pp. 307, 383, 391.
1320.
Festus, s.v. Catularia. Cp. id., s.v. red dogs; Columella, x. 343; Ovid, Calendar, iv. 905 sqq.; Pliny, N. H. xviii. § 14.
1321.
Panzer, Contribution to German mythology, ii. 207, No. 362; Bavaria, Regional and Folk Studies of the Kingdom of Bavaria, iii. 343.
1322.
Above, pp. 384, 389.
1323.
Above, pp. 381, 383.
1324.
Plutarch, Is. et Os. 18.
1325.
Plutarch, Is. et Os. 22, 30, 31, 33, 73.
1326.
Wilkinson, Manners and Customs of the Ancient Egyptians (ed. 1878), iii. 81.
1327.
Pausanias, i. 22, 3, viii. 5, 8, viii. 42, 1
1328.
Cornutus, The nature. beast. c. 28.
1329.
Hone, Everyday Book, ii. c. 1170 sq.
1330.
Miss C. S. Burne and Miss G. F. Jackson, Shropshire Folklore, p. 372 sq., referring to Mrs. Bray's *Devon Traditions*, i. 330.
1331.
Hone, op. cit. ii. 1172.
1332.
Brand, Famous Artifacts, ii. 20 (Bohn's ed.); Burne and Jackson, op. cit. p. 371.
1333.
Burne and Jackson, l.c.
1334.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 185.
1335.
See above, p. 345.
1336.
W. Mannhardt, Myth. Research. p. 185.
1337.
Ib.
1338.
Review of Popular Traditions, ii. 500.
1339.
Above, p. 343.
1340.
U. Jahn, German victim customs in agriculture and animal husbandry, pp. 166-169; Pfannenschmid, Germanic Harvest Festivals, p. 104 sq.; Kuhn, Westphalian Legends, Customs, and Tales, ii. Nos. 491, 492; Kuhn und Schwartz, Northern German Legends, Tales, and Traditions, p. 395, No. 97; Lynker, German Legends and Customs in the Hessian Regions, p. 256, No. 340.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!